Quotations.ch
  Directory : Jane Eyre
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg eBook, Jane Eyre, by Charlotte Bronte, Illustrated
  • by F. H. Townsend
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • Title: Jane Eyre
  • an Autobiography
  • Author: Charlotte Bronte
  • Release Date: April 29, 2007 [eBook #1260]
  • Language: English
  • Character set encoding: ISO-646-US (US-ASCII)
  • ***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK JANE EYRE***
  • Transcribed from the 1897 Service & Paton edition by David Price, email
  • ccx074@pglaf.org
  • JANE EYRE
  • AN AUTOBIOGRAPHY
  • BY
  • CHARLOTTE BRONTE
  • _ILLUSTRATED BY F. H. TOWNSEND_
  • London
  • SERVICE & PATON
  • 5 HENRIETTA STREET
  • 1897
  • _The Illustrations_
  • _in this Volume are the copyright of_
  • SERVICE & PATON, _London_
  • TO
  • W. M. THACKERAY, ESQ.,
  • This Work
  • IS RESPECTFULLY INSCRIBED
  • BY
  • THE AUTHOR
  • PREFACE
  • A preface to the first edition of "Jane Eyre" being unnecessary, I gave
  • none: this second edition demands a few words both of acknowledgment and
  • miscellaneous remark.
  • My thanks are due in three quarters.
  • To the Public, for the indulgent ear it has inclined to a plain tale with
  • few pretensions.
  • To the Press, for the fair field its honest suffrage has opened to an
  • obscure aspirant.
  • To my Publishers, for the aid their tact, their energy, their practical
  • sense and frank liberality have afforded an unknown and unrecommended
  • Author.
  • The Press and the Public are but vague personifications for me, and I
  • must thank them in vague terms; but my Publishers are definite: so are
  • certain generous critics who have encouraged me as only large-hearted and
  • high-minded men know how to encourage a struggling stranger; to them,
  • _i.e._, to my Publishers and the select Reviewers, I say cordially,
  • Gentlemen, I thank you from my heart.
  • Having thus acknowledged what I owe those who have aided and approved me,
  • I turn to another class; a small one, so far as I know, but not,
  • therefore, to be overlooked. I mean the timorous or carping few who
  • doubt the tendency of such books as "Jane Eyre:" in whose eyes whatever
  • is unusual is wrong; whose ears detect in each protest against
  • bigotry--that parent of crime--an insult to piety, that regent of God on
  • earth. I would suggest to such doubters certain obvious distinctions; I
  • would remind them of certain simple truths.
  • Conventionality is not morality. Self-righteousness is not religion. To
  • attack the first is not to assail the last. To pluck the mask from the
  • face of the Pharisee, is not to lift an impious hand to the Crown of
  • Thorns.
  • These things and deeds are diametrically opposed: they are as distinct as
  • is vice from virtue. Men too often confound them: they should not be
  • confounded: appearance should not be mistaken for truth; narrow human
  • doctrines, that only tend to elate and magnify a few, should not be
  • substituted for the world-redeeming creed of Christ. There is--I repeat
  • it--a difference; and it is a good, and not a bad action to mark broadly
  • and clearly the line of separation between them.
  • The world may not like to see these ideas dissevered, for it has been
  • accustomed to blend them; finding it convenient to make external show
  • pass for sterling worth--to let white-washed walls vouch for clean
  • shrines. It may hate him who dares to scrutinise and expose--to rase the
  • gilding, and show base metal under it--to penetrate the sepulchre, and
  • reveal charnel relics: but hate as it will, it is indebted to him.
  • Ahab did not like Micaiah, because he never prophesied good concerning
  • him, but evil; probably he liked the sycophant son of Chenaannah better;
  • yet might Ahab have escaped a bloody death, had he but stopped his ears
  • to flattery, and opened them to faithful counsel.
  • There is a man in our own days whose words are not framed to tickle
  • delicate ears: who, to my thinking, comes before the great ones of
  • society, much as the son of Imlah came before the throned Kings of Judah
  • and Israel; and who speaks truth as deep, with a power as prophet-like
  • and as vital--a mien as dauntless and as daring. Is the satirist of
  • "Vanity Fair" admired in high places? I cannot tell; but I think if some
  • of those amongst whom he hurls the Greek fire of his sarcasm, and over
  • whom he flashes the levin-brand of his denunciation, were to take his
  • warnings in time--they or their seed might yet escape a fatal
  • Rimoth-Gilead.
  • Why have I alluded to this man? I have alluded to him, Reader, because I
  • think I see in him an intellect profounder and more unique than his
  • contemporaries have yet recognised; because I regard him as the first
  • social regenerator of the day--as the very master of that working corps
  • who would restore to rectitude the warped system of things; because I
  • think no commentator on his writings has yet found the comparison that
  • suits him, the terms which rightly characterise his talent. They say he
  • is like Fielding: they talk of his wit, humour, comic powers. He
  • resembles Fielding as an eagle does a vulture: Fielding could stoop on
  • carrion, but Thackeray never does. His wit is bright, his humour
  • attractive, but both bear the same relation to his serious genius that
  • the mere lambent sheet-lightning playing under the edge of the summer-
  • cloud does to the electric death-spark hid in its womb. Finally, I have
  • alluded to Mr. Thackeray, because to him--if he will accept the tribute
  • of a total stranger--I have dedicated this second edition of "JANE EYRE."
  • CURRER BELL.
  • _December_ 21_st_, 1847.
  • NOTE TO THE THIRD EDITION
  • I avail myself of the opportunity which a third edition of "Jane Eyre"
  • affords me, of again addressing a word to the Public, to explain that my
  • claim to the title of novelist rests on this one work alone. If,
  • therefore, the authorship of other works of fiction has been attributed
  • to me, an honour is awarded where it is not merited; and consequently,
  • denied where it is justly due.
  • This explanation will serve to rectify mistakes which may already have
  • been made, and to prevent future errors.
  • CURRER BELL.
  • _April_ 13_th_, 1848.
  • CHAPTER I
  • There was no possibility of taking a walk that day. We had been
  • wandering, indeed, in the leafless shrubbery an hour in the morning; but
  • since dinner (Mrs. Reed, when there was no company, dined early) the cold
  • winter wind had brought with it clouds so sombre, and a rain so
  • penetrating, that further out-door exercise was now out of the question.
  • I was glad of it: I never liked long walks, especially on chilly
  • afternoons: dreadful to me was the coming home in the raw twilight, with
  • nipped fingers and toes, and a heart saddened by the chidings of Bessie,
  • the nurse, and humbled by the consciousness of my physical inferiority to
  • Eliza, John, and Georgiana Reed.
  • The said Eliza, John, and Georgiana were now clustered round their mama
  • in the drawing-room: she lay reclined on a sofa by the fireside, and with
  • her darlings about her (for the time neither quarrelling nor crying)
  • looked perfectly happy. Me, she had dispensed from joining the group;
  • saying, "She regretted to be under the necessity of keeping me at a
  • distance; but that until she heard from Bessie, and could discover by her
  • own observation, that I was endeavouring in good earnest to acquire a
  • more sociable and childlike disposition, a more attractive and sprightly
  • manner--something lighter, franker, more natural, as it were--she really
  • must exclude me from privileges intended only for contented, happy,
  • little children."
  • "What does Bessie say I have done?" I asked.
  • "Jane, I don't like cavillers or questioners; besides, there is something
  • truly forbidding in a child taking up her elders in that manner. Be
  • seated somewhere; and until you can speak pleasantly, remain silent."
  • A breakfast-room adjoined the drawing-room, I slipped in there. It
  • contained a bookcase: I soon possessed myself of a volume, taking care
  • that it should be one stored with pictures. I mounted into the window-
  • seat: gathering up my feet, I sat cross-legged, like a Turk; and, having
  • drawn the red moreen curtain nearly close, I was shrined in double
  • retirement.
  • Folds of scarlet drapery shut in my view to the right hand; to the left
  • were the clear panes of glass, protecting, but not separating me from the
  • drear November day. At intervals, while turning over the leaves of my
  • book, I studied the aspect of that winter afternoon. Afar, it offered a
  • pale blank of mist and cloud; near a scene of wet lawn and storm-beat
  • shrub, with ceaseless rain sweeping away wildly before a long and
  • lamentable blast.
  • I returned to my book--Bewick's History of British Birds: the letterpress
  • thereof I cared little for, generally speaking; and yet there were
  • certain introductory pages that, child as I was, I could not pass quite
  • as a blank. They were those which treat of the haunts of sea-fowl; of
  • "the solitary rocks and promontories" by them only inhabited; of the
  • coast of Norway, studded with isles from its southern extremity, the
  • Lindeness, or Naze, to the North Cape--
  • "Where the Northern Ocean, in vast whirls,
  • Boils round the naked, melancholy isles
  • Of farthest Thule; and the Atlantic surge
  • Pours in among the stormy Hebrides."
  • Nor could I pass unnoticed the suggestion of the bleak shores of Lapland,
  • Siberia, Spitzbergen, Nova Zembla, Iceland, Greenland, with "the vast
  • sweep of the Arctic Zone, and those forlorn regions of dreary space,--that
  • reservoir of frost and snow, where firm fields of ice, the accumulation
  • of centuries of winters, glazed in Alpine heights above heights, surround
  • the pole, and concentre the multiplied rigours of extreme cold." Of
  • these death-white realms I formed an idea of my own: shadowy, like all
  • the half-comprehended notions that float dim through children's brains,
  • but strangely impressive. The words in these introductory pages
  • connected themselves with the succeeding vignettes, and gave significance
  • to the rock standing up alone in a sea of billow and spray; to the broken
  • boat stranded on a desolate coast; to the cold and ghastly moon glancing
  • through bars of cloud at a wreck just sinking.
  • I cannot tell what sentiment haunted the quite solitary churchyard, with
  • its inscribed headstone; its gate, its two trees, its low horizon,
  • girdled by a broken wall, and its newly-risen crescent, attesting the
  • hour of eventide.
  • The two ships becalmed on a torpid sea, I believed to be marine phantoms.
  • The fiend pinning down the thief's pack behind him, I passed over
  • quickly: it was an object of terror.
  • So was the black horned thing seated aloof on a rock, surveying a distant
  • crowd surrounding a gallows.
  • Each picture told a story; mysterious often to my undeveloped
  • understanding and imperfect feelings, yet ever profoundly interesting: as
  • interesting as the tales Bessie sometimes narrated on winter evenings,
  • when she chanced to be in good humour; and when, having brought her
  • ironing-table to the nursery hearth, she allowed us to sit about it, and
  • while she got up Mrs. Reed's lace frills, and crimped her nightcap
  • borders, fed our eager attention with passages of love and adventure
  • taken from old fairy tales and other ballads; or (as at a later period I
  • discovered) from the pages of Pamela, and Henry, Earl of Moreland.
  • With Bewick on my knee, I was then happy: happy at least in my way. I
  • feared nothing but interruption, and that came too soon. The breakfast-
  • room door opened.
  • "Boh! Madam Mope!" cried the voice of John Reed; then he paused: he
  • found the room apparently empty.
  • "Where the dickens is she!" he continued. "Lizzy! Georgy! (calling to
  • his sisters) Joan is not here: tell mama she is run out into the rain--bad
  • animal!"
  • "It is well I drew the curtain," thought I; and I wished fervently he
  • might not discover my hiding-place: nor would John Reed have found it out
  • himself; he was not quick either of vision or conception; but Eliza just
  • put her head in at the door, and said at once--
  • "She is in the window-seat, to be sure, Jack."
  • And I came out immediately, for I trembled at the idea of being dragged
  • forth by the said Jack.
  • "What do you want?" I asked, with awkward diffidence.
  • "Say, 'What do you want, Master Reed?'" was the answer. "I want you to
  • come here;" and seating himself in an arm-chair, he intimated by a
  • gesture that I was to approach and stand before him.
  • John Reed was a schoolboy of fourteen years old; four years older than I,
  • for I was but ten: large and stout for his age, with a dingy and
  • unwholesome skin; thick lineaments in a spacious visage, heavy limbs and
  • large extremities. He gorged himself habitually at table, which made him
  • bilious, and gave him a dim and bleared eye and flabby cheeks. He ought
  • now to have been at school; but his mama had taken him home for a month
  • or two, "on account of his delicate health." Mr. Miles, the master,
  • affirmed that he would do very well if he had fewer cakes and sweetmeats
  • sent him from home; but the mother's heart turned from an opinion so
  • harsh, and inclined rather to the more refined idea that John's
  • sallowness was owing to over-application and, perhaps, to pining after
  • home.
  • John had not much affection for his mother and sisters, and an antipathy
  • to me. He bullied and punished me; not two or three times in the week,
  • nor once or twice in the day, but continually: every nerve I had feared
  • him, and every morsel of flesh in my bones shrank when he came near.
  • There were moments when I was bewildered by the terror he inspired,
  • because I had no appeal whatever against either his menaces or his
  • inflictions; the servants did not like to offend their young master by
  • taking my part against him, and Mrs. Reed was blind and deaf on the
  • subject: she never saw him strike or heard him abuse me, though he did
  • both now and then in her very presence, more frequently, however, behind
  • her back.
  • Habitually obedient to John, I came up to his chair: he spent some three
  • minutes in thrusting out his tongue at me as far as he could without
  • damaging the roots: I knew he would soon strike, and while dreading the
  • blow, I mused on the disgusting and ugly appearance of him who would
  • presently deal it. I wonder if he read that notion in my face; for, all
  • at once, without speaking, he struck suddenly and strongly. I tottered,
  • and on regaining my equilibrium retired back a step or two from his
  • chair.
  • "That is for your impudence in answering mama awhile since," said he,
  • "and for your sneaking way of getting behind curtains, and for the look
  • you had in your eyes two minutes since, you rat!"
  • Accustomed to John Reed's abuse, I never had an idea of replying to it;
  • my care was how to endure the blow which would certainly follow the
  • insult.
  • "What were you doing behind the curtain?" he asked.
  • "I was reading."
  • "Show the book."
  • I returned to the window and fetched it thence.
  • "You have no business to take our books; you are a dependent, mama says;
  • you have no money; your father left you none; you ought to beg, and not
  • to live here with gentlemen's children like us, and eat the same meals we
  • do, and wear clothes at our mama's expense. Now, I'll teach you to
  • rummage my bookshelves: for they _are_ mine; all the house belongs to me,
  • or will do in a few years. Go and stand by the door, out of the way of
  • the mirror and the windows."
  • I did so, not at first aware what was his intention; but when I saw him
  • lift and poise the book and stand in act to hurl it, I instinctively
  • started aside with a cry of alarm: not soon enough, however; the volume
  • was flung, it hit me, and I fell, striking my head against the door and
  • cutting it. The cut bled, the pain was sharp: my terror had passed its
  • climax; other feelings succeeded.
  • "Wicked and cruel boy!" I said. "You are like a murderer--you are like a
  • slave-driver--you are like the Roman emperors!"
  • I had read Goldsmith's History of Rome, and had formed my opinion of
  • Nero, Caligula, etc. Also I had drawn parallels in silence, which I never
  • thought thus to have declared aloud.
  • "What! what!" he cried. "Did she say that to me? Did you hear her,
  • Eliza and Georgiana? Won't I tell mama? but first--"
  • He ran headlong at me: I felt him grasp my hair and my shoulder: he had
  • closed with a desperate thing. I really saw in him a tyrant, a murderer.
  • I felt a drop or two of blood from my head trickle down my neck, and was
  • sensible of somewhat pungent suffering: these sensations for the time
  • predominated over fear, and I received him in frantic sort. I don't very
  • well know what I did with my hands, but he called me "Rat! Rat!" and
  • bellowed out aloud. Aid was near him: Eliza and Georgiana had run for
  • Mrs. Reed, who was gone upstairs: she now came upon the scene, followed
  • by Bessie and her maid Abbot. We were parted: I heard the words--
  • "Dear! dear! What a fury to fly at Master John!"
  • "Did ever anybody see such a picture of passion!"
  • Then Mrs. Reed subjoined--
  • "Take her away to the red-room, and lock her in there." Four hands were
  • immediately laid upon me, and I was borne upstairs.
  • CHAPTER II
  • I resisted all the way: a new thing for me, and a circumstance which
  • greatly strengthened the bad opinion Bessie and Miss Abbot were disposed
  • to entertain of me. The fact is, I was a trifle beside myself; or rather
  • _out_ of myself, as the French would say: I was conscious that a moment's
  • mutiny had already rendered me liable to strange penalties, and, like any
  • other rebel slave, I felt resolved, in my desperation, to go all lengths.
  • "Hold her arms, Miss Abbot: she's like a mad cat."
  • "For shame! for shame!" cried the lady's-maid. "What shocking conduct,
  • Miss Eyre, to strike a young gentleman, your benefactress's son! Your
  • young master."
  • "Master! How is he my master? Am I a servant?"
  • "No; you are less than a servant, for you do nothing for your keep.
  • There, sit down, and think over your wickedness."
  • They had got me by this time into the apartment indicated by Mrs. Reed,
  • and had thrust me upon a stool: my impulse was to rise from it like a
  • spring; their two pair of hands arrested me instantly.
  • "If you don't sit still, you must be tied down," said Bessie. "Miss
  • Abbot, lend me your garters; she would break mine directly."
  • Miss Abbot turned to divest a stout leg of the necessary ligature. This
  • preparation for bonds, and the additional ignominy it inferred, took a
  • little of the excitement out of me.
  • "Don't take them off," I cried; "I will not stir."
  • In guarantee whereof, I attached myself to my seat by my hands.
  • "Mind you don't," said Bessie; and when she had ascertained that I was
  • really subsiding, she loosened her hold of me; then she and Miss Abbot
  • stood with folded arms, looking darkly and doubtfully on my face, as
  • incredulous of my sanity.
  • "She never did so before," at last said Bessie, turning to the Abigail.
  • "But it was always in her," was the reply. "I've told Missis often my
  • opinion about the child, and Missis agreed with me. She's an underhand
  • little thing: I never saw a girl of her age with so much cover."
  • Bessie answered not; but ere long, addressing me, she said--"You ought to
  • be aware, Miss, that you are under obligations to Mrs. Reed: she keeps
  • you: if she were to turn you off, you would have to go to the poorhouse."
  • I had nothing to say to these words: they were not new to me: my very
  • first recollections of existence included hints of the same kind. This
  • reproach of my dependence had become a vague sing-song in my ear: very
  • painful and crushing, but only half intelligible. Miss Abbot joined in--
  • "And you ought not to think yourself on an equality with the Misses Reed
  • and Master Reed, because Missis kindly allows you to be brought up with
  • them. They will have a great deal of money, and you will have none: it
  • is your place to be humble, and to try to make yourself agreeable to
  • them."
  • "What we tell you is for your good," added Bessie, in no harsh voice,
  • "you should try to be useful and pleasant, then, perhaps, you would have
  • a home here; but if you become passionate and rude, Missis will send you
  • away, I am sure."
  • "Besides," said Miss Abbot, "God will punish her: He might strike her
  • dead in the midst of her tantrums, and then where would she go? Come,
  • Bessie, we will leave her: I wouldn't have her heart for anything. Say
  • your prayers, Miss Eyre, when you are by yourself; for if you don't
  • repent, something bad might be permitted to come down the chimney and
  • fetch you away."
  • They went, shutting the door, and locking it behind them.
  • The red-room was a square chamber, very seldom slept in, I might say
  • never, indeed, unless when a chance influx of visitors at Gateshead Hall
  • rendered it necessary to turn to account all the accommodation it
  • contained: yet it was one of the largest and stateliest chambers in the
  • mansion. A bed supported on massive pillars of mahogany, hung with
  • curtains of deep red damask, stood out like a tabernacle in the centre;
  • the two large windows, with their blinds always drawn down, were half
  • shrouded in festoons and falls of similar drapery; the carpet was red;
  • the table at the foot of the bed was covered with a crimson cloth; the
  • walls were a soft fawn colour with a blush of pink in it; the wardrobe,
  • the toilet-table, the chairs were of darkly polished old mahogany. Out
  • of these deep surrounding shades rose high, and glared white, the piled-
  • up mattresses and pillows of the bed, spread with a snowy Marseilles
  • counterpane. Scarcely less prominent was an ample cushioned easy-chair
  • near the head of the bed, also white, with a footstool before it; and
  • looking, as I thought, like a pale throne.
  • This room was chill, because it seldom had a fire; it was silent, because
  • remote from the nursery and kitchen; solemn, because it was known to be
  • so seldom entered. The house-maid alone came here on Saturdays, to wipe
  • from the mirrors and the furniture a week's quiet dust: and Mrs. Reed
  • herself, at far intervals, visited it to review the contents of a certain
  • secret drawer in the wardrobe, where were stored divers parchments, her
  • jewel-casket, and a miniature of her deceased husband; and in those last
  • words lies the secret of the red-room--the spell which kept it so lonely
  • in spite of its grandeur.
  • Mr. Reed had been dead nine years: it was in this chamber he breathed his
  • last; here he lay in state; hence his coffin was borne by the
  • undertaker's men; and, since that day, a sense of dreary consecration had
  • guarded it from frequent intrusion.
  • My seat, to which Bessie and the bitter Miss Abbot had left me riveted,
  • was a low ottoman near the marble chimney-piece; the bed rose before me;
  • to my right hand there was the high, dark wardrobe, with subdued, broken
  • reflections varying the gloss of its panels; to my left were the muffled
  • windows; a great looking-glass between them repeated the vacant majesty
  • of the bed and room. I was not quite sure whether they had locked the
  • door; and when I dared move, I got up and went to see. Alas! yes: no
  • jail was ever more secure. Returning, I had to cross before the looking-
  • glass; my fascinated glance involuntarily explored the depth it revealed.
  • All looked colder and darker in that visionary hollow than in reality:
  • and the strange little figure there gazing at me, with a white face and
  • arms specking the gloom, and glittering eyes of fear moving where all
  • else was still, had the effect of a real spirit: I thought it like one of
  • the tiny phantoms, half fairy, half imp, Bessie's evening stories
  • represented as coming out of lone, ferny dells in moors, and appearing
  • before the eyes of belated travellers. I returned to my stool.
  • Superstition was with me at that moment; but it was not yet her hour for
  • complete victory: my blood was still warm; the mood of the revolted slave
  • was still bracing me with its bitter vigour; I had to stem a rapid rush
  • of retrospective thought before I quailed to the dismal present.
  • All John Reed's violent tyrannies, all his sisters' proud indifference,
  • all his mother's aversion, all the servants' partiality, turned up in my
  • disturbed mind like a dark deposit in a turbid well. Why was I always
  • suffering, always browbeaten, always accused, for ever condemned? Why
  • could I never please? Why was it useless to try to win any one's favour?
  • Eliza, who was headstrong and selfish, was respected. Georgiana, who had
  • a spoiled temper, a very acrid spite, a captious and insolent carriage,
  • was universally indulged. Her beauty, her pink cheeks and golden curls,
  • seemed to give delight to all who looked at her, and to purchase
  • indemnity for every fault. John no one thwarted, much less punished;
  • though he twisted the necks of the pigeons, killed the little pea-chicks,
  • set the dogs at the sheep, stripped the hothouse vines of their fruit,
  • and broke the buds off the choicest plants in the conservatory: he called
  • his mother "old girl," too; sometimes reviled her for her dark skin,
  • similar to his own; bluntly disregarded her wishes; not unfrequently tore
  • and spoiled her silk attire; and he was still "her own darling." I dared
  • commit no fault: I strove to fulfil every duty; and I was termed naughty
  • and tiresome, sullen and sneaking, from morning to noon, and from noon to
  • night.
  • My head still ached and bled with the blow and fall I had received: no
  • one had reproved John for wantonly striking me; and because I had turned
  • against him to avert farther irrational violence, I was loaded with
  • general opprobrium.
  • "Unjust!--unjust!" said my reason, forced by the agonising stimulus into
  • precocious though transitory power: and Resolve, equally wrought up,
  • instigated some strange expedient to achieve escape from insupportable
  • oppression--as running away, or, if that could not be effected, never
  • eating or drinking more, and letting myself die.
  • What a consternation of soul was mine that dreary afternoon! How all my
  • brain was in tumult, and all my heart in insurrection! Yet in what
  • darkness, what dense ignorance, was the mental battle fought! I could
  • not answer the ceaseless inward question--_why_ I thus suffered; now, at
  • the distance of--I will not say how many years, I see it clearly.
  • I was a discord in Gateshead Hall: I was like nobody there; I had nothing
  • in harmony with Mrs. Reed or her children, or her chosen vassalage. If
  • they did not love me, in fact, as little did I love them. They were not
  • bound to regard with affection a thing that could not sympathise with one
  • amongst them; a heterogeneous thing, opposed to them in temperament, in
  • capacity, in propensities; a useless thing, incapable of serving their
  • interest, or adding to their pleasure; a noxious thing, cherishing the
  • germs of indignation at their treatment, of contempt of their judgment. I
  • know that had I been a sanguine, brilliant, careless, exacting, handsome,
  • romping child--though equally dependent and friendless--Mrs. Reed would
  • have endured my presence more complacently; her children would have
  • entertained for me more of the cordiality of fellow-feeling; the servants
  • would have been less prone to make me the scapegoat of the nursery.
  • Daylight began to forsake the red-room; it was past four o'clock, and the
  • beclouded afternoon was tending to drear twilight. I heard the rain
  • still beating continuously on the staircase window, and the wind howling
  • in the grove behind the hall; I grew by degrees cold as a stone, and then
  • my courage sank. My habitual mood of humiliation, self-doubt, forlorn
  • depression, fell damp on the embers of my decaying ire. All said I was
  • wicked, and perhaps I might be so; what thought had I been but just
  • conceiving of starving myself to death? That certainly was a crime: and
  • was I fit to die? Or was the vault under the chancel of Gateshead Church
  • an inviting bourne? In such vault I had been told did Mr. Reed lie
  • buried; and led by this thought to recall his idea, I dwelt on it with
  • gathering dread. I could not remember him; but I knew that he was my own
  • uncle--my mother's brother--that he had taken me when a parentless infant
  • to his house; and that in his last moments he had required a promise of
  • Mrs. Reed that she would rear and maintain me as one of her own children.
  • Mrs. Reed probably considered she had kept this promise; and so she had,
  • I dare say, as well as her nature would permit her; but how could she
  • really like an interloper not of her race, and unconnected with her,
  • after her husband's death, by any tie? It must have been most irksome to
  • find herself bound by a hard-wrung pledge to stand in the stead of a
  • parent to a strange child she could not love, and to see an uncongenial
  • alien permanently intruded on her own family group.
  • A singular notion dawned upon me. I doubted not--never doubted--that if
  • Mr. Reed had been alive he would have treated me kindly; and now, as I
  • sat looking at the white bed and overshadowed walls--occasionally also
  • turning a fascinated eye towards the dimly gleaming mirror--I began to
  • recall what I had heard of dead men, troubled in their graves by the
  • violation of their last wishes, revisiting the earth to punish the
  • perjured and avenge the oppressed; and I thought Mr. Reed's spirit,
  • harassed by the wrongs of his sister's child, might quit its
  • abode--whether in the church vault or in the unknown world of the
  • departed--and rise before me in this chamber. I wiped my tears and
  • hushed my sobs, fearful lest any sign of violent grief might waken a
  • preternatural voice to comfort me, or elicit from the gloom some haloed
  • face, bending over me with strange pity. This idea, consolatory in
  • theory, I felt would be terrible if realised: with all my might I
  • endeavoured to stifle it--I endeavoured to be firm. Shaking my hair from
  • my eyes, I lifted my head and tried to look boldly round the dark room;
  • at this moment a light gleamed on the wall. Was it, I asked myself, a
  • ray from the moon penetrating some aperture in the blind? No; moonlight
  • was still, and this stirred; while I gazed, it glided up to the ceiling
  • and quivered over my head. I can now conjecture readily that this streak
  • of light was, in all likelihood, a gleam from a lantern carried by some
  • one across the lawn: but then, prepared as my mind was for horror, shaken
  • as my nerves were by agitation, I thought the swift darting beam was a
  • herald of some coming vision from another world. My heart beat thick, my
  • head grew hot; a sound filled my ears, which I deemed the rushing of
  • wings; something seemed near me; I was oppressed, suffocated: endurance
  • broke down; I rushed to the door and shook the lock in desperate effort.
  • Steps came running along the outer passage; the key turned, Bessie and
  • Abbot entered.
  • "Miss Eyre, are you ill?" said Bessie.
  • "What a dreadful noise! it went quite through me!" exclaimed Abbot.
  • "Take me out! Let me go into the nursery!" was my cry.
  • "What for? Are you hurt? Have you seen something?" again demanded
  • Bessie.
  • "Oh! I saw a light, and I thought a ghost would come." I had now got
  • hold of Bessie's hand, and she did not snatch it from me.
  • "She has screamed out on purpose," declared Abbot, in some disgust. "And
  • what a scream! If she had been in great pain one would have excused it,
  • but she only wanted to bring us all here: I know her naughty tricks."
  • "What is all this?" demanded another voice peremptorily; and Mrs. Reed
  • came along the corridor, her cap flying wide, her gown rustling stormily.
  • "Abbot and Bessie, I believe I gave orders that Jane Eyre should be left
  • in the red-room till I came to her myself."
  • "Miss Jane screamed so loud, ma'am," pleaded Bessie.
  • "Let her go," was the only answer. "Loose Bessie's hand, child: you
  • cannot succeed in getting out by these means, be assured. I abhor
  • artifice, particularly in children; it is my duty to show you that tricks
  • will not answer: you will now stay here an hour longer, and it is only on
  • condition of perfect submission and stillness that I shall liberate you
  • then."
  • "O aunt! have pity! Forgive me! I cannot endure it--let me be punished
  • some other way! I shall be killed if--"
  • "Silence! This violence is all most repulsive:" and so, no doubt, she
  • felt it. I was a precocious actress in her eyes; she sincerely looked on
  • me as a compound of virulent passions, mean spirit, and dangerous
  • duplicity.
  • Bessie and Abbot having retreated, Mrs. Reed, impatient of my now frantic
  • anguish and wild sobs, abruptly thrust me back and locked me in, without
  • farther parley. I heard her sweeping away; and soon after she was gone,
  • I suppose I had a species of fit: unconsciousness closed the scene.
  • CHAPTER III
  • The next thing I remember is, waking up with a feeling as if I had had a
  • frightful nightmare, and seeing before me a terrible red glare, crossed
  • with thick black bars. I heard voices, too, speaking with a hollow
  • sound, and as if muffled by a rush of wind or water: agitation,
  • uncertainty, and an all-predominating sense of terror confused my
  • faculties. Ere long, I became aware that some one was handling me;
  • lifting me up and supporting me in a sitting posture, and that more
  • tenderly than I had ever been raised or upheld before. I rested my head
  • against a pillow or an arm, and felt easy.
  • In five minutes more the cloud of bewilderment dissolved: I knew quite
  • well that I was in my own bed, and that the red glare was the nursery
  • fire. It was night: a candle burnt on the table; Bessie stood at the bed-
  • foot with a basin in her hand, and a gentleman sat in a chair near my
  • pillow, leaning over me.
  • I felt an inexpressible relief, a soothing conviction of protection and
  • security, when I knew that there was a stranger in the room, an
  • individual not belonging to Gateshead, and not related to Mrs. Reed.
  • Turning from Bessie (though her presence was far less obnoxious to me
  • than that of Abbot, for instance, would have been), I scrutinised the
  • face of the gentleman: I knew him; it was Mr. Lloyd, an apothecary,
  • sometimes called in by Mrs. Reed when the servants were ailing: for
  • herself and the children she employed a physician.
  • "Well, who am I?" he asked.
  • I pronounced his name, offering him at the same time my hand: he took it,
  • smiling and saying, "We shall do very well by-and-by." Then he laid me
  • down, and addressing Bessie, charged her to be very careful that I was
  • not disturbed during the night. Having given some further directions,
  • and intimates that he should call again the next day, he departed; to my
  • grief: I felt so sheltered and befriended while he sat in the chair near
  • my pillow; and as he closed the door after him, all the room darkened and
  • my heart again sank: inexpressible sadness weighed it down.
  • "Do you feel as if you should sleep, Miss?" asked Bessie, rather softly.
  • Scarcely dared I answer her; for I feared the next sentence might be
  • rough. "I will try."
  • "Would you like to drink, or could you eat anything?"
  • "No, thank you, Bessie."
  • "Then I think I shall go to bed, for it is past twelve o'clock; but you
  • may call me if you want anything in the night."
  • Wonderful civility this! It emboldened me to ask a question.
  • "Bessie, what is the matter with me? Am I ill?"
  • "You fell sick, I suppose, in the red-room with crying; you'll be better
  • soon, no doubt."
  • Bessie went into the housemaid's apartment, which was near. I heard her
  • say--
  • "Sarah, come and sleep with me in the nursery; I daren't for my life be
  • alone with that poor child to-night: she might die; it's such a strange
  • thing she should have that fit: I wonder if she saw anything. Missis was
  • rather too hard."
  • Sarah came back with her; they both went to bed; they were whispering
  • together for half-an-hour before they fell asleep. I caught scraps of
  • their conversation, from which I was able only too distinctly to infer
  • the main subject discussed.
  • "Something passed her, all dressed in white, and vanished"--"A great
  • black dog behind him"--"Three loud raps on the chamber door"--"A light in
  • the churchyard just over his grave," etc., etc.
  • At last both slept: the fire and the candle went out. For me, the
  • watches of that long night passed in ghastly wakefulness; strained by
  • dread: such dread as children only can feel.
  • No severe or prolonged bodily illness followed this incident of the red-
  • room; it only gave my nerves a shock of which I feel the reverberation to
  • this day. Yes, Mrs. Reed, to you I owe some fearful pangs of mental
  • suffering, but I ought to forgive you, for you knew not what you did:
  • while rending my heart-strings, you thought you were only uprooting my
  • bad propensities.
  • Next day, by noon, I was up and dressed, and sat wrapped in a shawl by
  • the nursery hearth. I felt physically weak and broken down: but my worse
  • ailment was an unutterable wretchedness of mind: a wretchedness which
  • kept drawing from me silent tears; no sooner had I wiped one salt drop
  • from my cheek than another followed. Yet, I thought, I ought to have
  • been happy, for none of the Reeds were there, they were all gone out in
  • the carriage with their mama. Abbot, too, was sewing in another room,
  • and Bessie, as she moved hither and thither, putting away toys and
  • arranging drawers, addressed to me every now and then a word of unwonted
  • kindness. This state of things should have been to me a paradise of
  • peace, accustomed as I was to a life of ceaseless reprimand and thankless
  • fagging; but, in fact, my racked nerves were now in such a state that no
  • calm could soothe, and no pleasure excite them agreeably.
  • Bessie had been down into the kitchen, and she brought up with her a tart
  • on a certain brightly painted china plate, whose bird of paradise,
  • nestling in a wreath of convolvuli and rosebuds, had been wont to stir in
  • me a most enthusiastic sense of admiration; and which plate I had often
  • petitioned to be allowed to take in my hand in order to examine it more
  • closely, but had always hitherto been deemed unworthy of such a
  • privilege. This precious vessel was now placed on my knee, and I was
  • cordially invited to eat the circlet of delicate pastry upon it. Vain
  • favour! coming, like most other favours long deferred and often wished
  • for, too late! I could not eat the tart; and the plumage of the bird,
  • the tints of the flowers, seemed strangely faded: I put both plate and
  • tart away. Bessie asked if I would have a book: the word _book_ acted as
  • a transient stimulus, and I begged her to fetch Gulliver's Travels from
  • the library. This book I had again and again perused with delight. I
  • considered it a narrative of facts, and discovered in it a vein of
  • interest deeper than what I found in fairy tales: for as to the elves,
  • having sought them in vain among foxglove leaves and bells, under
  • mushrooms and beneath the ground-ivy mantling old wall-nooks, I had at
  • length made up my mind to the sad truth, that they were all gone out of
  • England to some savage country where the woods were wilder and thicker,
  • and the population more scant; whereas, Lilliput and Brobdignag being, in
  • my creed, solid parts of the earth's surface, I doubted not that I might
  • one day, by taking a long voyage, see with my own eyes the little fields,
  • houses, and trees, the diminutive people, the tiny cows, sheep, and birds
  • of the one realm; and the corn-fields forest-high, the mighty mastiffs,
  • the monster cats, the tower-like men and women, of the other. Yet, when
  • this cherished volume was now placed in my hand--when I turned over its
  • leaves, and sought in its marvellous pictures the charm I had, till now,
  • never failed to find--all was eerie and dreary; the giants were gaunt
  • goblins, the pigmies malevolent and fearful imps, Gulliver a most
  • desolate wanderer in most dread and dangerous regions. I closed the
  • book, which I dared no longer peruse, and put it on the table, beside the
  • untasted tart.
  • Bessie had now finished dusting and tidying the room, and having washed
  • her hands, she opened a certain little drawer, full of splendid shreds of
  • silk and satin, and began making a new bonnet for Georgiana's doll.
  • Meantime she sang: her song was--
  • "In the days when we went gipsying,
  • A long time ago."
  • I had often heard the song before, and always with lively delight; for
  • Bessie had a sweet voice,--at least, I thought so. But now, though her
  • voice was still sweet, I found in its melody an indescribable sadness.
  • Sometimes, preoccupied with her work, she sang the refrain very low, very
  • lingeringly; "A long time ago" came out like the saddest cadence of a
  • funeral hymn. She passed into another ballad, this time a really doleful
  • one.
  • "My feet they are sore, and my limbs they are weary;
  • Long is the way, and the mountains are wild;
  • Soon will the twilight close moonless and dreary
  • Over the path of the poor orphan child.
  • Why did they send me so far and so lonely,
  • Up where the moors spread and grey rocks are piled?
  • Men are hard-hearted, and kind angels only
  • Watch o'er the steps of a poor orphan child.
  • Yet distant and soft the night breeze is blowing,
  • Clouds there are none, and clear stars beam mild,
  • God, in His mercy, protection is showing,
  • Comfort and hope to the poor orphan child.
  • Ev'n should I fall o'er the broken bridge passing,
  • Or stray in the marshes, by false lights beguiled,
  • Still will my Father, with promise and blessing,
  • Take to His bosom the poor orphan child.
  • There is a thought that for strength should avail me,
  • Though both of shelter and kindred despoiled;
  • Heaven is a home, and a rest will not fail me;
  • God is a friend to the poor orphan child."
  • "Come, Miss Jane, don't cry," said Bessie as she finished. She might as
  • well have said to the fire, "don't burn!" but how could she divine the
  • morbid suffering to which I was a prey? In the course of the morning Mr.
  • Lloyd came again.
  • "What, already up!" said he, as he entered the nursery. "Well, nurse,
  • how is she?"
  • Bessie answered that I was doing very well.
  • "Then she ought to look more cheerful. Come here, Miss Jane: your name
  • is Jane, is it not?"
  • "Yes, sir, Jane Eyre."
  • "Well, you have been crying, Miss Jane Eyre; can you tell me what about?
  • Have you any pain?"
  • "No, sir."
  • "Oh! I daresay she is crying because she could not go out with Missis in
  • the carriage," interposed Bessie.
  • "Surely not! why, she is too old for such pettishness."
  • I thought so too; and my self-esteem being wounded by the false charge, I
  • answered promptly, "I never cried for such a thing in my life: I hate
  • going out in the carriage. I cry because I am miserable."
  • "Oh fie, Miss!" said Bessie.
  • The good apothecary appeared a little puzzled. I was standing before
  • him; he fixed his eyes on me very steadily: his eyes were small and grey;
  • not very bright, but I dare say I should think them shrewd now: he had a
  • hard-featured yet good-natured looking face. Having considered me at
  • leisure, he said--
  • "What made you ill yesterday?"
  • "She had a fall," said Bessie, again putting in her word.
  • "Fall! why, that is like a baby again! Can't she manage to walk at her
  • age? She must be eight or nine years old."
  • "I was knocked down," was the blunt explanation, jerked out of me by
  • another pang of mortified pride; "but that did not make me ill," I added;
  • while Mr. Lloyd helped himself to a pinch of snuff.
  • As he was returning the box to his waistcoat pocket, a loud bell rang for
  • the servants' dinner; he knew what it was. "That's for you, nurse," said
  • he; "you can go down; I'll give Miss Jane a lecture till you come back."
  • Bessie would rather have stayed, but she was obliged to go, because
  • punctuality at meals was rigidly enforced at Gateshead Hall.
  • "The fall did not make you ill; what did, then?" pursued Mr. Lloyd when
  • Bessie was gone.
  • "I was shut up in a room where there is a ghost till after dark."
  • I saw Mr. Lloyd smile and frown at the same time.
  • "Ghost! What, you are a baby after all! You are afraid of ghosts?"
  • "Of Mr. Reed's ghost I am: he died in that room, and was laid out there.
  • Neither Bessie nor any one else will go into it at night, if they can
  • help it; and it was cruel to shut me up alone without a candle,--so cruel
  • that I think I shall never forget it."
  • "Nonsense! And is it that makes you so miserable? Are you afraid now in
  • daylight?"
  • "No: but night will come again before long: and besides,--I am
  • unhappy,--very unhappy, for other things."
  • "What other things? Can you tell me some of them?"
  • How much I wished to reply fully to this question! How difficult it was
  • to frame any answer! Children can feel, but they cannot analyse their
  • feelings; and if the analysis is partially effected in thought, they know
  • not how to express the result of the process in words. Fearful, however,
  • of losing this first and only opportunity of relieving my grief by
  • imparting it, I, after a disturbed pause, contrived to frame a meagre,
  • though, as far as it went, true response.
  • "For one thing, I have no father or mother, brothers or sisters."
  • "You have a kind aunt and cousins."
  • Again I paused; then bunglingly enounced--
  • "But John Reed knocked me down, and my aunt shut me up in the red-room."
  • Mr. Lloyd a second time produced his snuff-box.
  • "Don't you think Gateshead Hall a very beautiful house?" asked he. "Are
  • you not very thankful to have such a fine place to live at?"
  • "It is not my house, sir; and Abbot says I have less right to be here
  • than a servant."
  • "Pooh! you can't be silly enough to wish to leave such a splendid place?"
  • "If I had anywhere else to go, I should be glad to leave it; but I can
  • never get away from Gateshead till I am a woman."
  • "Perhaps you may--who knows? Have you any relations besides Mrs. Reed?"
  • "I think not, sir."
  • "None belonging to your father?"
  • "I don't know. I asked Aunt Reed once, and she said possibly I might
  • have some poor, low relations called Eyre, but she knew nothing about
  • them."
  • "If you had such, would you like to go to them?"
  • I reflected. Poverty looks grim to grown people; still more so to
  • children: they have not much idea of industrious, working, respectable
  • poverty; they think of the word only as connected with ragged clothes,
  • scanty food, fireless grates, rude manners, and debasing vices: poverty
  • for me was synonymous with degradation.
  • "No; I should not like to belong to poor people," was my reply.
  • "Not even if they were kind to you?"
  • I shook my head: I could not see how poor people had the means of being
  • kind; and then to learn to speak like them, to adopt their manners, to be
  • uneducated, to grow up like one of the poor women I saw sometimes nursing
  • their children or washing their clothes at the cottage doors of the
  • village of Gateshead: no, I was not heroic enough to purchase liberty at
  • the price of caste.
  • "But are your relatives so very poor? Are they working people?"
  • "I cannot tell; Aunt Reed says if I have any, they must be a beggarly
  • set: I should not like to go a begging."
  • "Would you like to go to school?"
  • Again I reflected: I scarcely knew what school was: Bessie sometimes
  • spoke of it as a place where young ladies sat in the stocks, wore
  • backboards, and were expected to be exceedingly genteel and precise: John
  • Reed hated his school, and abused his master; but John Reed's tastes were
  • no rule for mine, and if Bessie's accounts of school-discipline (gathered
  • from the young ladies of a family where she had lived before coming to
  • Gateshead) were somewhat appalling, her details of certain
  • accomplishments attained by these same young ladies were, I thought,
  • equally attractive. She boasted of beautiful paintings of landscapes and
  • flowers by them executed; of songs they could sing and pieces they could
  • play, of purses they could net, of French books they could translate;
  • till my spirit was moved to emulation as I listened. Besides, school
  • would be a complete change: it implied a long journey, an entire
  • separation from Gateshead, an entrance into a new life.
  • "I should indeed like to go to school," was the audible conclusion of my
  • musings.
  • "Well, well! who knows what may happen?" said Mr. Lloyd, as he got up.
  • "The child ought to have change of air and scene," he added, speaking to
  • himself; "nerves not in a good state."
  • Bessie now returned; at the same moment the carriage was heard rolling up
  • the gravel-walk.
  • "Is that your mistress, nurse?" asked Mr. Lloyd. "I should like to speak
  • to her before I go."
  • Bessie invited him to walk into the breakfast-room, and led the way out.
  • In the interview which followed between him and Mrs. Reed, I presume,
  • from after-occurrences, that the apothecary ventured to recommend my
  • being sent to school; and the recommendation was no doubt readily enough
  • adopted; for as Abbot said, in discussing the subject with Bessie when
  • both sat sewing in the nursery one night, after I was in bed, and, as
  • they thought, asleep, "Missis was, she dared say, glad enough to get rid
  • of such a tiresome, ill-conditioned child, who always looked as if she
  • were watching everybody, and scheming plots underhand." Abbot, I think,
  • gave me credit for being a sort of infantine Guy Fawkes.
  • On that same occasion I learned, for the first time, from Miss Abbot's
  • communications to Bessie, that my father had been a poor clergyman; that
  • my mother had married him against the wishes of her friends, who
  • considered the match beneath her; that my grandfather Reed was so
  • irritated at her disobedience, he cut her off without a shilling; that
  • after my mother and father had been married a year, the latter caught the
  • typhus fever while visiting among the poor of a large manufacturing town
  • where his curacy was situated, and where that disease was then prevalent:
  • that my mother took the infection from him, and both died within a month
  • of each other.
  • Bessie, when she heard this narrative, sighed and said, "Poor Miss Jane
  • is to be pitied, too, Abbot."
  • "Yes," responded Abbot; "if she were a nice, pretty child, one might
  • compassionate her forlornness; but one really cannot care for such a
  • little toad as that."
  • "Not a great deal, to be sure," agreed Bessie: "at any rate, a beauty
  • like Miss Georgiana would be more moving in the same condition."
  • "Yes, I doat on Miss Georgiana!" cried the fervent Abbot. "Little
  • darling!--with her long curls and her blue eyes, and such a sweet colour
  • as she has; just as if she were painted!--Bessie, I could fancy a Welsh
  • rabbit for supper."
  • "So could I--with a roast onion. Come, we'll go down." They went.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • From my discourse with Mr. Lloyd, and from the above reported conference
  • between Bessie and Abbot, I gathered enough of hope to suffice as a
  • motive for wishing to get well: a change seemed near,--I desired and
  • waited it in silence. It tarried, however: days and weeks passed: I had
  • regained my normal state of health, but no new allusion was made to the
  • subject over which I brooded. Mrs. Reed surveyed me at times with a
  • severe eye, but seldom addressed me: since my illness, she had drawn a
  • more marked line of separation than ever between me and her own children;
  • appointing me a small closet to sleep in by myself, condemning me to take
  • my meals alone, and pass all my time in the nursery, while my cousins
  • were constantly in the drawing-room. Not a hint, however, did she drop
  • about sending me to school: still I felt an instinctive certainty that
  • she would not long endure me under the same roof with her; for her
  • glance, now more than ever, when turned on me, expressed an insuperable
  • and rooted aversion.
  • Eliza and Georgiana, evidently acting according to orders, spoke to me as
  • little as possible: John thrust his tongue in his cheek whenever he saw
  • me, and once attempted chastisement; but as I instantly turned against
  • him, roused by the same sentiment of deep ire and desperate revolt which
  • had stirred my corruption before, he thought it better to desist, and ran
  • from me tittering execrations, and vowing I had burst his nose. I had
  • indeed levelled at that prominent feature as hard a blow as my knuckles
  • could inflict; and when I saw that either that or my look daunted him, I
  • had the greatest inclination to follow up my advantage to purpose; but he
  • was already with his mama. I heard him in a blubbering tone commence the
  • tale of how "that nasty Jane Eyre" had flown at him like a mad cat: he
  • was stopped rather harshly--
  • "Don't talk to me about her, John: I told you not to go near her; she is
  • not worthy of notice; I do not choose that either you or your sisters
  • should associate with her."
  • Here, leaning over the banister, I cried out suddenly, and without at all
  • deliberating on my words--
  • "They are not fit to associate with me."
  • Mrs. Reed was rather a stout woman; but, on hearing this strange and
  • audacious declaration, she ran nimbly up the stair, swept me like a
  • whirlwind into the nursery, and crushing me down on the edge of my crib,
  • dared me in an emphatic voice to rise from that place, or utter one
  • syllable during the remainder of the day.
  • "What would Uncle Reed say to you, if he were alive?" was my scarcely
  • voluntary demand. I say scarcely voluntary, for it seemed as if my
  • tongue pronounced words without my will consenting to their utterance:
  • something spoke out of me over which I had no control.
  • "What?" said Mrs. Reed under her breath: her usually cold composed grey
  • eye became troubled with a look like fear; she took her hand from my arm,
  • and gazed at me as if she really did not know whether I were child or
  • fiend. I was now in for it.
  • "My Uncle Reed is in heaven, and can see all you do and think; and so can
  • papa and mama: they know how you shut me up all day long, and how you
  • wish me dead."
  • Mrs. Reed soon rallied her spirits: she shook me most soundly, she boxed
  • both my ears, and then left me without a word. Bessie supplied the
  • hiatus by a homily of an hour's length, in which she proved beyond a
  • doubt that I was the most wicked and abandoned child ever reared under a
  • roof. I half believed her; for I felt indeed only bad feelings surging
  • in my breast.
  • November, December, and half of January passed away. Christmas and the
  • New Year had been celebrated at Gateshead with the usual festive cheer;
  • presents had been interchanged, dinners and evening parties given. From
  • every enjoyment I was, of course, excluded: my share of the gaiety
  • consisted in witnessing the daily apparelling of Eliza and Georgiana, and
  • seeing them descend to the drawing-room, dressed out in thin muslin
  • frocks and scarlet sashes, with hair elaborately ringletted; and
  • afterwards, in listening to the sound of the piano or the harp played
  • below, to the passing to and fro of the butler and footman, to the
  • jingling of glass and china as refreshments were handed, to the broken
  • hum of conversation as the drawing-room door opened and closed. When
  • tired of this occupation, I would retire from the stairhead to the
  • solitary and silent nursery: there, though somewhat sad, I was not
  • miserable. To speak truth, I had not the least wish to go into company,
  • for in company I was very rarely noticed; and if Bessie had but been kind
  • and companionable, I should have deemed it a treat to spend the evenings
  • quietly with her, instead of passing them under the formidable eye of
  • Mrs. Reed, in a room full of ladies and gentlemen. But Bessie, as soon
  • as she had dressed her young ladies, used to take herself off to the
  • lively regions of the kitchen and housekeeper's room, generally bearing
  • the candle along with her. I then sat with my doll on my knee till the
  • fire got low, glancing round occasionally to make sure that nothing worse
  • than myself haunted the shadowy room; and when the embers sank to a dull
  • red, I undressed hastily, tugging at knots and strings as I best might,
  • and sought shelter from cold and darkness in my crib. To this crib I
  • always took my doll; human beings must love something, and, in the dearth
  • of worthier objects of affection, I contrived to find a pleasure in
  • loving and cherishing a faded graven image, shabby as a miniature
  • scarecrow. It puzzles me now to remember with what absurd sincerity I
  • doated on this little toy, half fancying it alive and capable of
  • sensation. I could not sleep unless it was folded in my night-gown; and
  • when it lay there safe and warm, I was comparatively happy, believing it
  • to be happy likewise.
  • Long did the hours seem while I waited the departure of the company, and
  • listened for the sound of Bessie's step on the stairs: sometimes she
  • would come up in the interval to seek her thimble or her scissors, or
  • perhaps to bring me something by way of supper--a bun or a
  • cheese-cake--then she would sit on the bed while I ate it, and when I had
  • finished, she would tuck the clothes round me, and twice she kissed me,
  • and said, "Good night, Miss Jane." When thus gentle, Bessie seemed to me
  • the best, prettiest, kindest being in the world; and I wished most
  • intensely that she would always be so pleasant and amiable, and never
  • push me about, or scold, or task me unreasonably, as she was too often
  • wont to do. Bessie Lee must, I think, have been a girl of good natural
  • capacity, for she was smart in all she did, and had a remarkable knack of
  • narrative; so, at least, I judge from the impression made on me by her
  • nursery tales. She was pretty too, if my recollections of her face and
  • person are correct. I remember her as a slim young woman, with black
  • hair, dark eyes, very nice features, and good, clear complexion; but she
  • had a capricious and hasty temper, and indifferent ideas of principle or
  • justice: still, such as she was, I preferred her to any one else at
  • Gateshead Hall.
  • It was the fifteenth of January, about nine o'clock in the morning:
  • Bessie was gone down to breakfast; my cousins had not yet been summoned
  • to their mama; Eliza was putting on her bonnet and warm garden-coat to go
  • and feed her poultry, an occupation of which she was fond: and not less
  • so of selling the eggs to the housekeeper and hoarding up the money she
  • thus obtained. She had a turn for traffic, and a marked propensity for
  • saving; shown not only in the vending of eggs and chickens, but also in
  • driving hard bargains with the gardener about flower-roots, seeds, and
  • slips of plants; that functionary having orders from Mrs. Reed to buy of
  • his young lady all the products of her parterre she wished to sell: and
  • Eliza would have sold the hair off her head if she could have made a
  • handsome profit thereby. As to her money, she first secreted it in odd
  • corners, wrapped in a rag or an old curl-paper; but some of these hoards
  • having been discovered by the housemaid, Eliza, fearful of one day losing
  • her valued treasure, consented to intrust it to her mother, at a usurious
  • rate of interest--fifty or sixty per cent.; which interest she exacted
  • every quarter, keeping her accounts in a little book with anxious
  • accuracy.
  • Georgiana sat on a high stool, dressing her hair at the glass, and
  • interweaving her curls with artificial flowers and faded feathers, of
  • which she had found a store in a drawer in the attic. I was making my
  • bed, having received strict orders from Bessie to get it arranged before
  • she returned (for Bessie now frequently employed me as a sort of under-
  • nurserymaid, to tidy the room, dust the chairs, &c.). Having spread the
  • quilt and folded my night-dress, I went to the window-seat to put in
  • order some picture-books and doll's house furniture scattered there; an
  • abrupt command from Georgiana to let her playthings alone (for the tiny
  • chairs and mirrors, the fairy plates and cups, were her property) stopped
  • my proceedings; and then, for lack of other occupation, I fell to
  • breathing on the frost-flowers with which the window was fretted, and
  • thus clearing a space in the glass through which I might look out on the
  • grounds, where all was still and petrified under the influence of a hard
  • frost.
  • From this window were visible the porter's lodge and the carriage-road,
  • and just as I had dissolved so much of the silver-white foliage veiling
  • the panes as left room to look out, I saw the gates thrown open and a
  • carriage roll through. I watched it ascending the drive with
  • indifference; carriages often came to Gateshead, but none ever brought
  • visitors in whom I was interested; it stopped in front of the house, the
  • door-bell rang loudly, the new-comer was admitted. All this being
  • nothing to me, my vacant attention soon found livelier attraction in the
  • spectacle of a little hungry robin, which came and chirruped on the twigs
  • of the leafless cherry-tree nailed against the wall near the casement.
  • The remains of my breakfast of bread and milk stood on the table, and
  • having crumbled a morsel of roll, I was tugging at the sash to put out
  • the crumbs on the window-sill, when Bessie came running upstairs into the
  • nursery.
  • "Miss Jane, take off your pinafore; what are you doing there? Have you
  • washed your hands and face this morning?" I gave another tug before I
  • answered, for I wanted the bird to be secure of its bread: the sash
  • yielded; I scattered the crumbs, some on the stone sill, some on the
  • cherry-tree bough, then, closing the window, I replied--
  • "No, Bessie; I have only just finished dusting."
  • "Troublesome, careless child! and what are you doing now? You look quite
  • red, as if you had been about some mischief: what were you opening the
  • window for?"
  • I was spared the trouble of answering, for Bessie seemed in too great a
  • hurry to listen to explanations; she hauled me to the washstand,
  • inflicted a merciless, but happily brief scrub on my face and hands with
  • soap, water, and a coarse towel; disciplined my head with a bristly
  • brush, denuded me of my pinafore, and then hurrying me to the top of the
  • stairs, bid me go down directly, as I was wanted in the breakfast-room.
  • I would have asked who wanted me: I would have demanded if Mrs. Reed was
  • there; but Bessie was already gone, and had closed the nursery-door upon
  • me. I slowly descended. For nearly three months, I had never been
  • called to Mrs. Reed's presence; restricted so long to the nursery, the
  • breakfast, dining, and drawing-rooms were become for me awful regions, on
  • which it dismayed me to intrude.
  • I now stood in the empty hall; before me was the breakfast-room door, and
  • I stopped, intimidated and trembling. What a miserable little poltroon
  • had fear, engendered of unjust punishment, made of me in those days! I
  • feared to return to the nursery, and feared to go forward to the parlour;
  • ten minutes I stood in agitated hesitation; the vehement ringing of the
  • breakfast-room bell decided me; I _must_ enter.
  • "Who could want me?" I asked inwardly, as with both hands I turned the
  • stiff door-handle, which, for a second or two, resisted my efforts. "What
  • should I see besides Aunt Reed in the apartment?--a man or a woman?" The
  • handle turned, the door unclosed, and passing through and curtseying low,
  • I looked up at--a black pillar!--such, at least, appeared to me, at first
  • sight, the straight, narrow, sable-clad shape standing erect on the rug:
  • the grim face at the top was like a carved mask, placed above the shaft
  • by way of capital.
  • Mrs. Reed occupied her usual seat by the fireside; she made a signal to
  • me to approach; I did so, and she introduced me to the stony stranger
  • with the words: "This is the little girl respecting whom I applied to
  • you."
  • _He_, for it was a man, turned his head slowly towards where I stood, and
  • having examined me with the two inquisitive-looking grey eyes which
  • twinkled under a pair of bushy brows, said solemnly, and in a bass voice,
  • "Her size is small: what is her age?"
  • "Ten years."
  • "So much?" was the doubtful answer; and he prolonged his scrutiny for
  • some minutes. Presently he addressed me--"Your name, little girl?"
  • "Jane Eyre, sir."
  • In uttering these words I looked up: he seemed to me a tall gentleman;
  • but then I was very little; his features were large, and they and all the
  • lines of his frame were equally harsh and prim.
  • "Well, Jane Eyre, and are you a good child?"
  • Impossible to reply to this in the affirmative: my little world held a
  • contrary opinion: I was silent. Mrs. Reed answered for me by an
  • expressive shake of the head, adding soon, "Perhaps the less said on that
  • subject the better, Mr. Brocklehurst."
  • "Sorry indeed to hear it! she and I must have some talk;" and bending
  • from the perpendicular, he installed his person in the arm-chair opposite
  • Mrs. Reed's. "Come here," he said.
  • I stepped across the rug; he placed me square and straight before him.
  • What a face he had, now that it was almost on a level with mine! what a
  • great nose! and what a mouth! and what large prominent teeth!
  • "No sight so sad as that of a naughty child," he began, "especially a
  • naughty little girl. Do you know where the wicked go after death?"
  • "They go to hell," was my ready and orthodox answer.
  • "And what is hell? Can you tell me that?"
  • "A pit full of fire."
  • "And should you like to fall into that pit, and to be burning there for
  • ever?"
  • "No, sir."
  • "What must you do to avoid it?"
  • I deliberated a moment; my answer, when it did come, was objectionable:
  • "I must keep in good health, and not die."
  • "How can you keep in good health? Children younger than you die daily. I
  • buried a little child of five years old only a day or two since,--a good
  • little child, whose soul is now in heaven. It is to be feared the same
  • could not be said of you were you to be called hence."
  • Not being in a condition to remove his doubt, I only cast my eyes down on
  • the two large feet planted on the rug, and sighed, wishing myself far
  • enough away.
  • "I hope that sigh is from the heart, and that you repent of ever having
  • been the occasion of discomfort to your excellent benefactress."
  • "Benefactress! benefactress!" said I inwardly: "they all call Mrs. Reed
  • my benefactress; if so, a benefactress is a disagreeable thing."
  • "Do you say your prayers night and morning?" continued my interrogator.
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "Do you read your Bible?"
  • "Sometimes."
  • "With pleasure? Are you fond of it?"
  • "I like Revelations, and the book of Daniel, and Genesis and Samuel, and
  • a little bit of Exodus, and some parts of Kings and Chronicles, and Job
  • and Jonah."
  • "And the Psalms? I hope you like them?"
  • "No, sir."
  • "No? oh, shocking! I have a little boy, younger than you, who knows six
  • Psalms by heart: and when you ask him which he would rather have, a
  • gingerbread-nut to eat or a verse of a Psalm to learn, he says: 'Oh! the
  • verse of a Psalm! angels sing Psalms;' says he, 'I wish to be a little
  • angel here below;' he then gets two nuts in recompense for his infant
  • piety."
  • "Psalms are not interesting," I remarked.
  • "That proves you have a wicked heart; and you must pray to God to change
  • it: to give you a new and clean one: to take away your heart of stone and
  • give you a heart of flesh."
  • I was about to propound a question, touching the manner in which that
  • operation of changing my heart was to be performed, when Mrs. Reed
  • interposed, telling me to sit down; she then proceeded to carry on the
  • conversation herself.
  • "Mr. Brocklehurst, I believe I intimated in the letter which I wrote to
  • you three weeks ago, that this little girl has not quite the character
  • and disposition I could wish: should you admit her into Lowood school, I
  • should be glad if the superintendent and teachers were requested to keep
  • a strict eye on her, and, above all, to guard against her worst fault, a
  • tendency to deceit. I mention this in your hearing, Jane, that you may
  • not attempt to impose on Mr. Brocklehurst."
  • Well might I dread, well might I dislike Mrs. Reed; for it was her nature
  • to wound me cruelly; never was I happy in her presence; however carefully
  • I obeyed, however strenuously I strove to please her, my efforts were
  • still repulsed and repaid by such sentences as the above. Now, uttered
  • before a stranger, the accusation cut me to the heart; I dimly perceived
  • that she was already obliterating hope from the new phase of existence
  • which she destined me to enter; I felt, though I could not have expressed
  • the feeling, that she was sowing aversion and unkindness along my future
  • path; I saw myself transformed under Mr. Brocklehurst's eye into an
  • artful, noxious child, and what could I do to remedy the injury?
  • "Nothing, indeed," thought I, as I struggled to repress a sob, and
  • hastily wiped away some tears, the impotent evidences of my anguish.
  • "Deceit is, indeed, a sad fault in a child," said Mr. Brocklehurst; "it
  • is akin to falsehood, and all liars will have their portion in the lake
  • burning with fire and brimstone; she shall, however, be watched, Mrs.
  • Reed. I will speak to Miss Temple and the teachers."
  • "I should wish her to be brought up in a manner suiting her prospects,"
  • continued my benefactress; "to be made useful, to be kept humble: as for
  • the vacations, she will, with your permission, spend them always at
  • Lowood."
  • "Your decisions are perfectly judicious, madam," returned Mr.
  • Brocklehurst. "Humility is a Christian grace, and one peculiarly
  • appropriate to the pupils of Lowood; I, therefore, direct that especial
  • care shall be bestowed on its cultivation amongst them. I have studied
  • how best to mortify in them the worldly sentiment of pride; and, only the
  • other day, I had a pleasing proof of my success. My second daughter,
  • Augusta, went with her mama to visit the school, and on her return she
  • exclaimed: 'Oh, dear papa, how quiet and plain all the girls at Lowood
  • look, with their hair combed behind their ears, and their long pinafores,
  • and those little holland pockets outside their frocks--they are almost
  • like poor people's children! and,' said she, 'they looked at my dress and
  • mama's, as if they had never seen a silk gown before.'"
  • "This is the state of things I quite approve," returned Mrs. Reed; "had I
  • sought all England over, I could scarcely have found a system more
  • exactly fitting a child like Jane Eyre. Consistency, my dear Mr.
  • Brocklehurst; I advocate consistency in all things."
  • "Consistency, madam, is the first of Christian duties; and it has been
  • observed in every arrangement connected with the establishment of Lowood:
  • plain fare, simple attire, unsophisticated accommodations, hardy and
  • active habits; such is the order of the day in the house and its
  • inhabitants."
  • "Quite right, sir. I may then depend upon this child being received as a
  • pupil at Lowood, and there being trained in conformity to her position
  • and prospects?"
  • "Madam, you may: she shall be placed in that nursery of chosen plants,
  • and I trust she will show herself grateful for the inestimable privilege
  • of her election."
  • "I will send her, then, as soon as possible, Mr. Brocklehurst; for, I
  • assure you, I feel anxious to be relieved of a responsibility that was
  • becoming too irksome."
  • "No doubt, no doubt, madam; and now I wish you good morning. I shall
  • return to Brocklehurst Hall in the course of a week or two: my good
  • friend, the Archdeacon, will not permit me to leave him sooner. I shall
  • send Miss Temple notice that she is to expect a new girl, so that there
  • will be no difficulty about receiving her. Good-bye."
  • "Good-bye, Mr. Brocklehurst; remember me to Mrs. and Miss Brocklehurst,
  • and to Augusta and Theodore, and Master Broughton Brocklehurst."
  • "I will, madam. Little girl, here is a book entitled the 'Child's
  • Guide,' read it with prayer, especially that part containing 'An account
  • of the awfully sudden death of Martha G---, a naughty child addicted to
  • falsehood and deceit.'"
  • With these words Mr. Brocklehurst put into my hand a thin pamphlet sewn
  • in a cover, and having rung for his carriage, he departed.
  • Mrs. Reed and I were left alone: some minutes passed in silence; she was
  • sewing, I was watching her. Mrs. Reed might be at that time some six or
  • seven and thirty; she was a woman of robust frame, square-shouldered and
  • strong-limbed, not tall, and, though stout, not obese: she had a somewhat
  • large face, the under jaw being much developed and very solid; her brow
  • was low, her chin large and prominent, mouth and nose sufficiently
  • regular; under her light eyebrows glimmered an eye devoid of ruth; her
  • skin was dark and opaque, her hair nearly flaxen; her constitution was
  • sound as a bell--illness never came near her; she was an exact, clever
  • manager; her household and tenantry were thoroughly under her control;
  • her children only at times defied her authority and laughed it to scorn;
  • she dressed well, and had a presence and port calculated to set off
  • handsome attire.
  • Sitting on a low stool, a few yards from her arm-chair, I examined her
  • figure; I perused her features. In my hand I held the tract containing
  • the sudden death of the Liar, to which narrative my attention had been
  • pointed as to an appropriate warning. What had just passed; what Mrs.
  • Reed had said concerning me to Mr. Brocklehurst; the whole tenor of their
  • conversation, was recent, raw, and stinging in my mind; I had felt every
  • word as acutely as I had heard it plainly, and a passion of resentment
  • fomented now within me.
  • Mrs. Reed looked up from her work; her eye settled on mine, her fingers
  • at the same time suspended their nimble movements.
  • "Go out of the room; return to the nursery," was her mandate. My look or
  • something else must have struck her as offensive, for she spoke with
  • extreme though suppressed irritation. I got up, I went to the door; I
  • came back again; I walked to the window, across the room, then close up
  • to her.
  • _Speak_ I must: I had been trodden on severely, and _must_ turn: but how?
  • What strength had I to dart retaliation at my antagonist? I gathered my
  • energies and launched them in this blunt sentence--
  • "I am not deceitful: if I were, I should say I loved you; but I declare I
  • do not love you: I dislike you the worst of anybody in the world except
  • John Reed; and this book about the liar, you may give to your girl,
  • Georgiana, for it is she who tells lies, and not I."
  • Mrs. Reed's hands still lay on her work inactive: her eye of ice
  • continued to dwell freezingly on mine.
  • "What more have you to say?" she asked, rather in the tone in which a
  • person might address an opponent of adult age than such as is ordinarily
  • used to a child.
  • That eye of hers, that voice stirred every antipathy I had. Shaking from
  • head to foot, thrilled with ungovernable excitement, I continued--
  • "I am glad you are no relation of mine: I will never call you aunt again
  • as long as I live. I will never come to see you when I am grown up; and
  • if any one asks me how I liked you, and how you treated me, I will say
  • the very thought of you makes me sick, and that you treated me with
  • miserable cruelty."
  • "How dare you affirm that, Jane Eyre?"
  • "How dare I, Mrs. Reed? How dare I? Because it is the _truth_. You
  • think I have no feelings, and that I can do without one bit of love or
  • kindness; but I cannot live so: and you have no pity. I shall remember
  • how you thrust me back--roughly and violently thrust me back--into the
  • red-room, and locked me up there, to my dying day; though I was in agony;
  • though I cried out, while suffocating with distress, 'Have mercy! Have
  • mercy, Aunt Reed!' And that punishment you made me suffer because your
  • wicked boy struck me--knocked me down for nothing. I will tell anybody
  • who asks me questions, this exact tale. People think you a good woman,
  • but you are bad, hard-hearted. _You_ are deceitful!"
  • {How dare I, Mrs. Reed? How dare I? Because it is the truth: p30.jpg}
  • Ere I had finished this reply, my soul began to expand, to exult, with
  • the strangest sense of freedom, of triumph, I ever felt. It seemed as if
  • an invisible bond had burst, and that I had struggled out into unhoped-
  • for liberty. Not without cause was this sentiment: Mrs. Reed looked
  • frightened; her work had slipped from her knee; she was lifting up her
  • hands, rocking herself to and fro, and even twisting her face as if she
  • would cry.
  • "Jane, you are under a mistake: what is the matter with you? Why do you
  • tremble so violently? Would you like to drink some water?"
  • "No, Mrs. Reed."
  • "Is there anything else you wish for, Jane? I assure you, I desire to be
  • your friend."
  • "Not you. You told Mr. Brocklehurst I had a bad character, a deceitful
  • disposition; and I'll let everybody at Lowood know what you are, and what
  • you have done."
  • "Jane, you don't understand these things: children must be corrected for
  • their faults."
  • "Deceit is not my fault!" I cried out in a savage, high voice.
  • "But you are passionate, Jane, that you must allow: and now return to the
  • nursery--there's a dear--and lie down a little."
  • "I am not your dear; I cannot lie down: send me to school soon, Mrs.
  • Reed, for I hate to live here."
  • "I will indeed send her to school soon," murmured Mrs. Reed _sotto voce_;
  • and gathering up her work, she abruptly quitted the apartment.
  • I was left there alone--winner of the field. It was the hardest battle I
  • had fought, and the first victory I had gained: I stood awhile on the
  • rug, where Mr. Brocklehurst had stood, and I enjoyed my conqueror's
  • solitude. First, I smiled to myself and felt elate; but this fierce
  • pleasure subsided in me as fast as did the accelerated throb of my
  • pulses. A child cannot quarrel with its elders, as I had done; cannot
  • give its furious feelings uncontrolled play, as I had given mine, without
  • experiencing afterwards the pang of remorse and the chill of reaction. A
  • ridge of lighted heath, alive, glancing, devouring, would have been a
  • meet emblem of my mind when I accused and menaced Mrs. Reed: the same
  • ridge, black and blasted after the flames are dead, would have
  • represented as meetly my subsequent condition, when half-an-hour's
  • silence and reflection had shown me the madness of my conduct, and the
  • dreariness of my hated and hating position.
  • Something of vengeance I had tasted for the first time; as aromatic wine
  • it seemed, on swallowing, warm and racy: its after-flavour, metallic and
  • corroding, gave me a sensation as if I had been poisoned. Willingly
  • would I now have gone and asked Mrs. Reed's pardon; but I knew, partly
  • from experience and partly from instinct, that was the way to make her
  • repulse me with double scorn, thereby re-exciting every turbulent impulse
  • of my nature.
  • I would fain exercise some better faculty than that of fierce speaking;
  • fain find nourishment for some less fiendish feeling than that of sombre
  • indignation. I took a book--some Arabian tales; I sat down and
  • endeavoured to read. I could make no sense of the subject; my own
  • thoughts swam always between me and the page I had usually found
  • fascinating. I opened the glass-door in the breakfast-room: the
  • shrubbery was quite still: the black frost reigned, unbroken by sun or
  • breeze, through the grounds. I covered my head and arms with the skirt
  • of my frock, and went out to walk in a part of the plantation which was
  • quite sequestrated; but I found no pleasure in the silent trees, the
  • falling fir-cones, the congealed relics of autumn, russet leaves, swept
  • by past winds in heaps, and now stiffened together. I leaned against a
  • gate, and looked into an empty field where no sheep were feeding, where
  • the short grass was nipped and blanched. It was a very grey day; a most
  • opaque sky, "onding on snaw," canopied all; thence flakes felt it
  • intervals, which settled on the hard path and on the hoary lea without
  • melting. I stood, a wretched child enough, whispering to myself over and
  • over again, "What shall I do?--what shall I do?"
  • All at once I heard a clear voice call, "Miss Jane! where are you? Come
  • to lunch!"
  • It was Bessie, I knew well enough; but I did not stir; her light step
  • came tripping down the path.
  • "You naughty little thing!" she said. "Why don't you come when you are
  • called?"
  • Bessie's presence, compared with the thoughts over which I had been
  • brooding, seemed cheerful; even though, as usual, she was somewhat cross.
  • The fact is, after my conflict with and victory over Mrs. Reed, I was not
  • disposed to care much for the nursemaid's transitory anger; and I _was_
  • disposed to bask in her youthful lightness of heart. I just put my two
  • arms round her and said, "Come, Bessie! don't scold."
  • The action was more frank and fearless than any I was habituated to
  • indulge in: somehow it pleased her.
  • "You are a strange child, Miss Jane," she said, as she looked down at me;
  • "a little roving, solitary thing: and you are going to school, I
  • suppose?"
  • I nodded.
  • "And won't you be sorry to leave poor Bessie?"
  • "What does Bessie care for me? She is always scolding me."
  • "Because you're such a queer, frightened, shy little thing. You should
  • be bolder."
  • "What! to get more knocks?"
  • "Nonsense! But you are rather put upon, that's certain. My mother said,
  • when she came to see me last week, that she would not like a little one
  • of her own to be in your place.--Now, come in, and I've some good news
  • for you."
  • "I don't think you have, Bessie."
  • "Child! what do you mean? What sorrowful eyes you fix on me! Well, but
  • Missis and the young ladies and Master John are going out to tea this
  • afternoon, and you shall have tea with me. I'll ask cook to bake you a
  • little cake, and then you shall help me to look over your drawers; for I
  • am soon to pack your trunk. Missis intends you to leave Gateshead in a
  • day or two, and you shall choose what toys you like to take with you."
  • "Bessie, you must promise not to scold me any more till I go."
  • "Well, I will; but mind you are a very good girl, and don't be afraid of
  • me. Don't start when I chance to speak rather sharply; it's so
  • provoking."
  • "I don't think I shall ever be afraid of you again, Bessie, because I
  • have got used to you, and I shall soon have another set of people to
  • dread."
  • "If you dread them they'll dislike you."
  • "As you do, Bessie?"
  • "I don't dislike you, Miss; I believe I am fonder of you than of all the
  • others."
  • "You don't show it."
  • "You little sharp thing! you've got quite a new way of talking. What
  • makes you so venturesome and hardy?"
  • "Why, I shall soon be away from you, and besides"--I was going to say
  • something about what had passed between me and Mrs. Reed, but on second
  • thoughts I considered it better to remain silent on that head.
  • "And so you're glad to leave me?"
  • "Not at all, Bessie; indeed, just now I'm rather sorry."
  • "Just now! and rather! How coolly my little lady says it! I dare say
  • now if I were to ask you for a kiss you wouldn't give it me: you'd say
  • you'd _rather_ not."
  • "I'll kiss you and welcome: bend your head down." Bessie stooped; we
  • mutually embraced, and I followed her into the house quite comforted.
  • That afternoon lapsed in peace and harmony; and in the evening Bessie
  • told me some of her most enchanting stories, and sang me some of her
  • sweetest songs. Even for me life had its gleams of sunshine.
  • CHAPTER V
  • Five o'clock had hardly struck on the morning of the 19th of January,
  • when Bessie brought a candle into my closet and found me already up and
  • nearly dressed. I had risen half-an-hour before her entrance, and had
  • washed my face, and put on my clothes by the light of a half-moon just
  • setting, whose rays streamed through the narrow window near my crib. I
  • was to leave Gateshead that day by a coach which passed the lodge gates
  • at six a.m. Bessie was the only person yet risen; she had lit a fire in
  • the nursery, where she now proceeded to make my breakfast. Few children
  • can eat when excited with the thoughts of a journey; nor could I. Bessie,
  • having pressed me in vain to take a few spoonfuls of the boiled milk and
  • bread she had prepared for me, wrapped up some biscuits in a paper and
  • put them into my bag; then she helped me on with my pelisse and bonnet,
  • and wrapping herself in a shawl, she and I left the nursery. As we
  • passed Mrs. Reed's bedroom, she said, "Will you go in and bid Missis good-
  • bye?"
  • "No, Bessie: she came to my crib last night when you were gone down to
  • supper, and said I need not disturb her in the morning, or my cousins
  • either; and she told me to remember that she had always been my best
  • friend, and to speak of her and be grateful to her accordingly."
  • "What did you say, Miss?"
  • "Nothing: I covered my face with the bedclothes, and turned from her to
  • the wall."
  • "That was wrong, Miss Jane."
  • "It was quite right, Bessie. Your Missis has not been my friend: she has
  • been my foe."
  • "O Miss Jane! don't say so!"
  • "Good-bye to Gateshead!" cried I, as we passed through the hall and went
  • out at the front door.
  • The moon was set, and it was very dark; Bessie carried a lantern, whose
  • light glanced on wet steps and gravel road sodden by a recent thaw. Raw
  • and chill was the winter morning: my teeth chattered as I hastened down
  • the drive. There was a light in the porter's lodge: when we reached it,
  • we found the porter's wife just kindling her fire: my trunk, which had
  • been carried down the evening before, stood corded at the door. It
  • wanted but a few minutes of six, and shortly after that hour had struck,
  • the distant roll of wheels announced the coming coach; I went to the door
  • and watched its lamps approach rapidly through the gloom.
  • "Is she going by herself?" asked the porter's wife.
  • "Yes."
  • "And how far is it?"
  • "Fifty miles."
  • "What a long way! I wonder Mrs. Reed is not afraid to trust her so far
  • alone."
  • The coach drew up; there it was at the gates with its four horses and its
  • top laden with passengers: the guard and coachman loudly urged haste; my
  • trunk was hoisted up; I was taken from Bessie's neck, to which I clung
  • with kisses.
  • "Be sure and take good care of her," cried she to the guard, as he lifted
  • me into the inside.
  • "Ay, ay!" was the answer: the door was slapped to, a voice exclaimed "All
  • right," and on we drove. Thus was I severed from Bessie and Gateshead;
  • thus whirled away to unknown, and, as I then deemed, remote and
  • mysterious regions.
  • I remember but little of the journey; I only know that the day seemed to
  • me of a preternatural length, and that we appeared to travel over
  • hundreds of miles of road. We passed through several towns, and in one,
  • a very large one, the coach stopped; the horses were taken out, and the
  • passengers alighted to dine. I was carried into an inn, where the guard
  • wanted me to have some dinner; but, as I had no appetite, he left me in
  • an immense room with a fireplace at each end, a chandelier pendent from
  • the ceiling, and a little red gallery high up against the wall filled
  • with musical instruments. Here I walked about for a long time, feeling
  • very strange, and mortally apprehensive of some one coming in and
  • kidnapping me; for I believed in kidnappers, their exploits having
  • frequently figured in Bessie's fireside chronicles. At last the guard
  • returned; once more I was stowed away in the coach, my protector mounted
  • his own seat, sounded his hollow horn, and away we rattled over the
  • "stony street" of L-.
  • The afternoon came on wet and somewhat misty: as it waned into dusk, I
  • began to feel that we were getting very far indeed from Gateshead: we
  • ceased to pass through towns; the country changed; great grey hills
  • heaved up round the horizon: as twilight deepened, we descended a valley,
  • dark with wood, and long after night had overclouded the prospect, I
  • heard a wild wind rushing amongst trees.
  • Lulled by the sound, I at last dropped asleep; I had not long slumbered
  • when the sudden cessation of motion awoke me; the coach-door was open,
  • and a person like a servant was standing at it: I saw her face and dress
  • by the light of the lamps.
  • "Is there a little girl called Jane Eyre here?" she asked. I answered
  • "Yes," and was then lifted out; my trunk was handed down, and the coach
  • instantly drove away.
  • I was stiff with long sitting, and bewildered with the noise and motion
  • of the coach: Gathering my faculties, I looked about me. Rain, wind, and
  • darkness filled the air; nevertheless, I dimly discerned a wall before me
  • and a door open in it; through this door I passed with my new guide: she
  • shut and locked it behind her. There was now visible a house or
  • houses--for the building spread far--with many windows, and lights
  • burning in some; we went up a broad pebbly path, splashing wet, and were
  • admitted at a door; then the servant led me through a passage into a room
  • with a fire, where she left me alone.
  • I stood and warmed my numbed fingers over the blaze, then I looked round;
  • there was no candle, but the uncertain light from the hearth showed, by
  • intervals, papered walls, carpet, curtains, shining mahogany furniture:
  • it was a parlour, not so spacious or splendid as the drawing-room at
  • Gateshead, but comfortable enough. I was puzzling to make out the
  • subject of a picture on the wall, when the door opened, and an individual
  • carrying a light entered; another followed close behind.
  • The first was a tall lady with dark hair, dark eyes, and a pale and large
  • forehead; her figure was partly enveloped in a shawl, her countenance was
  • grave, her bearing erect.
  • "The child is very young to be sent alone," said she, putting her candle
  • down on the table. She considered me attentively for a minute or two,
  • then further added--
  • "She had better be put to bed soon; she looks tired: are you tired?" she
  • asked, placing her hand on my shoulder.
  • "A little, ma'am."
  • "And hungry too, no doubt: let her have some supper before she goes to
  • bed, Miss Miller. Is this the first time you have left your parents to
  • come to school, my little girl?"
  • I explained to her that I had no parents. She inquired how long they had
  • been dead: then how old I was, what was my name, whether I could read,
  • write, and sew a little: then she touched my cheek gently with her
  • forefinger, and saying, "She hoped I should be a good child," dismissed
  • me along with Miss Miller.
  • The lady I had left might be about twenty-nine; the one who went with me
  • appeared some years younger: the first impressed me by her voice, look,
  • and air. Miss Miller was more ordinary; ruddy in complexion, though of a
  • careworn countenance; hurried in gait and action, like one who had always
  • a multiplicity of tasks on hand: she looked, indeed, what I afterwards
  • found she really was, an under-teacher. Led by her, I passed from
  • compartment to compartment, from passage to passage, of a large and
  • irregular building; till, emerging from the total and somewhat dreary
  • silence pervading that portion of the house we had traversed, we came
  • upon the hum of many voices, and presently entered a wide, long room,
  • with great deal tables, two at each end, on each of which burnt a pair of
  • candles, and seated all round on benches, a congregation of girls of
  • every age, from nine or ten to twenty. Seen by the dim light of the
  • dips, their number to me appeared countless, though not in reality
  • exceeding eighty; they were uniformly dressed in brown stuff frocks of
  • quaint fashion, and long holland pinafores. It was the hour of study;
  • they were engaged in conning over their to-morrow's task, and the hum I
  • had heard was the combined result of their whispered repetitions.
  • Miss Miller signed to me to sit on a bench near the door, then walking up
  • to the top of the long room she cried out--
  • "Monitors, collect the lesson-books and put them away!"
  • Four tall girls arose from different tables, and going round, gathered
  • the books and removed them. Miss Miller again gave the word of command--
  • "Monitors, fetch the supper-trays!"
  • The tall girls went out and returned presently, each bearing a tray, with
  • portions of something, I knew not what, arranged thereon, and a pitcher
  • of water and mug in the middle of each tray. The portions were handed
  • round; those who liked took a draught of the water, the mug being common
  • to all. When it came to my turn, I drank, for I was thirsty, but did not
  • touch the food, excitement and fatigue rendering me incapable of eating:
  • I now saw, however, that it was a thin oaten cake shared into fragments.
  • The meal over, prayers were read by Miss Miller, and the classes filed
  • off, two and two, upstairs. Overpowered by this time with weariness, I
  • scarcely noticed what sort of a place the bedroom was, except that, like
  • the schoolroom, I saw it was very long. To-night I was to be Miss
  • Miller's bed-fellow; she helped me to undress: when laid down I glanced
  • at the long rows of beds, each of which was quickly filled with two
  • occupants; in ten minutes the single light was extinguished, and amidst
  • silence and complete darkness I fell asleep.
  • The night passed rapidly. I was too tired even to dream; I only once
  • awoke to hear the wind rave in furious gusts, and the rain fall in
  • torrents, and to be sensible that Miss Miller had taken her place by my
  • side. When I again unclosed my eyes, a loud bell was ringing; the girls
  • were up and dressing; day had not yet begun to dawn, and a rushlight or
  • two burned in the room. I too rose reluctantly; it was bitter cold, and
  • I dressed as well as I could for shivering, and washed when there was a
  • basin at liberty, which did not occur soon, as there was but one basin to
  • six girls, on the stands down the middle of the room. Again the bell
  • rang: all formed in file, two and two, and in that order descended the
  • stairs and entered the cold and dimly lit schoolroom: here prayers were
  • read by Miss Miller; afterwards she called out--
  • "Form classes!"
  • A great tumult succeeded for some minutes, during which Miss Miller
  • repeatedly exclaimed, "Silence!" and "Order!" When it subsided, I saw
  • them all drawn up in four semicircles, before four chairs, placed at the
  • four tables; all held books in their hands, and a great book, like a
  • Bible, lay on each table, before the vacant seat. A pause of some
  • seconds succeeded, filled up by the low, vague hum of numbers; Miss
  • Miller walked from class to class, hushing this indefinite sound.
  • A distant bell tinkled: immediately three ladies entered the room, each
  • walked to a table and took her seat. Miss Miller assumed the fourth
  • vacant chair, which was that nearest the door, and around which the
  • smallest of the children were assembled: to this inferior class I was
  • called, and placed at the bottom of it.
  • Business now began, the day's Collect was repeated, then certain texts of
  • Scripture were said, and to these succeeded a protracted reading of
  • chapters in the Bible, which lasted an hour. By the time that exercise
  • was terminated, day had fully dawned. The indefatigable bell now sounded
  • for the fourth time: the classes were marshalled and marched into another
  • room to breakfast: how glad I was to behold a prospect of getting
  • something to eat! I was now nearly sick from inanition, having taken so
  • little the day before.
  • The refectory was a great, low-ceiled, gloomy room; on two long tables
  • smoked basins of something hot, which, however, to my dismay, sent forth
  • an odour far from inviting. I saw a universal manifestation of
  • discontent when the fumes of the repast met the nostrils of those
  • destined to swallow it; from the van of the procession, the tall girls of
  • the first class, rose the whispered words--
  • "Disgusting! The porridge is burnt again!"
  • "Silence!" ejaculated a voice; not that of Miss Miller, but one of the
  • upper teachers, a little and dark personage, smartly dressed, but of
  • somewhat morose aspect, who installed herself at the top of one table,
  • while a more buxom lady presided at the other. I looked in vain for her
  • I had first seen the night before; she was not visible: Miss Miller
  • occupied the foot of the table where I sat, and a strange,
  • foreign-looking, elderly lady, the French teacher, as I afterwards found,
  • took the corresponding seat at the other board. A long grace was said
  • and a hymn sung; then a servant brought in some tea for the teachers, and
  • the meal began.
  • Ravenous, and now very faint, I devoured a spoonful or two of my portion
  • without thinking of its taste; but the first edge of hunger blunted, I
  • perceived I had got in hand a nauseous mess; burnt porridge is almost as
  • bad as rotten potatoes; famine itself soon sickens over it. The spoons
  • were moved slowly: I saw each girl taste her food and try to swallow it;
  • but in most cases the effort was soon relinquished. Breakfast was over,
  • and none had breakfasted. Thanks being returned for what we had not got,
  • and a second hymn chanted, the refectory was evacuated for the
  • schoolroom. I was one of the last to go out, and in passing the tables,
  • I saw one teacher take a basin of the porridge and taste it; she looked
  • at the others; all their countenances expressed displeasure, and one of
  • them, the stout one, whispered--
  • "Abominable stuff! How shameful!"
  • A quarter of an hour passed before lessons again began, during which the
  • schoolroom was in a glorious tumult; for that space of time it seemed to
  • be permitted to talk loud and more freely, and they used their privilege.
  • The whole conversation ran on the breakfast, which one and all abused
  • roundly. Poor things! it was the sole consolation they had. Miss Miller
  • was now the only teacher in the room: a group of great girls standing
  • about her spoke with serious and sullen gestures. I heard the name of
  • Mr. Brocklehurst pronounced by some lips; at which Miss Miller shook her
  • head disapprovingly; but she made no great effort to check the general
  • wrath; doubtless she shared in it.
  • A clock in the schoolroom struck nine; Miss Miller left her circle, and
  • standing in the middle of the room, cried--
  • "Silence! To your seats!"
  • Discipline prevailed: in five minutes the confused throng was resolved
  • into order, and comparative silence quelled the Babel clamour of tongues.
  • The upper teachers now punctually resumed their posts: but still, all
  • seemed to wait. Ranged on benches down the sides of the room, the eighty
  • girls sat motionless and erect; a quaint assemblage they appeared, all
  • with plain locks combed from their faces, not a curl visible; in brown
  • dresses, made high and surrounded by a narrow tucker about the throat,
  • with little pockets of holland (shaped something like a Highlander's
  • purse) tied in front of their frocks, and destined to serve the purpose
  • of a work-bag: all, too, wearing woollen stockings and country-made
  • shoes, fastened with brass buckles. Above twenty of those clad in this
  • costume were full-grown girls, or rather young women; it suited them ill,
  • and gave an air of oddity even to the prettiest.
  • I was still looking at them, and also at intervals examining the
  • teachers--none of whom precisely pleased me; for the stout one was a
  • little coarse, the dark one not a little fierce, the foreigner harsh and
  • grotesque, and Miss Miller, poor thing! looked purple, weather-beaten,
  • and over-worked--when, as my eye wandered from face to face, the whole
  • school rose simultaneously, as if moved by a common spring.
  • What was the matter? I had heard no order given: I was puzzled. Ere I
  • had gathered my wits, the classes were again seated: but as all eyes were
  • now turned to one point, mine followed the general direction, and
  • encountered the personage who had received me last night. She stood at
  • the bottom of the long room, on the hearth; for there was a fire at each
  • end; she surveyed the two rows of girls silently and gravely. Miss
  • Miller approaching, seemed to ask her a question, and having received her
  • answer, went back to her place, and said aloud--
  • "Monitor of the first class, fetch the globes!"
  • While the direction was being executed, the lady consulted moved slowly
  • up the room. I suppose I have a considerable organ of veneration, for I
  • retain yet the sense of admiring awe with which my eyes traced her steps.
  • Seen now, in broad daylight, she looked tall, fair, and shapely; brown
  • eyes with a benignant light in their irids, and a fine pencilling of long
  • lashes round, relieved the whiteness of her large front; on each of her
  • temples her hair, of a very dark brown, was clustered in round curls,
  • according to the fashion of those times, when neither smooth bands nor
  • long ringlets were in vogue; her dress, also in the mode of the day, was
  • of purple cloth, relieved by a sort of Spanish trimming of black velvet;
  • a gold watch (watches were not so common then as now) shone at her
  • girdle. Let the reader add, to complete the picture, refined features; a
  • complexion, if pale, clear; and a stately air and carriage, and he will
  • have, at least, as clearly as words can give it, a correct idea of the
  • exterior of Miss Temple--Maria Temple, as I afterwards saw the name
  • written in a prayer-book intrusted to me to carry to church.
  • The superintendent of Lowood (for such was this lady) having taken her
  • seat before a pair of globes placed on one of the tables, summoned the
  • first class round her, and commenced giving a lesson on geography; the
  • lower classes were called by the teachers: repetitions in history,
  • grammar, &c., went on for an hour; writing and arithmetic succeeded, and
  • music lessons were given by Miss Temple to some of the elder girls. The
  • duration of each lesson was measured by the clock, which at last struck
  • twelve. The superintendent rose--
  • "I have a word to address to the pupils," said she.
  • The tumult of cessation from lessons was already breaking forth, but it
  • sank at her voice. She went on--
  • "You had this morning a breakfast which you could not eat; you must be
  • hungry:--I have ordered that a lunch of bread and cheese shall be served
  • to all."
  • The teachers looked at her with a sort of surprise.
  • "It is to be done on my responsibility," she added, in an explanatory
  • tone to them, and immediately afterwards left the room.
  • The bread and cheese was presently brought in and distributed, to the
  • high delight and refreshment of the whole school. The order was now
  • given "To the garden!" Each put on a coarse straw bonnet, with strings
  • of coloured calico, and a cloak of grey frieze. I was similarly
  • equipped, and, following the stream, I made my way into the open air.
  • The garden was a wide inclosure, surrounded with walls so high as to
  • exclude every glimpse of prospect; a covered verandah ran down one side,
  • and broad walks bordered a middle space divided into scores of little
  • beds: these beds were assigned as gardens for the pupils to cultivate,
  • and each bed had an owner. When full of flowers they would doubtless
  • look pretty; but now, at the latter end of January, all was wintry blight
  • and brown decay. I shuddered as I stood and looked round me: it was an
  • inclement day for outdoor exercise; not positively rainy, but darkened by
  • a drizzling yellow fog; all under foot was still soaking wet with the
  • floods of yesterday. The stronger among the girls ran about and engaged
  • in active games, but sundry pale and thin ones herded together for
  • shelter and warmth in the verandah; and amongst these, as the dense mist
  • penetrated to their shivering frames, I heard frequently the sound of a
  • hollow cough.
  • As yet I had spoken to no one, nor did anybody seem to take notice of me;
  • I stood lonely enough: but to that feeling of isolation I was accustomed;
  • it did not oppress me much. I leant against a pillar of the verandah,
  • drew my grey mantle close about me, and, trying to forget the cold which
  • nipped me without, and the unsatisfied hunger which gnawed me within,
  • delivered myself up to the employment of watching and thinking. My
  • reflections were too undefined and fragmentary to merit record: I hardly
  • yet knew where I was; Gateshead and my past life seemed floated away to
  • an immeasurable distance; the present was vague and strange, and of the
  • future I could form no conjecture. I looked round the convent-like
  • garden, and then up at the house--a large building, half of which seemed
  • grey and old, the other half quite new. The new part, containing the
  • schoolroom and dormitory, was lit by mullioned and latticed windows,
  • which gave it a church-like aspect; a stone tablet over the door bore
  • this inscription:--
  • "Lowood Institution.--This portion was rebuilt A.D. ---, by Naomi
  • Brocklehurst, of Brocklehurst Hall, in this county." "Let your light so
  • shine before men, that they may see your good works, and glorify your
  • Father which is in heaven."--St. Matt. v. 16.
  • I read these words over and over again: I felt that an explanation
  • belonged to them, and was unable fully to penetrate their import. I was
  • still pondering the signification of "Institution," and endeavouring to
  • make out a connection between the first words and the verse of Scripture,
  • when the sound of a cough close behind me made me turn my head. I saw a
  • girl sitting on a stone bench near; she was bent over a book, on the
  • perusal of which she seemed intent: from where I stood I could see the
  • title--it was "Rasselas;" a name that struck me as strange, and
  • consequently attractive. In turning a leaf she happened to look up, and
  • I said to her directly--
  • "Is your book interesting?" I had already formed the intention of asking
  • her to lend it to me some day.
  • "I like it," she answered, after a pause of a second or two, during which
  • she examined me.
  • "What is it about?" I continued. I hardly know where I found the
  • hardihood thus to open a conversation with a stranger; the step was
  • contrary to my nature and habits: but I think her occupation touched a
  • chord of sympathy somewhere; for I too liked reading, though of a
  • frivolous and childish kind; I could not digest or comprehend the serious
  • or substantial.
  • "You may look at it," replied the girl, offering me the book.
  • I did so; a brief examination convinced me that the contents were less
  • taking than the title: "Rasselas" looked dull to my trifling taste; I saw
  • nothing about fairies, nothing about genii; no bright variety seemed
  • spread over the closely-printed pages. I returned it to her; she
  • received it quietly, and without saying anything she was about to relapse
  • into her former studious mood: again I ventured to disturb her--
  • "Can you tell me what the writing on that stone over the door means? What
  • is Lowood Institution?"
  • "This house where you are come to live."
  • "And why do they call it Institution? Is it in any way different from
  • other schools?"
  • "It is partly a charity-school: you and I, and all the rest of us, are
  • charity-children. I suppose you are an orphan: are not either your
  • father or your mother dead?"
  • "Both died before I can remember."
  • "Well, all the girls here have lost either one or both parents, and this
  • is called an institution for educating orphans."
  • "Do we pay no money? Do they keep us for nothing?"
  • "We pay, or our friends pay, fifteen pounds a year for each."
  • "Then why do they call us charity-children?"
  • "Because fifteen pounds is not enough for board and teaching, and the
  • deficiency is supplied by subscription."
  • "Who subscribes?"
  • "Different benevolent-minded ladies and gentlemen in this neighbourhood
  • and in London."
  • "Who was Naomi Brocklehurst?"
  • "The lady who built the new part of this house as that tablet records,
  • and whose son overlooks and directs everything here."
  • "Why?"
  • "Because he is treasurer and manager of the establishment."
  • "Then this house does not belong to that tall lady who wears a watch, and
  • who said we were to have some bread and cheese?"
  • "To Miss Temple? Oh, no! I wish it did: she has to answer to Mr.
  • Brocklehurst for all she does. Mr. Brocklehurst buys all our food and
  • all our clothes."
  • "Does he live here?"
  • "No--two miles off, at a large hall."
  • "Is he a good man?"
  • "He is a clergyman, and is said to do a great deal of good."
  • "Did you say that tall lady was called Miss Temple?"
  • "Yes."
  • "And what are the other teachers called?"
  • "The one with red cheeks is called Miss Smith; she attends to the work,
  • and cuts out--for we make our own clothes, our frocks, and pelisses, and
  • everything; the little one with black hair is Miss Scatcherd; she teaches
  • history and grammar, and hears the second class repetitions; and the one
  • who wears a shawl, and has a pocket-handkerchief tied to her side with a
  • yellow ribband, is Madame Pierrot: she comes from Lisle, in France, and
  • teaches French."
  • "Do you like the teachers?"
  • "Well enough."
  • "Do you like the little black one, and the Madame ---?--I cannot
  • pronounce her name as you do."
  • "Miss Scatcherd is hasty--you must take care not to offend her; Madame
  • Pierrot is not a bad sort of person."
  • "But Miss Temple is the best--isn't she?"
  • "Miss Temple is very good and very clever; she is above the rest, because
  • she knows far more than they do."
  • "Have you been long here?"
  • "Two years."
  • "Are you an orphan?"
  • "My mother is dead."
  • "Are you happy here?"
  • "You ask rather too many questions. I have given you answers enough for
  • the present: now I want to read."
  • But at that moment the summons sounded for dinner; all re-entered the
  • house. The odour which now filled the refectory was scarcely more
  • appetising than that which had regaled our nostrils at breakfast: the
  • dinner was served in two huge tin-plated vessels, whence rose a strong
  • steam redolent of rancid fat. I found the mess to consist of indifferent
  • potatoes and strange shreds of rusty meat, mixed and cooked together. Of
  • this preparation a tolerably abundant plateful was apportioned to each
  • pupil. I ate what I could, and wondered within myself whether every
  • day's fare would be like this.
  • After dinner, we immediately adjourned to the schoolroom: lessons
  • recommenced, and were continued till five o'clock.
  • The only marked event of the afternoon was, that I saw the girl with whom
  • I had conversed in the verandah dismissed in disgrace by Miss Scatcherd
  • from a history class, and sent to stand in the middle of the large
  • schoolroom. The punishment seemed to me in a high degree ignominious,
  • especially for so great a girl--she looked thirteen or upwards. I
  • expected she would show signs of great distress and shame; but to my
  • surprise she neither wept nor blushed: composed, though grave, she stood,
  • the central mark of all eyes. "How can she bear it so quietly--so
  • firmly?" I asked of myself. "Were I in her place, it seems to me I
  • should wish the earth to open and swallow me up. She looks as if she
  • were thinking of something beyond her punishment--beyond her situation:
  • of something not round her nor before her. I have heard of day-dreams--is
  • she in a day-dream now? Her eyes are fixed on the floor, but I am sure
  • they do not see it--her sight seems turned in, gone down into her heart:
  • she is looking at what she can remember, I believe; not at what is really
  • present. I wonder what sort of a girl she is--whether good or naughty."
  • Soon after five p.m. we had another meal, consisting of a small mug of
  • coffee, and half-a-slice of brown bread. I devoured my bread and drank
  • my coffee with relish; but I should have been glad of as much more--I was
  • still hungry. Half-an-hour's recreation succeeded, then study; then the
  • glass of water and the piece of oat-cake, prayers, and bed. Such was my
  • first day at Lowood.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • The next day commenced as before, getting up and dressing by rushlight;
  • but this morning we were obliged to dispense with the ceremony of
  • washing; the water in the pitchers was frozen. A change had taken place
  • in the weather the preceding evening, and a keen north-east wind,
  • whistling through the crevices of our bedroom windows all night long, had
  • made us shiver in our beds, and turned the contents of the ewers to ice.
  • Before the long hour and a half of prayers and Bible-reading was over, I
  • felt ready to perish with cold. Breakfast-time came at last, and this
  • morning the porridge was not burnt; the quality was eatable, the quantity
  • small. How small my portion seemed! I wished it had been doubled.
  • In the course of the day I was enrolled a member of the fourth class, and
  • regular tasks and occupations were assigned me: hitherto, I had only been
  • a spectator of the proceedings at Lowood; I was now to become an actor
  • therein. At first, being little accustomed to learn by heart, the
  • lessons appeared to me both long and difficult; the frequent change from
  • task to task, too, bewildered me; and I was glad when, about three
  • o'clock in the afternoon, Miss Smith put into my hands a border of muslin
  • two yards long, together with needle, thimble, &c., and sent me to sit in
  • a quiet corner of the schoolroom, with directions to hem the same. At
  • that hour most of the others were sewing likewise; but one class still
  • stood round Miss Scatcherd's chair reading, and as all was quiet, the
  • subject of their lessons could be heard, together with the manner in
  • which each girl acquitted herself, and the animadversions or
  • commendations of Miss Scatcherd on the performance. It was English
  • history: among the readers I observed my acquaintance of the verandah: at
  • the commencement of the lesson, her place had been at the top of the
  • class, but for some error of pronunciation, or some inattention to stops,
  • she was suddenly sent to the very bottom. Even in that obscure position,
  • Miss Scatcherd continued to make her an object of constant notice: she
  • was continually addressing to her such phrases as the following:--
  • "Burns" (such it seems was her name: the girls here were all called by
  • their surnames, as boys are elsewhere), "Burns, you are standing on the
  • side of your shoe; turn your toes out immediately." "Burns, you poke
  • your chin most unpleasantly; draw it in." "Burns, I insist on your
  • holding your head up; I will not have you before me in that attitude,"
  • &c. &c.
  • A chapter having been read through twice, the books were closed and the
  • girls examined. The lesson had comprised part of the reign of Charles
  • I., and there were sundry questions about tonnage and poundage and ship-
  • money, which most of them appeared unable to answer; still, every little
  • difficulty was solved instantly when it reached Burns: her memory seemed
  • to have retained the substance of the whole lesson, and she was ready
  • with answers on every point. I kept expecting that Miss Scatcherd would
  • praise her attention; but, instead of that, she suddenly cried out--
  • "You dirty, disagreeable girl! you have never cleaned your nails this
  • morning!"
  • Burns made no answer: I wondered at her silence. "Why," thought I, "does
  • she not explain that she could neither clean her nails nor wash her face,
  • as the water was frozen?"
  • My attention was now called off by Miss Smith desiring me to hold a skein
  • of thread: while she was winding it, she talked to me from time to time,
  • asking whether I had ever been at school before, whether I could mark,
  • stitch, knit, &c.; till she dismissed me, I could not pursue my
  • observations on Miss Scatcherd's movements. When I returned to my seat,
  • that lady was just delivering an order of which I did not catch the
  • import; but Burns immediately left the class, and going into the small
  • inner room where the books were kept, returned in half a minute, carrying
  • in her hand a bundle of twigs tied together at one end. This ominous
  • tool she presented to Miss Scatcherd with a respectful curtesy; then she
  • quietly, and without being told, unloosed her pinafore, and the teacher
  • instantly and sharply inflicted on her neck a dozen strokes with the
  • bunch of twigs. Not a tear rose to Burns' eye; and, while I paused from
  • my sewing, because my fingers quivered at this spectacle with a sentiment
  • of unavailing and impotent anger, not a feature of her pensive face
  • altered its ordinary expression.
  • "Hardened girl!" exclaimed Miss Scatcherd; "nothing can correct you of
  • your slatternly habits: carry the rod away."
  • Burns obeyed: I looked at her narrowly as she emerged from the
  • book-closet; she was just putting back her handkerchief into her pocket,
  • and the trace of a tear glistened on her thin cheek.
  • The play-hour in the evening I thought the pleasantest fraction of the
  • day at Lowood: the bit of bread, the draught of coffee swallowed at five
  • o'clock had revived vitality, if it had not satisfied hunger: the long
  • restraint of the day was slackened; the schoolroom felt warmer than in
  • the morning--its fires being allowed to burn a little more brightly, to
  • supply, in some measure, the place of candles, not yet introduced: the
  • ruddy gloaming, the licensed uproar, the confusion of many voices gave
  • one a welcome sense of liberty.
  • On the evening of the day on which I had seen Miss Scatcherd flog her
  • pupil, Burns, I wandered as usual among the forms and tables and laughing
  • groups without a companion, yet not feeling lonely: when I passed the
  • windows, I now and then lifted a blind, and looked out; it snowed fast, a
  • drift was already forming against the lower panes; putting my ear close
  • to the window, I could distinguish from the gleeful tumult within, the
  • disconsolate moan of the wind outside.
  • Probably, if I had lately left a good home and kind parents, this would
  • have been the hour when I should most keenly have regretted the
  • separation; that wind would then have saddened my heart; this obscure
  • chaos would have disturbed my peace! as it was, I derived from both a
  • strange excitement, and reckless and feverish, I wished the wind to howl
  • more wildly, the gloom to deepen to darkness, and the confusion to rise
  • to clamour.
  • Jumping over forms, and creeping under tables, I made my way to one of
  • the fire-places; there, kneeling by the high wire fender, I found Burns,
  • absorbed, silent, abstracted from all round her by the companionship of a
  • book, which she read by the dim glare of the embers.
  • "Is it still 'Rasselas'?" I asked, coming behind her.
  • "Yes," she said, "and I have just finished it."
  • And in five minutes more she shut it up. I was glad of this. "Now,"
  • thought I, "I can perhaps get her to talk." I sat down by her on the
  • floor.
  • "What is your name besides Burns?"
  • "Helen."
  • "Do you come a long way from here?"
  • "I come from a place farther north, quite on the borders of Scotland."
  • "Will you ever go back?"
  • "I hope so; but nobody can be sure of the future."
  • "You must wish to leave Lowood?"
  • "No! why should I? I was sent to Lowood to get an education; and it
  • would be of no use going away until I have attained that object."
  • "But that teacher, Miss Scatcherd, is so cruel to you?"
  • "Cruel? Not at all! She is severe: she dislikes my faults."
  • "And if I were in your place I should dislike her; I should resist her.
  • If she struck me with that rod, I should get it from her hand; I should
  • break it under her nose."
  • "Probably you would do nothing of the sort: but if you did, Mr.
  • Brocklehurst would expel you from the school; that would be a great grief
  • to your relations. It is far better to endure patiently a smart which
  • nobody feels but yourself, than to commit a hasty action whose evil
  • consequences will extend to all connected with you; and besides, the
  • Bible bids us return good for evil."
  • "But then it seems disgraceful to be flogged, and to be sent to stand in
  • the middle of a room full of people; and you are such a great girl: I am
  • far younger than you, and I could not bear it."
  • "Yet it would be your duty to bear it, if you could not avoid it: it is
  • weak and silly to say you _cannot bear_ what it is your fate to be
  • required to bear."
  • I heard her with wonder: I could not comprehend this doctrine of
  • endurance; and still less could I understand or sympathise with the
  • forbearance she expressed for her chastiser. Still I felt that Helen
  • Burns considered things by a light invisible to my eyes. I suspected she
  • might be right and I wrong; but I would not ponder the matter deeply;
  • like Felix, I put it off to a more convenient season.
  • "You say you have faults, Helen: what are they? To me you seem very
  • good."
  • "Then learn from me, not to judge by appearances: I am, as Miss Scatcherd
  • said, slatternly; I seldom put, and never keep, things, in order; I am
  • careless; I forget rules; I read when I should learn my lessons; I have
  • no method; and sometimes I say, like you, I cannot _bear_ to be subjected
  • to systematic arrangements. This is all very provoking to Miss
  • Scatcherd, who is naturally neat, punctual, and particular."
  • "And cross and cruel," I added; but Helen Burns would not admit my
  • addition: she kept silence.
  • "Is Miss Temple as severe to you as Miss Scatcherd?"
  • At the utterance of Miss Temple's name, a soft smile flitted over her
  • grave face.
  • "Miss Temple is full of goodness; it pains her to be severe to any one,
  • even the worst in the school: she sees my errors, and tells me of them
  • gently; and, if I do anything worthy of praise, she gives me my meed
  • liberally. One strong proof of my wretchedly defective nature is, that
  • even her expostulations, so mild, so rational, have not influence to cure
  • me of my faults; and even her praise, though I value it most highly,
  • cannot stimulate me to continued care and foresight."
  • "That is curious," said I, "it is so easy to be careful."
  • "For _you_ I have no doubt it is. I observed you in your class this
  • morning, and saw you were closely attentive: your thoughts never seemed
  • to wander while Miss Miller explained the lesson and questioned you. Now,
  • mine continually rove away; when I should be listening to Miss Scatcherd,
  • and collecting all she says with assiduity, often I lose the very sound
  • of her voice; I fall into a sort of dream. Sometimes I think I am in
  • Northumberland, and that the noises I hear round me are the bubbling of a
  • little brook which runs through Deepden, near our house;--then, when it
  • comes to my turn to reply, I have to be awakened; and having heard
  • nothing of what was read for listening to the visionary brook, I have no
  • answer ready."
  • "Yet how well you replied this afternoon."
  • "It was mere chance; the subject on which we had been reading had
  • interested me. This afternoon, instead of dreaming of Deepden, I was
  • wondering how a man who wished to do right could act so unjustly and
  • unwisely as Charles the First sometimes did; and I thought what a pity it
  • was that, with his integrity and conscientiousness, he could see no
  • farther than the prerogatives of the crown. If he had but been able to
  • look to a distance, and see how what they call the spirit of the age was
  • tending! Still, I like Charles--I respect him--I pity him, poor murdered
  • king! Yes, his enemies were the worst: they shed blood they had no right
  • to shed. How dared they kill him!"
  • Helen was talking to herself now: she had forgotten I could not very well
  • understand her--that I was ignorant, or nearly so, of the subject she
  • discussed. I recalled her to my level.
  • "And when Miss Temple teaches you, do your thoughts wander then?"
  • "No, certainly, not often; because Miss Temple has generally something to
  • say which is newer than my own reflections; her language is singularly
  • agreeable to me, and the information she communicates is often just what
  • I wished to gain."
  • "Well, then, with Miss Temple you are good?"
  • "Yes, in a passive way: I make no effort; I follow as inclination guides
  • me. There is no merit in such goodness."
  • "A great deal: you are good to those who are good to you. It is all I
  • ever desire to be. If people were always kind and obedient to those who
  • are cruel and unjust, the wicked people would have it all their own way:
  • they would never feel afraid, and so they would never alter, but would
  • grow worse and worse. When we are struck at without a reason, we should
  • strike back again very hard; I am sure we should--so hard as to teach the
  • person who struck us never to do it again."
  • "You will change your mind, I hope, when you grow older: as yet you are
  • but a little untaught girl."
  • "But I feel this, Helen; I must dislike those who, whatever I do to
  • please them, persist in disliking me; I must resist those who punish me
  • unjustly. It is as natural as that I should love those who show me
  • affection, or submit to punishment when I feel it is deserved."
  • "Heathens and savage tribes hold that doctrine, but Christians and
  • civilised nations disown it."
  • "How? I don't understand."
  • "It is not violence that best overcomes hate--nor vengeance that most
  • certainly heals injury."
  • "What then?"
  • "Read the New Testament, and observe what Christ says, and how He acts;
  • make His word your rule, and His conduct your example."
  • "What does He say?"
  • "Love your enemies; bless them that curse you; do good to them that hate
  • you and despitefully use you."
  • "Then I should love Mrs. Reed, which I cannot do; I should bless her son
  • John, which is impossible."
  • In her turn, Helen Burns asked me to explain, and I proceeded forthwith
  • to pour out, in my own way, the tale of my sufferings and resentments.
  • Bitter and truculent when excited, I spoke as I felt, without reserve or
  • softening.
  • Helen heard me patiently to the end: I expected she would then make a
  • remark, but she said nothing.
  • "Well," I asked impatiently, "is not Mrs. Reed a hard-hearted, bad
  • woman?"
  • "She has been unkind to you, no doubt; because you see, she dislikes your
  • cast of character, as Miss Scatcherd does mine; but how minutely you
  • remember all she has done and said to you! What a singularly deep
  • impression her injustice seems to have made on your heart! No ill-usage
  • so brands its record on my feelings. Would you not be happier if you
  • tried to forget her severity, together with the passionate emotions it
  • excited? Life appears to me too short to be spent in nursing animosity
  • or registering wrongs. We are, and must be, one and all, burdened with
  • faults in this world: but the time will soon come when, I trust, we shall
  • put them off in putting off our corruptible bodies; when debasement and
  • sin will fall from us with this cumbrous frame of flesh, and only the
  • spark of the spirit will remain,--the impalpable principle of light and
  • thought, pure as when it left the Creator to inspire the creature: whence
  • it came it will return; perhaps again to be communicated to some being
  • higher than man--perhaps to pass through gradations of glory, from the
  • pale human soul to brighten to the seraph! Surely it will never, on the
  • contrary, be suffered to degenerate from man to fiend? No; I cannot
  • believe that: I hold another creed: which no one ever taught me, and
  • which I seldom mention; but in which I delight, and to which I cling: for
  • it extends hope to all: it makes Eternity a rest--a mighty home, not a
  • terror and an abyss. Besides, with this creed, I can so clearly
  • distinguish between the criminal and his crime; I can so sincerely
  • forgive the first while I abhor the last: with this creed revenge never
  • worries my heart, degradation never too deeply disgusts me, injustice
  • never crushes me too low: I live in calm, looking to the end."
  • Helen's head, always drooping, sank a little lower as she finished this
  • sentence. I saw by her look she wished no longer to talk to me, but
  • rather to converse with her own thoughts. She was not allowed much time
  • for meditation: a monitor, a great rough girl, presently came up,
  • exclaiming in a strong Cumberland accent--
  • "Helen Burns, if you don't go and put your drawer in order, and fold up
  • your work this minute, I'll tell Miss Scatcherd to come and look at it!"
  • Helen sighed as her reverie fled, and getting up, obeyed the monitor
  • without reply as without delay.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • My first quarter at Lowood seemed an age; and not the golden age either;
  • it comprised an irksome struggle with difficulties in habituating myself
  • to new rules and unwonted tasks. The fear of failure in these points
  • harassed me worse than the physical hardships of my lot; though these
  • were no trifles.
  • During January, February, and part of March, the deep snows, and, after
  • their melting, the almost impassable roads, prevented our stirring beyond
  • the garden walls, except to go to church; but within these limits we had
  • to pass an hour every day in the open air. Our clothing was insufficient
  • to protect us from the severe cold: we had no boots, the snow got into
  • our shoes and melted there: our ungloved hands became numbed and covered
  • with chilblains, as were our feet: I remember well the distracting
  • irritation I endured from this cause every evening, when my feet
  • inflamed; and the torture of thrusting the swelled, raw, and stiff toes
  • into my shoes in the morning. Then the scanty supply of food was
  • distressing: with the keen appetites of growing children, we had scarcely
  • sufficient to keep alive a delicate invalid. From this deficiency of
  • nourishment resulted an abuse, which pressed hardly on the younger
  • pupils: whenever the famished great girls had an opportunity, they would
  • coax or menace the little ones out of their portion. Many a time I have
  • shared between two claimants the precious morsel of brown bread
  • distributed at tea-time; and after relinquishing to a third half the
  • contents of my mug of coffee, I have swallowed the remainder with an
  • accompaniment of secret tears, forced from me by the exigency of hunger.
  • Sundays were dreary days in that wintry season. We had to walk two miles
  • to Brocklebridge Church, where our patron officiated. We set out cold,
  • we arrived at church colder: during the morning service we became almost
  • paralysed. It was too far to return to dinner, and an allowance of cold
  • meat and bread, in the same penurious proportion observed in our ordinary
  • meals, was served round between the services.
  • At the close of the afternoon service we returned by an exposed and hilly
  • road, where the bitter winter wind, blowing over a range of snowy summits
  • to the north, almost flayed the skin from our faces.
  • I can remember Miss Temple walking lightly and rapidly along our drooping
  • line, her plaid cloak, which the frosty wind fluttered, gathered close
  • about her, and encouraging us, by precept and example, to keep up our
  • spirits, and march forward, as she said, "like stalwart soldiers." The
  • other teachers, poor things, were generally themselves too much dejected
  • to attempt the task of cheering others.
  • How we longed for the light and heat of a blazing fire when we got back!
  • But, to the little ones at least, this was denied: each hearth in the
  • schoolroom was immediately surrounded by a double row of great girls, and
  • behind them the younger children crouched in groups, wrapping their
  • starved arms in their pinafores.
  • A little solace came at tea-time, in the shape of a double ration of
  • bread--a whole, instead of a half, slice--with the delicious addition of
  • a thin scrape of butter: it was the hebdomadal treat to which we all
  • looked forward from Sabbath to Sabbath. I generally contrived to reserve
  • a moiety of this bounteous repast for myself; but the remainder I was
  • invariably obliged to part with.
  • The Sunday evening was spent in repeating, by heart, the Church
  • Catechism, and the fifth, sixth, and seventh chapters of St. Matthew; and
  • in listening to a long sermon, read by Miss Miller, whose irrepressible
  • yawns attested her weariness. A frequent interlude of these performances
  • was the enactment of the part of Eutychus by some half-dozen of little
  • girls, who, overpowered with sleep, would fall down, if not out of the
  • third loft, yet off the fourth form, and be taken up half dead. The
  • remedy was, to thrust them forward into the centre of the schoolroom, and
  • oblige them to stand there till the sermon was finished. Sometimes their
  • feet failed them, and they sank together in a heap; they were then
  • propped up with the monitors' high stools.
  • I have not yet alluded to the visits of Mr. Brocklehurst; and indeed that
  • gentleman was from home during the greater part of the first month after
  • my arrival; perhaps prolonging his stay with his friend the archdeacon:
  • his absence was a relief to me. I need not say that I had my own reasons
  • for dreading his coming: but come he did at last.
  • One afternoon (I had then been three weeks at Lowood), as I was sitting
  • with a slate in my hand, puzzling over a sum in long division, my eyes,
  • raised in abstraction to the window, caught sight of a figure just
  • passing: I recognised almost instinctively that gaunt outline; and when,
  • two minutes after, all the school, teachers included, rose _en masse_, it
  • was not necessary for me to look up in order to ascertain whose entrance
  • they thus greeted. A long stride measured the schoolroom, and presently
  • beside Miss Temple, who herself had risen, stood the same black column
  • which had frowned on me so ominously from the hearthrug of Gateshead. I
  • now glanced sideways at this piece of architecture. Yes, I was right: it
  • was Mr. Brocklehurst, buttoned up in a surtout, and looking longer,
  • narrower, and more rigid than ever.
  • I had my own reasons for being dismayed at this apparition; too well I
  • remembered the perfidious hints given by Mrs. Reed about my disposition,
  • &c.; the promise pledged by Mr. Brocklehurst to apprise Miss Temple and
  • the teachers of my vicious nature. All along I had been dreading the
  • fulfilment of this promise,--I had been looking out daily for the "Coming
  • Man," whose information respecting my past life and conversation was to
  • brand me as a bad child for ever: now there he was.
  • He stood at Miss Temple's side; he was speaking low in her ear: I did not
  • doubt he was making disclosures of my villainy; and I watched her eye
  • with painful anxiety, expecting every moment to see its dark orb turn on
  • me a glance of repugnance and contempt. I listened too; and as I
  • happened to be seated quite at the top of the room, I caught most of what
  • he said: its import relieved me from immediate apprehension.
  • "I suppose, Miss Temple, the thread I bought at Lowton will do; it struck
  • me that it would be just of the quality for the calico chemises, and I
  • sorted the needles to match. You may tell Miss Smith that I forgot to
  • make a memorandum of the darning needles, but she shall have some papers
  • sent in next week; and she is not, on any account, to give out more than
  • one at a time to each pupil: if they have more, they are apt to be
  • careless and lose them. And, O ma'am! I wish the woollen stockings were
  • better looked to!--when I was here last, I went into the kitchen-garden
  • and examined the clothes drying on the line; there was a quantity of
  • black hose in a very bad state of repair: from the size of the holes in
  • them I was sure they had not been well mended from time to time."
  • He paused.
  • "Your directions shall be attended to, sir," said Miss Temple.
  • "And, ma'am," he continued, "the laundress tells me some of the girls
  • have two clean tuckers in the week: it is too much; the rules limit them
  • to one."
  • "I think I can explain that circumstance, sir. Agnes and Catherine
  • Johnstone were invited to take tea with some friends at Lowton last
  • Thursday, and I gave them leave to put on clean tuckers for the
  • occasion."
  • Mr. Brocklehurst nodded.
  • "Well, for once it may pass; but please not to let the circumstance occur
  • too often. And there is another thing which surprised me; I find, in
  • settling accounts with the housekeeper, that a lunch, consisting of bread
  • and cheese, has twice been served out to the girls during the past
  • fortnight. How is this? I looked over the regulations, and I find no
  • such meal as lunch mentioned. Who introduced this innovation? and by
  • what authority?"
  • "I must be responsible for the circumstance, sir," replied Miss Temple:
  • "the breakfast was so ill prepared that the pupils could not possibly eat
  • it; and I dared not allow them to remain fasting till dinner-time."
  • "Madam, allow me an instant. You are aware that my plan in bringing up
  • these girls is, not to accustom them to habits of luxury and indulgence,
  • but to render them hardy, patient, self-denying. Should any little
  • accidental disappointment of the appetite occur, such as the spoiling of
  • a meal, the under or the over dressing of a dish, the incident ought not
  • to be neutralised by replacing with something more delicate the comfort
  • lost, thus pampering the body and obviating the aim of this institution;
  • it ought to be improved to the spiritual edification of the pupils, by
  • encouraging them to evince fortitude under temporary privation. A brief
  • address on those occasions would not be mistimed, wherein a judicious
  • instructor would take the opportunity of referring to the sufferings of
  • the primitive Christians; to the torments of martyrs; to the exhortations
  • of our blessed Lord Himself, calling upon His disciples to take up their
  • cross and follow Him; to His warnings that man shall not live by bread
  • alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God; to His
  • divine consolations, "If ye suffer hunger or thirst for My sake, happy
  • are ye." Oh, madam, when you put bread and cheese, instead of burnt
  • porridge, into these children's mouths, you may indeed feed their vile
  • bodies, but you little think how you starve their immortal souls!"
  • Mr. Brocklehurst again paused--perhaps overcome by his feelings. Miss
  • Temple had looked down when he first began to speak to her; but she now
  • gazed straight before her, and her face, naturally pale as marble,
  • appeared to be assuming also the coldness and fixity of that material;
  • especially her mouth, closed as if it would have required a sculptor's
  • chisel to open it, and her brow settled gradually into petrified
  • severity.
  • Meantime, Mr. Brocklehurst, standing on the hearth with his hands behind
  • his back, majestically surveyed the whole school. Suddenly his eye gave
  • a blink, as if it had met something that either dazzled or shocked its
  • pupil; turning, he said in more rapid accents than he had hitherto used--
  • "Miss Temple, Miss Temple, what--_what_ is that girl with curled hair?
  • Red hair, ma'am, curled--curled all over?" And extending his cane he
  • pointed to the awful object, his hand shaking as he did so.
  • "It is Julia Severn," replied Miss Temple, very quietly.
  • "Julia Severn, ma'am! And why has she, or any other, curled hair? Why,
  • in defiance of every precept and principle of this house, does she
  • conform to the world so openly--here in an evangelical, charitable
  • establishment--as to wear her hair one mass of curls?"
  • "Julia's hair curls naturally," returned Miss Temple, still more quietly.
  • "Naturally! Yes, but we are not to conform to nature; I wish these girls
  • to be the children of Grace: and why that abundance? I have again and
  • again intimated that I desire the hair to be arranged closely, modestly,
  • plainly. Miss Temple, that girl's hair must be cut off entirely; I will
  • send a barber to-morrow: and I see others who have far too much of the
  • excrescence--that tall girl, tell her to turn round. Tell all the first
  • form to rise up and direct their faces to the wall."
  • Miss Temple passed her handkerchief over her lips, as if to smooth away
  • the involuntary smile that curled them; she gave the order, however, and
  • when the first class could take in what was required of them, they
  • obeyed. Leaning a little back on my bench, I could see the looks and
  • grimaces with which they commented on this manoeuvre: it was a pity Mr.
  • Brocklehurst could not see them too; he would perhaps have felt that,
  • whatever he might do with the outside of the cup and platter, the inside
  • was further beyond his interference than he imagined.
  • He scrutinised the reverse of these living medals some five minutes, then
  • pronounced sentence. These words fell like the knell of doom--
  • "All those top-knots must be cut off."
  • Miss Temple seemed to remonstrate.
  • "Madam," he pursued, "I have a Master to serve whose kingdom is not of
  • this world: my mission is to mortify in these girls the lusts of the
  • flesh; to teach them to clothe themselves with shame-facedness and
  • sobriety, not with braided hair and costly apparel; and each of the young
  • persons before us has a string of hair twisted in plaits which vanity
  • itself might have woven; these, I repeat, must be cut off; think of the
  • time wasted, of--"
  • Mr. Brocklehurst was here interrupted: three other visitors, ladies, now
  • entered the room. They ought to have come a little sooner to have heard
  • his lecture on dress, for they were splendidly attired in velvet, silk,
  • and furs. The two younger of the trio (fine girls of sixteen and
  • seventeen) had grey beaver hats, then in fashion, shaded with ostrich
  • plumes, and from under the brim of this graceful head-dress fell a
  • profusion of light tresses, elaborately curled; the elder lady was
  • enveloped in a costly velvet shawl, trimmed with ermine, and she wore a
  • false front of French curls.
  • These ladies were deferentially received by Miss Temple, as Mrs. and the
  • Misses Brocklehurst, and conducted to seats of honour at the top of the
  • room. It seems they had come in the carriage with their reverend
  • relative, and had been conducting a rummaging scrutiny of the room
  • upstairs, while he transacted business with the housekeeper, questioned
  • the laundress, and lectured the superintendent. They now proceeded to
  • address divers remarks and reproofs to Miss Smith, who was charged with
  • the care of the linen and the inspection of the dormitories: but I had no
  • time to listen to what they said; other matters called off and enchanted
  • my attention.
  • Hitherto, while gathering up the discourse of Mr. Brocklehurst and Miss
  • Temple, I had not, at the same time, neglected precautions to secure my
  • personal safety; which I thought would be effected, if I could only elude
  • observation. To this end, I had sat well back on the form, and while
  • seeming to be busy with my sum, had held my slate in such a manner as to
  • conceal my face: I might have escaped notice, had not my treacherous
  • slate somehow happened to slip from my hand, and falling with an
  • obtrusive crash, directly drawn every eye upon me; I knew it was all over
  • now, and, as I stooped to pick up the two fragments of slate, I rallied
  • my forces for the worst. It came.
  • "A careless girl!" said Mr. Brocklehurst, and immediately after--"It is
  • the new pupil, I perceive." And before I could draw breath, "I must not
  • forget I have a word to say respecting her." Then aloud: how loud it
  • seemed to me! "Let the child who broke her slate come forward!"
  • Of my own accord I could not have stirred; I was paralysed: but the two
  • great girls who sit on each side of me, set me on my legs and pushed me
  • towards the dread judge, and then Miss Temple gently assisted me to his
  • very feet, and I caught her whispered counsel--
  • "Don't be afraid, Jane, I saw it was an accident; you shall not be
  • punished."
  • The kind whisper went to my heart like a dagger.
  • "Another minute, and she will despise me for a hypocrite," thought I; and
  • an impulse of fury against Reed, Brocklehurst, and Co. bounded in my
  • pulses at the conviction. I was no Helen Burns.
  • "Fetch that stool," said Mr. Brocklehurst, pointing to a very high one
  • from which a monitor had just risen: it was brought.
  • "Place the child upon it."
  • And I was placed there, by whom I don't know: I was in no condition to
  • note particulars; I was only aware that they had hoisted me up to the
  • height of Mr. Brocklehurst's nose, that he was within a yard of me, and
  • that a spread of shot orange and purple silk pelisses and a cloud of
  • silvery plumage extended and waved below me.
  • Mr. Brocklehurst hemmed.
  • "Ladies," said he, turning to his family, "Miss Temple, teachers, and
  • children, you all see this girl?"
  • Of course they did; for I felt their eyes directed like burning-glasses
  • against my scorched skin.
  • "You see she is yet young; you observe she possesses the ordinary form of
  • childhood; God has graciously given her the shape that He has given to
  • all of us; no signal deformity points her out as a marked character. Who
  • would think that the Evil One had already found a servant and agent in
  • her? Yet such, I grieve to say, is the case."
  • A pause--in which I began to steady the palsy of my nerves, and to feel
  • that the Rubicon was passed; and that the trial, no longer to be shirked,
  • must be firmly sustained.
  • "My dear children," pursued the black marble clergyman, with pathos,
  • "this is a sad, a melancholy occasion; for it becomes my duty to warn
  • you, that this girl, who might be one of God's own lambs, is a little
  • castaway: not a member of the true flock, but evidently an interloper and
  • an alien. You must be on your guard against her; you must shun her
  • example; if necessary, avoid her company, exclude her from your sports,
  • and shut her out from your converse. Teachers, you must watch her: keep
  • your eyes on her movements, weigh well her words, scrutinise her actions,
  • punish her body to save her soul: if, indeed, such salvation be possible,
  • for (my tongue falters while I tell it) this girl, this child, the native
  • of a Christian land, worse than many a little heathen who says its
  • prayers to Brahma and kneels before Juggernaut--this girl is--a liar!"
  • Now came a pause of ten minutes, during which I, by this time in perfect
  • possession of my wits, observed all the female Brocklehursts produce
  • their pocket-handkerchiefs and apply them to their optics, while the
  • elderly lady swayed herself to and fro, and the two younger ones
  • whispered, "How shocking!" Mr. Brocklehurst resumed.
  • "This I learned from her benefactress; from the pious and charitable lady
  • who adopted her in her orphan state, reared her as her own daughter, and
  • whose kindness, whose generosity the unhappy girl repaid by an
  • ingratitude so bad, so dreadful, that at last her excellent patroness was
  • obliged to separate her from her own young ones, fearful lest her vicious
  • example should contaminate their purity: she has sent her here to be
  • healed, even as the Jews of old sent their diseased to the troubled pool
  • of Bethesda; and, teachers, superintendent, I beg of you not to allow the
  • waters to stagnate round her."
  • With this sublime conclusion, Mr. Brocklehurst adjusted the top button of
  • his surtout, muttered something to his family, who rose, bowed to Miss
  • Temple, and then all the great people sailed in state from the room.
  • Turning at the door, my judge said--
  • "Let her stand half-an-hour longer on that stool, and let no one speak to
  • her during the remainder of the day."
  • There was I, then, mounted aloft; I, who had said I could not bear the
  • shame of standing on my natural feet in the middle of the room, was now
  • exposed to general view on a pedestal of infamy. What my sensations were
  • no language can describe; but just as they all rose, stifling my breath
  • and constricting my throat, a girl came up and passed me: in passing, she
  • lifted her eyes. What a strange light inspired them! What an
  • extraordinary sensation that ray sent through me! How the new feeling
  • bore me up! It was as if a martyr, a hero, had passed a slave or victim,
  • and imparted strength in the transit. I mastered the rising hysteria,
  • lifted up my head, and took a firm stand on the stool. Helen Burns asked
  • some slight question about her work of Miss Smith, was chidden for the
  • triviality of the inquiry, returned to her place, and smiled at me as she
  • again went by. What a smile! I remember it now, and I know that it was
  • the effluence of fine intellect, of true courage; it lit up her marked
  • lineaments, her thin face, her sunken grey eye, like a reflection from
  • the aspect of an angel. Yet at that moment Helen Burns wore on her arm
  • "the untidy badge;" scarcely an hour ago I had heard her condemned by
  • Miss Scatcherd to a dinner of bread and water on the morrow because she
  • had blotted an exercise in copying it out. Such is the imperfect nature
  • of man! such spots are there on the disc of the clearest planet; and eyes
  • like Miss Scatcherd's can only see those minute defects, and are blind to
  • the full brightness of the orb.
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • Ere the half-hour ended, five o'clock struck; school was dismissed, and
  • all were gone into the refectory to tea. I now ventured to descend: it
  • was deep dusk; I retired into a corner and sat down on the floor. The
  • spell by which I had been so far supported began to dissolve; reaction
  • took place, and soon, so overwhelming was the grief that seized me, I
  • sank prostrate with my face to the ground. Now I wept: Helen Burns was
  • not here; nothing sustained me; left to myself I abandoned myself, and my
  • tears watered the boards. I had meant to be so good, and to do so much
  • at Lowood: to make so many friends, to earn respect and win affection.
  • Already I had made visible progress: that very morning I had reached the
  • head of my class; Miss Miller had praised me warmly; Miss Temple had
  • smiled approbation; she had promised to teach me drawing, and to let me
  • learn French, if I continued to make similar improvement two months
  • longer: and then I was well received by my fellow-pupils; treated as an
  • equal by those of my own age, and not molested by any; now, here I lay
  • again crushed and trodden on; and could I ever rise more?
  • "Never," I thought; and ardently I wished to die. While sobbing out this
  • wish in broken accents, some one approached: I started up--again Helen
  • Burns was near me; the fading fires just showed her coming up the long,
  • vacant room; she brought my coffee and bread.
  • "Come, eat something," she said; but I put both away from me, feeling as
  • if a drop or a crumb would have choked me in my present condition. Helen
  • regarded me, probably with surprise: I could not now abate my agitation,
  • though I tried hard; I continued to weep aloud. She sat down on the
  • ground near me, embraced her knees with her arms, and rested her head
  • upon them; in that attitude she remained silent as an Indian. I was the
  • first who spoke--
  • "Helen, why do you stay with a girl whom everybody believes to be a
  • liar?"
  • "Everybody, Jane? Why, there are only eighty people who have heard you
  • called so, and the world contains hundreds of millions."
  • "But what have I to do with millions? The eighty, I know, despise me."
  • "Jane, you are mistaken: probably not one in the school either despises
  • or dislikes you: many, I am sure, pity you much."
  • "How can they pity me after what Mr. Brocklehurst has said?"
  • "Mr. Brocklehurst is not a god: nor is he even a great and admired man:
  • he is little liked here; he never took steps to make himself liked. Had
  • he treated you as an especial favourite, you would have found enemies,
  • declared or covert, all around you; as it is, the greater number would
  • offer you sympathy if they dared. Teachers and pupils may look coldly on
  • you for a day or two, but friendly feelings are concealed in their
  • hearts; and if you persevere in doing well, these feelings will ere long
  • appear so much the more evidently for their temporary suppression.
  • Besides, Jane"--she paused.
  • "Well, Helen?" said I, putting my hand into hers: she chafed my fingers
  • gently to warm them, and went on--
  • "If all the world hated you, and believed you wicked, while your own
  • conscience approved you, and absolved you from guilt, you would not be
  • without friends."
  • "No; I know I should think well of myself; but that is not enough: if
  • others don't love me I would rather die than live--I cannot bear to be
  • solitary and hated, Helen. Look here; to gain some real affection from
  • you, or Miss Temple, or any other whom I truly love, I would willingly
  • submit to have the bone of my arm broken, or to let a bull toss me, or to
  • stand behind a kicking horse, and let it dash its hoof at my chest--"
  • "Hush, Jane! you think too much of the love of human beings; you are too
  • impulsive, too vehement; the sovereign hand that created your frame, and
  • put life into it, has provided you with other resources than your feeble
  • self, or than creatures feeble as you. Besides this earth, and besides
  • the race of men, there is an invisible world and a kingdom of spirits:
  • that world is round us, for it is everywhere; and those spirits watch us,
  • for they are commissioned to guard us; and if we were dying in pain and
  • shame, if scorn smote us on all sides, and hatred crushed us, angels see
  • our tortures, recognise our innocence (if innocent we be: as I know you
  • are of this charge which Mr. Brocklehurst has weakly and pompously
  • repeated at second-hand from Mrs. Reed; for I read a sincere nature in
  • your ardent eyes and on your clear front), and God waits only the
  • separation of spirit from flesh to crown us with a full reward. Why,
  • then, should we ever sink overwhelmed with distress, when life is so soon
  • over, and death is so certain an entrance to happiness--to glory?"
  • I was silent; Helen had calmed me; but in the tranquillity she imparted
  • there was an alloy of inexpressible sadness. I felt the impression of
  • woe as she spoke, but I could not tell whence it came; and when, having
  • done speaking, she breathed a little fast and coughed a short cough, I
  • momentarily forgot my own sorrows to yield to a vague concern for her.
  • Resting my head on Helen's shoulder, I put my arms round her waist; she
  • drew me to her, and we reposed in silence. We had not sat long thus,
  • when another person came in. Some heavy clouds, swept from the sky by a
  • rising wind, had left the moon bare; and her light, streaming in through
  • a window near, shone full both on us and on the approaching figure, which
  • we at once recognised as Miss Temple.
  • "I came on purpose to find you, Jane Eyre," said she; "I want you in my
  • room; and as Helen Burns is with you, she may come too."
  • We went; following the superintendent's guidance, we had to thread some
  • intricate passages, and mount a staircase before we reached her
  • apartment; it contained a good fire, and looked cheerful. Miss Temple
  • told Helen Burns to be seated in a low arm-chair on one side of the
  • hearth, and herself taking another, she called me to her side.
  • "Is it all over?" she asked, looking down at my face. "Have you cried
  • your grief away?"
  • "I am afraid I never shall do that."
  • "Why?"
  • "Because I have been wrongly accused; and you, ma'am, and everybody else,
  • will now think me wicked."
  • "We shall think you what you prove yourself to be, my child. Continue to
  • act as a good girl, and you will satisfy us."
  • "Shall I, Miss Temple?"
  • "You will," said she, passing her arm round me. "And now tell me who is
  • the lady whom Mr. Brocklehurst called your benefactress?"
  • "Mrs. Reed, my uncle's wife. My uncle is dead, and he left me to her
  • care."
  • "Did she not, then, adopt you of her own accord?"
  • "No, ma'am; she was sorry to have to do it: but my uncle, as I have often
  • heard the servants say, got her to promise before he died that she would
  • always keep me."
  • "Well now, Jane, you know, or at least I will tell you, that when a
  • criminal is accused, he is always allowed to speak in his own defence.
  • You have been charged with falsehood; defend yourself to me as well as
  • you can. Say whatever your memory suggests is true; but add nothing and
  • exaggerate nothing."
  • I resolved, in the depth of my heart, that I would be most moderate--most
  • correct; and, having reflected a few minutes in order to arrange
  • coherently what I had to say, I told her all the story of my sad
  • childhood. Exhausted by emotion, my language was more subdued than it
  • generally was when it developed that sad theme; and mindful of Helen's
  • warnings against the indulgence of resentment, I infused into the
  • narrative far less of gall and wormwood than ordinary. Thus restrained
  • and simplified, it sounded more credible: I felt as I went on that Miss
  • Temple fully believed me.
  • In the course of the tale I had mentioned Mr. Lloyd as having come to see
  • me after the fit: for I never forgot the, to me, frightful episode of the
  • red-room: in detailing which, my excitement was sure, in some degree, to
  • break bounds; for nothing could soften in my recollection the spasm of
  • agony which clutched my heart when Mrs. Reed spurned my wild supplication
  • for pardon, and locked me a second time in the dark and haunted chamber.
  • I had finished: Miss Temple regarded me a few minutes in silence; she
  • then said--
  • "I know something of Mr. Lloyd; I shall write to him; if his reply agrees
  • with your statement, you shall be publicly cleared from every imputation;
  • to me, Jane, you are clear now."
  • She kissed me, and still keeping me at her side (where I was well
  • contented to stand, for I derived a child's pleasure from the
  • contemplation of her face, her dress, her one or two ornaments, her white
  • forehead, her clustered and shining curls, and beaming dark eyes), she
  • proceeded to address Helen Burns.
  • "How are you to-night, Helen? Have you coughed much to-day?"
  • "Not quite so much, I think, ma'am."
  • "And the pain in your chest?"
  • "It is a little better."
  • Miss Temple got up, took her hand and examined her pulse; then she
  • returned to her own seat: as she resumed it, I heard her sigh low. She
  • was pensive a few minutes, then rousing herself, she said cheerfully--
  • "But you two are my visitors to-night; I must treat you as such." She
  • rang her bell.
  • "Barbara," she said to the servant who answered it, "I have not yet had
  • tea; bring the tray and place cups for these two young ladies."
  • And a tray was soon brought. How pretty, to my eyes, did the china cups
  • and bright teapot look, placed on the little round table near the fire!
  • How fragrant was the steam of the beverage, and the scent of the toast!
  • of which, however, I, to my dismay (for I was beginning to be hungry)
  • discerned only a very small portion: Miss Temple discerned it too.
  • "Barbara," said she, "can you not bring a little more bread and butter?
  • There is not enough for three."
  • Barbara went out: she returned soon--
  • "Madam, Mrs. Harden says she has sent up the usual quantity."
  • Mrs. Harden, be it observed, was the housekeeper: a woman after Mr.
  • Brocklehurst's own heart, made up of equal parts of whalebone and iron.
  • "Oh, very well!" returned Miss Temple; "we must make it do, Barbara, I
  • suppose." And as the girl withdrew she added, smiling, "Fortunately, I
  • have it in my power to supply deficiencies for this once."
  • Having invited Helen and me to approach the table, and placed before each
  • of us a cup of tea with one delicious but thin morsel of toast, she got
  • up, unlocked a drawer, and taking from it a parcel wrapped in paper,
  • disclosed presently to our eyes a good-sized seed-cake.
  • "I meant to give each of you some of this to take with you," said she,
  • "but as there is so little toast, you must have it now," and she
  • proceeded to cut slices with a generous hand.
  • We feasted that evening as on nectar and ambrosia; and not the least
  • delight of the entertainment was the smile of gratification with which
  • our hostess regarded us, as we satisfied our famished appetites on the
  • delicate fare she liberally supplied.
  • Tea over and the tray removed, she again summoned us to the fire; we sat
  • one on each side of her, and now a conversation followed between her and
  • Helen, which it was indeed a privilege to be admitted to hear.
  • Miss Temple had always something of serenity in her air, of state in her
  • mien, of refined propriety in her language, which precluded deviation
  • into the ardent, the excited, the eager: something which chastened the
  • pleasure of those who looked on her and listened to her, by a controlling
  • sense of awe; and such was my feeling now: but as to Helen Burns, I was
  • struck with wonder.
  • The refreshing meal, the brilliant fire, the presence and kindness of her
  • beloved instructress, or, perhaps, more than all these, something in her
  • own unique mind, had roused her powers within her. They woke, they
  • kindled: first, they glowed in the bright tint of her cheek, which till
  • this hour I had never seen but pale and bloodless; then they shone in the
  • liquid lustre of her eyes, which had suddenly acquired a beauty more
  • singular than that of Miss Temple's--a beauty neither of fine colour nor
  • long eyelash, nor pencilled brow, but of meaning, of movement, of
  • radiance. Then her soul sat on her lips, and language flowed, from what
  • source I cannot tell. Has a girl of fourteen a heart large enough,
  • vigorous enough, to hold the swelling spring of pure, full, fervid
  • eloquence? Such was the characteristic of Helen's discourse on that, to
  • me, memorable evening; her spirit seemed hastening to live within a very
  • brief span as much as many live during a protracted existence.
  • They conversed of things I had never heard of; of nations and times past;
  • of countries far away; of secrets of nature discovered or guessed at:
  • they spoke of books: how many they had read! What stores of knowledge
  • they possessed! Then they seemed so familiar with French names and
  • French authors: but my amazement reached its climax when Miss Temple
  • asked Helen if she sometimes snatched a moment to recall the Latin her
  • father had taught her, and taking a book from a shelf, bade her read and
  • construe a page of Virgil; and Helen obeyed, my organ of veneration
  • expanding at every sounding line. She had scarcely finished ere the bell
  • announced bedtime! no delay could be admitted; Miss Temple embraced us
  • both, saying, as she drew us to her heart--
  • "God bless you, my children!"
  • Helen she held a little longer than me: she let her go more reluctantly;
  • it was Helen her eye followed to the door; it was for her she a second
  • time breathed a sad sigh; for her she wiped a tear from her cheek.
  • On reaching the bedroom, we heard the voice of Miss Scatcherd: she was
  • examining drawers; she had just pulled out Helen Burns's, and when we
  • entered Helen was greeted with a sharp reprimand, and told that to-morrow
  • she should have half-a-dozen of untidily folded articles pinned to her
  • shoulder.
  • "My things were indeed in shameful disorder," murmured Helen to me, in a
  • low voice: "I intended to have arranged them, but I forgot."
  • Next morning, Miss Scatcherd wrote in conspicuous characters on a piece
  • of pasteboard the word "Slattern," and bound it like a phylactery round
  • Helen's large, mild, intelligent, and benign-looking forehead. She wore
  • it till evening, patient, unresentful, regarding it as a deserved
  • punishment. The moment Miss Scatcherd withdrew after afternoon school, I
  • ran to Helen, tore it off, and thrust it into the fire: the fury of which
  • she was incapable had been burning in my soul all day, and tears, hot and
  • large, had continually been scalding my cheek; for the spectacle of her
  • sad resignation gave me an intolerable pain at the heart.
  • About a week subsequently to the incidents above narrated, Miss Temple,
  • who had written to Mr. Lloyd, received his answer: it appeared that what
  • he said went to corroborate my account. Miss Temple, having assembled
  • the whole school, announced that inquiry had been made into the charges
  • alleged against Jane Eyre, and that she was most happy to be able to
  • pronounce her completely cleared from every imputation. The teachers
  • then shook hands with me and kissed me, and a murmur of pleasure ran
  • through the ranks of my companions.
  • Thus relieved of a grievous load, I from that hour set to work afresh,
  • resolved to pioneer my way through every difficulty: I toiled hard, and
  • my success was proportionate to my efforts; my memory, not naturally
  • tenacious, improved with practice; exercise sharpened my wits; in a few
  • weeks I was promoted to a higher class; in less than two months I was
  • allowed to commence French and drawing. I learned the first two tenses
  • of the verb _Etre_, and sketched my first cottage (whose walls, by-the-
  • bye, outrivalled in slope those of the leaning tower of Pisa), on the
  • same day. That night, on going to bed, I forgot to prepare in
  • imagination the Barmecide supper of hot roast potatoes, or white bread
  • and new milk, with which I was wont to amuse my inward cravings: I
  • feasted instead on the spectacle of ideal drawings, which I saw in the
  • dark; all the work of my own hands: freely pencilled houses and trees,
  • picturesque rocks and ruins, Cuyp-like groups of cattle, sweet paintings
  • of butterflies hovering over unblown roses, of birds picking at ripe
  • cherries, of wren's nests enclosing pearl-like eggs, wreathed about with
  • young ivy sprays. I examined, too, in thought, the possibility of my
  • ever being able to translate currently a certain little French story
  • which Madame Pierrot had that day shown me; nor was that problem solved
  • to my satisfaction ere I fell sweetly asleep.
  • Well has Solomon said--"Better is a dinner of herbs where love is, than a
  • stalled ox and hatred therewith."
  • I would not now have exchanged Lowood with all its privations for
  • Gateshead and its daily luxuries.
  • CHAPTER IX
  • But the privations, or rather the hardships, of Lowood lessened. Spring
  • drew on: she was indeed already come; the frosts of winter had ceased;
  • its snows were melted, its cutting winds ameliorated. My wretched feet,
  • flayed and swollen to lameness by the sharp air of January, began to heal
  • and subside under the gentler breathings of April; the nights and
  • mornings no longer by their Canadian temperature froze the very blood in
  • our veins; we could now endure the play-hour passed in the garden:
  • sometimes on a sunny day it began even to be pleasant and genial, and a
  • greenness grew over those brown beds, which, freshening daily, suggested
  • the thought that Hope traversed them at night, and left each morning
  • brighter traces of her steps. Flowers peeped out amongst the leaves;
  • snow-drops, crocuses, purple auriculas, and golden-eyed pansies. On
  • Thursday afternoons (half-holidays) we now took walks, and found still
  • sweeter flowers opening by the wayside, under the hedges.
  • I discovered, too, that a great pleasure, an enjoyment which the horizon
  • only bounded, lay all outside the high and spike-guarded walls of our
  • garden: this pleasure consisted in prospect of noble summits girdling a
  • great hill-hollow, rich in verdure and shadow; in a bright beck, full of
  • dark stones and sparkling eddies. How different had this scene looked
  • when I viewed it laid out beneath the iron sky of winter, stiffened in
  • frost, shrouded with snow!--when mists as chill as death wandered to the
  • impulse of east winds along those purple peaks, and rolled down "ing" and
  • holm till they blended with the frozen fog of the beck! That beck itself
  • was then a torrent, turbid and curbless: it tore asunder the wood, and
  • sent a raving sound through the air, often thickened with wild rain or
  • whirling sleet; and for the forest on its banks, _that_ showed only ranks
  • of skeletons.
  • April advanced to May: a bright serene May it was; days of blue sky,
  • placid sunshine, and soft western or southern gales filled up its
  • duration. And now vegetation matured with vigour; Lowood shook loose its
  • tresses; it became all green, all flowery; its great elm, ash, and oak
  • skeletons were restored to majestic life; woodland plants sprang up
  • profusely in its recesses; unnumbered varieties of moss filled its
  • hollows, and it made a strange ground-sunshine out of the wealth of its
  • wild primrose plants: I have seen their pale gold gleam in overshadowed
  • spots like scatterings of the sweetest lustre. All this I enjoyed often
  • and fully, free, unwatched, and almost alone: for this unwonted liberty
  • and pleasure there was a cause, to which it now becomes my task to
  • advert.
  • Have I not described a pleasant site for a dwelling, when I speak of it
  • as bosomed in hill and wood, and rising from the verge of a stream?
  • Assuredly, pleasant enough: but whether healthy or not is another
  • question.
  • That forest-dell, where Lowood lay, was the cradle of fog and fog-bred
  • pestilence; which, quickening with the quickening spring, crept into the
  • Orphan Asylum, breathed typhus through its crowded schoolroom and
  • dormitory, and, ere May arrived, transformed the seminary into an
  • hospital.
  • Semi-starvation and neglected colds had predisposed most of the pupils to
  • receive infection: forty-five out of the eighty girls lay ill at one
  • time. Classes were broken up, rules relaxed. The few who continued well
  • were allowed almost unlimited license; because the medical attendant
  • insisted on the necessity of frequent exercise to keep them in health:
  • and had it been otherwise, no one had leisure to watch or restrain them.
  • Miss Temple's whole attention was absorbed by the patients: she lived in
  • the sick-room, never quitting it except to snatch a few hours' rest at
  • night. The teachers were fully occupied with packing up and making other
  • necessary preparations for the departure of those girls who were
  • fortunate enough to have friends and relations able and willing to remove
  • them from the seat of contagion. Many, already smitten, went home only
  • to die: some died at the school, and were buried quietly and quickly, the
  • nature of the malady forbidding delay.
  • While disease had thus become an inhabitant of Lowood, and death its
  • frequent visitor; while there was gloom and fear within its walls; while
  • its rooms and passages steamed with hospital smells, the drug and the
  • pastille striving vainly to overcome the effluvia of mortality, that
  • bright May shone unclouded over the bold hills and beautiful woodland out
  • of doors. Its garden, too, glowed with flowers: hollyhocks had sprung up
  • tall as trees, lilies had opened, tulips and roses were in bloom; the
  • borders of the little beds were gay with pink thrift and crimson double
  • daisies; the sweetbriars gave out, morning and evening, their scent of
  • spice and apples; and these fragrant treasures were all useless for most
  • of the inmates of Lowood, except to furnish now and then a handful of
  • herbs and blossoms to put in a coffin.
  • But I, and the rest who continued well, enjoyed fully the beauties of the
  • scene and season; they let us ramble in the wood, like gipsies, from
  • morning till night; we did what we liked, went where we liked: we lived
  • better too. Mr. Brocklehurst and his family never came near Lowood now:
  • household matters were not scrutinised into; the cross housekeeper was
  • gone, driven away by the fear of infection; her successor, who had been
  • matron at the Lowton Dispensary, unused to the ways of her new abode,
  • provided with comparative liberality. Besides, there were fewer to feed;
  • the sick could eat little; our breakfast-basins were better filled; when
  • there was no time to prepare a regular dinner, which often happened, she
  • would give us a large piece of cold pie, or a thick slice of bread and
  • cheese, and this we carried away with us to the wood, where we each chose
  • the spot we liked best, and dined sumptuously.
  • My favourite seat was a smooth and broad stone, rising white and dry from
  • the very middle of the beck, and only to be got at by wading through the
  • water; a feat I accomplished barefoot. The stone was just broad enough
  • to accommodate, comfortably, another girl and me, at that time my chosen
  • comrade--one Mary Ann Wilson; a shrewd, observant personage, whose
  • society I took pleasure in, partly because she was witty and original,
  • and partly because she had a manner which set me at my ease. Some years
  • older than I, she knew more of the world, and could tell me many things I
  • liked to hear: with her my curiosity found gratification: to my faults
  • also she gave ample indulgence, never imposing curb or rein on anything I
  • said. She had a turn for narrative, I for analysis; she liked to inform,
  • I to question; so we got on swimmingly together, deriving much
  • entertainment, if not much improvement, from our mutual intercourse.
  • And where, meantime, was Helen Burns? Why did I not spend these sweet
  • days of liberty with her? Had I forgotten her? or was I so worthless as
  • to have grown tired of her pure society? Surely the Mary Ann Wilson I
  • have mentioned was inferior to my first acquaintance: she could only tell
  • me amusing stories, and reciprocate any racy and pungent gossip I chose
  • to indulge in; while, if I have spoken truth of Helen, she was qualified
  • to give those who enjoyed the privilege of her converse a taste of far
  • higher things.
  • True, reader; and I knew and felt this: and though I am a defective
  • being, with many faults and few redeeming points, yet I never tired of
  • Helen Burns; nor ever ceased to cherish for her a sentiment of
  • attachment, as strong, tender, and respectful as any that ever animated
  • my heart. How could it be otherwise, when Helen, at all times and under
  • all circumstances, evinced for me a quiet and faithful friendship, which
  • ill-humour never soured, nor irritation never troubled? But Helen was
  • ill at present: for some weeks she had been removed from my sight to I
  • knew not what room upstairs. She was not, I was told, in the hospital
  • portion of the house with the fever patients; for her complaint was
  • consumption, not typhus: and by consumption I, in my ignorance,
  • understood something mild, which time and care would be sure to
  • alleviate.
  • I was confirmed in this idea by the fact of her once or twice coming
  • downstairs on very warm sunny afternoons, and being taken by Miss Temple
  • into the garden; but, on these occasions, I was not allowed to go and
  • speak to her; I only saw her from the schoolroom window, and then not
  • distinctly; for she was much wrapped up, and sat at a distance under the
  • verandah.
  • One evening, in the beginning of June, I had stayed out very late with
  • Mary Ann in the wood; we had, as usual, separated ourselves from the
  • others, and had wandered far; so far that we lost our way, and had to ask
  • it at a lonely cottage, where a man and woman lived, who looked after a
  • herd of half-wild swine that fed on the mast in the wood. When we got
  • back, it was after moonrise: a pony, which we knew to be the surgeon's,
  • was standing at the garden door. Mary Ann remarked that she supposed
  • some one must be very ill, as Mr. Bates had been sent for at that time of
  • the evening. She went into the house; I stayed behind a few minutes to
  • plant in my garden a handful of roots I had dug up in the forest, and
  • which I feared would wither if I left them till the morning. This done,
  • I lingered yet a little longer: the flowers smelt so sweet as the dew
  • fell; it was such a pleasant evening, so serene, so warm; the still
  • glowing west promised so fairly another fine day on the morrow; the moon
  • rose with such majesty in the grave east. I was noting these things and
  • enjoying them as a child might, when it entered my mind as it had never
  • done before:--
  • "How sad to be lying now on a sick bed, and to be in danger of dying!
  • This world is pleasant--it would be dreary to be called from it, and to
  • have to go who knows where?"
  • And then my mind made its first earnest effort to comprehend what had
  • been infused into it concerning heaven and hell; and for the first time
  • it recoiled, baffled; and for the first time glancing behind, on each
  • side, and before it, it saw all round an unfathomed gulf: it felt the one
  • point where it stood--the present; all the rest was formless cloud and
  • vacant depth; and it shuddered at the thought of tottering, and plunging
  • amid that chaos. While pondering this new idea, I heard the front door
  • open; Mr. Bates came out, and with him was a nurse. After she had seen
  • him mount his horse and depart, she was about to close the door, but I
  • ran up to her.
  • "How is Helen Burns?"
  • "Very poorly," was the answer.
  • "Is it her Mr. Bates has been to see?"
  • "Yes."
  • "And what does he say about her?"
  • "He says she'll not be here long."
  • This phrase, uttered in my hearing yesterday, would have only conveyed
  • the notion that she was about to be removed to Northumberland, to her own
  • home. I should not have suspected that it meant she was dying; but I
  • knew instantly now! It opened clear on my comprehension that Helen Burns
  • was numbering her last days in this world, and that she was going to be
  • taken to the region of spirits, if such region there were. I experienced
  • a shock of horror, then a strong thrill of grief, then a desire--a
  • necessity to see her; and I asked in what room she lay.
  • "She is in Miss Temple's room," said the nurse.
  • "May I go up and speak to her?"
  • "Oh no, child! It is not likely; and now it is time for you to come in;
  • you'll catch the fever if you stop out when the dew is falling."
  • The nurse closed the front door; I went in by the side entrance which led
  • to the schoolroom: I was just in time; it was nine o'clock, and Miss
  • Miller was calling the pupils to go to bed.
  • It might be two hours later, probably near eleven, when I--not having
  • been able to fall asleep, and deeming, from the perfect silence of the
  • dormitory, that my companions were all wrapt in profound repose--rose
  • softly, put on my frock over my night-dress, and, without shoes, crept
  • from the apartment, and set off in quest of Miss Temple's room. It was
  • quite at the other end of the house; but I knew my way; and the light of
  • the unclouded summer moon, entering here and there at passage windows,
  • enabled me to find it without difficulty. An odour of camphor and burnt
  • vinegar warned me when I came near the fever room: and I passed its door
  • quickly, fearful lest the nurse who sat up all night should hear me. I
  • dreaded being discovered and sent back; for I _must_ see Helen,--I must
  • embrace her before she died,--I must give her one last kiss, exchange
  • with her one last word.
  • Having descended a staircase, traversed a portion of the house below, and
  • succeeded in opening and shutting, without noise, two doors, I reached
  • another flight of steps; these I mounted, and then just opposite to me
  • was Miss Temple's room. A light shone through the keyhole and from under
  • the door; a profound stillness pervaded the vicinity. Coming near, I
  • found the door slightly ajar; probably to admit some fresh air into the
  • close abode of sickness. Indisposed to hesitate, and full of impatient
  • impulses--soul and senses quivering with keen throes--I put it back and
  • looked in. My eye sought Helen, and feared to find death.
  • Close by Miss Temple's bed, and half covered with its white curtains,
  • there stood a little crib. I saw the outline of a form under the
  • clothes, but the face was hid by the hangings: the nurse I had spoken to
  • in the garden sat in an easy-chair asleep; an unsnuffed candle burnt
  • dimly on the table. Miss Temple was not to be seen: I knew afterwards
  • that she had been called to a delirious patient in the fever-room. I
  • advanced; then paused by the crib side: my hand was on the curtain, but I
  • preferred speaking before I withdrew it. I still recoiled at the dread
  • of seeing a corpse.
  • "Helen!" I whispered softly, "are you awake?"
  • She stirred herself, put back the curtain, and I saw her face, pale,
  • wasted, but quite composed: she looked so little changed that my fear was
  • instantly dissipated.
  • "Can it be you, Jane?" she asked, in her own gentle voice.
  • "Oh!" I thought, "she is not going to die; they are mistaken: she could
  • not speak and look so calmly if she were."
  • I got on to her crib and kissed her: her forehead was cold, and her cheek
  • both cold and thin, and so were her hand and wrist; but she smiled as of
  • old.
  • "Why are you come here, Jane? It is past eleven o'clock: I heard it
  • strike some minutes since."
  • "I came to see you, Helen: I heard you were very ill, and I could not
  • sleep till I had spoken to you."
  • "You came to bid me good-bye, then: you are just in time probably."
  • "Are you going somewhere, Helen? Are you going home?"
  • "Yes; to my long home--my last home."
  • "No, no, Helen!" I stopped, distressed. While I tried to devour my
  • tears, a fit of coughing seized Helen; it did not, however, wake the
  • nurse; when it was over, she lay some minutes exhausted; then she
  • whispered--
  • "Jane, your little feet are bare; lie down and cover yourself with my
  • quilt."
  • I did so: she put her arm over me, and I nestled close to her. After a
  • long silence, she resumed, still whispering--
  • "I am very happy, Jane; and when you hear that I am dead, you must be
  • sure and not grieve: there is nothing to grieve about. We all must die
  • one day, and the illness which is removing me is not painful; it is
  • gentle and gradual: my mind is at rest. I leave no one to regret me
  • much: I have only a father; and he is lately married, and will not miss
  • me. By dying young, I shall escape great sufferings. I had not
  • qualities or talents to make my way very well in the world: I should have
  • been continually at fault."
  • "But where are you going to, Helen? Can you see? Do you know?"
  • "I believe; I have faith: I am going to God."
  • "Where is God? What is God?"
  • "My Maker and yours, who will never destroy what He created. I rely
  • implicitly on His power, and confide wholly in His goodness: I count the
  • hours till that eventful one arrives which shall restore me to Him,
  • reveal Him to me."
  • "You are sure, then, Helen, that there is such a place as heaven, and
  • that our souls can get to it when we die?"
  • "I am sure there is a future state; I believe God is good; I can resign
  • my immortal part to Him without any misgiving. God is my father; God is
  • my friend: I love Him; I believe He loves me."
  • "And shall I see you again, Helen, when I die?"
  • "You will come to the same region of happiness: be received by the same
  • mighty, universal Parent, no doubt, dear Jane."
  • Again I questioned, but this time only in thought. "Where is that
  • region? Does it exist?" And I clasped my arms closer round Helen; she
  • seemed dearer to me than ever; I felt as if I could not let her go; I lay
  • with my face hidden on her neck. Presently she said, in the sweetest
  • tone--
  • "How comfortable I am! That last fit of coughing has tired me a little;
  • I feel as if I could sleep: but don't leave me, Jane; I like to have you
  • near me."
  • "I'll stay with you, _dear_ Helen: no one shall take me away."
  • "Are you warm, darling?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Good-night, Jane."
  • "Good-night, Helen."
  • She kissed me, and I her, and we both soon slumbered.
  • When I awoke it was day: an unusual movement roused me; I looked up; I
  • was in somebody's arms; the nurse held me; she was carrying me through
  • the passage back to the dormitory. I was not reprimanded for leaving my
  • bed; people had something else to think about; no explanation was
  • afforded then to my many questions; but a day or two afterwards I learned
  • that Miss Temple, on returning to her own room at dawn, had found me laid
  • in the little crib; my face against Helen Burns's shoulder, my arms round
  • her neck. I was asleep, and Helen was--dead.
  • Her grave is in Brocklebridge churchyard: for fifteen years after her
  • death it was only covered by a grassy mound; but now a grey marble tablet
  • marks the spot, inscribed with her name, and the word "Resurgam."
  • CHAPTER X
  • Hitherto I have recorded in detail the events of my insignificant
  • existence: to the first ten years of my life I have given almost as many
  • chapters. But this is not to be a regular autobiography. I am only
  • bound to invoke Memory where I know her responses will possess some
  • degree of interest; therefore I now pass a space of eight years almost in
  • silence: a few lines only are necessary to keep up the links of
  • connection.
  • When the typhus fever had fulfilled its mission of devastation at Lowood,
  • it gradually disappeared from thence; but not till its virulence and the
  • number of its victims had drawn public attention on the school. Inquiry
  • was made into the origin of the scourge, and by degrees various facts
  • came out which excited public indignation in a high degree. The
  • unhealthy nature of the site; the quantity and quality of the children's
  • food; the brackish, fetid water used in its preparation; the pupils'
  • wretched clothing and accommodations--all these things were discovered,
  • and the discovery produced a result mortifying to Mr. Brocklehurst, but
  • beneficial to the institution.
  • Several wealthy and benevolent individuals in the county subscribed
  • largely for the erection of a more convenient building in a better
  • situation; new regulations were made; improvements in diet and clothing
  • introduced; the funds of the school were intrusted to the management of a
  • committee. Mr. Brocklehurst, who, from his wealth and family
  • connections, could not be overlooked, still retained the post of
  • treasurer; but he was aided in the discharge of his duties by gentlemen
  • of rather more enlarged and sympathising minds: his office of inspector,
  • too, was shared by those who knew how to combine reason with strictness,
  • comfort with economy, compassion with uprightness. The school, thus
  • improved, became in time a truly useful and noble institution. I
  • remained an inmate of its walls, after its regeneration, for eight years:
  • six as pupil, and two as teacher; and in both capacities I bear my
  • testimony to its value and importance.
  • During these eight years my life was uniform: but not unhappy, because it
  • was not inactive. I had the means of an excellent education placed
  • within my reach; a fondness for some of my studies, and a desire to excel
  • in all, together with a great delight in pleasing my teachers, especially
  • such as I loved, urged me on: I availed myself fully of the advantages
  • offered me. In time I rose to be the first girl of the first class; then
  • I was invested with the office of teacher; which I discharged with zeal
  • for two years: but at the end of that time I altered.
  • Miss Temple, through all changes, had thus far continued superintendent
  • of the seminary: to her instruction I owed the best part of my
  • acquirements; her friendship and society had been my continual solace;
  • she had stood me in the stead of mother, governess, and, latterly,
  • companion. At this period she married, removed with her husband (a
  • clergyman, an excellent man, almost worthy of such a wife) to a distant
  • county, and consequently was lost to me.
  • From the day she left I was no longer the same: with her was gone every
  • settled feeling, every association that had made Lowood in some degree a
  • home to me. I had imbibed from her something of her nature and much of
  • her habits: more harmonious thoughts: what seemed better regulated
  • feelings had become the inmates of my mind. I had given in allegiance to
  • duty and order; I was quiet; I believed I was content: to the eyes of
  • others, usually even to my own, I appeared a disciplined and subdued
  • character.
  • But destiny, in the shape of the Rev. Mr. Nasmyth, came between me and
  • Miss Temple: I saw her in her travelling dress step into a post-chaise,
  • shortly after the marriage ceremony; I watched the chaise mount the hill
  • and disappear beyond its brow; and then retired to my own room, and there
  • spent in solitude the greatest part of the half-holiday granted in honour
  • of the occasion.
  • I walked about the chamber most of the time. I imagined myself only to
  • be regretting my loss, and thinking how to repair it; but when my
  • reflections were concluded, and I looked up and found that the afternoon
  • was gone, and evening far advanced, another discovery dawned on me,
  • namely, that in the interval I had undergone a transforming process; that
  • my mind had put off all it had borrowed of Miss Temple--or rather that
  • she had taken with her the serene atmosphere I had been breathing in her
  • vicinity--and that now I was left in my natural element, and beginning to
  • feel the stirring of old emotions. It did not seem as if a prop were
  • withdrawn, but rather as if a motive were gone: it was not the power to
  • be tranquil which had failed me, but the reason for tranquillity was no
  • more. My world had for some years been in Lowood: my experience had been
  • of its rules and systems; now I remembered that the real world was wide,
  • and that a varied field of hopes and fears, of sensations and
  • excitements, awaited those who had courage to go forth into its expanse,
  • to seek real knowledge of life amidst its perils.
  • I went to my window, opened it, and looked out. There were the two wings
  • of the building; there was the garden; there were the skirts of Lowood;
  • there was the hilly horizon. My eye passed all other objects to rest on
  • those most remote, the blue peaks; it was those I longed to surmount; all
  • within their boundary of rock and heath seemed prison-ground, exile
  • limits. I traced the white road winding round the base of one mountain,
  • and vanishing in a gorge between two; how I longed to follow it farther!
  • I recalled the time when I had travelled that very road in a coach; I
  • remembered descending that hill at twilight; an age seemed to have
  • elapsed since the day which brought me first to Lowood, and I had never
  • quitted it since. My vacations had all been spent at school: Mrs. Reed
  • had never sent for me to Gateshead; neither she nor any of her family had
  • ever been to visit me. I had had no communication by letter or message
  • with the outer world: school-rules, school-duties, school-habits and
  • notions, and voices, and faces, and phrases, and costumes, and
  • preferences, and antipathies--such was what I knew of existence. And now
  • I felt that it was not enough; I tired of the routine of eight years in
  • one afternoon. I desired liberty; for liberty I gasped; for liberty I
  • uttered a prayer; it seemed scattered on the wind then faintly blowing. I
  • abandoned it and framed a humbler supplication; for change, stimulus:
  • that petition, too, seemed swept off into vague space: "Then," I cried,
  • half desperate, "grant me at least a new servitude!"
  • Here a bell, ringing the hour of supper, called me downstairs.
  • I was not free to resume the interrupted chain of my reflections till
  • bedtime: even then a teacher who occupied the same room with me kept me
  • from the subject to which I longed to recur, by a prolonged effusion of
  • small talk. How I wished sleep would silence her. It seemed as if,
  • could I but go back to the idea which had last entered my mind as I stood
  • at the window, some inventive suggestion would rise for my relief.
  • Miss Gryce snored at last; she was a heavy Welshwoman, and till now her
  • habitual nasal strains had never been regarded by me in any other light
  • than as a nuisance; to-night I hailed the first deep notes with
  • satisfaction; I was debarrassed of interruption; my half-effaced thought
  • instantly revived.
  • "A new servitude! There is something in that," I soliloquised (mentally,
  • be it understood; I did not talk aloud), "I know there is, because it
  • does not sound too sweet; it is not like such words as Liberty,
  • Excitement, Enjoyment: delightful sounds truly; but no more than sounds
  • for me; and so hollow and fleeting that it is mere waste of time to
  • listen to them. But Servitude! That must be matter of fact. Any one
  • may serve: I have served here eight years; now all I want is to serve
  • elsewhere. Can I not get so much of my own will? Is not the thing
  • feasible? Yes--yes--the end is not so difficult; if I had only a brain
  • active enough to ferret out the means of attaining it."
  • I sat up in bed by way of arousing this said brain: it was a chilly
  • night; I covered my shoulders with a shawl, and then I proceeded _to
  • think_ again with all my might.
  • "What do I want? A new place, in a new house, amongst new faces, under
  • new circumstances: I want this because it is of no use wanting anything
  • better. How do people do to get a new place? They apply to friends, I
  • suppose: I have no friends. There are many others who have no friends,
  • who must look about for themselves and be their own helpers; and what is
  • their resource?"
  • I could not tell: nothing answered me; I then ordered my brain to find a
  • response, and quickly. It worked and worked faster: I felt the pulses
  • throb in my head and temples; but for nearly an hour it worked in chaos;
  • and no result came of its efforts. Feverish with vain labour, I got up
  • and took a turn in the room; undrew the curtain, noted a star or two,
  • shivered with cold, and again crept to bed.
  • A kind fairy, in my absence, had surely dropped the required suggestion
  • on my pillow; for as I lay down, it came quietly and naturally to my
  • mind.--"Those who want situations advertise; you must advertise in the
  • _---shire Herald_."
  • "How? I know nothing about advertising."
  • Replies rose smooth and prompt now:--
  • "You must enclose the advertisement and the money to pay for it under a
  • cover directed to the editor of the _Herald_; you must put it, the first
  • opportunity you have, into the post at Lowton; answers must be addressed
  • to J.E., at the post-office there; you can go and inquire in about a week
  • after you send your letter, if any are come, and act accordingly."
  • This scheme I went over twice, thrice; it was then digested in my mind; I
  • had it in a clear practical form: I felt satisfied, and fell asleep.
  • With earliest day, I was up: I had my advertisement written, enclosed,
  • and directed before the bell rang to rouse the school; it ran thus:--
  • "A young lady accustomed to tuition" (had I not been a teacher two
  • years?) "is desirous of meeting with a situation in a private family
  • where the children are under fourteen" (I thought that as I was barely
  • eighteen, it would not do to undertake the guidance of pupils nearer my
  • own age). "She is qualified to teach the usual branches of a good English
  • education, together with French, Drawing, and Music" (in those days,
  • reader, this now narrow catalogue of accomplishments, would have been
  • held tolerably comprehensive). "Address, J.E., Post-office, Lowton, ---
  • shire."
  • This document remained locked in my drawer all day: after tea, I asked
  • leave of the new superintendent to go to Lowton, in order to perform some
  • small commissions for myself and one or two of my fellow-teachers;
  • permission was readily granted; I went. It was a walk of two miles, and
  • the evening was wet, but the days were still long; I visited a shop or
  • two, slipped the letter into the post-office, and came back through heavy
  • rain, with streaming garments, but with a relieved heart.
  • The succeeding week seemed long: it came to an end at last, however, like
  • all sublunary things, and once more, towards the close of a pleasant
  • autumn day, I found myself afoot on the road to Lowton. A picturesque
  • track it was, by the way; lying along the side of the beck and through
  • the sweetest curves of the dale: but that day I thought more of the
  • letters, that might or might not be awaiting me at the little burgh
  • whither I was bound, than of the charms of lea and water.
  • My ostensible errand on this occasion was to get measured for a pair of
  • shoes; so I discharged that business first, and when it was done, I
  • stepped across the clean and quiet little street from the shoemaker's to
  • the post-office: it was kept by an old dame, who wore horn spectacles on
  • her nose, and black mittens on her hands.
  • "Are there any letters for J.E.?" I asked.
  • She peered at me over her spectacles, and then she opened a drawer and
  • fumbled among its contents for a long time, so long that my hopes began
  • to falter. At last, having held a document before her glasses for nearly
  • five minutes, she presented it across the counter, accompanying the act
  • by another inquisitive and mistrustful glance--it was for J.E.
  • "Is there only one?" I demanded.
  • "There are no more," said she; and I put it in my pocket and turned my
  • face homeward: I could not open it then; rules obliged me to be back by
  • eight, and it was already half-past seven.
  • Various duties awaited me on my arrival. I had to sit with the girls
  • during their hour of study; then it was my turn to read prayers; to see
  • them to bed: afterwards I supped with the other teachers. Even when we
  • finally retired for the night, the inevitable Miss Gryce was still my
  • companion: we had only a short end of candle in our candlestick, and I
  • dreaded lest she should talk till it was all burnt out; fortunately,
  • however, the heavy supper she had eaten produced a soporific effect: she
  • was already snoring before I had finished undressing. There still
  • remained an inch of candle: I now took out my letter; the seal was an
  • initial F.; I broke it; the contents were brief.
  • "If J.E., who advertised in the _---shire Herald_ of last Thursday,
  • possesses the acquirements mentioned, and if she is in a position to give
  • satisfactory references as to character and competency, a situation can
  • be offered her where there is but one pupil, a little girl, under ten
  • years of age; and where the salary is thirty pounds per annum. J.E. is
  • requested to send references, name, address, and all particulars to the
  • direction:--
  • "Mrs. Fairfax, Thornfield, near Millcote, ---shire."
  • I examined the document long: the writing was old-fashioned and rather
  • uncertain, like that of an elderly lady. This circumstance was
  • satisfactory: a private fear had haunted me, that in thus acting for
  • myself, and by my own guidance, I ran the risk of getting into some
  • scrape; and, above all things, I wished the result of my endeavours to be
  • respectable, proper, _en regle_. I now felt that an elderly lady was no
  • bad ingredient in the business I had on hand. Mrs. Fairfax! I saw her
  • in a black gown and widow's cap; frigid, perhaps, but not uncivil: a
  • model of elderly English respectability. Thornfield! that, doubtless,
  • was the name of her house: a neat orderly spot, I was sure; though I
  • failed in my efforts to conceive a correct plan of the premises.
  • Millcote, ---shire; I brushed up my recollections of the map of England,
  • yes, I saw it; both the shire and the town. ---shire was seventy miles
  • nearer London than the remote county where I now resided: that was a
  • recommendation to me. I longed to go where there was life and movement:
  • Millcote was a large manufacturing town on the banks of the A-; a busy
  • place enough, doubtless: so much the better; it would be a complete
  • change at least. Not that my fancy was much captivated by the idea of
  • long chimneys and clouds of smoke--"but," I argued, "Thornfield will,
  • probably, be a good way from the town."
  • Here the socket of the candle dropped, and the wick went out.
  • Next day new steps were to be taken; my plans could no longer be confined
  • to my own breast; I must impart them in order to achieve their success.
  • Having sought and obtained an audience of the superintendent during the
  • noontide recreation, I told her I had a prospect of getting a new
  • situation where the salary would be double what I now received (for at
  • Lowood I only got 15 pounds per annum); and requested she would break the
  • matter for me to Mr. Brocklehurst, or some of the committee, and
  • ascertain whether they would permit me to mention them as references. She
  • obligingly consented to act as mediatrix in the matter. The next day she
  • laid the affair before Mr. Brocklehurst, who said that Mrs. Reed must be
  • written to, as she was my natural guardian. A note was accordingly
  • addressed to that lady, who returned for answer, that "I might do as I
  • pleased: she had long relinquished all interference in my affairs." This
  • note went the round of the committee, and at last, after what appeared to
  • me most tedious delay, formal leave was given me to better my condition
  • if I could; and an assurance added, that as I had always conducted myself
  • well, both as teacher and pupil, at Lowood, a testimonial of character
  • and capacity, signed by the inspectors of that institution, should
  • forthwith be furnished me.
  • This testimonial I accordingly received in about a month, forwarded a
  • copy of it to Mrs. Fairfax, and got that lady's reply, stating that she
  • was satisfied, and fixing that day fortnight as the period for my
  • assuming the post of governess in her house.
  • I now busied myself in preparations: the fortnight passed rapidly. I had
  • not a very large wardrobe, though it was adequate to my wants; and the
  • last day sufficed to pack my trunk,--the same I had brought with me eight
  • years ago from Gateshead.
  • The box was corded, the card nailed on. In half-an-hour the carrier was
  • to call for it to take it to Lowton, whither I myself was to repair at an
  • early hour the next morning to meet the coach. I had brushed my black
  • stuff travelling-dress, prepared my bonnet, gloves, and muff; sought in
  • all my drawers to see that no article was left behind; and now having
  • nothing more to do, I sat down and tried to rest. I could not; though I
  • had been on foot all day, I could not now repose an instant; I was too
  • much excited. A phase of my life was closing to-night, a new one opening
  • to-morrow: impossible to slumber in the interval; I must watch feverishly
  • while the change was being accomplished.
  • "Miss," said a servant who met me in the lobby, where I was wandering
  • like a troubled spirit, "a person below wishes to see you."
  • "The carrier, no doubt," I thought, and ran downstairs without inquiry. I
  • was passing the back-parlour or teachers' sitting-room, the door of which
  • was half open, to go to the kitchen, when some one ran out--
  • "It's her, I am sure!--I could have told her anywhere!" cried the
  • individual who stopped my progress and took my hand.
  • I looked: I saw a woman attired like a well-dressed servant, matronly,
  • yet still young; very good-looking, with black hair and eyes, and lively
  • complexion.
  • "Well, who is it?" she asked, in a voice and with a smile I half
  • recognised; "you've not quite forgotten me, I think, Miss Jane?"
  • In another second I was embracing and kissing her rapturously: "Bessie!
  • Bessie! Bessie!" that was all I said; whereat she half laughed, half
  • cried, and we both went into the parlour. By the fire stood a little
  • fellow of three years old, in plaid frock and trousers.
  • "That is my little boy," said Bessie directly.
  • "Then you are married, Bessie?"
  • "Yes; nearly five years since to Robert Leaven, the coachman; and I've a
  • little girl besides Bobby there, that I've christened Jane."
  • "And you don't live at Gateshead?"
  • "I live at the lodge: the old porter has left."
  • "Well, and how do they all get on? Tell me everything about them,
  • Bessie: but sit down first; and, Bobby, come and sit on my knee, will
  • you?" but Bobby preferred sidling over to his mother.
  • "You're not grown so very tall, Miss Jane, nor so very stout," continued
  • Mrs. Leaven. "I dare say they've not kept you too well at school: Miss
  • Reed is the head and shoulders taller than you are; and Miss Georgiana
  • would make two of you in breadth."
  • "Georgiana is handsome, I suppose, Bessie?"
  • "Very. She went up to London last winter with her mama, and there
  • everybody admired her, and a young lord fell in love with her: but his
  • relations were against the match; and--what do you think?--he and Miss
  • Georgiana made it up to run away; but they were found out and stopped. It
  • was Miss Reed that found them out: I believe she was envious; and now she
  • and her sister lead a cat and dog life together; they are always
  • quarrelling--"
  • "Well, and what of John Reed?"
  • "Oh, he is not doing so well as his mama could wish. He went to college,
  • and he got--plucked, I think they call it: and then his uncles wanted him
  • to be a barrister, and study the law: but he is such a dissipated young
  • man, they will never make much of him, I think."
  • "What does he look like?"
  • "He is very tall: some people call him a fine-looking young man; but he
  • has such thick lips."
  • "And Mrs. Reed?"
  • "Missis looks stout and well enough in the face, but I think she's not
  • quite easy in her mind: Mr. John's conduct does not please her--he spends
  • a deal of money."
  • "Did she send you here, Bessie?"
  • "No, indeed: but I have long wanted to see you, and when I heard that
  • there had been a letter from you, and that you were going to another part
  • of the country, I thought I'd just set off, and get a look at you before
  • you were quite out of my reach."
  • "I am afraid you are disappointed in me, Bessie." I said this laughing:
  • I perceived that Bessie's glance, though it expressed regard, did in no
  • shape denote admiration.
  • "No, Miss Jane, not exactly: you are genteel enough; you look like a
  • lady, and it is as much as ever I expected of you: you were no beauty as
  • a child."
  • I smiled at Bessie's frank answer: I felt that it was correct, but I
  • confess I was not quite indifferent to its import: at eighteen most
  • people wish to please, and the conviction that they have not an exterior
  • likely to second that desire brings anything but gratification.
  • "I dare say you are clever, though," continued Bessie, by way of solace.
  • "What can you do? Can you play on the piano?"
  • "A little."
  • There was one in the room; Bessie went and opened it, and then asked me
  • to sit down and give her a tune: I played a waltz or two, and she was
  • charmed.
  • "The Miss Reeds could not play as well!" said she exultingly. "I always
  • said you would surpass them in learning: and can you draw?"
  • "That is one of my paintings over the chimney-piece." It was a landscape
  • in water colours, of which I had made a present to the superintendent, in
  • acknowledgment of her obliging mediation with the committee on my behalf,
  • and which she had framed and glazed.
  • "Well, that is beautiful, Miss Jane! It is as fine a picture as any Miss
  • Reed's drawing-master could paint, let alone the young ladies themselves,
  • who could not come near it: and have you learnt French?"
  • "Yes, Bessie, I can both read it and speak it."
  • "And you can work on muslin and canvas?"
  • "I can."
  • "Oh, you are quite a lady, Miss Jane! I knew you would be: you will get
  • on whether your relations notice you or not. There was something I
  • wanted to ask you. Have you ever heard anything from your father's
  • kinsfolk, the Eyres?"
  • "Never in my life."
  • "Well, you know Missis always said they were poor and quite despicable:
  • and they may be poor; but I believe they are as much gentry as the Reeds
  • are; for one day, nearly seven years ago, a Mr. Eyre came to Gateshead
  • and wanted to see you; Missis said you were at school fifty miles off; he
  • seemed so much disappointed, for he could not stay: he was going on a
  • voyage to a foreign country, and the ship was to sail from London in a
  • day or two. He looked quite a gentleman, and I believe he was your
  • father's brother."
  • "What foreign country was he going to, Bessie?"
  • "An island thousands of miles off, where they make wine--the butler did
  • tell me--"
  • "Madeira?" I suggested.
  • "Yes, that is it--that is the very word."
  • "So he went?"
  • "Yes; he did not stay many minutes in the house: Missis was very high
  • with him; she called him afterwards a 'sneaking tradesman.' My Robert
  • believes he was a wine-merchant."
  • "Very likely," I returned; "or perhaps clerk or agent to a
  • wine-merchant."
  • Bessie and I conversed about old times an hour longer, and then she was
  • obliged to leave me: I saw her again for a few minutes the next morning
  • at Lowton, while I was waiting for the coach. We parted finally at the
  • door of the Brocklehurst Arms there: each went her separate way; she set
  • off for the brow of Lowood Fell to meet the conveyance which was to take
  • her back to Gateshead, I mounted the vehicle which was to bear me to new
  • duties and a new life in the unknown environs of Millcote.
  • CHAPTER XI
  • A new chapter in a novel is something like a new scene in a play; and
  • when I draw up the curtain this time, reader, you must fancy you see a
  • room in the George Inn at Millcote, with such large figured papering on
  • the walls as inn rooms have; such a carpet, such furniture, such
  • ornaments on the mantelpiece, such prints, including a portrait of George
  • the Third, and another of the Prince of Wales, and a representation of
  • the death of Wolfe. All this is visible to you by the light of an oil
  • lamp hanging from the ceiling, and by that of an excellent fire, near
  • which I sit in my cloak and bonnet; my muff and umbrella lie on the
  • table, and I am warming away the numbness and chill contracted by sixteen
  • hours' exposure to the rawness of an October day: I left Lowton at four
  • o'clock a.m., and the Millcote town clock is now just striking eight.
  • Reader, though I look comfortably accommodated, I am not very tranquil in
  • my mind. I thought when the coach stopped here there would be some one
  • to meet me; I looked anxiously round as I descended the wooden steps the
  • "boots" placed for my convenience, expecting to hear my name pronounced,
  • and to see some description of carriage waiting to convey me to
  • Thornfield. Nothing of the sort was visible; and when I asked a waiter
  • if any one had been to inquire after a Miss Eyre, I was answered in the
  • negative: so I had no resource but to request to be shown into a private
  • room: and here I am waiting, while all sorts of doubts and fears are
  • troubling my thoughts.
  • It is a very strange sensation to inexperienced youth to feel itself
  • quite alone in the world, cut adrift from every connection, uncertain
  • whether the port to which it is bound can be reached, and prevented by
  • many impediments from returning to that it has quitted. The charm of
  • adventure sweetens that sensation, the glow of pride warms it; but then
  • the throb of fear disturbs it; and fear with me became predominant when
  • half-an-hour elapsed and still I was alone. I bethought myself to ring
  • the bell.
  • "Is there a place in this neighbourhood called Thornfield?" I asked of
  • the waiter who answered the summons.
  • "Thornfield? I don't know, ma'am; I'll inquire at the bar." He
  • vanished, but reappeared instantly--
  • "Is your name Eyre, Miss?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Person here waiting for you."
  • I jumped up, took my muff and umbrella, and hastened into the
  • inn-passage: a man was standing by the open door, and in the lamp-lit
  • street I dimly saw a one-horse conveyance.
  • "This will be your luggage, I suppose?" said the man rather abruptly when
  • he saw me, pointing to my trunk in the passage.
  • "Yes." He hoisted it on to the vehicle, which was a sort of car, and
  • then I got in; before he shut me up, I asked him how far it was to
  • Thornfield.
  • "A matter of six miles."
  • "How long shall we be before we get there?"
  • "Happen an hour and a half."
  • He fastened the car door, climbed to his own seat outside, and we set
  • off. Our progress was leisurely, and gave me ample time to reflect; I
  • was content to be at length so near the end of my journey; and as I
  • leaned back in the comfortable though not elegant conveyance, I meditated
  • much at my ease.
  • "I suppose," thought I, "judging from the plainness of the servant and
  • carriage, Mrs. Fairfax is not a very dashing person: so much the better;
  • I never lived amongst fine people but once, and I was very miserable with
  • them. I wonder if she lives alone except this little girl; if so, and if
  • she is in any degree amiable, I shall surely be able to get on with her;
  • I will do my best; it is a pity that doing one's best does not always
  • answer. At Lowood, indeed, I took that resolution, kept it, and
  • succeeded in pleasing; but with Mrs. Reed, I remember my best was always
  • spurned with scorn. I pray God Mrs. Fairfax may not turn out a second
  • Mrs. Reed; but if she does, I am not bound to stay with her! let the
  • worst come to the worst, I can advertise again. How far are we on our
  • road now, I wonder?"
  • I let down the window and looked out; Millcote was behind us; judging by
  • the number of its lights, it seemed a place of considerable magnitude,
  • much larger than Lowton. We were now, as far as I could see, on a sort
  • of common; but there were houses scattered all over the district; I felt
  • we were in a different region to Lowood, more populous, less picturesque;
  • more stirring, less romantic.
  • The roads were heavy, the night misty; my conductor let his horse walk
  • all the way, and the hour and a half extended, I verily believe, to two
  • hours; at last he turned in his seat and said--
  • "You're noan so far fro' Thornfield now."
  • Again I looked out: we were passing a church; I saw its low broad tower
  • against the sky, and its bell was tolling a quarter; I saw a narrow
  • galaxy of lights too, on a hillside, marking a village or hamlet. About
  • ten minutes after, the driver got down and opened a pair of gates: we
  • passed through, and they clashed to behind us. We now slowly ascended a
  • drive, and came upon the long front of a house: candlelight gleamed from
  • one curtained bow-window; all the rest were dark. The car stopped at the
  • front door; it was opened by a maid-servant; I alighted and went in.
  • "Will you walk this way, ma'am?" said the girl; and I followed her across
  • a square hall with high doors all round: she ushered me into a room whose
  • double illumination of fire and candle at first dazzled me, contrasting
  • as it did with the darkness to which my eyes had been for two hours
  • inured; when I could see, however, a cosy and agreeable picture presented
  • itself to my view.
  • A snug small room; a round table by a cheerful fire; an arm-chair high-
  • backed and old-fashioned, wherein sat the neatest imaginable little
  • elderly lady, in widow's cap, black silk gown, and snowy muslin apron;
  • exactly like what I had fancied Mrs. Fairfax, only less stately and
  • milder looking. She was occupied in knitting; a large cat sat demurely
  • at her feet; nothing in short was wanting to complete the beau-ideal of
  • domestic comfort. A more reassuring introduction for a new governess
  • could scarcely be conceived; there was no grandeur to overwhelm, no
  • stateliness to embarrass; and then, as I entered, the old lady got up and
  • promptly and kindly came forward to meet me.
  • "How do you do, my dear? I am afraid you have had a tedious ride; John
  • drives so slowly; you must be cold, come to the fire."
  • "Mrs. Fairfax, I suppose?" said I.
  • "Yes, you are right: do sit down."
  • She conducted me to her own chair, and then began to remove my shawl and
  • untie my bonnet-strings; I begged she would not give herself so much
  • trouble.
  • "Oh, it is no trouble; I dare say your own hands are almost numbed with
  • cold. Leah, make a little hot negus and cut a sandwich or two: here are
  • the keys of the storeroom."
  • And she produced from her pocket a most housewifely bunch of keys, and
  • delivered them to the servant.
  • "Now, then, draw nearer to the fire," she continued. "You've brought
  • your luggage with you, haven't you, my dear?"
  • "Yes, ma'am."
  • "I'll see it carried into your room," she said, and bustled out.
  • "She treats me like a visitor," thought I. "I little expected such a
  • reception; I anticipated only coldness and stiffness: this is not like
  • what I have heard of the treatment of governesses; but I must not exult
  • too soon."
  • She returned; with her own hands cleared her knitting apparatus and a
  • book or two from the table, to make room for the tray which Leah now
  • brought, and then herself handed me the refreshments. I felt rather
  • confused at being the object of more attention than I had ever before
  • received, and, that too, shown by my employer and superior; but as she
  • did not herself seem to consider she was doing anything out of her place,
  • I thought it better to take her civilities quietly.
  • "Shall I have the pleasure of seeing Miss Fairfax to-night?" I asked,
  • when I had partaken of what she offered me.
  • "What did you say, my dear? I am a little deaf," returned the good lady,
  • approaching her ear to my mouth.
  • I repeated the question more distinctly.
  • "Miss Fairfax? Oh, you mean Miss Varens! Varens is the name of your
  • future pupil."
  • "Indeed! Then she is not your daughter?"
  • "No,--I have no family."
  • I should have followed up my first inquiry, by asking in what way Miss
  • Varens was connected with her; but I recollected it was not polite to ask
  • too many questions: besides, I was sure to hear in time.
  • "I am so glad," she continued, as she sat down opposite to me, and took
  • the cat on her knee; "I am so glad you are come; it will be quite
  • pleasant living here now with a companion. To be sure it is pleasant at
  • any time; for Thornfield is a fine old hall, rather neglected of late
  • years perhaps, but still it is a respectable place; yet you know in
  • winter-time one feels dreary quite alone in the best quarters. I say
  • alone--Leah is a nice girl to be sure, and John and his wife are very
  • decent people; but then you see they are only servants, and one can't
  • converse with them on terms of equality: one must keep them at due
  • distance, for fear of losing one's authority. I'm sure last winter (it
  • was a very severe one, if you recollect, and when it did not snow, it
  • rained and blew), not a creature but the butcher and postman came to the
  • house, from November till February; and I really got quite melancholy
  • with sitting night after night alone; I had Leah in to read to me
  • sometimes; but I don't think the poor girl liked the task much: she felt
  • it confining. In spring and summer one got on better: sunshine and long
  • days make such a difference; and then, just at the commencement of this
  • autumn, little Adela Varens came and her nurse: a child makes a house
  • alive all at once; and now you are here I shall be quite gay."
  • My heart really warmed to the worthy lady as I heard her talk; and I drew
  • my chair a little nearer to her, and expressed my sincere wish that she
  • might find my company as agreeable as she anticipated.
  • "But I'll not keep you sitting up late to-night," said she; "it is on the
  • stroke of twelve now, and you have been travelling all day: you must feel
  • tired. If you have got your feet well warmed, I'll show you your
  • bedroom. I've had the room next to mine prepared for you; it is only a
  • small apartment, but I thought you would like it better than one of the
  • large front chambers: to be sure they have finer furniture, but they are
  • so dreary and solitary, I never sleep in them myself."
  • I thanked her for her considerate choice, and as I really felt fatigued
  • with my long journey, expressed my readiness to retire. She took her
  • candle, and I followed her from the room. First she went to see if the
  • hall-door was fastened; having taken the key from the lock, she led the
  • way upstairs. The steps and banisters were of oak; the staircase window
  • was high and latticed; both it and the long gallery into which the
  • bedroom doors opened looked as if they belonged to a church rather than a
  • house. A very chill and vault-like air pervaded the stairs and gallery,
  • suggesting cheerless ideas of space and solitude; and I was glad, when
  • finally ushered into my chamber, to find it of small dimensions, and
  • furnished in ordinary, modern style.
  • When Mrs. Fairfax had bidden me a kind good-night, and I had fastened my
  • door, gazed leisurely round, and in some measure effaced the eerie
  • impression made by that wide hall, that dark and spacious staircase, and
  • that long, cold gallery, by the livelier aspect of my little room, I
  • remembered that, after a day of bodily fatigue and mental anxiety, I was
  • now at last in safe haven. The impulse of gratitude swelled my heart,
  • and I knelt down at the bedside, and offered up thanks where thanks were
  • due; not forgetting, ere I rose, to implore aid on my further path, and
  • the power of meriting the kindness which seemed so frankly offered me
  • before it was earned. My couch had no thorns in it that night; my
  • solitary room no fears. At once weary and content, I slept soon and
  • soundly: when I awoke it was broad day.
  • The chamber looked such a bright little place to me as the sun shone in
  • between the gay blue chintz window curtains, showing papered walls and a
  • carpeted floor, so unlike the bare planks and stained plaster of Lowood,
  • that my spirits rose at the view. Externals have a great effect on the
  • young: I thought that a fairer era of life was beginning for me, one that
  • was to have its flowers and pleasures, as well as its thorns and toils.
  • My faculties, roused by the change of scene, the new field offered to
  • hope, seemed all astir. I cannot precisely define what they expected,
  • but it was something pleasant: not perhaps that day or that month, but at
  • an indefinite future period.
  • I rose; I dressed myself with care: obliged to be plain--for I had no
  • article of attire that was not made with extreme simplicity--I was still
  • by nature solicitous to be neat. It was not my habit to be disregardful
  • of appearance or careless of the impression I made: on the contrary, I
  • ever wished to look as well as I could, and to please as much as my want
  • of beauty would permit. I sometimes regretted that I was not handsomer;
  • I sometimes wished to have rosy cheeks, a straight nose, and small cherry
  • mouth; I desired to be tall, stately, and finely developed in figure; I
  • felt it a misfortune that I was so little, so pale, and had features so
  • irregular and so marked. And why had I these aspirations and these
  • regrets? It would be difficult to say: I could not then distinctly say
  • it to myself; yet I had a reason, and a logical, natural reason too.
  • However, when I had brushed my hair very smooth, and put on my black
  • frock--which, Quakerlike as it was, at least had the merit of fitting to
  • a nicety--and adjusted my clean white tucker, I thought I should do
  • respectably enough to appear before Mrs. Fairfax, and that my new pupil
  • would not at least recoil from me with antipathy. Having opened my
  • chamber window, and seen that I left all things straight and neat on the
  • toilet table, I ventured forth.
  • Traversing the long and matted gallery, I descended the slippery steps of
  • oak; then I gained the hall: I halted there a minute; I looked at some
  • pictures on the walls (one, I remember, represented a grim man in a
  • cuirass, and one a lady with powdered hair and a pearl necklace), at a
  • bronze lamp pendent from the ceiling, at a great clock whose case was of
  • oak curiously carved, and ebon black with time and rubbing. Everything
  • appeared very stately and imposing to me; but then I was so little
  • accustomed to grandeur. The hall-door, which was half of glass, stood
  • open; I stepped over the threshold. It was a fine autumn morning; the
  • early sun shone serenely on embrowned groves and still green fields;
  • advancing on to the lawn, I looked up and surveyed the front of the
  • mansion. It was three storeys high, of proportions not vast, though
  • considerable: a gentleman's manor-house, not a nobleman's seat:
  • battlements round the top gave it a picturesque look. Its grey front
  • stood out well from the background of a rookery, whose cawing tenants
  • were now on the wing: they flew over the lawn and grounds to alight in a
  • great meadow, from which these were separated by a sunk fence, and where
  • an array of mighty old thorn trees, strong, knotty, and broad as oaks, at
  • once explained the etymology of the mansion's designation. Farther off
  • were hills: not so lofty as those round Lowood, nor so craggy, nor so
  • like barriers of separation from the living world; but yet quiet and
  • lonely hills enough, and seeming to embrace Thornfield with a seclusion I
  • had not expected to find existent so near the stirring locality of
  • Millcote. A little hamlet, whose roofs were blent with trees, straggled
  • up the side of one of these hills; the church of the district stood
  • nearer Thornfield: its old tower-top looked over a knoll between the
  • house and gates.
  • I was yet enjoying the calm prospect and pleasant fresh air, yet
  • listening with delight to the cawing of the rooks, yet surveying the
  • wide, hoary front of the hall, and thinking what a great place it was for
  • one lonely little dame like Mrs. Fairfax to inhabit, when that lady
  • appeared at the door.
  • "What! out already?" said she. "I see you are an early riser." I went
  • up to her, and was received with an affable kiss and shake of the hand.
  • "How do you like Thornfield?" she asked. I told her I liked it very
  • much.
  • "Yes," she said, "it is a pretty place; but I fear it will be getting out
  • of order, unless Mr. Rochester should take it into his head to come and
  • reside here permanently; or, at least, visit it rather oftener: great
  • houses and fine grounds require the presence of the proprietor."
  • "Mr. Rochester!" I exclaimed. "Who is he?"
  • "The owner of Thornfield," she responded quietly. "Did you not know he
  • was called Rochester?"
  • Of course I did not--I had never heard of him before; but the old lady
  • seemed to regard his existence as a universally understood fact, with
  • which everybody must be acquainted by instinct.
  • "I thought," I continued, "Thornfield belonged to you."
  • "To me? Bless you, child; what an idea! To me! I am only the
  • housekeeper--the manager. To be sure I am distantly related to the
  • Rochesters by the mother's side, or at least my husband was; he was a
  • clergyman, incumbent of Hay--that little village yonder on the hill--and
  • that church near the gates was his. The present Mr. Rochester's mother
  • was a Fairfax, and second cousin to my husband: but I never presume on
  • the connection--in fact, it is nothing to me; I consider myself quite in
  • the light of an ordinary housekeeper: my employer is always civil, and I
  • expect nothing more."
  • "And the little girl--my pupil!"
  • "She is Mr. Rochester's ward; he commissioned me to find a governess for
  • her. He intended to have her brought up in ---shire, I believe. Here
  • she comes, with her 'bonne,' as she calls her nurse." The enigma then
  • was explained: this affable and kind little widow was no great dame; but
  • a dependant like myself. I did not like her the worse for that; on the
  • contrary, I felt better pleased than ever. The equality between her and
  • me was real; not the mere result of condescension on her part: so much
  • the better--my position was all the freer.
  • As I was meditating on this discovery, a little girl, followed by her
  • attendant, came running up the lawn. I looked at my pupil, who did not
  • at first appear to notice me: she was quite a child, perhaps seven or
  • eight years old, slightly built, with a pale, small-featured face, and a
  • redundancy of hair falling in curls to her waist.
  • "Good morning, Miss Adela," said Mrs. Fairfax. "Come and speak to the
  • lady who is to teach you, and to make you a clever woman some day." She
  • approached.
  • "C'est la ma gouverante!" said she, pointing to me, and addressing her
  • nurse; who answered--
  • "Mais oui, certainement."
  • "Are they foreigners?" I inquired, amazed at hearing the French language.
  • "The nurse is a foreigner, and Adela was born on the Continent; and, I
  • believe, never left it till within six months ago. When she first came
  • here she could speak no English; now she can make shift to talk it a
  • little: I don't understand her, she mixes it so with French; but you will
  • make out her meaning very well, I dare say."
  • Fortunately I had had the advantage of being taught French by a French
  • lady; and as I had always made a point of conversing with Madame Pierrot
  • as often as I could, and had besides, during the last seven years, learnt
  • a portion of French by heart daily--applying myself to take pains with my
  • accent, and imitating as closely as possible the pronunciation of my
  • teacher, I had acquired a certain degree of readiness and correctness in
  • the language, and was not likely to be much at a loss with Mademoiselle
  • Adela. She came and shook hand with me when she heard that I was her
  • governess; and as I led her in to breakfast, I addressed some phrases to
  • her in her own tongue: she replied briefly at first, but after we were
  • seated at the table, and she had examined me some ten minutes with her
  • large hazel eyes, she suddenly commenced chattering fluently.
  • "Ah!" cried she, in French, "you speak my language as well as Mr.
  • Rochester does: I can talk to you as I can to him, and so can Sophie. She
  • will be glad: nobody here understands her: Madame Fairfax is all English.
  • Sophie is my nurse; she came with me over the sea in a great ship with a
  • chimney that smoked--how it did smoke!--and I was sick, and so was
  • Sophie, and so was Mr. Rochester. Mr. Rochester lay down on a sofa in a
  • pretty room called the salon, and Sophie and I had little beds in another
  • place. I nearly fell out of mine; it was like a shelf. And
  • Mademoiselle--what is your name?"
  • "Eyre--Jane Eyre."
  • "Aire? Bah! I cannot say it. Well, our ship stopped in the morning,
  • before it was quite daylight, at a great city--a huge city, with very
  • dark houses and all smoky; not at all like the pretty clean town I came
  • from; and Mr. Rochester carried me in his arms over a plank to the land,
  • and Sophie came after, and we all got into a coach, which took us to a
  • beautiful large house, larger than this and finer, called an hotel. We
  • stayed there nearly a week: I and Sophie used to walk every day in a
  • great green place full of trees, called the Park; and there were many
  • children there besides me, and a pond with beautiful birds in it, that I
  • fed with crumbs."
  • "Can you understand her when she runs on so fast?" asked Mrs. Fairfax.
  • I understood her very well, for I had been accustomed to the fluent
  • tongue of Madame Pierrot.
  • "I wish," continued the good lady, "you would ask her a question or two
  • about her parents: I wonder if she remembers them?"
  • "Adele," I inquired, "with whom did you live when you were in that pretty
  • clean town you spoke of?"
  • "I lived long ago with mama; but she is gone to the Holy Virgin. Mama
  • used to teach me to dance and sing, and to say verses. A great many
  • gentlemen and ladies came to see mama, and I used to dance before them,
  • or to sit on their knees and sing to them: I liked it. Shall I let you
  • hear me sing now?"
  • She had finished her breakfast, so I permitted her to give a specimen of
  • her accomplishments. Descending from her chair, she came and placed
  • herself on my knee; then, folding her little hands demurely before her,
  • shaking back her curls and lifting her eyes to the ceiling, she commenced
  • singing a song from some opera. It was the strain of a forsaken lady,
  • who, after bewailing the perfidy of her lover, calls pride to her aid;
  • desires her attendant to deck her in her brightest jewels and richest
  • robes, and resolves to meet the false one that night at a ball, and prove
  • to him, by the gaiety of her demeanour, how little his desertion has
  • affected her.
  • The subject seemed strangely chosen for an infant singer; but I suppose
  • the point of the exhibition lay in hearing the notes of love and jealousy
  • warbled with the lisp of childhood; and in very bad taste that point was:
  • at least I thought so.
  • Adele sang the canzonette tunefully enough, and with the _naivete_ of her
  • age. This achieved, she jumped from my knee and said, "Now,
  • Mademoiselle, I will repeat you some poetry."
  • Assuming an attitude, she began, "La Ligue des Rats: fable de La
  • Fontaine." She then declaimed the little piece with an attention to
  • punctuation and emphasis, a flexibility of voice and an appropriateness
  • of gesture, very unusual indeed at her age, and which proved she had been
  • carefully trained.
  • "Was it your mama who taught you that piece?" I asked.
  • "Yes, and she just used to say it in this way: 'Qu' avez vous donc? lui
  • dit un de ces rats; parlez!' She made me lift my hand--so--to remind me
  • to raise my voice at the question. Now shall I dance for you?"
  • "No, that will do: but after your mama went to the Holy Virgin, as you
  • say, with whom did you live then?"
  • "With Madame Frederic and her husband: she took care of me, but she is
  • nothing related to me. I think she is poor, for she had not so fine a
  • house as mama. I was not long there. Mr. Rochester asked me if I would
  • like to go and live with him in England, and I said yes; for I knew Mr.
  • Rochester before I knew Madame Frederic, and he was always kind to me and
  • gave me pretty dresses and toys: but you see he has not kept his word,
  • for he has brought me to England, and now he is gone back again himself,
  • and I never see him."
  • After breakfast, Adele and I withdrew to the library, which room, it
  • appears, Mr. Rochester had directed should be used as the schoolroom.
  • Most of the books were locked up behind glass doors; but there was one
  • bookcase left open containing everything that could be needed in the way
  • of elementary works, and several volumes of light literature, poetry,
  • biography, travels, a few romances, &c. I suppose he had considered that
  • these were all the governess would require for her private perusal; and,
  • indeed, they contented me amply for the present; compared with the scanty
  • pickings I had now and then been able to glean at Lowood, they seemed to
  • offer an abundant harvest of entertainment and information. In this
  • room, too, there was a cabinet piano, quite new and of superior tone;
  • also an easel for painting and a pair of globes.
  • I found my pupil sufficiently docile, though disinclined to apply: she
  • had not been used to regular occupation of any kind. I felt it would be
  • injudicious to confine her too much at first; so, when I had talked to
  • her a great deal, and got her to learn a little, and when the morning had
  • advanced to noon, I allowed her to return to her nurse. I then proposed
  • to occupy myself till dinner-time in drawing some little sketches for her
  • use.
  • As I was going upstairs to fetch my portfolio and pencils, Mrs. Fairfax
  • called to me: "Your morning school-hours are over now, I suppose," said
  • she. She was in a room the folding-doors of which stood open: I went in
  • when she addressed me. It was a large, stately apartment, with purple
  • chairs and curtains, a Turkey carpet, walnut-panelled walls, one vast
  • window rich in slanted glass, and a lofty ceiling, nobly moulded. Mrs.
  • Fairfax was dusting some vases of fine purple spar, which stood on a
  • sideboard.
  • "What a beautiful room!" I exclaimed, as I looked round; for I had never
  • before seen any half so imposing.
  • "Yes; this is the dining-room. I have just opened the window, to let in
  • a little air and sunshine; for everything gets so damp in apartments that
  • are seldom inhabited; the drawing-room yonder feels like a vault."
  • She pointed to a wide arch corresponding to the window, and hung like it
  • with a Tyrian-dyed curtain, now looped up. Mounting to it by two broad
  • steps, and looking through, I thought I caught a glimpse of a fairy
  • place, so bright to my novice-eyes appeared the view beyond. Yet it was
  • merely a very pretty drawing-room, and within it a boudoir, both spread
  • with white carpets, on which seemed laid brilliant garlands of flowers;
  • both ceiled with snowy mouldings of white grapes and vine-leaves, beneath
  • which glowed in rich contrast crimson couches and ottomans; while the
  • ornaments on the pale Parian mantelpiece were of sparkling Bohemian
  • glass, ruby red; and between the windows large mirrors repeated the
  • general blending of snow and fire.
  • "In what order you keep these rooms, Mrs. Fairfax!" said I. "No dust, no
  • canvas coverings: except that the air feels chilly, one would think they
  • were inhabited daily."
  • "Why, Miss Eyre, though Mr. Rochester's visits here are rare, they are
  • always sudden and unexpected; and as I observed that it put him out to
  • find everything swathed up, and to have a bustle of arrangement on his
  • arrival, I thought it best to keep the rooms in readiness."
  • "Is Mr. Rochester an exacting, fastidious sort of man?"
  • "Not particularly so; but he has a gentleman's tastes and habits, and he
  • expects to have things managed in conformity to them."
  • "Do you like him? Is he generally liked?"
  • "Oh, yes; the family have always been respected here. Almost all the
  • land in this neighbourhood, as far as you can see, has belonged to the
  • Rochesters time out of mind."
  • "Well, but, leaving his land out of the question, do you like him? Is he
  • liked for himself?"
  • "I have no cause to do otherwise than like him; and I believe he is
  • considered a just and liberal landlord by his tenants: but he has never
  • lived much amongst them."
  • "But has he no peculiarities? What, in short, is his character?"
  • "Oh! his character is unimpeachable, I suppose. He is rather peculiar,
  • perhaps: he has travelled a great deal, and seen a great deal of the
  • world, I should think. I dare say he is clever, but I never had much
  • conversation with him."
  • "In what way is he peculiar?"
  • "I don't know--it is not easy to describe--nothing striking, but you feel
  • it when he speaks to you; you cannot be always sure whether he is in jest
  • or earnest, whether he is pleased or the contrary; you don't thoroughly
  • understand him, in short--at least, I don't: but it is of no consequence,
  • he is a very good master."
  • This was all the account I got from Mrs. Fairfax of her employer and
  • mine. There are people who seem to have no notion of sketching a
  • character, or observing and describing salient points, either in persons
  • or things: the good lady evidently belonged to this class; my queries
  • puzzled, but did not draw her out. Mr. Rochester was Mr. Rochester in
  • her eyes; a gentleman, a landed proprietor--nothing more: she inquired
  • and searched no further, and evidently wondered at my wish to gain a more
  • definite notion of his identity.
  • When we left the dining-room, she proposed to show me over the rest of
  • the house; and I followed her upstairs and downstairs, admiring as I
  • went; for all was well arranged and handsome. The large front chambers I
  • thought especially grand: and some of the third-storey rooms, though dark
  • and low, were interesting from their air of antiquity. The furniture
  • once appropriated to the lower apartments had from time to time been
  • removed here, as fashions changed: and the imperfect light entering by
  • their narrow casement showed bedsteads of a hundred years old; chests in
  • oak or walnut, looking, with their strange carvings of palm branches and
  • cherubs' heads, like types of the Hebrew ark; rows of venerable chairs,
  • high-backed and narrow; stools still more antiquated, on whose cushioned
  • tops were yet apparent traces of half-effaced embroideries, wrought by
  • fingers that for two generations had been coffin-dust. All these relics
  • gave to the third storey of Thornfield Hall the aspect of a home of the
  • past: a shrine of memory. I liked the hush, the gloom, the quaintness of
  • these retreats in the day; but I by no means coveted a night's repose on
  • one of those wide and heavy beds: shut in, some of them, with doors of
  • oak; shaded, others, with wrought old English hangings crusted with thick
  • work, portraying effigies of strange flowers, and stranger birds, and
  • strangest human beings,--all which would have looked strange, indeed, by
  • the pallid gleam of moonlight.
  • "Do the servants sleep in these rooms?" I asked.
  • "No; they occupy a range of smaller apartments to the back; no one ever
  • sleeps here: one would almost say that, if there were a ghost at
  • Thornfield Hall, this would be its haunt."
  • "So I think: you have no ghost, then?"
  • "None that I ever heard of," returned Mrs. Fairfax, smiling.
  • "Nor any traditions of one? no legends or ghost stories?"
  • "I believe not. And yet it is said the Rochesters have been rather a
  • violent than a quiet race in their time: perhaps, though, that is the
  • reason they rest tranquilly in their graves now."
  • "Yes--'after life's fitful fever they sleep well,'" I muttered. "Where
  • are you going now, Mrs. Fairfax?" for she was moving away.
  • "On to the leads; will you come and see the view from thence?" I
  • followed still, up a very narrow staircase to the attics, and thence by a
  • ladder and through a trap-door to the roof of the hall. I was now on a
  • level with the crow colony, and could see into their nests. Leaning over
  • the battlements and looking far down, I surveyed the grounds laid out
  • like a map: the bright and velvet lawn closely girdling the grey base of
  • the mansion; the field, wide as a park, dotted with its ancient timber;
  • the wood, dun and sere, divided by a path visibly overgrown, greener with
  • moss than the trees were with foliage; the church at the gates, the road,
  • the tranquil hills, all reposing in the autumn day's sun; the horizon
  • bounded by a propitious sky, azure, marbled with pearly white. No
  • feature in the scene was extraordinary, but all was pleasing. When I
  • turned from it and repassed the trap-door, I could scarcely see my way
  • down the ladder; the attic seemed black as a vault compared with that
  • arch of blue air to which I had been looking up, and to that sunlit scene
  • of grove, pasture, and green hill, of which the hall was the centre, and
  • over which I had been gazing with delight.
  • Mrs. Fairfax stayed behind a moment to fasten the trap-door; I, by drift
  • of groping, found the outlet from the attic, and proceeded to descend the
  • narrow garret staircase. I lingered in the long passage to which this
  • led, separating the front and back rooms of the third storey: narrow,
  • low, and dim, with only one little window at the far end, and looking,
  • with its two rows of small black doors all shut, like a corridor in some
  • Bluebeard's castle.
  • While I paced softly on, the last sound I expected to hear in so still a
  • region, a laugh, struck my ear. It was a curious laugh; distinct,
  • formal, mirthless. I stopped: the sound ceased, only for an instant; it
  • began again, louder: for at first, though distinct, it was very low. It
  • passed off in a clamorous peal that seemed to wake an echo in every
  • lonely chamber; though it originated but in one, and I could have pointed
  • out the door whence the accents issued.
  • "Mrs. Fairfax!" I called out: for I now heard her descending the great
  • stairs. "Did you hear that loud laugh? Who is it?"
  • "Some of the servants, very likely," she answered: "perhaps Grace Poole."
  • "Did you hear it?" I again inquired.
  • "Yes, plainly: I often hear her: she sews in one of these rooms.
  • Sometimes Leah is with her; they are frequently noisy together."
  • The laugh was repeated in its low, syllabic tone, and terminated in an
  • odd murmur.
  • "Grace!" exclaimed Mrs. Fairfax.
  • I really did not expect any Grace to answer; for the laugh was as tragic,
  • as preternatural a laugh as any I ever heard; and, but that it was high
  • noon, and that no circumstance of ghostliness accompanied the curious
  • cachinnation; but that neither scene nor season favoured fear, I should
  • have been superstitiously afraid. However, the event showed me I was a
  • fool for entertaining a sense even of surprise.
  • The door nearest me opened, and a servant came out,--a woman of between
  • thirty and forty; a set, square-made figure, red-haired, and with a hard,
  • plain face: any apparition less romantic or less ghostly could scarcely
  • be conceived.
  • "Too much noise, Grace," said Mrs. Fairfax. "Remember directions!" Grace
  • curtseyed silently and went in.
  • "She is a person we have to sew and assist Leah in her housemaid's work,"
  • continued the widow; "not altogether unobjectionable in some points, but
  • she does well enough. By-the-bye, how have you got on with your new
  • pupil this morning?"
  • The conversation, thus turned on Adele, continued till we reached the
  • light and cheerful region below. Adele came running to meet us in the
  • hall, exclaiming--
  • "Mesdames, vous etes servies!" adding, "J'ai bien faim, moi!"
  • We found dinner ready, and waiting for us in Mrs. Fairfax's room.
  • CHAPTER XII
  • The promise of a smooth career, which my first calm introduction to
  • Thornfield Hall seemed to pledge, was not belied on a longer acquaintance
  • with the place and its inmates. Mrs. Fairfax turned out to be what she
  • appeared, a placid-tempered, kind-natured woman, of competent education
  • and average intelligence. My pupil was a lively child, who had been
  • spoilt and indulged, and therefore was sometimes wayward; but as she was
  • committed entirely to my care, and no injudicious interference from any
  • quarter ever thwarted my plans for her improvement, she soon forgot her
  • little freaks, and became obedient and teachable. She had no great
  • talents, no marked traits of character, no peculiar development of
  • feeling or taste which raised her one inch above the ordinary level of
  • childhood; but neither had she any deficiency or vice which sunk her
  • below it. She made reasonable progress, entertained for me a vivacious,
  • though perhaps not very profound, affection; and by her simplicity, gay
  • prattle, and efforts to please, inspired me, in return, with a degree of
  • attachment sufficient to make us both content in each other's society.
  • This, _par parenthese_, will be thought cool language by persons who
  • entertain solemn doctrines about the angelic nature of children, and the
  • duty of those charged with their education to conceive for them an
  • idolatrous devotion: but I am not writing to flatter parental egotism, to
  • echo cant, or prop up humbug; I am merely telling the truth. I felt a
  • conscientious solicitude for Adele's welfare and progress, and a quiet
  • liking for her little self: just as I cherished towards Mrs. Fairfax a
  • thankfulness for her kindness, and a pleasure in her society
  • proportionate to the tranquil regard she had for me, and the moderation
  • of her mind and character.
  • Anybody may blame me who likes, when I add further, that, now and then,
  • when I took a walk by myself in the grounds; when I went down to the
  • gates and looked through them along the road; or when, while Adele played
  • with her nurse, and Mrs. Fairfax made jellies in the storeroom, I climbed
  • the three staircases, raised the trap-door of the attic, and having
  • reached the leads, looked out afar over sequestered field and hill, and
  • along dim sky-line--that then I longed for a power of vision which might
  • overpass that limit; which might reach the busy world, towns, regions
  • full of life I had heard of but never seen--that then I desired more of
  • practical experience than I possessed; more of intercourse with my kind,
  • of acquaintance with variety of character, than was here within my reach.
  • I valued what was good in Mrs. Fairfax, and what was good in Adele; but I
  • believed in the existence of other and more vivid kinds of goodness, and
  • what I believed in I wished to behold.
  • Who blames me? Many, no doubt; and I shall be called discontented. I
  • could not help it: the restlessness was in my nature; it agitated me to
  • pain sometimes. Then my sole relief was to walk along the corridor of
  • the third storey, backwards and forwards, safe in the silence and
  • solitude of the spot, and allow my mind's eye to dwell on whatever bright
  • visions rose before it--and, certainly, they were many and glowing; to
  • let my heart be heaved by the exultant movement, which, while it swelled
  • it in trouble, expanded it with life; and, best of all, to open my inward
  • ear to a tale that was never ended--a tale my imagination created, and
  • narrated continuously; quickened with all of incident, life, fire,
  • feeling, that I desired and had not in my actual existence.
  • It is in vain to say human beings ought to be satisfied with
  • tranquillity: they must have action; and they will make it if they cannot
  • find it. Millions are condemned to a stiller doom than mine, and
  • millions are in silent revolt against their lot. Nobody knows how many
  • rebellions besides political rebellions ferment in the masses of life
  • which people earth. Women are supposed to be very calm generally: but
  • women feel just as men feel; they need exercise for their faculties, and
  • a field for their efforts, as much as their brothers do; they suffer from
  • too rigid a restraint, too absolute a stagnation, precisely as men would
  • suffer; and it is narrow-minded in their more privileged fellow-creatures
  • to say that they ought to confine themselves to making puddings and
  • knitting stockings, to playing on the piano and embroidering bags. It is
  • thoughtless to condemn them, or laugh at them, if they seek to do more or
  • learn more than custom has pronounced necessary for their sex.
  • When thus alone, I not unfrequently heard Grace Poole's laugh: the same
  • peal, the same low, slow ha! ha! which, when first heard, had thrilled
  • me: I heard, too, her eccentric murmurs; stranger than her laugh. There
  • were days when she was quite silent; but there were others when I could
  • not account for the sounds she made. Sometimes I saw her: she would come
  • out of her room with a basin, or a plate, or a tray in her hand, go down
  • to the kitchen and shortly return, generally (oh, romantic reader,
  • forgive me for telling the plain truth!) bearing a pot of porter. Her
  • appearance always acted as a damper to the curiosity raised by her oral
  • oddities: hard-featured and staid, she had no point to which interest
  • could attach. I made some attempts to draw her into conversation, but
  • she seemed a person of few words: a monosyllabic reply usually cut short
  • every effort of that sort.
  • The other members of the household, viz., John and his wife, Leah the
  • housemaid, and Sophie the French nurse, were decent people; but in no
  • respect remarkable; with Sophie I used to talk French, and sometimes I
  • asked her questions about her native country; but she was not of a
  • descriptive or narrative turn, and generally gave such vapid and confused
  • answers as were calculated rather to check than encourage inquiry.
  • October, November, December passed away. One afternoon in January, Mrs.
  • Fairfax had begged a holiday for Adele, because she had a cold; and, as
  • Adele seconded the request with an ardour that reminded me how precious
  • occasional holidays had been to me in my own childhood, I accorded it,
  • deeming that I did well in showing pliability on the point. It was a
  • fine, calm day, though very cold; I was tired of sitting still in the
  • library through a whole long morning: Mrs. Fairfax had just written a
  • letter which was waiting to be posted, so I put on my bonnet and cloak
  • and volunteered to carry it to Hay; the distance, two miles, would be a
  • pleasant winter afternoon walk. Having seen Adele comfortably seated in
  • her little chair by Mrs. Fairfax's parlour fireside, and given her her
  • best wax doll (which I usually kept enveloped in silver paper in a
  • drawer) to play with, and a story-book for change of amusement; and
  • having replied to her "Revenez bientot, ma bonne amie, ma chere Mdlle.
  • Jeannette," with a kiss I set out.
  • The ground was hard, the air was still, my road was lonely; I walked fast
  • till I got warm, and then I walked slowly to enjoy and analyse the
  • species of pleasure brooding for me in the hour and situation. It was
  • three o'clock; the church bell tolled as I passed under the belfry: the
  • charm of the hour lay in its approaching dimness, in the low-gliding and
  • pale-beaming sun. I was a mile from Thornfield, in a lane noted for wild
  • roses in summer, for nuts and blackberries in autumn, and even now
  • possessing a few coral treasures in hips and haws, but whose best winter
  • delight lay in its utter solitude and leafless repose. If a breath of
  • air stirred, it made no sound here; for there was not a holly, not an
  • evergreen to rustle, and the stripped hawthorn and hazel bushes were as
  • still as the white, worn stones which causewayed the middle of the path.
  • Far and wide, on each side, there were only fields, where no cattle now
  • browsed; and the little brown birds, which stirred occasionally in the
  • hedge, looked like single russet leaves that had forgotten to drop.
  • This lane inclined up-hill all the way to Hay; having reached the middle,
  • I sat down on a stile which led thence into a field. Gathering my mantle
  • about me, and sheltering my hands in my muff, I did not feel the cold,
  • though it froze keenly; as was attested by a sheet of ice covering the
  • causeway, where a little brooklet, now congealed, had overflowed after a
  • rapid thaw some days since. From my seat I could look down on
  • Thornfield: the grey and battlemented hall was the principal object in
  • the vale below me; its woods and dark rookery rose against the west. I
  • lingered till the sun went down amongst the trees, and sank crimson and
  • clear behind them. I then turned eastward.
  • On the hill-top above me sat the rising moon; pale yet as a cloud, but
  • brightening momentarily, she looked over Hay, which, half lost in trees,
  • sent up a blue smoke from its few chimneys: it was yet a mile distant,
  • but in the absolute hush I could hear plainly its thin murmurs of life.
  • My ear, too, felt the flow of currents; in what dales and depths I could
  • not tell: but there were many hills beyond Hay, and doubtless many becks
  • threading their passes. That evening calm betrayed alike the tinkle of
  • the nearest streams, the sough of the most remote.
  • A rude noise broke on these fine ripplings and whisperings, at once so
  • far away and so clear: a positive tramp, tramp, a metallic clatter, which
  • effaced the soft wave-wanderings; as, in a picture, the solid mass of a
  • crag, or the rough boles of a great oak, drawn in dark and strong on the
  • foreground, efface the aerial distance of azure hill, sunny horizon, and
  • blended clouds where tint melts into tint.
  • The din was on the causeway: a horse was coming; the windings of the lane
  • yet hid it, but it approached. I was just leaving the stile; yet, as the
  • path was narrow, I sat still to let it go by. In those days I was young,
  • and all sorts of fancies bright and dark tenanted my mind: the memories
  • of nursery stories were there amongst other rubbish; and when they
  • recurred, maturing youth added to them a vigour and vividness beyond what
  • childhood could give. As this horse approached, and as I watched for it
  • to appear through the dusk, I remembered certain of Bessie's tales,
  • wherein figured a North-of-England spirit called a "Gytrash," which, in
  • the form of horse, mule, or large dog, haunted solitary ways, and
  • sometimes came upon belated travellers, as this horse was now coming upon
  • me.
  • It was very near, but not yet in sight; when, in addition to the tramp,
  • tramp, I heard a rush under the hedge, and close down by the hazel stems
  • glided a great dog, whose black and white colour made him a distinct
  • object against the trees. It was exactly one form of Bessie's Gytrash--a
  • lion-like creature with long hair and a huge head: it passed me, however,
  • quietly enough; not staying to look up, with strange pretercanine eyes,
  • in my face, as I half expected it would. The horse followed,--a tall
  • steed, and on its back a rider. The man, the human being, broke the
  • spell at once. Nothing ever rode the Gytrash: it was always alone; and
  • goblins, to my notions, though they might tenant the dumb carcasses of
  • beasts, could scarce covet shelter in the commonplace human form. No
  • Gytrash was this,--only a traveller taking the short cut to Millcote. He
  • passed, and I went on; a few steps, and I turned: a sliding sound and an
  • exclamation of "What the deuce is to do now?" and a clattering tumble,
  • arrested my attention. Man and horse were down; they had slipped on the
  • sheet of ice which glazed the causeway. The dog came bounding back, and
  • seeing his master in a predicament, and hearing the horse groan, barked
  • till the evening hills echoed the sound, which was deep in proportion to
  • his magnitude. He snuffed round the prostrate group, and then he ran up
  • to me; it was all he could do,--there was no other help at hand to
  • summon. I obeyed him, and walked down to the traveller, by this time
  • struggling himself free of his steed. His efforts were so vigorous, I
  • thought he could not be much hurt; but I asked him the question--
  • "Are you injured, sir?"
  • I think he was swearing, but am not certain; however, he was pronouncing
  • some formula which prevented him from replying to me directly.
  • "Can I do anything?" I asked again.
  • "You must just stand on one side," he answered as he rose, first to his
  • knees, and then to his feet. I did; whereupon began a heaving, stamping,
  • clattering process, accompanied by a barking and baying which removed me
  • effectually some yards' distance; but I would not be driven quite away
  • till I saw the event. This was finally fortunate; the horse was
  • re-established, and the dog was silenced with a "Down, Pilot!" The
  • traveller now, stooping, felt his foot and leg, as if trying whether they
  • were sound; apparently something ailed them, for he halted to the stile
  • whence I had just risen, and sat down.
  • I was in the mood for being useful, or at least officious, I think, for I
  • now drew near him again.
  • "If you are hurt, and want help, sir, I can fetch some one either from
  • Thornfield Hall or from Hay."
  • "Thank you: I shall do: I have no broken bones,--only a sprain;" and
  • again he stood up and tried his foot, but the result extorted an
  • involuntary "Ugh!"
  • Something of daylight still lingered, and the moon was waxing bright: I
  • could see him plainly. His figure was enveloped in a riding cloak, fur
  • collared and steel clasped; its details were not apparent, but I traced
  • the general points of middle height and considerable breadth of chest. He
  • had a dark face, with stern features and a heavy brow; his eyes and
  • gathered eyebrows looked ireful and thwarted just now; he was past youth,
  • but had not reached middle-age; perhaps he might be thirty-five. I felt
  • no fear of him, and but little shyness. Had he been a handsome, heroic-
  • looking young gentleman, I should not have dared to stand thus
  • questioning him against his will, and offering my services unasked. I
  • had hardly ever seen a handsome youth; never in my life spoken to one. I
  • had a theoretical reverence and homage for beauty, elegance, gallantry,
  • fascination; but had I met those qualities incarnate in masculine shape,
  • I should have known instinctively that they neither had nor could have
  • sympathy with anything in me, and should have shunned them as one would
  • fire, lightning, or anything else that is bright but antipathetic.
  • If even this stranger had smiled and been good-humoured to me when I
  • addressed him; if he had put off my offer of assistance gaily and with
  • thanks, I should have gone on my way and not felt any vocation to renew
  • inquiries: but the frown, the roughness of the traveller, set me at my
  • ease: I retained my station when he waved to me to go, and announced--
  • "I cannot think of leaving you, sir, at so late an hour, in this solitary
  • lane, till I see you are fit to mount your horse."
  • He looked at me when I said this; he had hardly turned his eyes in my
  • direction before.
  • "I should think you ought to be at home yourself," said he, "if you have
  • a home in this neighbourhood: where do you come from?"
  • "From just below; and I am not at all afraid of being out late when it is
  • moonlight: I will run over to Hay for you with pleasure, if you wish it:
  • indeed, I am going there to post a letter."
  • "You live just below--do you mean at that house with the battlements?"
  • pointing to Thornfield Hall, on which the moon cast a hoary gleam,
  • bringing it out distinct and pale from the woods that, by contrast with
  • the western sky, now seemed one mass of shadow.
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "Whose house is it?"
  • "Mr. Rochester's."
  • "Do you know Mr. Rochester?"
  • "No, I have never seen him."
  • "He is not resident, then?"
  • "No."
  • "Can you tell me where he is?"
  • "I cannot."
  • "You are not a servant at the hall, of course. You are--" He stopped,
  • ran his eye over my dress, which, as usual, was quite simple: a black
  • merino cloak, a black beaver bonnet; neither of them half fine enough for
  • a lady's-maid. He seemed puzzled to decide what I was; I helped him.
  • "I am the governess."
  • "Ah, the governess!" he repeated; "deuce take me, if I had not forgotten!
  • The governess!" and again my raiment underwent scrutiny. In two minutes
  • he rose from the stile: his face expressed pain when he tried to move.
  • "I cannot commission you to fetch help," he said; "but you may help me a
  • little yourself, if you will be so kind."
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "You have not an umbrella that I can use as a stick?"
  • "No."
  • "Try to get hold of my horse's bridle and lead him to me: you are not
  • afraid?"
  • I should have been afraid to touch a horse when alone, but when told to
  • do it, I was disposed to obey. I put down my muff on the stile, and went
  • up to the tall steed; I endeavoured to catch the bridle, but it was a
  • spirited thing, and would not let me come near its head; I made effort on
  • effort, though in vain: meantime, I was mortally afraid of its trampling
  • fore-feet. The traveller waited and watched for some time, and at last
  • he laughed.
  • {I was mortally afraid of its trampling forefeet: p107.jpg}
  • "I see," he said, "the mountain will never be brought to Mahomet, so all
  • you can do is to aid Mahomet to go to the mountain; I must beg of you to
  • come here."
  • I came. "Excuse me," he continued: "necessity compels me to make you
  • useful." He laid a heavy hand on my shoulder, and leaning on me with
  • some stress, limped to his horse. Having once caught the bridle, he
  • mastered it directly and sprang to his saddle; grimacing grimly as he
  • made the effort, for it wrenched his sprain.
  • "Now," said he, releasing his under lip from a hard bite, "just hand me
  • my whip; it lies there under the hedge."
  • I sought it and found it.
  • "Thank you; now make haste with the letter to Hay, and return as fast as
  • you can."
  • A touch of a spurred heel made his horse first start and rear, and then
  • bound away; the dog rushed in his traces; all three vanished,
  • "Like heath that, in the wilderness,
  • The wild wind whirls away."
  • I took up my muff and walked on. The incident had occurred and was gone
  • for me: it _was_ an incident of no moment, no romance, no interest in a
  • sense; yet it marked with change one single hour of a monotonous life. My
  • help had been needed and claimed; I had given it: I was pleased to have
  • done something; trivial, transitory though the deed was, it was yet an
  • active thing, and I was weary of an existence all passive. The new face,
  • too, was like a new picture introduced to the gallery of memory; and it
  • was dissimilar to all the others hanging there: firstly, because it was
  • masculine; and, secondly, because it was dark, strong, and stern. I had
  • it still before me when I entered Hay, and slipped the letter into the
  • post-office; I saw it as I walked fast down-hill all the way home. When
  • I came to the stile, I stopped a minute, looked round and listened, with
  • an idea that a horse's hoofs might ring on the causeway again, and that a
  • rider in a cloak, and a Gytrash-like Newfoundland dog, might be again
  • apparent: I saw only the hedge and a pollard willow before me, rising up
  • still and straight to meet the moonbeams; I heard only the faintest waft
  • of wind roaming fitful among the trees round Thornfield, a mile distant;
  • and when I glanced down in the direction of the murmur, my eye,
  • traversing the hall-front, caught a light kindling in a window: it
  • reminded me that I was late, and I hurried on.
  • I did not like re-entering Thornfield. To pass its threshold was to
  • return to stagnation; to cross the silent hall, to ascend the darksome
  • staircase, to seek my own lonely little room, and then to meet tranquil
  • Mrs. Fairfax, and spend the long winter evening with her, and her only,
  • was to quell wholly the faint excitement wakened by my walk,--to slip
  • again over my faculties the viewless fetters of an uniform and too still
  • existence; of an existence whose very privileges of security and ease I
  • was becoming incapable of appreciating. What good it would have done me
  • at that time to have been tossed in the storms of an uncertain struggling
  • life, and to have been taught by rough and bitter experience to long for
  • the calm amidst which I now repined! Yes, just as much good as it would
  • do a man tired of sitting still in a "too easy chair" to take a long
  • walk: and just as natural was the wish to stir, under my circumstances,
  • as it would be under his.
  • I lingered at the gates; I lingered on the lawn; I paced backwards and
  • forwards on the pavement; the shutters of the glass door were closed; I
  • could not see into the interior; and both my eyes and spirit seemed drawn
  • from the gloomy house--from the grey-hollow filled with rayless cells, as
  • it appeared to me--to that sky expanded before me,--a blue sea absolved
  • from taint of cloud; the moon ascending it in solemn march; her orb
  • seeming to look up as she left the hill-tops, from behind which she had
  • come, far and farther below her, and aspired to the zenith, midnight dark
  • in its fathomless depth and measureless distance; and for those trembling
  • stars that followed her course; they made my heart tremble, my veins glow
  • when I viewed them. Little things recall us to earth; the clock struck
  • in the hall; that sufficed; I turned from moon and stars, opened a side-
  • door, and went in.
  • The hall was not dark, nor yet was it lit, only by the high-hung bronze
  • lamp; a warm glow suffused both it and the lower steps of the oak
  • staircase. This ruddy shine issued from the great dining-room, whose two-
  • leaved door stood open, and showed a genial fire in the grate, glancing
  • on marble hearth and brass fire-irons, and revealing purple draperies and
  • polished furniture, in the most pleasant radiance. It revealed, too, a
  • group near the mantelpiece: I had scarcely caught it, and scarcely become
  • aware of a cheerful mingling of voices, amongst which I seemed to
  • distinguish the tones of Adele, when the door closed.
  • I hastened to Mrs. Fairfax's room; there was a fire there too, but no
  • candle, and no Mrs. Fairfax. Instead, all alone, sitting upright on the
  • rug, and gazing with gravity at the blaze, I beheld a great black and
  • white long-haired dog, just like the Gytrash of the lane. It was so like
  • it that I went forward and said--"Pilot" and the thing got up and came to
  • me and snuffed me. I caressed him, and he wagged his great tail; but he
  • looked an eerie creature to be alone with, and I could not tell whence he
  • had come. I rang the bell, for I wanted a candle; and I wanted, too, to
  • get an account of this visitant. Leah entered.
  • "What dog is this?"
  • "He came with master."
  • "With whom?"
  • "With master--Mr. Rochester--he is just arrived."
  • "Indeed! and is Mrs. Fairfax with him?"
  • "Yes, and Miss Adele; they are in the dining-room, and John is gone for a
  • surgeon; for master has had an accident; his horse fell and his ankle is
  • sprained."
  • "Did the horse fall in Hay Lane?"
  • "Yes, coming down-hill; it slipped on some ice."
  • "Ah! Bring me a candle will you Leah?"
  • Leah brought it; she entered, followed by Mrs. Fairfax, who repeated the
  • news; adding that Mr. Carter the surgeon was come, and was now with Mr.
  • Rochester: then she hurried out to give orders about tea, and I went
  • upstairs to take off my things.
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • Mr. Rochester, it seems, by the surgeon's orders, went to bed early that
  • night; nor did he rise soon next morning. When he did come down, it was
  • to attend to business: his agent and some of his tenants were arrived,
  • and waiting to speak with him.
  • Adele and I had now to vacate the library: it would be in daily
  • requisition as a reception-room for callers. A fire was lit in an
  • apartment upstairs, and there I carried our books, and arranged it for
  • the future schoolroom. I discerned in the course of the morning that
  • Thornfield Hall was a changed place: no longer silent as a church, it
  • echoed every hour or two to a knock at the door, or a clang of the bell;
  • steps, too, often traversed the hall, and new voices spoke in different
  • keys below; a rill from the outer world was flowing through it; it had a
  • master: for my part, I liked it better.
  • Adele was not easy to teach that day; she could not apply: she kept
  • running to the door and looking over the banisters to see if she could
  • get a glimpse of Mr. Rochester; then she coined pretexts to go
  • downstairs, in order, as I shrewdly suspected, to visit the library,
  • where I knew she was not wanted; then, when I got a little angry, and
  • made her sit still, she continued to talk incessantly of her "ami,
  • Monsieur Edouard Fairfax _de_ Rochester," as she dubbed him (I had not
  • before heard his prenomens), and to conjecture what presents he had
  • brought her: for it appears he had intimated the night before, that when
  • his luggage came from Millcote, there would be found amongst it a little
  • box in whose contents she had an interest.
  • "Et cela doit signifier," said she, "qu'il y aura la dedans un cadeau
  • pour moi, et peut-etre pour vous aussi, mademoiselle. Monsieur a parle
  • de vous: il m'a demande le nom de ma gouvernante, et si elle n'etait pas
  • une petite personne, assez mince et un peu pale. J'ai dit qu'oui: car
  • c'est vrai, n'est-ce pas, mademoiselle?"
  • I and my pupil dined as usual in Mrs. Fairfax's parlour; the afternoon
  • was wild and snowy, and we passed it in the schoolroom. At dark I
  • allowed Adele to put away books and work, and to run downstairs; for,
  • from the comparative silence below, and from the cessation of appeals to
  • the door-bell, I conjectured that Mr. Rochester was now at liberty. Left
  • alone, I walked to the window; but nothing was to be seen thence:
  • twilight and snowflakes together thickened the air, and hid the very
  • shrubs on the lawn. I let down the curtain and went back to the
  • fireside.
  • In the clear embers I was tracing a view, not unlike a picture I
  • remembered to have seen of the castle of Heidelberg, on the Rhine, when
  • Mrs. Fairfax came in, breaking up by her entrance the fiery mosaic I had
  • been piercing together, and scattering too some heavy unwelcome thoughts
  • that were beginning to throng on my solitude.
  • "Mr. Rochester would be glad if you and your pupil would take tea with
  • him in the drawing-room this evening," said she: "he has been so much
  • engaged all day that he could not ask to see you before."
  • "When is his tea-time?" I inquired.
  • "Oh, at six o'clock: he keeps early hours in the country. You had better
  • change your frock now; I will go with you and fasten it. Here is a
  • candle."
  • "Is it necessary to change my frock?"
  • "Yes, you had better: I always dress for the evening when Mr. Rochester
  • is here."
  • This additional ceremony seemed somewhat stately; however, I repaired to
  • my room, and, with Mrs. Fairfax's aid, replaced my black stuff dress by
  • one of black silk; the best and the only additional one I had, except one
  • of light grey, which, in my Lowood notions of the toilette, I thought too
  • fine to be worn, except on first-rate occasions.
  • "You want a brooch," said Mrs. Fairfax. I had a single little pearl
  • ornament which Miss Temple gave me as a parting keepsake: I put it on,
  • and then we went downstairs. Unused as I was to strangers, it was rather
  • a trial to appear thus formally summoned in Mr. Rochester's presence. I
  • let Mrs. Fairfax precede me into the dining-room, and kept in her shade
  • as we crossed that apartment; and, passing the arch, whose curtain was
  • now dropped, entered the elegant recess beyond.
  • Two wax candles stood lighted on the table, and two on the mantelpiece;
  • basking in the light and heat of a superb fire, lay Pilot--Adele knelt
  • near him. Half reclined on a couch appeared Mr. Rochester, his foot
  • supported by the cushion; he was looking at Adele and the dog: the fire
  • shone full on his face. I knew my traveller with his broad and jetty
  • eyebrows; his square forehead, made squarer by the horizontal sweep of
  • his black hair. I recognised his decisive nose, more remarkable for
  • character than beauty; his full nostrils, denoting, I thought, choler;
  • his grim mouth, chin, and jaw--yes, all three were very grim, and no
  • mistake. His shape, now divested of cloak, I perceived harmonised in
  • squareness with his physiognomy: I suppose it was a good figure in the
  • athletic sense of the term--broad chested and thin flanked, though
  • neither tall nor graceful.
  • Mr. Rochester must have been aware of the entrance of Mrs. Fairfax and
  • myself; but it appeared he was not in the mood to notice us, for he never
  • lifted his head as we approached.
  • "Here is Miss Eyre, sir," said Mrs. Fairfax, in her quiet way. He bowed,
  • still not taking his eyes from the group of the dog and child.
  • "Let Miss Eyre be seated," said he: and there was something in the forced
  • stiff bow, in the impatient yet formal tone, which seemed further to
  • express, "What the deuce is it to me whether Miss Eyre be there or not?
  • At this moment I am not disposed to accost her."
  • I sat down quite disembarrassed. A reception of finished politeness
  • would probably have confused me: I could not have returned or repaid it
  • by answering grace and elegance on my part; but harsh caprice laid me
  • under no obligation; on the contrary, a decent quiescence, under the
  • freak of manner, gave me the advantage. Besides, the eccentricity of the
  • proceeding was piquant: I felt interested to see how he would go on.
  • He went on as a statue would, that is, he neither spoke nor moved. Mrs.
  • Fairfax seemed to think it necessary that some one should be amiable, and
  • she began to talk. Kindly, as usual--and, as usual, rather trite--she
  • condoled with him on the pressure of business he had had all day; on the
  • annoyance it must have been to him with that painful sprain: then she
  • commended his patience and perseverance in going through with it.
  • "Madam, I should like some tea," was the sole rejoinder she got. She
  • hastened to ring the bell; and when the tray came, she proceeded to
  • arrange the cups, spoons, &c., with assiduous celerity. I and Adele went
  • to the table; but the master did not leave his couch.
  • "Will you hand Mr. Rochester's cup?" said Mrs. Fairfax to me; "Adele
  • might perhaps spill it."
  • I did as requested. As he took the cup from my hand, Adele, thinking the
  • moment propitious for making a request in my favour, cried out--
  • "N'est-ce pas, monsieur, qu'il y a un cadeau pour Mademoiselle Eyre dans
  • votre petit coffre?"
  • "Who talks of cadeaux?" said he gruffly. "Did you expect a present, Miss
  • Eyre? Are you fond of presents?" and he searched my face with eyes that
  • I saw were dark, irate, and piercing.
  • "I hardly know, sir; I have little experience of them: they are generally
  • thought pleasant things."
  • "Generally thought? But what do _you_ think?"
  • "I should be obliged to take time, sir, before I could give you an answer
  • worthy of your acceptance: a present has many faces to it, has it not?
  • and one should consider all, before pronouncing an opinion as to its
  • nature."
  • "Miss Eyre, you are not so unsophisticated as Adele: she demands a
  • 'cadeau,' clamorously, the moment she sees me: you beat about the bush."
  • "Because I have less confidence in my deserts than Adele has: she can
  • prefer the claim of old acquaintance, and the right too of custom; for
  • she says you have always been in the habit of giving her playthings; but
  • if I had to make out a case I should be puzzled, since I am a stranger,
  • and have done nothing to entitle me to an acknowledgment."
  • "Oh, don't fall back on over-modesty! I have examined Adele, and find
  • you have taken great pains with her: she is not bright, she has no
  • talents; yet in a short time she has made much improvement."
  • "Sir, you have now given me my 'cadeau;' I am obliged to you: it is the
  • meed teachers most covet--praise of their pupils' progress."
  • "Humph!" said Mr. Rochester, and he took his tea in silence.
  • "Come to the fire," said the master, when the tray was taken away, and
  • Mrs. Fairfax had settled into a corner with her knitting; while Adele was
  • leading me by the hand round the room, showing me the beautiful books and
  • ornaments on the consoles and chiffonnieres. We obeyed, as in duty
  • bound; Adele wanted to take a seat on my knee, but she was ordered to
  • amuse herself with Pilot.
  • "You have been resident in my house three months?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "And you came from--?"
  • "From Lowood school, in ---shire."
  • "Ah! a charitable concern. How long were you there?"
  • "Eight years."
  • "Eight years! you must be tenacious of life. I thought half the time in
  • such a place would have done up any constitution! No wonder you have
  • rather the look of another world. I marvelled where you had got that
  • sort of face. When you came on me in Hay Lane last night, I thought
  • unaccountably of fairy tales, and had half a mind to demand whether you
  • had bewitched my horse: I am not sure yet. Who are your parents?"
  • "I have none."
  • "Nor ever had, I suppose: do you remember them?"
  • "No."
  • "I thought not. And so you were waiting for your people when you sat on
  • that stile?"
  • "For whom, sir?"
  • "For the men in green: it was a proper moonlight evening for them. Did I
  • break through one of your rings, that you spread that damned ice on the
  • causeway?"
  • I shook my head. "The men in green all forsook England a hundred years
  • ago," said I, speaking as seriously as he had done. "And not even in Hay
  • Lane, or the fields about it, could you find a trace of them. I don't
  • think either summer or harvest, or winter moon, will ever shine on their
  • revels more."
  • Mrs. Fairfax had dropped her knitting, and, with raised eyebrows, seemed
  • wondering what sort of talk this was.
  • "Well," resumed Mr. Rochester, "if you disown parents, you must have some
  • sort of kinsfolk: uncles and aunts?"
  • "No; none that I ever saw."
  • "And your home?"
  • "I have none."
  • "Where do your brothers and sisters live?"
  • "I have no brothers or sisters."
  • "Who recommended you to come here?"
  • "I advertised, and Mrs. Fairfax answered my advertisement."
  • "Yes," said the good lady, who now knew what ground we were upon, "and I
  • am daily thankful for the choice Providence led me to make. Miss Eyre
  • has been an invaluable companion to me, and a kind and careful teacher to
  • Adele."
  • "Don't trouble yourself to give her a character," returned Mr. Rochester:
  • "eulogiums will not bias me; I shall judge for myself. She began by
  • felling my horse."
  • "Sir?" said Mrs. Fairfax.
  • "I have to thank her for this sprain."
  • The widow looked bewildered.
  • "Miss Eyre, have you ever lived in a town?"
  • "No, sir."
  • "Have you seen much society?"
  • "None but the pupils and teachers of Lowood, and now the inmates of
  • Thornfield."
  • "Have you read much?"
  • "Only such books as came in my way; and they have not been numerous or
  • very learned."
  • "You have lived the life of a nun: no doubt you are well drilled in
  • religious forms;--Brocklehurst, who I understand directs Lowood, is a
  • parson, is he not?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "And you girls probably worshipped him, as a convent full of religieuses
  • would worship their director."
  • "Oh, no."
  • "You are very cool! No! What! a novice not worship her priest! That
  • sounds blasphemous."
  • "I disliked Mr. Brocklehurst; and I was not alone in the feeling. He is
  • a harsh man; at once pompous and meddling; he cut off our hair; and for
  • economy's sake bought us bad needles and thread, with which we could
  • hardly sew."
  • "That was very false economy," remarked Mrs. Fairfax, who now again
  • caught the drift of the dialogue.
  • "And was that the head and front of his offending?" demanded Mr.
  • Rochester.
  • "He starved us when he had the sole superintendence of the provision
  • department, before the committee was appointed; and he bored us with long
  • lectures once a week, and with evening readings from books of his own
  • inditing, about sudden deaths and judgments, which made us afraid to go
  • to bed."
  • "What age were you when you went to Lowood?"
  • "About ten."
  • "And you stayed there eight years: you are now, then, eighteen?"
  • I assented.
  • "Arithmetic, you see, is useful; without its aid, I should hardly have
  • been able to guess your age. It is a point difficult to fix where the
  • features and countenance are so much at variance as in your case. And
  • now what did you learn at Lowood? Can you play?"
  • "A little."
  • "Of course: that is the established answer. Go into the library--I mean,
  • if you please.--(Excuse my tone of command; I am used to say, 'Do this,'
  • and it is done: I cannot alter my customary habits for one new
  • inmate.)--Go, then, into the library; take a candle with you; leave the
  • door open; sit down to the piano, and play a tune."
  • I departed, obeying his directions.
  • "Enough!" he called out in a few minutes. "You play _a little_, I see;
  • like any other English school-girl; perhaps rather better than some, but
  • not well."
  • I closed the piano and returned. Mr. Rochester continued--"Adele showed
  • me some sketches this morning, which she said were yours. I don't know
  • whether they were entirely of your doing; probably a master aided you?"
  • "No, indeed!" I interjected.
  • "Ah! that pricks pride. Well, fetch me your portfolio, if you can vouch
  • for its contents being original; but don't pass your word unless you are
  • certain: I can recognise patchwork."
  • "Then I will say nothing, and you shall judge for yourself, sir."
  • I brought the portfolio from the library.
  • "Approach the table," said he; and I wheeled it to his couch. Adele and
  • Mrs. Fairfax drew near to see the pictures.
  • "No crowding," said Mr. Rochester: "take the drawings from my hand as I
  • finish with them; but don't push your faces up to mine."
  • He deliberately scrutinised each sketch and painting. Three he laid
  • aside; the others, when he had examined them, he swept from him.
  • "Take them off to the other table, Mrs. Fairfax," said he, "and look at
  • them with Adele;--you" (glancing at me) "resume your seat, and answer my
  • questions. I perceive those pictures were done by one hand: was that
  • hand yours?"
  • "Yes."
  • "And when did you find time to do them? They have taken much time, and
  • some thought."
  • "I did them in the last two vacations I spent at Lowood, when I had no
  • other occupation."
  • "Where did you get your copies?"
  • "Out of my head."
  • "That head I see now on your shoulders?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "Has it other furniture of the same kind within?"
  • "I should think it may have: I should hope--better."
  • He spread the pictures before him, and again surveyed them alternately.
  • While he is so occupied, I will tell you, reader, what they are: and
  • first, I must premise that they are nothing wonderful. The subjects had,
  • indeed, risen vividly on my mind. As I saw them with the spiritual eye,
  • before I attempted to embody them, they were striking; but my hand would
  • not second my fancy, and in each case it had wrought out but a pale
  • portrait of the thing I had conceived.
  • These pictures were in water-colours. The first represented clouds low
  • and livid, rolling over a swollen sea: all the distance was in eclipse;
  • so, too, was the foreground; or rather, the nearest billows, for there
  • was no land. One gleam of light lifted into relief a half-submerged
  • mast, on which sat a cormorant, dark and large, with wings flecked with
  • foam; its beak held a gold bracelet set with gems, that I had touched
  • with as brilliant tints as my palette could yield, and as glittering
  • distinctness as my pencil could impart. Sinking below the bird and mast,
  • a drowned corpse glanced through the green water; a fair arm was the only
  • limb clearly visible, whence the bracelet had been washed or torn.
  • The second picture contained for foreground only the dim peak of a hill,
  • with grass and some leaves slanting as if by a breeze. Beyond and above
  • spread an expanse of sky, dark blue as at twilight: rising into the sky
  • was a woman's shape to the bust, portrayed in tints as dusk and soft as I
  • could combine. The dim forehead was crowned with a star; the lineaments
  • below were seen as through the suffusion of vapour; the eyes shone dark
  • and wild; the hair streamed shadowy, like a beamless cloud torn by storm
  • or by electric travail. On the neck lay a pale reflection like
  • moonlight; the same faint lustre touched the train of thin clouds from
  • which rose and bowed this vision of the Evening Star.
  • The third showed the pinnacle of an iceberg piercing a polar winter sky:
  • a muster of northern lights reared their dim lances, close serried, along
  • the horizon. Throwing these into distance, rose, in the foreground, a
  • head,--a colossal head, inclined towards the iceberg, and resting against
  • it. Two thin hands, joined under the forehead, and supporting it, drew
  • up before the lower features a sable veil, a brow quite bloodless, white
  • as bone, and an eye hollow and fixed, blank of meaning but for the
  • glassiness of despair, alone were visible. Above the temples, amidst
  • wreathed turban folds of black drapery, vague in its character and
  • consistency as cloud, gleamed a ring of white flame, gemmed with sparkles
  • of a more lurid tinge. This pale crescent was "the likeness of a kingly
  • crown;" what it diademed was "the shape which shape had none."
  • "Were you happy when you painted these pictures?" asked Mr. Rochester
  • presently.
  • "I was absorbed, sir: yes, and I was happy. To paint them, in short, was
  • to enjoy one of the keenest pleasures I have ever known."
  • "That is not saying much. Your pleasures, by your own account, have been
  • few; but I daresay you did exist in a kind of artist's dreamland while
  • you blent and arranged these strange tints. Did you sit at them long
  • each day?"
  • "I had nothing else to do, because it was the vacation, and I sat at them
  • from morning till noon, and from noon till night: the length of the
  • midsummer days favoured my inclination to apply."
  • "And you felt self-satisfied with the result of your ardent labours?"
  • "Far from it. I was tormented by the contrast between my idea and my
  • handiwork: in each case I had imagined something which I was quite
  • powerless to realise."
  • "Not quite: you have secured the shadow of your thought; but no more,
  • probably. You had not enough of the artist's skill and science to give
  • it full being: yet the drawings are, for a school-girl, peculiar. As to
  • the thoughts, they are elfish. These eyes in the Evening Star you must
  • have seen in a dream. How could you make them look so clear, and yet not
  • at all brilliant? for the planet above quells their rays. And what
  • meaning is that in their solemn depth? And who taught you to paint wind?
  • There is a high gale in that sky, and on this hill-top. Where did you
  • see Latmos? For that is Latmos. There! put the drawings away!"
  • I had scarce tied the strings of the portfolio, when, looking at his
  • watch, he said abruptly--
  • "It is nine o'clock: what are you about, Miss Eyre, to let Adele sit up
  • so long? Take her to bed."
  • Adele went to kiss him before quitting the room: he endured the caress,
  • but scarcely seemed to relish it more than Pilot would have done, nor so
  • much.
  • "I wish you all good-night, now," said he, making a movement of the hand
  • towards the door, in token that he was tired of our company, and wished
  • to dismiss us. Mrs. Fairfax folded up her knitting: I took my portfolio:
  • we curtseyed to him, received a frigid bow in return, and so withdrew.
  • "You said Mr. Rochester was not strikingly peculiar, Mrs. Fairfax," I
  • observed, when I rejoined her in her room, after putting Adele to bed.
  • "Well, is he?"
  • "I think so: he is very changeful and abrupt."
  • "True: no doubt he may appear so to a stranger, but I am so accustomed to
  • his manner, I never think of it; and then, if he has peculiarities of
  • temper, allowance should be made."
  • "Why?"
  • "Partly because it is his nature--and we can none of us help our nature;
  • and partly because he has painful thoughts, no doubt, to harass him, and
  • make his spirits unequal."
  • "What about?"
  • "Family troubles, for one thing."
  • "But he has no family."
  • "Not now, but he has had--or, at least, relatives. He lost his elder
  • brother a few years since."
  • "His _elder_ brother?"
  • "Yes. The present Mr. Rochester has not been very long in possession of
  • the property; only about nine years."
  • "Nine years is a tolerable time. Was he so very fond of his brother as
  • to be still inconsolable for his loss?"
  • "Why, no--perhaps not. I believe there were some misunderstandings
  • between them. Mr. Rowland Rochester was not quite just to Mr. Edward;
  • and perhaps he prejudiced his father against him. The old gentleman was
  • fond of money, and anxious to keep the family estate together. He did
  • not like to diminish the property by division, and yet he was anxious
  • that Mr. Edward should have wealth, too, to keep up the consequence of
  • the name; and, soon after he was of age, some steps were taken that were
  • not quite fair, and made a great deal of mischief. Old Mr. Rochester and
  • Mr. Rowland combined to bring Mr. Edward into what he considered a
  • painful position, for the sake of making his fortune: what the precise
  • nature of that position was I never clearly knew, but his spirit could
  • not brook what he had to suffer in it. He is not very forgiving: he
  • broke with his family, and now for many years he has led an unsettled
  • kind of life. I don't think he has ever been resident at Thornfield for
  • a fortnight together, since the death of his brother without a will left
  • him master of the estate; and, indeed, no wonder he shuns the old place."
  • "Why should he shun it?"
  • "Perhaps he thinks it gloomy."
  • The answer was evasive. I should have liked something clearer; but Mrs.
  • Fairfax either could not, or would not, give me more explicit information
  • of the origin and nature of Mr. Rochester's trials. She averred they
  • were a mystery to herself, and that what she knew was chiefly from
  • conjecture. It was evident, indeed, that she wished me to drop the
  • subject, which I did accordingly.
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • For several subsequent days I saw little of Mr. Rochester. In the
  • mornings he seemed much engaged with business, and, in the afternoon,
  • gentlemen from Millcote or the neighbourhood called, and sometimes stayed
  • to dine with him. When his sprain was well enough to admit of horse
  • exercise, he rode out a good deal; probably to return these visits, as he
  • generally did not come back till late at night.
  • During this interval, even Adele was seldom sent for to his presence, and
  • all my acquaintance with him was confined to an occasional rencontre in
  • the hall, on the stairs, or in the gallery, when he would sometimes pass
  • me haughtily and coldly, just acknowledging my presence by a distant nod
  • or a cool glance, and sometimes bow and smile with gentlemanlike
  • affability. His changes of mood did not offend me, because I saw that I
  • had nothing to do with their alternation; the ebb and flow depended on
  • causes quite disconnected with me.
  • One day he had had company to dinner, and had sent for my portfolio; in
  • order, doubtless, to exhibit its contents: the gentlemen went away early,
  • to attend a public meeting at Millcote, as Mrs. Fairfax informed me; but
  • the night being wet and inclement, Mr. Rochester did not accompany them.
  • Soon after they were gone he rang the bell: a message came that I and
  • Adele were to go downstairs. I brushed Adele's hair and made her neat,
  • and having ascertained that I was myself in my usual Quaker trim, where
  • there was nothing to retouch--all being too close and plain, braided
  • locks included, to admit of disarrangement--we descended, Adele wondering
  • whether the _petit coffre_ was at length come; for, owing to some
  • mistake, its arrival had hitherto been delayed. She was gratified: there
  • it stood, a little carton, on the table when we entered the dining-room.
  • She appeared to know it by instinct.
  • "Ma boite! ma boite!" exclaimed she, running towards it.
  • "Yes, there is your 'boite' at last: take it into a corner, you genuine
  • daughter of Paris, and amuse yourself with disembowelling it," said the
  • deep and rather sarcastic voice of Mr. Rochester, proceeding from the
  • depths of an immense easy-chair at the fireside. "And mind," he
  • continued, "don't bother me with any details of the anatomical process,
  • or any notice of the condition of the entrails: let your operation be
  • conducted in silence: tiens-toi tranquille, enfant; comprends-tu?"
  • Adele seemed scarcely to need the warning--she had already retired to a
  • sofa with her treasure, and was busy untying the cord which secured the
  • lid. Having removed this impediment, and lifted certain silvery
  • envelopes of tissue paper, she merely exclaimed--
  • "Oh ciel! Que c'est beau!" and then remained absorbed in ecstatic
  • contemplation.
  • "Is Miss Eyre there?" now demanded the master, half rising from his seat
  • to look round to the door, near which I still stood.
  • "Ah! well, come forward; be seated here." He drew a chair near his own.
  • "I am not fond of the prattle of children," he continued; "for, old
  • bachelor as I am, I have no pleasant associations connected with their
  • lisp. It would be intolerable to me to pass a whole evening
  • _tete-a-tete_ with a brat. Don't draw that chair farther off, Miss Eyre;
  • sit down exactly where I placed it--if you please, that is. Confound
  • these civilities! I continually forget them. Nor do I particularly
  • affect simple-minded old ladies. By-the-bye, I must have mine in mind;
  • it won't do to neglect her; she is a Fairfax, or wed to one; and blood is
  • said to be thicker than water."
  • He rang, and despatched an invitation to Mrs. Fairfax, who soon arrived,
  • knitting-basket in hand.
  • "Good evening, madam; I sent to you for a charitable purpose. I have
  • forbidden Adele to talk to me about her presents, and she is bursting
  • with repletion: have the goodness to serve her as auditress and
  • interlocutrice; it will be one of the most benevolent acts you ever
  • performed."
  • Adele, indeed, no sooner saw Mrs. Fairfax, than she summoned her to her
  • sofa, and there quickly filled her lap with the porcelain, the ivory, the
  • waxen contents of her "boite;" pouring out, meantime, explanations and
  • raptures in such broken English as she was mistress of.
  • "Now I have performed the part of a good host," pursued Mr. Rochester,
  • "put my guests into the way of amusing each other, I ought to be at
  • liberty to attend to my own pleasure. Miss Eyre, draw your chair still a
  • little farther forward: you are yet too far back; I cannot see you
  • without disturbing my position in this comfortable chair, which I have no
  • mind to do."
  • I did as I was bid, though I would much rather have remained somewhat in
  • the shade; but Mr. Rochester had such a direct way of giving orders, it
  • seemed a matter of course to obey him promptly.
  • We were, as I have said, in the dining-room: the lustre, which had been
  • lit for dinner, filled the room with a festal breadth of light; the large
  • fire was all red and clear; the purple curtains hung rich and ample
  • before the lofty window and loftier arch; everything was still, save the
  • subdued chat of Adele (she dared not speak loud), and, filling up each
  • pause, the beating of winter rain against the panes.
  • Mr. Rochester, as he sat in his damask-covered chair, looked different to
  • what I had seen him look before; not quite so stern--much less gloomy.
  • There was a smile on his lips, and his eyes sparkled, whether with wine
  • or not, I am not sure; but I think it very probable. He was, in short,
  • in his after-dinner mood; more expanded and genial, and also more self-
  • indulgent than the frigid and rigid temper of the morning; still he
  • looked preciously grim, cushioning his massive head against the swelling
  • back of his chair, and receiving the light of the fire on his granite-
  • hewn features, and in his great, dark eyes; for he had great, dark eyes,
  • and very fine eyes, too--not without a certain change in their depths
  • sometimes, which, if it was not softness, reminded you, at least, of that
  • feeling.
  • He had been looking two minutes at the fire, and I had been looking the
  • same length of time at him, when, turning suddenly, he caught my gaze
  • fastened on his physiognomy.
  • "You examine me, Miss Eyre," said he: "do you think me handsome?"
  • I should, if I had deliberated, have replied to this question by
  • something conventionally vague and polite; but the answer somehow slipped
  • from my tongue before I was aware--"No, sir."
  • "Ah! By my word! there is something singular about you," said he: "you
  • have the air of a little _nonnette_; quaint, quiet, grave, and simple, as
  • you sit with your hands before you, and your eyes generally bent on the
  • carpet (except, by-the-bye, when they are directed piercingly to my face;
  • as just now, for instance); and when one asks you a question, or makes a
  • remark to which you are obliged to reply, you rap out a round rejoinder,
  • which, if not blunt, is at least brusque. What do you mean by it?"
  • "Sir, I was too plain; I beg your pardon. I ought to have replied that
  • it was not easy to give an impromptu answer to a question about
  • appearances; that tastes mostly differ; and that beauty is of little
  • consequence, or something of that sort."
  • "You ought to have replied no such thing. Beauty of little consequence,
  • indeed! And so, under pretence of softening the previous outrage, of
  • stroking and soothing me into placidity, you stick a sly penknife under
  • my ear! Go on: what fault do you find with me, pray? I suppose I have
  • all my limbs and all my features like any other man?"
  • "Mr. Rochester, allow me to disown my first answer: I intended no pointed
  • repartee: it was only a blunder."
  • "Just so: I think so: and you shall be answerable for it. Criticise me:
  • does my forehead not please you?"
  • He lifted up the sable waves of hair which lay horizontally over his
  • brow, and showed a solid enough mass of intellectual organs, but an
  • abrupt deficiency where the suave sign of benevolence should have risen.
  • "Now, ma'am, am I a fool?"
  • "Far from it, sir. You would, perhaps, think me rude if I inquired in
  • return whether you are a philanthropist?"
  • "There again! Another stick of the penknife, when she pretended to pat
  • my head: and that is because I said I did not like the society of
  • children and old women (low be it spoken!). No, young lady, I am not a
  • general philanthropist; but I bear a conscience;" and he pointed to the
  • prominences which are said to indicate that faculty, and which,
  • fortunately for him, were sufficiently conspicuous; giving, indeed, a
  • marked breadth to the upper part of his head: "and, besides, I once had a
  • kind of rude tenderness of heart. When I was as old as you, I was a
  • feeling fellow enough, partial to the unfledged, unfostered, and unlucky;
  • but Fortune has knocked me about since: she has even kneaded me with her
  • knuckles, and now I flatter myself I am hard and tough as an India-rubber
  • ball; pervious, though, through a chink or two still, and with one
  • sentient point in the middle of the lump. Yes: does that leave hope for
  • me?"
  • "Hope of what, sir?"
  • "Of my final re-transformation from India-rubber back to flesh?"
  • "Decidedly he has had too much wine," I thought; and I did not know what
  • answer to make to his queer question: how could I tell whether he was
  • capable of being re-transformed?
  • "You looked very much puzzled, Miss Eyre; and though you are not pretty
  • any more than I am handsome, yet a puzzled air becomes you; besides, it
  • is convenient, for it keeps those searching eyes of yours away from my
  • physiognomy, and busies them with the worsted flowers of the rug; so
  • puzzle on. Young lady, I am disposed to be gregarious and communicative
  • to-night."
  • With this announcement he rose from his chair, and stood, leaning his arm
  • on the marble mantelpiece: in that attitude his shape was seen plainly as
  • well as his face; his unusual breadth of chest, disproportionate almost
  • to his length of limb. I am sure most people would have thought him an
  • ugly man; yet there was so much unconscious pride in his port; so much
  • ease in his demeanour; such a look of complete indifference to his own
  • external appearance; so haughty a reliance on the power of other
  • qualities, intrinsic or adventitious, to atone for the lack of mere
  • personal attractiveness, that, in looking at him, one inevitably shared
  • the indifference, and, even in a blind, imperfect sense, put faith in the
  • confidence.
  • "I am disposed to be gregarious and communicative to-night," he repeated,
  • "and that is why I sent for you: the fire and the chandelier were not
  • sufficient company for me; nor would Pilot have been, for none of these
  • can talk. Adele is a degree better, but still far below the mark; Mrs.
  • Fairfax ditto; you, I am persuaded, can suit me if you will: you puzzled
  • me the first evening I invited you down here. I have almost forgotten
  • you since: other ideas have driven yours from my head; but to-night I am
  • resolved to be at ease; to dismiss what importunes, and recall what
  • pleases. It would please me now to draw you out--to learn more of
  • you--therefore speak."
  • Instead of speaking, I smiled; and not a very complacent or submissive
  • smile either.
  • "Speak," he urged.
  • "What about, sir?"
  • "Whatever you like. I leave both the choice of subject and the manner of
  • treating it entirely to yourself."
  • Accordingly I sat and said nothing: "If he expects me to talk for the
  • mere sake of talking and showing off, he will find he has addressed
  • himself to the wrong person," I thought.
  • "You are dumb, Miss Eyre."
  • I was dumb still. He bent his head a little towards me, and with a
  • single hasty glance seemed to dive into my eyes.
  • "Stubborn?" he said, "and annoyed. Ah! it is consistent. I put my
  • request in an absurd, almost insolent form. Miss Eyre, I beg your
  • pardon. The fact is, once for all, I don't wish to treat you like an
  • inferior: that is" (correcting himself), "I claim only such superiority
  • as must result from twenty years' difference in age and a century's
  • advance in experience. This is legitimate, _et j'y tiens_, as Adele
  • would say; and it is by virtue of this superiority, and this alone, that
  • I desire you to have the goodness to talk to me a little now, and divert
  • my thoughts, which are galled with dwelling on one point--cankering as a
  • rusty nail."
  • He had deigned an explanation, almost an apology, and I did not feel
  • insensible to his condescension, and would not seem so.
  • "I am willing to amuse you, if I can, sir--quite willing; but I cannot
  • introduce a topic, because how do I know what will interest you? Ask me
  • questions, and I will do my best to answer them."
  • "Then, in the first place, do you agree with me that I have a right to be
  • a little masterful, abrupt, perhaps exacting, sometimes, on the grounds I
  • stated, namely, that I am old enough to be your father, and that I have
  • battled through a varied experience with many men of many nations, and
  • roamed over half the globe, while you have lived quietly with one set of
  • people in one house?"
  • "Do as you please, sir."
  • "That is no answer; or rather it is a very irritating, because a very
  • evasive one. Reply clearly."
  • "I don't think, sir, you have a right to command me, merely because you
  • are older than I, or because you have seen more of the world than I have;
  • your claim to superiority depends on the use you have made of your time
  • and experience."
  • "Humph! Promptly spoken. But I won't allow that, seeing that it would
  • never suit my case, as I have made an indifferent, not to say a bad, use
  • of both advantages. Leaving superiority out of the question, then, you
  • must still agree to receive my orders now and then, without being piqued
  • or hurt by the tone of command. Will you?"
  • I smiled: I thought to myself Mr. Rochester _is_ peculiar--he seems to
  • forget that he pays me 30 pounds per annum for receiving his orders.
  • "The smile is very well," said he, catching instantly the passing
  • expression; "but speak too."
  • "I was thinking, sir, that very few masters would trouble themselves to
  • inquire whether or not their paid subordinates were piqued and hurt by
  • their orders."
  • "Paid subordinates! What! you are my paid subordinate, are you? Oh yes,
  • I had forgotten the salary! Well then, on that mercenary ground, will
  • you agree to let me hector a little?"
  • "No, sir, not on that ground; but, on the ground that you did forget it,
  • and that you care whether or not a dependent is comfortable in his
  • dependency, I agree heartily."
  • "And will you consent to dispense with a great many conventional forms
  • and phrases, without thinking that the omission arises from insolence?"
  • "I am sure, sir, I should never mistake informality for insolence: one I
  • rather like, the other nothing free-born would submit to, even for a
  • salary."
  • "Humbug! Most things free-born will submit to anything for a salary;
  • therefore, keep to yourself, and don't venture on generalities of which
  • you are intensely ignorant. However, I mentally shake hands with you for
  • your answer, despite its inaccuracy; and as much for the manner in which
  • it was said, as for the substance of the speech; the manner was frank and
  • sincere; one does not often see such a manner: no, on the contrary,
  • affectation, or coldness, or stupid, coarse-minded misapprehension of
  • one's meaning are the usual rewards of candour. Not three in three
  • thousand raw school-girl-governesses would have answered me as you have
  • just done. But I don't mean to flatter you: if you are cast in a
  • different mould to the majority, it is no merit of yours: Nature did it.
  • And then, after all, I go too fast in my conclusions: for what I yet
  • know, you may be no better than the rest; you may have intolerable
  • defects to counterbalance your few good points."
  • "And so may you," I thought. My eye met his as the idea crossed my mind:
  • he seemed to read the glance, answering as if its import had been spoken
  • as well as imagined--
  • "Yes, yes, you are right," said he; "I have plenty of faults of my own: I
  • know it, and I don't wish to palliate them, I assure you. God wot I need
  • not be too severe about others; I have a past existence, a series of
  • deeds, a colour of life to contemplate within my own breast, which might
  • well call my sneers and censures from my neighbours to myself. I
  • started, or rather (for like other defaulters, I like to lay half the
  • blame on ill fortune and adverse circumstances) was thrust on to a wrong
  • tack at the age of one-and-twenty, and have never recovered the right
  • course since: but I might have been very different; I might have been as
  • good as you--wiser--almost as stainless. I envy you your peace of mind,
  • your clean conscience, your unpolluted memory. Little girl, a memory
  • without blot or contamination must be an exquisite treasure--an
  • inexhaustible source of pure refreshment: is it not?"
  • "How was your memory when you were eighteen, sir?"
  • "All right then; limpid, salubrious: no gush of bilge water had turned it
  • to fetid puddle. I was your equal at eighteen--quite your equal. Nature
  • meant me to be, on the whole, a good man, Miss Eyre; one of the better
  • kind, and you see I am not so. You would say you don't see it; at least
  • I flatter myself I read as much in your eye (beware, by-the-bye, what you
  • express with that organ; I am quick at interpreting its language). Then
  • take my word for it,--I am not a villain: you are not to suppose that--not
  • to attribute to me any such bad eminence; but, owing, I verily believe,
  • rather to circumstances than to my natural bent, I am a trite commonplace
  • sinner, hackneyed in all the poor petty dissipations with which the rich
  • and worthless try to put on life. Do you wonder that I avow this to you?
  • Know, that in the course of your future life you will often find yourself
  • elected the involuntary confidant of your acquaintances' secrets: people
  • will instinctively find out, as I have done, that it is not your forte to
  • tell of yourself, but to listen while others talk of themselves; they
  • will feel, too, that you listen with no malevolent scorn of their
  • indiscretion, but with a kind of innate sympathy; not the less comforting
  • and encouraging because it is very unobtrusive in its manifestations."
  • "How do you know?--how can you guess all this, sir?"
  • "I know it well; therefore I proceed almost as freely as if I were
  • writing my thoughts in a diary. You would say, I should have been
  • superior to circumstances; so I should--so I should; but you see I was
  • not. When fate wronged me, I had not the wisdom to remain cool: I turned
  • desperate; then I degenerated. Now, when any vicious simpleton excites
  • my disgust by his paltry ribaldry, I cannot flatter myself that I am
  • better than he: I am forced to confess that he and I are on a level. I
  • wish I had stood firm--God knows I do! Dread remorse when you are
  • tempted to err, Miss Eyre; remorse is the poison of life."
  • "Repentance is said to be its cure, sir."
  • "It is not its cure. Reformation may be its cure; and I could reform--I
  • have strength yet for that--if--but where is the use of thinking of it,
  • hampered, burdened, cursed as I am? Besides, since happiness is
  • irrevocably denied me, I have a right to get pleasure out of life: and I
  • _will_ get it, cost what it may."
  • "Then you will degenerate still more, sir."
  • "Possibly: yet why should I, if I can get sweet, fresh pleasure? And I
  • may get it as sweet and fresh as the wild honey the bee gathers on the
  • moor."
  • "It will sting--it will taste bitter, sir."
  • "How do you know?--you never tried it. How very serious--how very solemn
  • you look: and you are as ignorant of the matter as this cameo head"
  • (taking one from the mantelpiece). "You have no right to preach to me,
  • you neophyte, that have not passed the porch of life, and are absolutely
  • unacquainted with its mysteries."
  • "I only remind you of your own words, sir: you said error brought
  • remorse, and you pronounced remorse the poison of existence."
  • "And who talks of error now? I scarcely think the notion that flittered
  • across my brain was an error. I believe it was an inspiration rather
  • than a temptation: it was very genial, very soothing--I know that. Here
  • it comes again! It is no devil, I assure you; or if it be, it has put on
  • the robes of an angel of light. I think I must admit so fair a guest
  • when it asks entrance to my heart."
  • "Distrust it, sir; it is not a true angel."
  • "Once more, how do you know? By what instinct do you pretend to
  • distinguish between a fallen seraph of the abyss and a messenger from the
  • eternal throne--between a guide and a seducer?"
  • "I judged by your countenance, sir, which was troubled when you said the
  • suggestion had returned upon you. I feel sure it will work you more
  • misery if you listen to it."
  • "Not at all--it bears the most gracious message in the world: for the
  • rest, you are not my conscience-keeper, so don't make yourself uneasy.
  • Here, come in, bonny wanderer!"
  • He said this as if he spoke to a vision, viewless to any eye but his own;
  • then, folding his arms, which he had half extended, on his chest, he
  • seemed to enclose in their embrace the invisible being.
  • "Now," he continued, again addressing me, "I have received the pilgrim--a
  • disguised deity, as I verily believe. Already it has done me good: my
  • heart was a sort of charnel; it will now be a shrine."
  • "To speak truth, sir, I don't understand you at all: I cannot keep up the
  • conversation, because it has got out of my depth. Only one thing, I
  • know: you said you were not as good as you should like to be, and that
  • you regretted your own imperfection;--one thing I can comprehend: you
  • intimated that to have a sullied memory was a perpetual bane. It seems
  • to me, that if you tried hard, you would in time find it possible to
  • become what you yourself would approve; and that if from this day you
  • began with resolution to correct your thoughts and actions, you would in
  • a few years have laid up a new and stainless store of recollections, to
  • which you might revert with pleasure."
  • "Justly thought; rightly said, Miss Eyre; and, at this moment, I am
  • paving hell with energy."
  • "Sir?"
  • "I am laying down good intentions, which I believe durable as flint.
  • Certainly, my associates and pursuits shall be other than they have
  • been."
  • "And better?"
  • "And better--so much better as pure ore is than foul dross. You seem to
  • doubt me; I don't doubt myself: I know what my aim is, what my motives
  • are; and at this moment I pass a law, unalterable as that of the Medes
  • and Persians, that both are right."
  • "They cannot be, sir, if they require a new statute to legalise them."
  • "They are, Miss Eyre, though they absolutely require a new statute:
  • unheard-of combinations of circumstances demand unheard-of rules."
  • "That sounds a dangerous maxim, sir; because one can see at once that it
  • is liable to abuse."
  • "Sententious sage! so it is: but I swear by my household gods not to
  • abuse it."
  • "You are human and fallible."
  • "I am: so are you--what then?"
  • "The human and fallible should not arrogate a power with which the divine
  • and perfect alone can be safely intrusted."
  • "What power?"
  • "That of saying of any strange, unsanctioned line of action,--'Let it be
  • right.'"
  • "'Let it be right'--the very words: you have pronounced them."
  • "_May_ it be right then," I said, as I rose, deeming it useless to
  • continue a discourse which was all darkness to me; and, besides, sensible
  • that the character of my interlocutor was beyond my penetration; at
  • least, beyond its present reach; and feeling the uncertainty, the vague
  • sense of insecurity, which accompanies a conviction of ignorance.
  • "Where are you going?"
  • "To put Adele to bed: it is past her bedtime."
  • "You are afraid of me, because I talk like a Sphynx."
  • "Your language is enigmatical, sir: but though I am bewildered, I am
  • certainly not afraid."
  • "You _are_ afraid--your self-love dreads a blunder."
  • "In that sense I do feel apprehensive--I have no wish to talk nonsense."
  • "If you did, it would be in such a grave, quiet manner, I should mistake
  • it for sense. Do you never laugh, Miss Eyre? Don't trouble yourself to
  • answer--I see you laugh rarely; but you can laugh very merrily: believe
  • me, you are not naturally austere, any more than I am naturally vicious.
  • The Lowood constraint still clings to you somewhat; controlling your
  • features, muffling your voice, and restricting your limbs; and you fear
  • in the presence of a man and a brother--or father, or master, or what you
  • will--to smile too gaily, speak too freely, or move too quickly: but, in
  • time, I think you will learn to be natural with me, as I find it
  • impossible to be conventional with you; and then your looks and movements
  • will have more vivacity and variety than they dare offer now. I see at
  • intervals the glance of a curious sort of bird through the close-set bars
  • of a cage: a vivid, restless, resolute captive is there; were it but
  • free, it would soar cloud-high. You are still bent on going?"
  • "It has struck nine, sir."
  • "Never mind,--wait a minute: Adele is not ready to go to bed yet. My
  • position, Miss Eyre, with my back to the fire, and my face to the room,
  • favours observation. While talking to you, I have also occasionally
  • watched Adele (I have my own reasons for thinking her a curious
  • study,--reasons that I may, nay, that I shall, impart to you some day).
  • She pulled out of her box, about ten minutes ago, a little pink silk
  • frock; rapture lit her face as she unfolded it; coquetry runs in her
  • blood, blends with her brains, and seasons the marrow of her bones. 'Il
  • faut que je l'essaie!' cried she, 'et a l'instant meme!' and she rushed
  • out of the room. She is now with Sophie, undergoing a robing process: in
  • a few minutes she will re-enter; and I know what I shall see,--a
  • miniature of Celine Varens, as she used to appear on the boards at the
  • rising of--But never mind that. However, my tenderest feelings are about
  • to receive a shock: such is my presentiment; stay now, to see whether it
  • will be realised."
  • Ere long, Adele's little foot was heard tripping across the hall. She
  • entered, transformed as her guardian had predicted. A dress of
  • rose-coloured satin, very short, and as full in the skirt as it could be
  • gathered, replaced the brown frock she had previously worn; a wreath of
  • rosebuds circled her forehead; her feet were dressed in silk stockings
  • and small white satin sandals.
  • "Est-ce que ma robe va bien?" cried she, bounding forwards; "et mes
  • souliers? et mes bas? Tenez, je crois que je vais danser!"
  • And spreading out her dress, she chasseed across the room till, having
  • reached Mr. Rochester, she wheeled lightly round before him on tip-toe,
  • then dropped on one knee at his feet, exclaiming--
  • "Monsieur, je vous remercie mille fois de votre bonte;" then rising, she
  • added, "C'est comme cela que maman faisait, n'est-ce pas, monsieur?"
  • "Pre-cise-ly!" was the answer; "and, 'comme cela,' she charmed my English
  • gold out of my British breeches' pocket. I have been green, too, Miss
  • Eyre,--ay, grass green: not a more vernal tint freshens you now than once
  • freshened me. My Spring is gone, however, but it has left me that French
  • floweret on my hands, which, in some moods, I would fain be rid of. Not
  • valuing now the root whence it sprang; having found that it was of a sort
  • which nothing but gold dust could manure, I have but half a liking to the
  • blossom, especially when it looks so artificial as just now. I keep it
  • and rear it rather on the Roman Catholic principle of expiating numerous
  • sins, great or small, by one good work. I'll explain all this some day.
  • Good-night."
  • CHAPTER XV
  • Mr. Rochester did, on a future occasion, explain it. It was one
  • afternoon, when he chanced to meet me and Adele in the grounds: and while
  • she played with Pilot and her shuttlecock, he asked me to walk up and
  • down a long beech avenue within sight of her.
  • He then said that she was the daughter of a French opera-dancer, Celine
  • Varens, towards whom he had once cherished what he called a "_grande
  • passion_." This passion Celine had professed to return with even
  • superior ardour. He thought himself her idol, ugly as he was: he
  • believed, as he said, that she preferred his "_taille d'athlete_" to the
  • elegance of the Apollo Belvidere.
  • "And, Miss Eyre, so much was I flattered by this preference of the Gallic
  • sylph for her British gnome, that I installed her in an hotel; gave her a
  • complete establishment of servants, a carriage, cashmeres, diamonds,
  • dentelles, &c. In short, I began the process of ruining myself in the
  • received style, like any other spoony. I had not, it seems, the
  • originality to chalk out a new road to shame and destruction, but trode
  • the old track with stupid exactness not to deviate an inch from the
  • beaten centre. I had--as I deserved to have--the fate of all other
  • spoonies. Happening to call one evening when Celine did not expect me, I
  • found her out; but it was a warm night, and I was tired with strolling
  • through Paris, so I sat down in her boudoir; happy to breathe the air
  • consecrated so lately by her presence. No,--I exaggerate; I never
  • thought there was any consecrating virtue about her: it was rather a sort
  • of pastille perfume she had left; a scent of musk and amber, than an
  • odour of sanctity. I was just beginning to stifle with the fumes of
  • conservatory flowers and sprinkled essences, when I bethought myself to
  • open the window and step out on to the balcony. It was moonlight and
  • gaslight besides, and very still and serene. The balcony was furnished
  • with a chair or two; I sat down, and took out a cigar,--I will take one
  • now, if you will excuse me."
  • Here ensued a pause, filled up by the producing and lighting of a cigar;
  • having placed it to his lips and breathed a trail of Havannah incense on
  • the freezing and sunless air, he went on--
  • "I liked bonbons too in those days, Miss Eyre, and I was
  • _croquant_--(overlook the barbarism)--_croquant_ chocolate comfits, and
  • smoking alternately, watching meantime the equipages that rolled along
  • the fashionable streets towards the neighbouring opera-house, when in an
  • elegant close carriage drawn by a beautiful pair of English horses, and
  • distinctly seen in the brilliant city-night, I recognised the 'voiture' I
  • had given Celine. She was returning: of course my heart thumped with
  • impatience against the iron rails I leant upon. The carriage stopped, as
  • I had expected, at the hotel door; my flame (that is the very word for an
  • opera inamorata) alighted: though muffed in a cloak--an unnecessary
  • encumbrance, by-the-bye, on so warm a June evening--I knew her instantly
  • by her little foot, seen peeping from the skirt of her dress, as she
  • skipped from the carriage-step. Bending over the balcony, I was about to
  • murmur 'Mon ange'--in a tone, of course, which should be audible to the
  • ear of love alone--when a figure jumped from the carriage after her;
  • cloaked also; but that was a spurred heel which had rung on the pavement,
  • and that was a hatted head which now passed under the arched _porte
  • cochere_ of the hotel.
  • "You never felt jealousy, did you, Miss Eyre? Of course not: I need not
  • ask you; because you never felt love. You have both sentiments yet to
  • experience: your soul sleeps; the shock is yet to be given which shall
  • waken it. You think all existence lapses in as quiet a flow as that in
  • which your youth has hitherto slid away. Floating on with closed eyes
  • and muffled ears, you neither see the rocks bristling not far off in the
  • bed of the flood, nor hear the breakers boil at their base. But I tell
  • you--and you may mark my words--you will come some day to a craggy pass
  • in the channel, where the whole of life's stream will be broken up into
  • whirl and tumult, foam and noise: either you will be dashed to atoms on
  • crag points, or lifted up and borne on by some master-wave into a calmer
  • current--as I am now.
  • "I like this day; I like that sky of steel; I like the sternness and
  • stillness of the world under this frost. I like Thornfield, its
  • antiquity, its retirement, its old crow-trees and thorn-trees, its grey
  • facade, and lines of dark windows reflecting that metal welkin: and yet
  • how long have I abhorred the very thought of it, shunned it like a great
  • plague-house? How I do still abhor--"
  • He ground his teeth and was silent: he arrested his step and struck his
  • boot against the hard ground. Some hated thought seemed to have him in
  • its grip, and to hold him so tightly that he could not advance.
  • We were ascending the avenue when he thus paused; the hall was before us.
  • Lifting his eye to its battlements, he cast over them a glare such as I
  • never saw before or since. Pain, shame, ire, impatience, disgust,
  • detestation, seemed momentarily to hold a quivering conflict in the large
  • pupil dilating under his ebon eyebrow. Wild was the wrestle which should
  • be paramount; but another feeling rose and triumphed: something hard and
  • cynical: self-willed and resolute: it settled his passion and petrified
  • his countenance: he went on--
  • "During the moment I was silent, Miss Eyre, I was arranging a point with
  • my destiny. She stood there, by that beech-trunk--a hag like one of
  • those who appeared to Macbeth on the heath of Forres. 'You like
  • Thornfield?' she said, lifting her finger; and then she wrote in the air
  • a memento, which ran in lurid hieroglyphics all along the house-front,
  • between the upper and lower row of windows, 'Like it if you can! Like it
  • if you dare!'
  • "'I will like it,' said I; 'I dare like it;' and" (he subjoined moodily)
  • "I will keep my word; I will break obstacles to happiness, to
  • goodness--yes, goodness. I wish to be a better man than I have been,
  • than I am; as Job's leviathan broke the spear, the dart, and the
  • habergeon, hindrances which others count as iron and brass, I will esteem
  • but straw and rotten wood."
  • Adele here ran before him with her shuttlecock. "Away!" he cried
  • harshly; "keep at a distance, child; or go in to Sophie!" Continuing
  • then to pursue his walk in silence, I ventured to recall him to the point
  • whence he had abruptly diverged--
  • "Did you leave the balcony, sir," I asked, "when Mdlle. Varens entered?"
  • I almost expected a rebuff for this hardly well-timed question, but, on
  • the contrary, waking out of his scowling abstraction, he turned his eyes
  • towards me, and the shade seemed to clear off his brow. "Oh, I had
  • forgotten Celine! Well, to resume. When I saw my charmer thus come in
  • accompanied by a cavalier, I seemed to hear a hiss, and the green snake
  • of jealousy, rising on undulating coils from the moonlit balcony, glided
  • within my waistcoat, and ate its way in two minutes to my heart's core.
  • Strange!" he exclaimed, suddenly starting again from the point. "Strange
  • that I should choose you for the confidant of all this, young lady;
  • passing strange that you should listen to me quietly, as if it were the
  • most usual thing in the world for a man like me to tell stories of his
  • opera-mistresses to a quaint, inexperienced girl like you! But the last
  • singularity explains the first, as I intimated once before: you, with
  • your gravity, considerateness, and caution were made to be the recipient
  • of secrets. Besides, I know what sort of a mind I have placed in
  • communication with my own: I know it is one not liable to take infection:
  • it is a peculiar mind: it is a unique one. Happily I do not mean to harm
  • it: but, if I did, it would not take harm from me. The more you and I
  • converse, the better; for while I cannot blight you, you may refresh me."
  • After this digression he proceeded--
  • "I remained in the balcony. 'They will come to her boudoir, no doubt,'
  • thought I: 'let me prepare an ambush.' So putting my hand in through the
  • open window, I drew the curtain over it, leaving only an opening through
  • which I could take observations; then I closed the casement, all but a
  • chink just wide enough to furnish an outlet to lovers' whispered vows:
  • then I stole back to my chair; and as I resumed it the pair came in. My
  • eye was quickly at the aperture. Celine's chamber-maid entered, lit a
  • lamp, left it on the table, and withdrew. The couple were thus revealed
  • to me clearly: both removed their cloaks, and there was 'the Varens,'
  • shining in satin and jewels,--my gifts of course,--and there was her
  • companion in an officer's uniform; and I knew him for a young roue of a
  • vicomte--a brainless and vicious youth whom I had sometimes met in
  • society, and had never thought of hating because I despised him so
  • absolutely. On recognising him, the fang of the snake Jealousy was
  • instantly broken; because at the same moment my love for Celine sank
  • under an extinguisher. A woman who could betray me for such a rival was
  • not worth contending for; she deserved only scorn; less, however, than I,
  • who had been her dupe.
  • "They began to talk; their conversation eased me completely: frivolous,
  • mercenary, heartless, and senseless, it was rather calculated to weary
  • than enrage a listener. A card of mine lay on the table; this being
  • perceived, brought my name under discussion. Neither of them possessed
  • energy or wit to belabour me soundly, but they insulted me as coarsely as
  • they could in their little way: especially Celine, who even waxed rather
  • brilliant on my personal defects--deformities she termed them. Now it
  • had been her custom to launch out into fervent admiration of what she
  • called my '_beaute male_:' wherein she differed diametrically from you,
  • who told me point-blank, at the second interview, that you did not think
  • me handsome. The contrast struck me at the time and--"
  • Adele here came running up again.
  • "Monsieur, John has just been to say that your agent has called and
  • wishes to see you."
  • "Ah! in that case I must abridge. Opening the window, I walked in upon
  • them; liberated Celine from my protection; gave her notice to vacate her
  • hotel; offered her a purse for immediate exigencies; disregarded screams,
  • hysterics, prayers, protestations, convulsions; made an appointment with
  • the vicomte for a meeting at the Bois de Boulogne. Next morning I had
  • the pleasure of encountering him; left a bullet in one of his poor
  • etiolated arms, feeble as the wing of a chicken in the pip, and then
  • thought I had done with the whole crew. But unluckily the Varens, six
  • months before, had given me this filette Adele, who, she affirmed, was my
  • daughter; and perhaps she may be, though I see no proofs of such grim
  • paternity written in her countenance: Pilot is more like me than she.
  • Some years after I had broken with the mother, she abandoned her child,
  • and ran away to Italy with a musician or singer. I acknowledged no
  • natural claim on Adele's part to be supported by me, nor do I now
  • acknowledge any, for I am not her father; but hearing that she was quite
  • destitute, I e'en took the poor thing out of the slime and mud of Paris,
  • and transplanted it here, to grow up clean in the wholesome soil of an
  • English country garden. Mrs. Fairfax found you to train it; but now you
  • know that it is the illegitimate offspring of a French opera-girl, you
  • will perhaps think differently of your post and protegee: you will be
  • coming to me some day with notice that you have found another place--that
  • you beg me to look out for a new governess, &c.--Eh?"
  • "No: Adele is not answerable for either her mother's faults or yours: I
  • have a regard for her; and now that I know she is, in a sense,
  • parentless--forsaken by her mother and disowned by you, sir--I shall
  • cling closer to her than before. How could I possibly prefer the spoilt
  • pet of a wealthy family, who would hate her governess as a nuisance, to a
  • lonely little orphan, who leans towards her as a friend?"
  • "Oh, that is the light in which you view it! Well, I must go in now; and
  • you too: it darkens."
  • But I stayed out a few minutes longer with Adele and Pilot--ran a race
  • with her, and played a game of battledore and shuttlecock. When we went
  • in, and I had removed her bonnet and coat, I took her on my knee; kept
  • her there an hour, allowing her to prattle as she liked: not rebuking
  • even some little freedoms and trivialities into which she was apt to
  • stray when much noticed, and which betrayed in her a superficiality of
  • character, inherited probably from her mother, hardly congenial to an
  • English mind. Still she had her merits; and I was disposed to appreciate
  • all that was good in her to the utmost. I sought in her countenance and
  • features a likeness to Mr. Rochester, but found none: no trait, no turn
  • of expression announced relationship. It was a pity: if she could but
  • have been proved to resemble him, he would have thought more of her.
  • It was not till after I had withdrawn to my own chamber for the night,
  • that I steadily reviewed the tale Mr. Rochester had told me. As he had
  • said, there was probably nothing at all extraordinary in the substance of
  • the narrative itself: a wealthy Englishman's passion for a French dancer,
  • and her treachery to him, were every-day matters enough, no doubt, in
  • society; but there was something decidedly strange in the paroxysm of
  • emotion which had suddenly seized him when he was in the act of
  • expressing the present contentment of his mood, and his newly revived
  • pleasure in the old hall and its environs. I meditated wonderingly on
  • this incident; but gradually quitting it, as I found it for the present
  • inexplicable, I turned to the consideration of my master's manner to
  • myself. The confidence he had thought fit to repose in me seemed a
  • tribute to my discretion: I regarded and accepted it as such. His
  • deportment had now for some weeks been more uniform towards me than at
  • the first. I never seemed in his way; he did not take fits of chilling
  • hauteur: when he met me unexpectedly, the encounter seemed welcome; he
  • had always a word and sometimes a smile for me: when summoned by formal
  • invitation to his presence, I was honoured by a cordiality of reception
  • that made me feel I really possessed the power to amuse him, and that
  • these evening conferences were sought as much for his pleasure as for my
  • benefit.
  • I, indeed, talked comparatively little, but I heard him talk with relish.
  • It was his nature to be communicative; he liked to open to a mind
  • unacquainted with the world glimpses of its scenes and ways (I do not
  • mean its corrupt scenes and wicked ways, but such as derived their
  • interest from the great scale on which they were acted, the strange
  • novelty by which they were characterised); and I had a keen delight in
  • receiving the new ideas he offered, in imagining the new pictures he
  • portrayed, and following him in thought through the new regions he
  • disclosed, never startled or troubled by one noxious allusion.
  • The ease of his manner freed me from painful restraint: the friendly
  • frankness, as correct as cordial, with which he treated me, drew me to
  • him. I felt at times as if he were my relation rather than my master:
  • yet he was imperious sometimes still; but I did not mind that; I saw it
  • was his way. So happy, so gratified did I become with this new interest
  • added to life, that I ceased to pine after kindred: my thin
  • crescent-destiny seemed to enlarge; the blanks of existence were filled
  • up; my bodily health improved; I gathered flesh and strength.
  • And was Mr. Rochester now ugly in my eyes? No, reader: gratitude, and
  • many associations, all pleasurable and genial, made his face the object I
  • best liked to see; his presence in a room was more cheering than the
  • brightest fire. Yet I had not forgotten his faults; indeed, I could not,
  • for he brought them frequently before me. He was proud, sardonic, harsh
  • to inferiority of every description: in my secret soul I knew that his
  • great kindness to me was balanced by unjust severity to many others. He
  • was moody, too; unaccountably so; I more than once, when sent for to read
  • to him, found him sitting in his library alone, with his head bent on his
  • folded arms; and, when he looked up, a morose, almost a malignant, scowl
  • blackened his features. But I believed that his moodiness, his
  • harshness, and his former faults of morality (I say _former_, for now he
  • seemed corrected of them) had their source in some cruel cross of fate. I
  • believed he was naturally a man of better tendencies, higher principles,
  • and purer tastes than such as circumstances had developed, education
  • instilled, or destiny encouraged. I thought there were excellent
  • materials in him; though for the present they hung together somewhat
  • spoiled and tangled. I cannot deny that I grieved for his grief,
  • whatever that was, and would have given much to assuage it.
  • Though I had now extinguished my candle and was laid down in bed, I could
  • not sleep for thinking of his look when he paused in the avenue, and told
  • how his destiny had risen up before him, and dared him to be happy at
  • Thornfield.
  • "Why not?" I asked myself. "What alienates him from the house? Will he
  • leave it again soon? Mrs. Fairfax said he seldom stayed here longer than
  • a fortnight at a time; and he has now been resident eight weeks. If he
  • does go, the change will be doleful. Suppose he should be absent spring,
  • summer, and autumn: how joyless sunshine and fine days will seem!"
  • I hardly know whether I had slept or not after this musing; at any rate,
  • I started wide awake on hearing a vague murmur, peculiar and lugubrious,
  • which sounded, I thought, just above me. I wished I had kept my candle
  • burning: the night was drearily dark; my spirits were depressed. I rose
  • and sat up in bed, listening. The sound was hushed.
  • I tried again to sleep; but my heart beat anxiously: my inward
  • tranquillity was broken. The clock, far down in the hall, struck two.
  • Just then it seemed my chamber-door was touched; as if fingers had swept
  • the panels in groping a way along the dark gallery outside. I said, "Who
  • is there?" Nothing answered. I was chilled with fear.
  • All at once I remembered that it might be Pilot, who, when the kitchen-
  • door chanced to be left open, not unfrequently found his way up to the
  • threshold of Mr. Rochester's chamber: I had seen him lying there myself
  • in the mornings. The idea calmed me somewhat: I lay down. Silence
  • composes the nerves; and as an unbroken hush now reigned again through
  • the whole house, I began to feel the return of slumber. But it was not
  • fated that I should sleep that night. A dream had scarcely approached my
  • ear, when it fled affrighted, scared by a marrow-freezing incident
  • enough.
  • This was a demoniac laugh--low, suppressed, and deep--uttered, as it
  • seemed, at the very keyhole of my chamber door. The head of my bed was
  • near the door, and I thought at first the goblin-laugher stood at my
  • bedside--or rather, crouched by my pillow: but I rose, looked round, and
  • could see nothing; while, as I still gazed, the unnatural sound was
  • reiterated: and I knew it came from behind the panels. My first impulse
  • was to rise and fasten the bolt; my next, again to cry out, "Who is
  • there?"
  • Something gurgled and moaned. Ere long, steps retreated up the gallery
  • towards the third-storey staircase: a door had lately been made to shut
  • in that staircase; I heard it open and close, and all was still.
  • "Was that Grace Poole? and is she possessed with a devil?" thought I.
  • Impossible now to remain longer by myself: I must go to Mrs. Fairfax. I
  • hurried on my frock and a shawl; I withdrew the bolt and opened the door
  • with a trembling hand. There was a candle burning just outside, and on
  • the matting in the gallery. I was surprised at this circumstance: but
  • still more was I amazed to perceive the air quite dim, as if filled with
  • smoke; and, while looking to the right hand and left, to find whence
  • these blue wreaths issued, I became further aware of a strong smell of
  • burning.
  • Something creaked: it was a door ajar; and that door was Mr. Rochester's,
  • and the smoke rushed in a cloud from thence. I thought no more of Mrs.
  • Fairfax; I thought no more of Grace Poole, or the laugh: in an instant, I
  • was within the chamber. Tongues of flame darted round the bed: the
  • curtains were on fire. In the midst of blaze and vapour, Mr. Rochester
  • lay stretched motionless, in deep sleep.
  • "Wake! wake!" I cried. I shook him, but he only murmured and turned: the
  • smoke had stupefied him. Not a moment could be lost: the very sheets
  • were kindling, I rushed to his basin and ewer; fortunately, one was wide
  • and the other deep, and both were filled with water. I heaved them up,
  • deluged the bed and its occupant, flew back to my own room, brought my
  • own water-jug, baptized the couch afresh, and, by God's aid, succeeded in
  • extinguishing the flames which were devouring it.
  • The hiss of the quenched element, the breakage of a pitcher which I flung
  • from my hand when I had emptied it, and, above all, the splash of the
  • shower-bath I had liberally bestowed, roused Mr. Rochester at last.
  • Though it was now dark, I knew he was awake; because I heard him
  • fulminating strange anathemas at finding himself lying in a pool of
  • water.
  • "Is there a flood?" he cried.
  • "No, sir," I answered; "but there has been a fire: get up, do; you are
  • quenched now; I will fetch you a candle."
  • "In the name of all the elves in Christendom, is that Jane Eyre?" he
  • demanded. "What have you done with me, witch, sorceress? Who is in the
  • room besides you? Have you plotted to drown me?"
  • "I will fetch you a candle, sir; and, in Heaven's name, get up. Somebody
  • has plotted something: you cannot too soon find out who and what it is."
  • "There! I am up now; but at your peril you fetch a candle yet: wait two
  • minutes till I get into some dry garments, if any dry there be--yes, here
  • is my dressing-gown. Now run!"
  • I did run; I brought the candle which still remained in the gallery. He
  • took it from my hand, held it up, and surveyed the bed, all blackened and
  • scorched, the sheets drenched, the carpet round swimming in water.
  • "What is it? and who did it?" he asked. I briefly related to him what
  • had transpired: the strange laugh I had heard in the gallery: the step
  • ascending to the third storey; the smoke,--the smell of fire which had
  • conducted me to his room; in what state I had found matters there, and
  • how I had deluged him with all the water I could lay hands on.
  • {"What is it and who did it?" he asked: p140.jpg}
  • He listened very gravely; his face, as I went on, expressed more concern
  • than astonishment; he did not immediately speak when I had concluded.
  • "Shall I call Mrs. Fairfax?" I asked.
  • "Mrs. Fairfax? No; what the deuce would you call her for? What can she
  • do? Let her sleep unmolested."
  • "Then I will fetch Leah, and wake John and his wife."
  • "Not at all: just be still. You have a shawl on. If you are not warm
  • enough, you may take my cloak yonder; wrap it about you, and sit down in
  • the arm-chair: there,--I will put it on. Now place your feet on the
  • stool, to keep them out of the wet. I am going to leave you a few
  • minutes. I shall take the candle. Remain where you are till I return;
  • be as still as a mouse. I must pay a visit to the second storey. Don't
  • move, remember, or call any one."
  • He went: I watched the light withdraw. He passed up the gallery very
  • softly, unclosed the staircase door with as little noise as possible,
  • shut it after him, and the last ray vanished. I was left in total
  • darkness. I listened for some noise, but heard nothing. A very long
  • time elapsed. I grew weary: it was cold, in spite of the cloak; and then
  • I did not see the use of staying, as I was not to rouse the house. I was
  • on the point of risking Mr. Rochester's displeasure by disobeying his
  • orders, when the light once more gleamed dimly on the gallery wall, and I
  • heard his unshod feet tread the matting. "I hope it is he," thought I,
  • "and not something worse."
  • He re-entered, pale and very gloomy. "I have found it all out," said he,
  • setting his candle down on the washstand; "it is as I thought."
  • "How, sir?"
  • He made no reply, but stood with his arms folded, looking on the ground.
  • At the end of a few minutes he inquired in rather a peculiar tone--
  • "I forget whether you said you saw anything when you opened your chamber
  • door."
  • "No, sir, only the candlestick on the ground."
  • "But you heard an odd laugh? You have heard that laugh before, I should
  • think, or something like it?"
  • "Yes, sir: there is a woman who sews here, called Grace Poole,--she
  • laughs in that way. She is a singular person."
  • "Just so. Grace Poole--you have guessed it. She is, as you say,
  • singular--very. Well, I shall reflect on the subject. Meantime, I am
  • glad that you are the only person, besides myself, acquainted with the
  • precise details of to-night's incident. You are no talking fool: say
  • nothing about it. I will account for this state of affairs" (pointing to
  • the bed): "and now return to your own room. I shall do very well on the
  • sofa in the library for the rest of the night. It is near four:--in two
  • hours the servants will be up."
  • "Good-night, then, sir," said I, departing.
  • He seemed surprised--very inconsistently so, as he had just told me to
  • go.
  • "What!" he exclaimed, "are you quitting me already, and in that way?"
  • "You said I might go, sir."
  • "But not without taking leave; not without a word or two of
  • acknowledgment and good-will: not, in short, in that brief, dry fashion.
  • Why, you have saved my life!--snatched me from a horrible and
  • excruciating death! and you walk past me as if we were mutual strangers!
  • At least shake hands."
  • He held out his hand; I gave him mine: he took it first in one, them in
  • both his own.
  • "You have saved my life: I have a pleasure in owing you so immense a
  • debt. I cannot say more. Nothing else that has being would have been
  • tolerable to me in the character of creditor for such an obligation: but
  • you: it is different;--I feel your benefits no burden, Jane."
  • He paused; gazed at me: words almost visible trembled on his lips,--but
  • his voice was checked.
  • "Good-night again, sir. There is no debt, benefit, burden, obligation,
  • in the case."
  • "I knew," he continued, "you would do me good in some way, at some
  • time;--I saw it in your eyes when I first beheld you: their expression
  • and smile did not"--(again he stopped)--"did not" (he proceeded hastily)
  • "strike delight to my very inmost heart so for nothing. People talk of
  • natural sympathies; I have heard of good genii: there are grains of truth
  • in the wildest fable. My cherished preserver, goodnight!"
  • Strange energy was in his voice, strange fire in his look.
  • "I am glad I happened to be awake," I said: and then I was going.
  • "What! you _will_ go?"
  • "I am cold, sir."
  • "Cold? Yes,--and standing in a pool! Go, then, Jane; go!" But he still
  • retained my hand, and I could not free it. I bethought myself of an
  • expedient.
  • "I think I hear Mrs. Fairfax move, sir," said I.
  • "Well, leave me:" he relaxed his fingers, and I was gone.
  • I regained my couch, but never thought of sleep. Till morning dawned I
  • was tossed on a buoyant but unquiet sea, where billows of trouble rolled
  • under surges of joy. I thought sometimes I saw beyond its wild waters a
  • shore, sweet as the hills of Beulah; and now and then a freshening gale,
  • wakened by hope, bore my spirit triumphantly towards the bourne: but I
  • could not reach it, even in fancy--a counteracting breeze blew off land,
  • and continually drove me back. Sense would resist delirium: judgment
  • would warn passion. Too feverish to rest, I rose as soon as day dawned.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • I both wished and feared to see Mr. Rochester on the day which followed
  • this sleepless night: I wanted to hear his voice again, yet feared to
  • meet his eye. During the early part of the morning, I momentarily
  • expected his coming; he was not in the frequent habit of entering the
  • schoolroom, but he did step in for a few minutes sometimes, and I had the
  • impression that he was sure to visit it that day.
  • But the morning passed just as usual: nothing happened to interrupt the
  • quiet course of Adele's studies; only soon after breakfast, I heard some
  • bustle in the neighbourhood of Mr. Rochester's chamber, Mrs. Fairfax's
  • voice, and Leah's, and the cook's--that is, John's wife--and even John's
  • own gruff tones. There were exclamations of "What a mercy master was not
  • burnt in his bed!" "It is always dangerous to keep a candle lit at
  • night." "How providential that he had presence of mind to think of the
  • water-jug!" "I wonder he waked nobody!" "It is to be hoped he will not
  • take cold with sleeping on the library sofa," &c.
  • To much confabulation succeeded a sound of scrubbing and setting to
  • rights; and when I passed the room, in going downstairs to dinner, I saw
  • through the open door that all was again restored to complete order; only
  • the bed was stripped of its hangings. Leah stood up in the window-seat,
  • rubbing the panes of glass dimmed with smoke. I was about to address
  • her, for I wished to know what account had been given of the affair: but,
  • on advancing, I saw a second person in the chamber--a woman sitting on a
  • chair by the bedside, and sewing rings to new curtains. That woman was
  • no other than Grace Poole.
  • There she sat, staid and taciturn-looking, as usual, in her brown stuff
  • gown, her check apron, white handkerchief, and cap. She was intent on
  • her work, in which her whole thoughts seemed absorbed: on her hard
  • forehead, and in her commonplace features, was nothing either of the
  • paleness or desperation one would have expected to see marking the
  • countenance of a woman who had attempted murder, and whose intended
  • victim had followed her last night to her lair, and (as I believed),
  • charged her with the crime she wished to perpetrate. I was
  • amazed--confounded. She looked up, while I still gazed at her: no start,
  • no increase or failure of colour betrayed emotion, consciousness of
  • guilt, or fear of detection. She said "Good morning, Miss," in her usual
  • phlegmatic and brief manner; and taking up another ring and more tape,
  • went on with her sewing.
  • "I will put her to some test," thought I: "such absolute impenetrability
  • is past comprehension."
  • "Good morning, Grace," I said. "Has anything happened here? I thought I
  • heard the servants all talking together a while ago."
  • "Only master had been reading in his bed last night; he fell asleep with
  • his candle lit, and the curtains got on fire; but, fortunately, he awoke
  • before the bed-clothes or the wood-work caught, and contrived to quench
  • the flames with the water in the ewer."
  • "A strange affair!" I said, in a low voice: then, looking at her
  • fixedly--"Did Mr. Rochester wake nobody? Did no one hear him move?"
  • She again raised her eyes to me, and this time there was something of
  • consciousness in their expression. She seemed to examine me warily; then
  • she answered--
  • "The servants sleep so far off, you know, Miss, they would not be likely
  • to hear. Mrs. Fairfax's room and yours are the nearest to master's; but
  • Mrs. Fairfax said she heard nothing: when people get elderly, they often
  • sleep heavy." She paused, and then added, with a sort of assumed
  • indifference, but still in a marked and significant tone--"But you are
  • young, Miss; and I should say a light sleeper: perhaps you may have heard
  • a noise?"
  • "I did," said I, dropping my voice, so that Leah, who was still polishing
  • the panes, could not hear me, "and at first I thought it was Pilot: but
  • Pilot cannot laugh; and I am certain I heard a laugh, and a strange one."
  • She took a new needleful of thread, waxed it carefully, threaded her
  • needle with a steady hand, and then observed, with perfect composure--
  • "It is hardly likely master would laugh, I should think, Miss, when he
  • was in such danger: You must have been dreaming."
  • "I was not dreaming," I said, with some warmth, for her brazen coolness
  • provoked me. Again she looked at me; and with the same scrutinising and
  • conscious eye.
  • "Have you told master that you heard a laugh?" she inquired.
  • "I have not had the opportunity of speaking to him this morning."
  • "You did not think of opening your door and looking out into the
  • gallery?" she further asked.
  • She appeared to be cross-questioning me, attempting to draw from me
  • information unawares. The idea struck me that if she discovered I knew
  • or suspected her guilt, she would be playing of some of her malignant
  • pranks on me; I thought it advisable to be on my guard.
  • "On the contrary," said I, "I bolted my door."
  • "Then you are not in the habit of bolting your door every night before
  • you get into bed?"
  • "Fiend! she wants to know my habits, that she may lay her plans
  • accordingly!" Indignation again prevailed over prudence: I replied
  • sharply, "Hitherto I have often omitted to fasten the bolt: I did not
  • think it necessary. I was not aware any danger or annoyance was to be
  • dreaded at Thornfield Hall: but in future" (and I laid marked stress on
  • the words) "I shall take good care to make all secure before I venture to
  • lie down."
  • "It will be wise so to do," was her answer: "this neighbourhood is as
  • quiet as any I know, and I never heard of the hall being attempted by
  • robbers since it was a house; though there are hundreds of pounds' worth
  • of plate in the plate-closet, as is well known. And you see, for such a
  • large house, there are very few servants, because master has never lived
  • here much; and when he does come, being a bachelor, he needs little
  • waiting on: but I always think it best to err on the safe side; a door is
  • soon fastened, and it is as well to have a drawn bolt between one and any
  • mischief that may be about. A deal of people, Miss, are for trusting all
  • to Providence; but I say Providence will not dispense with the means,
  • though He often blesses them when they are used discreetly." And here
  • she closed her harangue: a long one for her, and uttered with the
  • demureness of a Quakeress.
  • I still stood absolutely dumfoundered at what appeared to me her
  • miraculous self-possession and most inscrutable hypocrisy, when the cook
  • entered.
  • "Mrs. Poole," said she, addressing Grace, "the servants' dinner will soon
  • be ready: will you come down?"
  • "No; just put my pint of porter and bit of pudding on a tray, and I'll
  • carry it upstairs."
  • "You'll have some meat?"
  • "Just a morsel, and a taste of cheese, that's all."
  • "And the sago?"
  • "Never mind it at present: I shall be coming down before teatime: I'll
  • make it myself."
  • The cook here turned to me, saying that Mrs. Fairfax was waiting for me:
  • so I departed.
  • I hardly heard Mrs. Fairfax's account of the curtain conflagration during
  • dinner, so much was I occupied in puzzling my brains over the enigmatical
  • character of Grace Poole, and still more in pondering the problem of her
  • position at Thornfield and questioning why she had not been given into
  • custody that morning, or, at the very least, dismissed from her master's
  • service. He had almost as much as declared his conviction of her
  • criminality last night: what mysterious cause withheld him from accusing
  • her? Why had he enjoined me, too, to secrecy? It was strange: a bold,
  • vindictive, and haughty gentleman seemed somehow in the power of one of
  • the meanest of his dependants; so much in her power, that even when she
  • lifted her hand against his life, he dared not openly charge her with the
  • attempt, much less punish her for it.
  • Had Grace been young and handsome, I should have been tempted to think
  • that tenderer feelings than prudence or fear influenced Mr. Rochester in
  • her behalf; but, hard-favoured and matronly as she was, the idea could
  • not be admitted. "Yet," I reflected, "she has been young once; her youth
  • would be contemporary with her master's: Mrs. Fairfax told me once, she
  • had lived here many years. I don't think she can ever have been pretty;
  • but, for aught I know, she may possess originality and strength of
  • character to compensate for the want of personal advantages. Mr.
  • Rochester is an amateur of the decided and eccentric: Grace is eccentric
  • at least. What if a former caprice (a freak very possible to a nature so
  • sudden and headstrong as his) has delivered him into her power, and she
  • now exercises over his actions a secret influence, the result of his own
  • indiscretion, which he cannot shake off, and dare not disregard?" But,
  • having reached this point of conjecture, Mrs. Poole's square, flat
  • figure, and uncomely, dry, even coarse face, recurred so distinctly to my
  • mind's eye, that I thought, "No; impossible! my supposition cannot be
  • correct. Yet," suggested the secret voice which talks to us in our own
  • hearts, "you are not beautiful either, and perhaps Mr. Rochester approves
  • you: at any rate, you have often felt as if he did; and last
  • night--remember his words; remember his look; remember his voice!"
  • I well remembered all; language, glance, and tone seemed at the moment
  • vividly renewed. I was now in the schoolroom; Adele was drawing; I bent
  • over her and directed her pencil. She looked up with a sort of start.
  • "Qu' avez-vous, mademoiselle?" said she. "Vos doigts tremblent comme la
  • feuille, et vos joues sont rouges: mais, rouges comme des cerises!"
  • "I am hot, Adele, with stooping!" She went on sketching; I went on
  • thinking.
  • I hastened to drive from my mind the hateful notion I had been conceiving
  • respecting Grace Poole; it disgusted me. I compared myself with her, and
  • found we were different. Bessie Leaven had said I was quite a lady; and
  • she spoke truth--I was a lady. And now I looked much better than I did
  • when Bessie saw me; I had more colour and more flesh, more life, more
  • vivacity, because I had brighter hopes and keener enjoyments.
  • "Evening approaches," said I, as I looked towards the window. "I have
  • never heard Mr. Rochester's voice or step in the house to-day; but surely
  • I shall see him before night: I feared the meeting in the morning; now I
  • desire it, because expectation has been so long baffled that it is grown
  • impatient."
  • When dusk actually closed, and when Adele left me to go and play in the
  • nursery with Sophie, I did most keenly desire it. I listened for the
  • bell to ring below; I listened for Leah coming up with a message; I
  • fancied sometimes I heard Mr. Rochester's own tread, and I turned to the
  • door, expecting it to open and admit him. The door remained shut;
  • darkness only came in through the window. Still it was not late; he
  • often sent for me at seven and eight o'clock, and it was yet but six.
  • Surely I should not be wholly disappointed to-night, when I had so many
  • things to say to him! I wanted again to introduce the subject of Grace
  • Poole, and to hear what he would answer; I wanted to ask him plainly if
  • he really believed it was she who had made last night's hideous attempt;
  • and if so, why he kept her wickedness a secret. It little mattered
  • whether my curiosity irritated him; I knew the pleasure of vexing and
  • soothing him by turns; it was one I chiefly delighted in, and a sure
  • instinct always prevented me from going too far; beyond the verge of
  • provocation I never ventured; on the extreme brink I liked well to try my
  • skill. Retaining every minute form of respect, every propriety of my
  • station, I could still meet him in argument without fear or uneasy
  • restraint; this suited both him and me.
  • A tread creaked on the stairs at last. Leah made her appearance; but it
  • was only to intimate that tea was ready in Mrs. Fairfax's room. Thither
  • I repaired, glad at least to go downstairs; for that brought me, I
  • imagined, nearer to Mr. Rochester's presence.
  • "You must want your tea," said the good lady, as I joined her; "you ate
  • so little at dinner. I am afraid," she continued, "you are not well to-
  • day: you look flushed and feverish."
  • "Oh, quite well! I never felt better."
  • "Then you must prove it by evincing a good appetite; will you fill the
  • teapot while I knit off this needle?" Having completed her task, she
  • rose to draw down the blind, which she had hitherto kept up, by way, I
  • suppose, of making the most of daylight, though dusk was now fast
  • deepening into total obscurity.
  • "It is fair to-night," said she, as she looked through the panes, "though
  • not starlight; Mr. Rochester has, on the whole, had a favourable day for
  • his journey."
  • "Journey!--Is Mr. Rochester gone anywhere? I did not know he was out."
  • "Oh, he set off the moment he had breakfasted! He is gone to the Leas,
  • Mr. Eshton's place, ten miles on the other side Millcote. I believe
  • there is quite a party assembled there; Lord Ingram, Sir George Lynn,
  • Colonel Dent, and others."
  • "Do you expect him back to-night?"
  • "No--nor to-morrow either; I should think he is very likely to stay a
  • week or more: when these fine, fashionable people get together, they are
  • so surrounded by elegance and gaiety, so well provided with all that can
  • please and entertain, they are in no hurry to separate. Gentlemen
  • especially are often in request on such occasions; and Mr. Rochester is
  • so talented and so lively in society, that I believe he is a general
  • favourite: the ladies are very fond of him; though you would not think
  • his appearance calculated to recommend him particularly in their eyes:
  • but I suppose his acquirements and abilities, perhaps his wealth and good
  • blood, make amends for any little fault of look."
  • "Are there ladies at the Leas?"
  • "There are Mrs. Eshton and her three daughters--very elegant young ladies
  • indeed; and there are the Honourable Blanche and Mary Ingram, most
  • beautiful women, I suppose: indeed I have seen Blanche, six or seven
  • years since, when she was a girl of eighteen. She came here to a
  • Christmas ball and party Mr. Rochester gave. You should have seen the
  • dining-room that day--how richly it was decorated, how brilliantly lit
  • up! I should think there were fifty ladies and gentlemen present--all of
  • the first county families; and Miss Ingram was considered the belle of
  • the evening."
  • "You saw her, you say, Mrs. Fairfax: what was she like?"
  • "Yes, I saw her. The dining-room doors were thrown open; and, as it was
  • Christmas-time, the servants were allowed to assemble in the hall, to
  • hear some of the ladies sing and play. Mr. Rochester would have me to
  • come in, and I sat down in a quiet corner and watched them. I never saw
  • a more splendid scene: the ladies were magnificently dressed; most of
  • them--at least most of the younger ones--looked handsome; but Miss Ingram
  • was certainly the queen."
  • "And what was she like?"
  • "Tall, fine bust, sloping shoulders; long, graceful neck: olive
  • complexion, dark and clear; noble features; eyes rather like Mr.
  • Rochester's: large and black, and as brilliant as her jewels. And then
  • she had such a fine head of hair; raven-black and so becomingly arranged:
  • a crown of thick plaits behind, and in front the longest, the glossiest
  • curls I ever saw. She was dressed in pure white; an amber-coloured scarf
  • was passed over her shoulder and across her breast, tied at the side, and
  • descending in long, fringed ends below her knee. She wore an
  • amber-coloured flower, too, in her hair: it contrasted well with the
  • jetty mass of her curls."
  • "She was greatly admired, of course?"
  • "Yes, indeed: and not only for her beauty, but for her accomplishments.
  • She was one of the ladies who sang: a gentleman accompanied her on the
  • piano. She and Mr. Rochester sang a duet."
  • "Mr. Rochester? I was not aware he could sing."
  • "Oh! he has a fine bass voice, and an excellent taste for music."
  • "And Miss Ingram: what sort of a voice had she?"
  • "A very rich and powerful one: she sang delightfully; it was a treat to
  • listen to her;--and she played afterwards. I am no judge of music, but
  • Mr. Rochester is; and I heard him say her execution was remarkably good."
  • "And this beautiful and accomplished lady, she is not yet married?"
  • "It appears not: I fancy neither she nor her sister have very large
  • fortunes. Old Lord Ingram's estates were chiefly entailed, and the
  • eldest son came in for everything almost."
  • "But I wonder no wealthy nobleman or gentleman has taken a fancy to her:
  • Mr. Rochester, for instance. He is rich, is he not?"
  • "Oh! yes. But you see there is a considerable difference in age: Mr.
  • Rochester is nearly forty; she is but twenty-five."
  • "What of that? More unequal matches are made every day."
  • "True: yet I should scarcely fancy Mr. Rochester would entertain an idea
  • of the sort. But you eat nothing: you have scarcely tasted since you
  • began tea."
  • "No: I am too thirsty to eat. Will you let me have another cup?"
  • I was about again to revert to the probability of a union between Mr.
  • Rochester and the beautiful Blanche; but Adele came in, and the
  • conversation was turned into another channel.
  • When once more alone, I reviewed the information I had got; looked into
  • my heart, examined its thoughts and feelings, and endeavoured to bring
  • back with a strict hand such as had been straying through imagination's
  • boundless and trackless waste, into the safe fold of common sense.
  • Arraigned at my own bar, Memory having given her evidence of the hopes,
  • wishes, sentiments I had been cherishing since last night--of the general
  • state of mind in which I had indulged for nearly a fortnight past; Reason
  • having come forward and told, in her own quiet way a plain, unvarnished
  • tale, showing how I had rejected the real, and rabidly devoured the
  • ideal;--I pronounced judgment to this effect:--
  • That a greater fool than Jane Eyre had never breathed the breath of life;
  • that a more fantastic idiot had never surfeited herself on sweet lies,
  • and swallowed poison as if it were nectar.
  • "_You_," I said, "a favourite with Mr. Rochester? _You_ gifted with the
  • power of pleasing him? _You_ of importance to him in any way? Go! your
  • folly sickens me. And you have derived pleasure from occasional tokens
  • of preference--equivocal tokens shown by a gentleman of family and a man
  • of the world to a dependent and a novice. How dared you? Poor stupid
  • dupe!--Could not even self-interest make you wiser? You repeated to
  • yourself this morning the brief scene of last night?--Cover your face and
  • be ashamed! He said something in praise of your eyes, did he? Blind
  • puppy! Open their bleared lids and look on your own accursed
  • senselessness! It does good to no woman to be flattered by her superior,
  • who cannot possibly intend to marry her; and it is madness in all women
  • to let a secret love kindle within them, which, if unreturned and
  • unknown, must devour the life that feeds it; and, if discovered and
  • responded to, must lead, _ignis-fatuus_-like, into miry wilds whence there
  • is no extrication.
  • "Listen, then, Jane Eyre, to your sentence: to-morrow, place the glass
  • before you, and draw in chalk your own picture, faithfully, without
  • softening one defect; omit no harsh line, smooth away no displeasing
  • irregularity; write under it, 'Portrait of a Governess, disconnected,
  • poor, and plain.'
  • "Afterwards, take a piece of smooth ivory--you have one prepared in your
  • drawing-box: take your palette, mix your freshest, finest, clearest
  • tints; choose your most delicate camel-hair pencils; delineate carefully
  • the loveliest face you can imagine; paint it in your softest shades and
  • sweetest lines, according to the description given by Mrs. Fairfax of
  • Blanche Ingram; remember the raven ringlets, the oriental eye;--What! you
  • revert to Mr. Rochester as a model! Order! No snivel!--no sentiment!--no
  • regret! I will endure only sense and resolution. Recall the august yet
  • harmonious lineaments, the Grecian neck and bust; let the round and
  • dazzling arm be visible, and the delicate hand; omit neither diamond ring
  • nor gold bracelet; portray faithfully the attire, aerial lace and
  • glistening satin, graceful scarf and golden rose; call it 'Blanche, an
  • accomplished lady of rank.'
  • "Whenever, in future, you should chance to fancy Mr. Rochester thinks
  • well of you, take out these two pictures and compare them: say, 'Mr.
  • Rochester might probably win that noble lady's love, if he chose to
  • strive for it; is it likely he would waste a serious thought on this
  • indigent and insignificant plebeian?'"
  • "I'll do it," I resolved: and having framed this determination, I grew
  • calm, and fell asleep.
  • I kept my word. An hour or two sufficed to sketch my own portrait in
  • crayons; and in less than a fortnight I had completed an ivory miniature
  • of an imaginary Blanche Ingram. It looked a lovely face enough, and when
  • compared with the real head in chalk, the contrast was as great as self-
  • control could desire. I derived benefit from the task: it had kept my
  • head and hands employed, and had given force and fixedness to the new
  • impressions I wished to stamp indelibly on my heart.
  • Ere long, I had reason to congratulate myself on the course of wholesome
  • discipline to which I had thus forced my feelings to submit. Thanks to
  • it, I was able to meet subsequent occurrences with a decent calm, which,
  • had they found me unprepared, I should probably have been unequal to
  • maintain, even externally.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • A week passed, and no news arrived of Mr. Rochester: ten days, and still
  • he did not come. Mrs. Fairfax said she should not be surprised if he
  • were to go straight from the Leas to London, and thence to the Continent,
  • and not show his face again at Thornfield for a year to come; he had not
  • unfrequently quitted it in a manner quite as abrupt and unexpected. When
  • I heard this, I was beginning to feel a strange chill and failing at the
  • heart. I was actually permitting myself to experience a sickening sense
  • of disappointment; but rallying my wits, and recollecting my principles,
  • I at once called my sensations to order; and it was wonderful how I got
  • over the temporary blunder--how I cleared up the mistake of supposing Mr.
  • Rochester's movements a matter in which I had any cause to take a vital
  • interest. Not that I humbled myself by a slavish notion of inferiority:
  • on the contrary, I just said--
  • "You have nothing to do with the master of Thornfield, further than to
  • receive the salary he gives you for teaching his protegee, and to be
  • grateful for such respectful and kind treatment as, if you do your duty,
  • you have a right to expect at his hands. Be sure that is the only tie he
  • seriously acknowledges between you and him; so don't make him the object
  • of your fine feelings, your raptures, agonies, and so forth. He is not
  • of your order: keep to your caste, and be too self-respecting to lavish
  • the love of the whole heart, soul, and strength, where such a gift is not
  • wanted and would be despised."
  • I went on with my day's business tranquilly; but ever and anon vague
  • suggestions kept wandering across my brain of reasons why I should quit
  • Thornfield; and I kept involuntarily framing advertisements and pondering
  • conjectures about new situations: these thoughts I did not think to
  • check; they might germinate and bear fruit if they could.
  • Mr. Rochester had been absent upwards of a fortnight, when the post
  • brought Mrs. Fairfax a letter.
  • "It is from the master," said she, as she looked at the direction. "Now
  • I suppose we shall know whether we are to expect his return or not."
  • And while she broke the seal and perused the document, I went on taking
  • my coffee (we were at breakfast): it was hot, and I attributed to that
  • circumstance a fiery glow which suddenly rose to my face. Why my hand
  • shook, and why I involuntarily spilt half the contents of my cup into my
  • saucer, I did not choose to consider.
  • "Well, I sometimes think we are too quiet; but we run a chance of being
  • busy enough now: for a little while at least," said Mrs. Fairfax, still
  • holding the note before her spectacles.
  • Ere I permitted myself to request an explanation, I tied the string of
  • Adele's pinafore, which happened to be loose: having helped her also to
  • another bun and refilled her mug with milk, I said, nonchalantly--
  • "Mr. Rochester is not likely to return soon, I suppose?"
  • "Indeed he is--in three days, he says: that will be next Thursday; and
  • not alone either. I don't know how many of the fine people at the Leas
  • are coming with him: he sends directions for all the best bedrooms to be
  • prepared; and the library and drawing-rooms are to be cleaned out; I am
  • to get more kitchen hands from the George Inn, at Millcote, and from
  • wherever else I can; and the ladies will bring their maids and the
  • gentlemen their valets: so we shall have a full house of it." And Mrs.
  • Fairfax swallowed her breakfast and hastened away to commence operations.
  • The three days were, as she had foretold, busy enough. I had thought all
  • the rooms at Thornfield beautifully clean and well arranged; but it
  • appears I was mistaken. Three women were got to help; and such
  • scrubbing, such brushing, such washing of paint and beating of carpets,
  • such taking down and putting up of pictures, such polishing of mirrors
  • and lustres, such lighting of fires in bedrooms, such airing of sheets
  • and feather-beds on hearths, I never beheld, either before or since.
  • Adele ran quite wild in the midst of it: the preparations for company and
  • the prospect of their arrival, seemed to throw her into ecstasies. She
  • would have Sophie to look over all her "toilettes," as she called frocks;
  • to furbish up any that were "_passees_," and to air and arrange the new.
  • For herself, she did nothing but caper about in the front chambers, jump
  • on and off the bedsteads, and lie on the mattresses and piled-up bolsters
  • and pillows before the enormous fires roaring in the chimneys. From
  • school duties she was exonerated: Mrs. Fairfax had pressed me into her
  • service, and I was all day in the storeroom, helping (or hindering) her
  • and the cook; learning to make custards and cheese-cakes and French
  • pastry, to truss game and garnish desert-dishes.
  • The party were expected to arrive on Thursday afternoon, in time for
  • dinner at six. During the intervening period I had no time to nurse
  • chimeras; and I believe I was as active and gay as anybody--Adele
  • excepted. Still, now and then, I received a damping check to my
  • cheerfulness; and was, in spite of myself, thrown back on the region of
  • doubts and portents, and dark conjectures. This was when I chanced to
  • see the third-storey staircase door (which of late had always been kept
  • locked) open slowly, and give passage to the form of Grace Poole, in prim
  • cap, white apron, and handkerchief; when I watched her glide along the
  • gallery, her quiet tread muffled in a list slipper; when I saw her look
  • into the bustling, topsy-turvy bedrooms,--just say a word, perhaps, to
  • the charwoman about the proper way to polish a grate, or clean a marble
  • mantelpiece, or take stains from papered walls, and then pass on. She
  • would thus descend to the kitchen once a day, eat her dinner, smoke a
  • moderate pipe on the hearth, and go back, carrying her pot of porter with
  • her, for her private solace, in her own gloomy, upper haunt. Only one
  • hour in the twenty-four did she pass with her fellow-servants below; all
  • the rest of her time was spent in some low-ceiled, oaken chamber of the
  • second storey: there she sat and sewed--and probably laughed drearily to
  • herself,--as companionless as a prisoner in his dungeon.
  • The strangest thing of all was, that not a soul in the house, except me,
  • noticed her habits, or seemed to marvel at them: no one discussed her
  • position or employment; no one pitied her solitude or isolation. I once,
  • indeed, overheard part of a dialogue between Leah and one of the
  • charwomen, of which Grace formed the subject. Leah had been saying
  • something I had not caught, and the charwoman remarked--
  • "She gets good wages, I guess?"
  • "Yes," said Leah; "I wish I had as good; not that mine are to complain
  • of,--there's no stinginess at Thornfield; but they're not one fifth of
  • the sum Mrs. Poole receives. And she is laying by: she goes every
  • quarter to the bank at Millcote. I should not wonder but she has saved
  • enough to keep her independent if she liked to leave; but I suppose she's
  • got used to the place; and then she's not forty yet, and strong and able
  • for anything. It is too soon for her to give up business."
  • "She is a good hand, I daresay," said the charwoman.
  • "Ah!--she understands what she has to do,--nobody better," rejoined Leah
  • significantly; "and it is not every one could fill her shoes--not for all
  • the money she gets."
  • "That it is not!" was the reply. "I wonder whether the master--"
  • The charwoman was going on; but here Leah turned and perceived me, and
  • she instantly gave her companion a nudge.
  • "Doesn't she know?" I heard the woman whisper.
  • Leah shook her head, and the conversation was of course dropped. All I
  • had gathered from it amounted to this,--that there was a mystery at
  • Thornfield; and that from participation in that mystery I was purposely
  • excluded.
  • Thursday came: all work had been completed the previous evening; carpets
  • were laid down, bed-hangings festooned, radiant white counterpanes
  • spread, toilet tables arranged, furniture rubbed, flowers piled in vases:
  • both chambers and saloons looked as fresh and bright as hands could make
  • them. The hall, too, was scoured; and the great carved clock, as well as
  • the steps and banisters of the staircase, were polished to the brightness
  • of glass; in the dining-room, the sideboard flashed resplendent with
  • plate; in the drawing-room and boudoir, vases of exotics bloomed on all
  • sides.
  • Afternoon arrived: Mrs. Fairfax assumed her best black satin gown, her
  • gloves, and her gold watch; for it was her part to receive the
  • company,--to conduct the ladies to their rooms, &c. Adele, too, would be
  • dressed: though I thought she had little chance of being introduced to
  • the party that day at least. However, to please her, I allowed Sophie to
  • apparel her in one of her short, full muslin frocks. For myself, I had
  • no need to make any change; I should not be called upon to quit my
  • sanctum of the schoolroom; for a sanctum it was now become to me,--"a
  • very pleasant refuge in time of trouble."
  • It had been a mild, serene spring day--one of those days which, towards
  • the end of March or the beginning of April, rise shining over the earth
  • as heralds of summer. It was drawing to an end now; but the evening was
  • even warm, and I sat at work in the schoolroom with the window open.
  • "It gets late," said Mrs. Fairfax, entering in rustling state. "I am
  • glad I ordered dinner an hour after the time Mr. Rochester mentioned; for
  • it is past six now. I have sent John down to the gates to see if there
  • is anything on the road: one can see a long way from thence in the
  • direction of Millcote." She went to the window. "Here he is!" said she.
  • "Well, John" (leaning out), "any news?"
  • "They're coming, ma'am," was the answer. "They'll be here in ten
  • minutes."
  • Adele flew to the window. I followed, taking care to stand on one side,
  • so that, screened by the curtain, I could see without being seen.
  • The ten minutes John had given seemed very long, but at last wheels were
  • heard; four equestrians galloped up the drive, and after them came two
  • open carriages. Fluttering veils and waving plumes filled the vehicles;
  • two of the cavaliers were young, dashing-looking gentlemen; the third was
  • Mr. Rochester, on his black horse, Mesrour, Pilot bounding before him; at
  • his side rode a lady, and he and she were the first of the party. Her
  • purple riding-habit almost swept the ground, her veil streamed long on
  • the breeze; mingling with its transparent folds, and gleaming through
  • them, shone rich raven ringlets.
  • "Miss Ingram!" exclaimed Mrs. Fairfax, and away she hurried to her post
  • below.
  • The cavalcade, following the sweep of the drive, quickly turned the angle
  • of the house, and I lost sight of it. Adele now petitioned to go down;
  • but I took her on my knee, and gave her to understand that she must not
  • on any account think of venturing in sight of the ladies, either now or
  • at any other time, unless expressly sent for: that Mr. Rochester would be
  • very angry, &c. "Some natural tears she shed" on being told this; but as
  • I began to look very grave, she consented at last to wipe them.
  • A joyous stir was now audible in the hall: gentlemen's deep tones and
  • ladies' silvery accents blent harmoniously together, and distinguishable
  • above all, though not loud, was the sonorous voice of the master of
  • Thornfield Hall, welcoming his fair and gallant guests under its roof.
  • Then light steps ascended the stairs; and there was a tripping through
  • the gallery, and soft cheerful laughs, and opening and closing doors,
  • and, for a time, a hush.
  • "Elles changent de toilettes," said Adele; who, listening attentively,
  • had followed every movement; and she sighed.
  • "Chez maman," said she, "quand il y avait du monde, je le suivais
  • partout, au salon et a leurs chambres; souvent je regardais les femmes de
  • chambre coiffer et habiller les dames, et c'etait si amusant: comme cela
  • on apprend."
  • "Don't you feel hungry, Adele?"
  • "Mais oui, mademoiselle: voila cinq ou six heures que nous n'avons pas
  • mange."
  • "Well now, while the ladies are in their rooms, I will venture down and
  • get you something to eat."
  • And issuing from my asylum with precaution, I sought a back-stairs which
  • conducted directly to the kitchen. All in that region was fire and
  • commotion; the soup and fish were in the last stage of projection, and
  • the cook hung over her crucibles in a frame of mind and body threatening
  • spontaneous combustion. In the servants' hall two coachmen and three
  • gentlemen's gentlemen stood or sat round the fire; the abigails, I
  • suppose, were upstairs with their mistresses; the new servants, that had
  • been hired from Millcote, were bustling about everywhere. Threading this
  • chaos, I at last reached the larder; there I took possession of a cold
  • chicken, a roll of bread, some tarts, a plate or two and a knife and
  • fork: with this booty I made a hasty retreat. I had regained the
  • gallery, and was just shutting the back-door behind me, when an
  • accelerated hum warned me that the ladies were about to issue from their
  • chambers. I could not proceed to the schoolroom without passing some of
  • their doors, and running the risk of being surprised with my cargo of
  • victualage; so I stood still at this end, which, being windowless, was
  • dark: quite dark now, for the sun was set and twilight gathering.
  • Presently the chambers gave up their fair tenants one after another: each
  • came out gaily and airily, with dress that gleamed lustrous through the
  • dusk. For a moment they stood grouped together at the other extremity of
  • the gallery, conversing in a key of sweet subdued vivacity: they then
  • descended the staircase almost as noiselessly as a bright mist rolls down
  • a hill. Their collective appearance had left on me an impression of high-
  • born elegance, such as I had never before received.
  • I found Adele peeping through the schoolroom door, which she held ajar.
  • "What beautiful ladies!" cried she in English. "Oh, I wish I might go to
  • them! Do you think Mr. Rochester will send for us by-and-bye, after
  • dinner?"
  • "No, indeed, I don't; Mr. Rochester has something else to think about.
  • Never mind the ladies to-night; perhaps you will see them to-morrow: here
  • is your dinner."
  • She was really hungry, so the chicken and tarts served to divert her
  • attention for a time. It was well I secured this forage, or both she, I,
  • and Sophie, to whom I conveyed a share of our repast, would have run a
  • chance of getting no dinner at all: every one downstairs was too much
  • engaged to think of us. The dessert was not carried out till after nine
  • and at ten footmen were still running to and fro with trays and coffee-
  • cups. I allowed Adele to sit up much later than usual; for she declared
  • she could not possibly go to sleep while the doors kept opening and
  • shutting below, and people bustling about. Besides, she added, a message
  • might possibly come from Mr. Rochester when she was undressed; "et alors
  • quel dommage!"
  • I told her stories as long as she would listen to them; and then for a
  • change I took her out into the gallery. The hall lamp was now lit, and
  • it amused her to look over the balustrade and watch the servants passing
  • backwards and forwards. When the evening was far advanced, a sound of
  • music issued from the drawing-room, whither the piano had been removed;
  • Adele and I sat down on the top step of the stairs to listen. Presently
  • a voice blent with the rich tones of the instrument; it was a lady who
  • sang, and very sweet her notes were. The solo over, a duet followed, and
  • then a glee: a joyous conversational murmur filled up the intervals. I
  • listened long: suddenly I discovered that my ear was wholly intent on
  • analysing the mingled sounds, and trying to discriminate amidst the
  • confusion of accents those of Mr. Rochester; and when it caught them,
  • which it soon did, it found a further task in framing the tones, rendered
  • by distance inarticulate, into words.
  • The clock struck eleven. I looked at Adele, whose head leant against my
  • shoulder; her eyes were waxing heavy, so I took her up in my arms and
  • carried her off to bed. It was near one before the gentlemen and ladies
  • sought their chambers.
  • The next day was as fine as its predecessor: it was devoted by the party
  • to an excursion to some site in the neighbourhood. They set out early in
  • the forenoon, some on horseback, the rest in carriages; I witnessed both
  • the departure and the return. Miss Ingram, as before, was the only lady
  • equestrian; and, as before, Mr. Rochester galloped at her side; the two
  • rode a little apart from the rest. I pointed out this circumstance to
  • Mrs. Fairfax, who was standing at the window with me--
  • "You said it was not likely they should think of being married," said I,
  • "but you see Mr. Rochester evidently prefers her to any of the other
  • ladies."
  • "Yes, I daresay: no doubt he admires her."
  • "And she him," I added; "look how she leans her head towards him as if
  • she were conversing confidentially; I wish I could see her face; I have
  • never had a glimpse of it yet."
  • "You will see her this evening," answered Mrs. Fairfax. "I happened to
  • remark to Mr. Rochester how much Adele wished to be introduced to the
  • ladies, and he said: 'Oh! let her come into the drawing-room after
  • dinner; and request Miss Eyre to accompany her.'"
  • "Yes; he said that from mere politeness: I need not go, I am sure," I
  • answered.
  • "Well, I observed to him that as you were unused to company, I did not
  • think you would like appearing before so gay a party--all strangers; and
  • he replied, in his quick way--'Nonsense! If she objects, tell her it is
  • my particular wish; and if she resists, say I shall come and fetch her in
  • case of contumacy.'"
  • "I will not give him that trouble," I answered. "I will go, if no better
  • may be; but I don't like it. Shall you be there, Mrs. Fairfax?"
  • "No; I pleaded off, and he admitted my plea. I'll tell you how to manage
  • so as to avoid the embarrassment of making a formal entrance, which is
  • the most disagreeable part of the business. You must go into the drawing-
  • room while it is empty, before the ladies leave the dinner-table; choose
  • your seat in any quiet nook you like; you need not stay long after the
  • gentlemen come in, unless you please: just let Mr. Rochester see you are
  • there and then slip away--nobody will notice you."
  • "Will these people remain long, do you think?"
  • "Perhaps two or three weeks, certainly not more. After the Easter
  • recess, Sir George Lynn, who was lately elected member for Millcote, will
  • have to go up to town and take his seat; I daresay Mr. Rochester will
  • accompany him: it surprises me that he has already made so protracted a
  • stay at Thornfield."
  • It was with some trepidation that I perceived the hour approach when I
  • was to repair with my charge to the drawing-room. Adele had been in a
  • state of ecstasy all day, after hearing she was to be presented to the
  • ladies in the evening; and it was not till Sophie commenced the operation
  • of dressing her that she sobered down. Then the importance of the
  • process quickly steadied her, and by the time she had her curls arranged
  • in well-smoothed, drooping clusters, her pink satin frock put on, her
  • long sash tied, and her lace mittens adjusted, she looked as grave as any
  • judge. No need to warn her not to disarrange her attire: when she was
  • dressed, she sat demurely down in her little chair, taking care
  • previously to lift up the satin skirt for fear she should crease it, and
  • assured me she would not stir thence till I was ready. This I quickly
  • was: my best dress (the silver-grey one, purchased for Miss Temple's
  • wedding, and never worn since) was soon put on; my hair was soon
  • smoothed; my sole ornament, the pearl brooch, soon assumed. We
  • descended.
  • Fortunately there was another entrance to the drawing-room than that
  • through the saloon where they were all seated at dinner. We found the
  • apartment vacant; a large fire burning silently on the marble hearth, and
  • wax candles shining in bright solitude, amid the exquisite flowers with
  • which the tables were adorned. The crimson curtain hung before the arch:
  • slight as was the separation this drapery formed from the party in the
  • adjoining saloon, they spoke in so low a key that nothing of their
  • conversation could be distinguished beyond a soothing murmur.
  • Adele, who appeared to be still under the influence of a most solemnising
  • impression, sat down, without a word, on the footstool I pointed out to
  • her. I retired to a window-seat, and taking a book from a table near,
  • endeavoured to read. Adele brought her stool to my feet; ere long she
  • touched my knee.
  • "What is it, Adele?"
  • "Est-ce que je ne puis pas prendrie une seule de ces fleurs magnifiques,
  • mademoiselle? Seulement pour completer ma toilette."
  • "You think too much of your 'toilette,' Adele: but you may have a
  • flower." And I took a rose from a vase and fastened it in her sash. She
  • sighed a sigh of ineffable satisfaction, as if her cup of happiness were
  • now full. I turned my face away to conceal a smile I could not suppress:
  • there was something ludicrous as well as painful in the little
  • Parisienne's earnest and innate devotion to matters of dress.
  • A soft sound of rising now became audible; the curtain was swept back
  • from the arch; through it appeared the dining-room, with its lit lustre
  • pouring down light on the silver and glass of a magnificent
  • dessert-service covering a long table; a band of ladies stood in the
  • opening; they entered, and the curtain fell behind them.
  • There were but eight; yet, somehow, as they flocked in, they gave the
  • impression of a much larger number. Some of them were very tall; many
  • were dressed in white; and all had a sweeping amplitude of array that
  • seemed to magnify their persons as a mist magnifies the moon. I rose and
  • curtseyed to them: one or two bent their heads in return, the others only
  • stared at me.
  • They dispersed about the room, reminding me, by the lightness and
  • buoyancy of their movements, of a flock of white plumy birds. Some of
  • them threw themselves in half-reclining positions on the sofas and
  • ottomans: some bent over the tables and examined the flowers and books:
  • the rest gathered in a group round the fire: all talked in a low but
  • clear tone which seemed habitual to them. I knew their names afterwards,
  • and may as well mention them now.
  • First, there was Mrs. Eshton and two of her daughters. She had evidently
  • been a handsome woman, and was well preserved still. Of her daughters,
  • the eldest, Amy, was rather little: naive, and child-like in face and
  • manner, and piquant in form; her white muslin dress and blue sash became
  • her well. The second, Louisa, was taller and more elegant in figure;
  • with a very pretty face, of that order the French term _minois chiffone_:
  • both sisters were fair as lilies.
  • Lady Lynn was a large and stout personage of about forty, very erect,
  • very haughty-looking, richly dressed in a satin robe of changeful sheen:
  • her dark hair shone glossily under the shade of an azure plume, and
  • within the circlet of a band of gems.
  • Mrs. Colonel Dent was less showy; but, I thought, more lady-like. She
  • had a slight figure, a pale, gentle face, and fair hair. Her black satin
  • dress, her scarf of rich foreign lace, and her pearl ornaments, pleased
  • me better than the rainbow radiance of the titled dame.
  • But the three most distinguished--partly, perhaps, because the tallest
  • figures of the band--were the Dowager Lady Ingram and her daughters,
  • Blanche and Mary. They were all three of the loftiest stature of women.
  • The Dowager might be between forty and fifty: her shape was still fine;
  • her hair (by candle-light at least) still black; her teeth, too, were
  • still apparently perfect. Most people would have termed her a splendid
  • woman of her age: and so she was, no doubt, physically speaking; but then
  • there was an expression of almost insupportable haughtiness in her
  • bearing and countenance. She had Roman features and a double chin,
  • disappearing into a throat like a pillar: these features appeared to me
  • not only inflated and darkened, but even furrowed with pride; and the
  • chin was sustained by the same principle, in a position of almost
  • preternatural erectness. She had, likewise, a fierce and a hard eye: it
  • reminded me of Mrs. Reed's; she mouthed her words in speaking; her voice
  • was deep, its inflections very pompous, very dogmatical,--very
  • intolerable, in short. A crimson velvet robe, and a shawl turban of some
  • gold-wrought Indian fabric, invested her (I suppose she thought) with a
  • truly imperial dignity.
  • Blanche and Mary were of equal stature,--straight and tall as poplars.
  • Mary was too slim for her height, but Blanche was moulded like a Dian. I
  • regarded her, of course, with special interest. First, I wished to see
  • whether her appearance accorded with Mrs. Fairfax's description;
  • secondly, whether it at all resembled the fancy miniature I had painted
  • of her; and thirdly--it will out!--whether it were such as I should fancy
  • likely to suit Mr. Rochester's taste.
  • As far as person went, she answered point for point, both to my picture
  • and Mrs. Fairfax's description. The noble bust, the sloping shoulders,
  • the graceful neck, the dark eyes and black ringlets were all there;--but
  • her face? Her face was like her mother's; a youthful unfurrowed
  • likeness: the same low brow, the same high features, the same pride. It
  • was not, however, so saturnine a pride! she laughed continually; her
  • laugh was satirical, and so was the habitual expression of her arched and
  • haughty lip.
  • Genius is said to be self-conscious. I cannot tell whether Miss Ingram
  • was a genius, but she was self-conscious--remarkably self-conscious
  • indeed. She entered into a discourse on botany with the gentle Mrs.
  • Dent. It seemed Mrs. Dent had not studied that science: though, as she
  • said, she liked flowers, "especially wild ones;" Miss Ingram had, and she
  • ran over its vocabulary with an air. I presently perceived she was (what
  • is vernacularly termed) _trailing_ Mrs. Dent; that is, playing on her
  • ignorance--her _trail_ might be clever, but it was decidedly not good-
  • natured. She played: her execution was brilliant; she sang: her voice
  • was fine; she talked French apart to her mamma; and she talked it well,
  • with fluency and with a good accent.
  • Mary had a milder and more open countenance than Blanche; softer features
  • too, and a skin some shades fairer (Miss Ingram was dark as a
  • Spaniard)--but Mary was deficient in life: her face lacked expression,
  • her eye lustre; she had nothing to say, and having once taken her seat,
  • remained fixed like a statue in its niche. The sisters were both attired
  • in spotless white.
  • And did I now think Miss Ingram such a choice as Mr. Rochester would be
  • likely to make? I could not tell--I did not know his taste in female
  • beauty. If he liked the majestic, she was the very type of majesty: then
  • she was accomplished, sprightly. Most gentlemen would admire her, I
  • thought; and that he _did_ admire her, I already seemed to have obtained
  • proof: to remove the last shade of doubt, it remained but to see them
  • together.
  • You are not to suppose, reader, that Adele has all this time been sitting
  • motionless on the stool at my feet: no; when the ladies entered, she
  • rose, advanced to meet them, made a stately reverence, and said with
  • gravity--
  • "Bon jour, mesdames."
  • And Miss Ingram had looked down at her with a mocking air, and exclaimed,
  • "Oh, what a little puppet!"
  • Lady Lynn had remarked, "It is Mr. Rochester's ward, I suppose--the
  • little French girl he was speaking of."
  • Mrs. Dent had kindly taken her hand, and given her a kiss.
  • Amy and Louisa Eshton had cried out simultaneously--"What a love of a
  • child!"
  • And then they had called her to a sofa, where she now sat, ensconced
  • between them, chattering alternately in French and broken English;
  • absorbing not only the young ladies' attention, but that of Mrs. Eshton
  • and Lady Lynn, and getting spoilt to her heart's content.
  • At last coffee is brought in, and the gentlemen are summoned. I sit in
  • the shade--if any shade there be in this brilliantly-lit apartment; the
  • window-curtain half hides me. Again the arch yawns; they come. The
  • collective appearance of the gentlemen, like that of the ladies, is very
  • imposing: they are all costumed in black; most of them are tall, some
  • young. Henry and Frederick Lynn are very dashing sparks indeed; and
  • Colonel Dent is a fine soldierly man. Mr. Eshton, the magistrate of the
  • district, is gentleman-like: his hair is quite white, his eyebrows and
  • whiskers still dark, which gives him something of the appearance of a
  • "pere noble de theatre." Lord Ingram, like his sisters, is very tall;
  • like them, also, he is handsome; but he shares Mary's apathetic and
  • listless look: he seems to have more length of limb than vivacity of
  • blood or vigour of brain.
  • And where is Mr. Rochester?
  • He comes in last: I am not looking at the arch, yet I see him enter. I
  • try to concentrate my attention on those netting-needles, on the meshes
  • of the purse I am forming--I wish to think only of the work I have in my
  • hands, to see only the silver beads and silk threads that lie in my lap;
  • whereas, I distinctly behold his figure, and I inevitably recall the
  • moment when I last saw it; just after I had rendered him, what he deemed,
  • an essential service, and he, holding my hand, and looking down on my
  • face, surveyed me with eyes that revealed a heart full and eager to
  • overflow; in whose emotions I had a part. How near had I approached him
  • at that moment! What had occurred since, calculated to change his and my
  • relative positions? Yet now, how distant, how far estranged we were! So
  • far estranged, that I did not expect him to come and speak to me. I did
  • not wonder, when, without looking at me, he took a seat at the other side
  • of the room, and began conversing with some of the ladies.
  • No sooner did I see that his attention was riveted on them, and that I
  • might gaze without being observed, than my eyes were drawn involuntarily
  • to his face; I could not keep their lids under control: they would rise,
  • and the irids would fix on him. I looked, and had an acute pleasure in
  • looking,--a precious yet poignant pleasure; pure gold, with a steely
  • point of agony: a pleasure like what the thirst-perishing man might feel
  • who knows the well to which he has crept is poisoned, yet stoops and
  • drinks divine draughts nevertheless.
  • Most true is it that "beauty is in the eye of the gazer." My master's
  • colourless, olive face, square, massive brow, broad and jetty eyebrows,
  • deep eyes, strong features, firm, grim mouth,--all energy, decision,
  • will,--were not beautiful, according to rule; but they were more than
  • beautiful to me; they were full of an interest, an influence that quite
  • mastered me,--that took my feelings from my own power and fettered them
  • in his. I had not intended to love him; the reader knows I had wrought
  • hard to extirpate from my soul the germs of love there detected; and now,
  • at the first renewed view of him, they spontaneously arrived, green and
  • strong! He made me love him without looking at me.
  • I compared him with his guests. What was the gallant grace of the Lynns,
  • the languid elegance of Lord Ingram,--even the military distinction of
  • Colonel Dent, contrasted with his look of native pith and genuine power?
  • I had no sympathy in their appearance, their expression: yet I could
  • imagine that most observers would call them attractive, handsome,
  • imposing; while they would pronounce Mr. Rochester at once harsh-featured
  • and melancholy-looking. I saw them smile, laugh--it was nothing; the
  • light of the candles had as much soul in it as their smile; the tinkle of
  • the bell as much significance as their laugh. I saw Mr. Rochester
  • smile:--his stern features softened; his eye grew both brilliant and
  • gentle, its ray both searching and sweet. He was talking, at the moment,
  • to Louisa and Amy Eshton. I wondered to see them receive with calm that
  • look which seemed to me so penetrating: I expected their eyes to fall,
  • their colour to rise under it; yet I was glad when I found they were in
  • no sense moved. "He is not to them what he is to me," I thought: "he is
  • not of their kind. I believe he is of mine;--I am sure he is--I feel
  • akin to him--I understand the language of his countenance and movements:
  • though rank and wealth sever us widely, I have something in my brain and
  • heart, in my blood and nerves, that assimilates me mentally to him. Did
  • I say, a few days since, that I had nothing to do with him but to receive
  • my salary at his hands? Did I forbid myself to think of him in any other
  • light than as a paymaster? Blasphemy against nature! Every good, true,
  • vigorous feeling I have gathers impulsively round him. I know I must
  • conceal my sentiments: I must smother hope; I must remember that he
  • cannot care much for me. For when I say that I am of his kind, I do not
  • mean that I have his force to influence, and his spell to attract; I mean
  • only that I have certain tastes and feelings in common with him. I must,
  • then, repeat continually that we are for ever sundered:--and yet, while I
  • breathe and think, I must love him."
  • Coffee is handed. The ladies, since the gentlemen entered, have become
  • lively as larks; conversation waxes brisk and merry. Colonel Dent and
  • Mr. Eshton argue on politics; their wives listen. The two proud
  • dowagers, Lady Lynn and Lady Ingram, confabulate together. Sir
  • George--whom, by-the-bye, I have forgotten to describe,--a very big, and
  • very fresh-looking country gentleman, stands before their sofa, coffee-
  • cup in hand, and occasionally puts in a word. Mr. Frederick Lynn has
  • taken a seat beside Mary Ingram, and is showing her the engravings of a
  • splendid volume: she looks, smiles now and then, but apparently says
  • little. The tall and phlegmatic Lord Ingram leans with folded arms on
  • the chair-back of the little and lively Amy Eshton; she glances up at
  • him, and chatters like a wren: she likes him better than she does Mr.
  • Rochester. Henry Lynn has taken possession of an ottoman at the feet of
  • Louisa: Adele shares it with him: he is trying to talk French with her,
  • and Louisa laughs at his blunders. With whom will Blanche Ingram pair?
  • She is standing alone at the table, bending gracefully over an album. She
  • seems waiting to be sought; but she will not wait too long: she herself
  • selects a mate.
  • Mr. Rochester, having quitted the Eshtons, stands on the hearth as
  • solitary as she stands by the table: she confronts him, taking her
  • station on the opposite side of the mantelpiece.
  • "Mr. Rochester, I thought you were not fond of children?"
  • "Nor am I."
  • "Then, what induced you to take charge of such a little doll as that?"
  • (pointing to Adele). "Where did you pick her up?"
  • "I did not pick her up; she was left on my hands."
  • "You should have sent her to school."
  • "I could not afford it: schools are so dear."
  • "Why, I suppose you have a governess for her: I saw a person with her
  • just now--is she gone? Oh, no! there she is still, behind the window-
  • curtain. You pay her, of course; I should think it quite as
  • expensive,--more so; for you have them both to keep in addition."
  • I feared--or should I say, hoped?--the allusion to me would make Mr.
  • Rochester glance my way; and I involuntarily shrank farther into the
  • shade: but he never turned his eyes.
  • "I have not considered the subject," said he indifferently, looking
  • straight before him.
  • "No, you men never do consider economy and common sense. You should hear
  • mama on the chapter of governesses: Mary and I have had, I should think,
  • a dozen at least in our day; half of them detestable and the rest
  • ridiculous, and all incubi--were they not, mama?"
  • "Did you speak, my own?"
  • The young lady thus claimed as the dowager's special property, reiterated
  • her question with an explanation.
  • "My dearest, don't mention governesses; the word makes me nervous. I
  • have suffered a martyrdom from their incompetency and caprice. I thank
  • Heaven I have now done with them!"
  • Mrs. Dent here bent over to the pious lady and whispered something in her
  • ear; I suppose, from the answer elicited, it was a reminder that one of
  • the anathematised race was present.
  • "Tant pis!" said her Ladyship, "I hope it may do her good!" Then, in a
  • lower tone, but still loud enough for me to hear, "I noticed her; I am a
  • judge of physiognomy, and in hers I see all the faults of her class."
  • "What are they, madam?" inquired Mr. Rochester aloud.
  • "I will tell you in your private ear," replied she, wagging her turban
  • three times with portentous significancy.
  • "But my curiosity will be past its appetite; it craves food now."
  • "Ask Blanche; she is nearer you than I."
  • "Oh, don't refer him to me, mama! I have just one word to say of the
  • whole tribe; they are a nuisance. Not that I ever suffered much from
  • them; I took care to turn the tables. What tricks Theodore and I used to
  • play on our Miss Wilsons, and Mrs. Greys, and Madame Jouberts! Mary was
  • always too sleepy to join in a plot with spirit. The best fun was with
  • Madame Joubert: Miss Wilson was a poor sickly thing, lachrymose and low-
  • spirited, not worth the trouble of vanquishing, in short; and Mrs. Grey
  • was coarse and insensible; no blow took effect on her. But poor Madame
  • Joubert! I see her yet in her raging passions, when we had driven her to
  • extremities--spilt our tea, crumbled our bread and butter, tossed our
  • books up to the ceiling, and played a charivari with the ruler and desk,
  • the fender and fire-irons. Theodore, do you remember those merry days?"
  • "Yaas, to be sure I do," drawled Lord Ingram; "and the poor old stick
  • used to cry out 'Oh you villains childs!'--and then we sermonised her on
  • the presumption of attempting to teach such clever blades as we were,
  • when she was herself so ignorant."
  • "We did; and, Tedo, you know, I helped you in prosecuting (or
  • persecuting) your tutor, whey-faced Mr. Vining--the parson in the pip, as
  • we used to call him. He and Miss Wilson took the liberty of falling in
  • love with each other--at least Tedo and I thought so; we surprised sundry
  • tender glances and sighs which we interpreted as tokens of 'la belle
  • passion,' and I promise you the public soon had the benefit of our
  • discovery; we employed it as a sort of lever to hoist our dead-weights
  • from the house. Dear mama, there, as soon as she got an inkling of the
  • business, found out that it was of an immoral tendency. Did you not, my
  • lady-mother?"
  • "Certainly, my best. And I was quite right: depend on that: there are a
  • thousand reasons why liaisons between governesses and tutors should never
  • be tolerated a moment in any well-regulated house; firstly--"
  • "Oh, gracious, mama! Spare us the enumeration! _Au reste_, we all know
  • them: danger of bad example to innocence of childhood; distractions and
  • consequent neglect of duty on the part of the attached--mutual alliance
  • and reliance; confidence thence resulting--insolence accompanying--mutiny
  • and general blow-up. Am I right, Baroness Ingram, of Ingram Park?"
  • "My lily-flower, you are right now, as always."
  • "Then no more need be said: change the subject."
  • Amy Eshton, not hearing or not heeding this dictum, joined in with her
  • soft, infantine tone: "Louisa and I used to quiz our governess too; but
  • she was such a good creature, she would bear anything: nothing put her
  • out. She was never cross with us; was she, Louisa?"
  • "No, never: we might do what we pleased; ransack her desk and her
  • workbox, and turn her drawers inside out; and she was so good-natured,
  • she would give us anything we asked for."
  • "I suppose, now," said Miss Ingram, curling her lip sarcastically, "we
  • shall have an abstract of the memoirs of all the governesses extant: in
  • order to avert such a visitation, I again move the introduction of a new
  • topic. Mr. Rochester, do you second my motion?"
  • "Madam, I support you on this point, as on every other."
  • "Then on me be the onus of bringing it forward. Signior Eduardo, are you
  • in voice to-night?"
  • "Donna Bianca, if you command it, I will be."
  • "Then, signior, I lay on you my sovereign behest to furbish up your lungs
  • and other vocal organs, as they will be wanted on my royal service."
  • "Who would not be the Rizzio of so divine a Mary?"
  • "A fig for Rizzio!" cried she, tossing her head with all its curls, as
  • she moved to the piano. "It is my opinion the fiddler David must have
  • been an insipid sort of fellow; I like black Bothwell better: to my mind
  • a man is nothing without a spice of the devil in him; and history may say
  • what it will of James Hepburn, but I have a notion, he was just the sort
  • of wild, fierce, bandit hero whom I could have consented to gift with my
  • hand."
  • "Gentlemen, you hear! Now which of you most resembles Bothwell?" cried
  • Mr. Rochester.
  • "I should say the preference lies with you," responded Colonel Dent.
  • "On my honour, I am much obliged to you," was the reply.
  • Miss Ingram, who had now seated herself with proud grace at the piano,
  • spreading out her snowy robes in queenly amplitude, commenced a brilliant
  • prelude; talking meantime. She appeared to be on her high horse
  • to-night; both her words and her air seemed intended to excite not only
  • the admiration, but the amazement of her auditors: she was evidently bent
  • on striking them as something very dashing and daring indeed.
  • "Oh, I am so sick of the young men of the present day!" exclaimed she,
  • rattling away at the instrument. "Poor, puny things, not fit to stir a
  • step beyond papa's park gates: nor to go even so far without mama's
  • permission and guardianship! Creatures so absorbed in care about their
  • pretty faces, and their white hands, and their small feet; as if a man
  • had anything to do with beauty! As if loveliness were not the special
  • prerogative of woman--her legitimate appanage and heritage! I grant an
  • ugly _woman_ is a blot on the fair face of creation; but as to the
  • _gentlemen_, let them be solicitous to possess only strength and valour:
  • let their motto be:--Hunt, shoot, and fight: the rest is not worth a
  • fillip. Such should be my device, were I a man."
  • "Whenever I marry," she continued after a pause which none interrupted,
  • "I am resolved my husband shall not be a rival, but a foil to me. I will
  • suffer no competitor near the throne; I shall exact an undivided homage:
  • his devotions shall not be shared between me and the shape he sees in his
  • mirror. Mr. Rochester, now sing, and I will play for you."
  • "I am all obedience," was the response.
  • "Here then is a Corsair-song. Know that I doat on Corsairs; and for that
  • reason, sing it _con spirito_."
  • "Commands from Miss Ingram's lips would put spirit into a mug of milk and
  • water."
  • "Take care, then: if you don't please me, I will shame you by showing how
  • such things _should_ be done."
  • "That is offering a premium on incapacity: I shall now endeavour to
  • fail."
  • "Gardez-vous en bien! If you err wilfully, I shall devise a
  • proportionate punishment."
  • "Miss Ingram ought to be clement, for she has it in her power to inflict
  • a chastisement beyond mortal endurance."
  • "Ha! explain!" commanded the lady.
  • "Pardon me, madam: no need of explanation; your own fine sense must
  • inform you that one of your frowns would be a sufficient substitute for
  • capital punishment."
  • "Sing!" said she, and again touching the piano, she commenced an
  • accompaniment in spirited style.
  • "Now is my time to slip away," thought I: but the tones that then severed
  • the air arrested me. Mrs. Fairfax had said Mr. Rochester possessed a
  • fine voice: he did--a mellow, powerful bass, into which he threw his own
  • feeling, his own force; finding a way through the ear to the heart, and
  • there waking sensation strangely. I waited till the last deep and full
  • vibration had expired--till the tide of talk, checked an instant, had
  • resumed its flow; I then quitted my sheltered corner and made my exit by
  • the side-door, which was fortunately near. Thence a narrow passage led
  • into the hall: in crossing it, I perceived my sandal was loose; I stopped
  • to tie it, kneeling down for that purpose on the mat at the foot of the
  • staircase. I heard the dining-room door unclose; a gentleman came out;
  • rising hastily, I stood face to face with him: it was Mr. Rochester.
  • "How do you do?" he asked.
  • "I am very well, sir."
  • "Why did you not come and speak to me in the room?"
  • I thought I might have retorted the question on him who put it: but I
  • would not take that freedom. I answered--
  • "I did not wish to disturb you, as you seemed engaged, sir."
  • "What have you been doing during my absence?"
  • "Nothing particular; teaching Adele as usual."
  • "And getting a good deal paler than you were--as I saw at first sight.
  • What is the matter?"
  • "Nothing at all, sir."
  • "Did you take any cold that night you half drowned me?"
  • "Not the least."
  • "Return to the drawing-room: you are deserting too early."
  • "I am tired, sir."
  • He looked at me for a minute.
  • "And a little depressed," he said. "What about? Tell me."
  • "Nothing--nothing, sir. I am not depressed."
  • "But I affirm that you are: so much depressed that a few more words would
  • bring tears to your eyes--indeed, they are there now, shining and
  • swimming; and a bead has slipped from the lash and fallen on to the flag.
  • If I had time, and was not in mortal dread of some prating prig of a
  • servant passing, I would know what all this means. Well, to-night I
  • excuse you; but understand that so long as my visitors stay, I expect you
  • to appear in the drawing-room every evening; it is my wish; don't neglect
  • it. Now go, and send Sophie for Adele. Good-night, my--" He stopped,
  • bit his lip, and abruptly left me.
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • Merry days were these at Thornfield Hall; and busy days too: how
  • different from the first three months of stillness, monotony, and
  • solitude I had passed beneath its roof! All sad feelings seemed now
  • driven from the house, all gloomy associations forgotten: there was life
  • everywhere, movement all day long. You could not now traverse the
  • gallery, once so hushed, nor enter the front chambers, once so
  • tenantless, without encountering a smart lady's-maid or a dandy valet.
  • The kitchen, the butler's pantry, the servants' hall, the entrance hall,
  • were equally alive; and the saloons were only left void and still when
  • the blue sky and halcyon sunshine of the genial spring weather called
  • their occupants out into the grounds. Even when that weather was broken,
  • and continuous rain set in for some days, no damp seemed cast over
  • enjoyment: indoor amusements only became more lively and varied, in
  • consequence of the stop put to outdoor gaiety.
  • I wondered what they were going to do the first evening a change of
  • entertainment was proposed: they spoke of "playing charades," but in my
  • ignorance I did not understand the term. The servants were called in,
  • the dining-room tables wheeled away, the lights otherwise disposed, the
  • chairs placed in a semicircle opposite the arch. While Mr. Rochester and
  • the other gentlemen directed these alterations, the ladies were running
  • up and down stairs ringing for their maids. Mrs. Fairfax was summoned to
  • give information respecting the resources of the house in shawls,
  • dresses, draperies of any kind; and certain wardrobes of the third storey
  • were ransacked, and their contents, in the shape of brocaded and hooped
  • petticoats, satin sacques, black modes, lace lappets, &c., were brought
  • down in armfuls by the abigails; then a selection was made, and such
  • things as were chosen were carried to the boudoir within the
  • drawing-room.
  • Meantime, Mr. Rochester had again summoned the ladies round him, and was
  • selecting certain of their number to be of his party. "Miss Ingram is
  • mine, of course," said he: afterwards he named the two Misses Eshton, and
  • Mrs. Dent. He looked at me: I happened to be near him, as I had been
  • fastening the clasp of Mrs. Dent's bracelet, which had got loose.
  • "Will you play?" he asked. I shook my head. He did not insist, which I
  • rather feared he would have done; he allowed me to return quietly to my
  • usual seat.
  • He and his aids now withdrew behind the curtain: the other party, which
  • was headed by Colonel Dent, sat down on the crescent of chairs. One of
  • the gentlemen, Mr. Eshton, observing me, seemed to propose that I should
  • be asked to join them; but Lady Ingram instantly negatived the notion.
  • "No," I heard her say: "she looks too stupid for any game of the sort."
  • Ere long a bell tinkled, and the curtain drew up. Within the arch, the
  • bulky figure of Sir George Lynn, whom Mr. Rochester had likewise chosen,
  • was seen enveloped in a white sheet: before him, on a table, lay open a
  • large book; and at his side stood Amy Eshton, draped in Mr. Rochester's
  • cloak, and holding a book in her hand. Somebody, unseen, rang the bell
  • merrily; then Adele (who had insisted on being one of her guardian's
  • party), bounded forward, scattering round her the contents of a basket of
  • flowers she carried on her arm. Then appeared the magnificent figure of
  • Miss Ingram, clad in white, a long veil on her head, and a wreath of
  • roses round her brow; by her side walked Mr. Rochester, and together they
  • drew near the table. They knelt; while Mrs. Dent and Louisa Eshton,
  • dressed also in white, took up their stations behind them. A ceremony
  • followed, in dumb show, in which it was easy to recognise the pantomime
  • of a marriage. At its termination, Colonel Dent and his party consulted
  • in whispers for two minutes, then the Colonel called out--
  • "Bride!" Mr. Rochester bowed, and the curtain fell.
  • A considerable interval elapsed before it again rose. Its second rising
  • displayed a more elaborately prepared scene than the last. The drawing-
  • room, as I have before observed, was raised two steps above the dining-
  • room, and on the top of the upper step, placed a yard or two back within
  • the room, appeared a large marble basin--which I recognised as an
  • ornament of the conservatory--where it usually stood, surrounded by
  • exotics, and tenanted by gold fish--and whence it must have been
  • transported with some trouble, on account of its size and weight.
  • Seated on the carpet, by the side of this basin, was seen Mr. Rochester,
  • costumed in shawls, with a turban on his head. His dark eyes and swarthy
  • skin and Paynim features suited the costume exactly: he looked the very
  • model of an Eastern emir, an agent or a victim of the bowstring.
  • Presently advanced into view Miss Ingram. She, too, was attired in
  • oriental fashion: a crimson scarf tied sash-like round the waist: an
  • embroidered handkerchief knotted about her temples; her
  • beautifully-moulded arms bare, one of them upraised in the act of
  • supporting a pitcher, poised gracefully on her head. Both her cast of
  • form and feature, her complexion and her general air, suggested the idea
  • of some Israelitish princess of the patriarchal days; and such was
  • doubtless the character she intended to represent.
  • She approached the basin, and bent over it as if to fill her pitcher; she
  • again lifted it to her head. The personage on the well-brink now seemed
  • to accost her; to make some request:--"She hasted, let down her pitcher
  • on her hand, and gave him to drink." From the bosom of his robe he then
  • produced a casket, opened it and showed magnificent bracelets and
  • earrings; she acted astonishment and admiration; kneeling, he laid the
  • treasure at her feet; incredulity and delight were expressed by her looks
  • and gestures; the stranger fastened the bracelets on her arms and the
  • rings in her ears. It was Eliezer and Rebecca: the camels only were
  • wanting.
  • The divining party again laid their heads together: apparently they could
  • not agree about the word or syllable the scene illustrated. Colonel
  • Dent, their spokesman, demanded "the tableau of the whole;" whereupon the
  • curtain again descended.
  • On its third rising only a portion of the drawing-room was disclosed; the
  • rest being concealed by a screen, hung with some sort of dark and coarse
  • drapery. The marble basin was removed; in its place, stood a deal table
  • and a kitchen chair: these objects were visible by a very dim light
  • proceeding from a horn lantern, the wax candles being all extinguished.
  • Amidst this sordid scene, sat a man with his clenched hands resting on
  • his knees, and his eyes bent on the ground. I knew Mr. Rochester; though
  • the begrimed face, the disordered dress (his coat hanging loose from one
  • arm, as if it had been almost torn from his back in a scuffle), the
  • desperate and scowling countenance, the rough, bristling hair might well
  • have disguised him. As he moved, a chain clanked; to his wrists were
  • attached fetters.
  • "Bridewell!" exclaimed Colonel Dent, and the charade was solved.
  • A sufficient interval having elapsed for the performers to resume their
  • ordinary costume, they re-entered the dining-room. Mr. Rochester led in
  • Miss Ingram; she was complimenting him on his acting.
  • "Do you know," said she, "that, of the three characters, I liked you in
  • the last best? Oh, had you but lived a few years earlier, what a gallant
  • gentleman-highwayman you would have made!"
  • "Is all the soot washed from my face?" he asked, turning it towards her.
  • "Alas! yes: the more's the pity! Nothing could be more becoming to your
  • complexion than that ruffian's rouge."
  • "You would like a hero of the road then?"
  • "An English hero of the road would be the next best thing to an Italian
  • bandit; and that could only be surpassed by a Levantine pirate."
  • "Well, whatever I am, remember you are my wife; we were married an hour
  • since, in the presence of all these witnesses." She giggled, and her
  • colour rose.
  • "Now, Dent," continued Mr. Rochester, "it is your turn." And as the
  • other party withdrew, he and his band took the vacated seats. Miss
  • Ingram placed herself at her leader's right hand; the other diviners
  • filled the chairs on each side of him and her. I did not now watch the
  • actors; I no longer waited with interest for the curtain to rise; my
  • attention was absorbed by the spectators; my eyes, erewhile fixed on the
  • arch, were now irresistibly attracted to the semicircle of chairs. What
  • charade Colonel Dent and his party played, what word they chose, how they
  • acquitted themselves, I no longer remember; but I still see the
  • consultation which followed each scene: I see Mr. Rochester turn to Miss
  • Ingram, and Miss Ingram to him; I see her incline her head towards him,
  • till the jetty curls almost touch his shoulder and wave against his
  • cheek; I hear their mutual whisperings; I recall their interchanged
  • glances; and something even of the feeling roused by the spectacle
  • returns in memory at this moment.
  • I have told you, reader, that I had learnt to love Mr. Rochester: I could
  • not unlove him now, merely because I found that he had ceased to notice
  • me--because I might pass hours in his presence, and he would never once
  • turn his eyes in my direction--because I saw all his attentions
  • appropriated by a great lady, who scorned to touch me with the hem of her
  • robes as she passed; who, if ever her dark and imperious eye fell on me
  • by chance, would withdraw it instantly as from an object too mean to
  • merit observation. I could not unlove him, because I felt sure he would
  • soon marry this very lady--because I read daily in her a proud security
  • in his intentions respecting her--because I witnessed hourly in him a
  • style of courtship which, if careless and choosing rather to be sought
  • than to seek, was yet, in its very carelessness, captivating, and in its
  • very pride, irresistible.
  • There was nothing to cool or banish love in these circumstances, though
  • much to create despair. Much too, you will think, reader, to engender
  • jealousy: if a woman, in my position, could presume to be jealous of a
  • woman in Miss Ingram's. But I was not jealous: or very rarely;--the
  • nature of the pain I suffered could not be explained by that word. Miss
  • Ingram was a mark beneath jealousy: she was too inferior to excite the
  • feeling. Pardon the seeming paradox; I mean what I say. She was very
  • showy, but she was not genuine: she had a fine person, many brilliant
  • attainments; but her mind was poor, her heart barren by nature: nothing
  • bloomed spontaneously on that soil; no unforced natural fruit delighted
  • by its freshness. She was not good; she was not original: she used to
  • repeat sounding phrases from books: she never offered, nor had, an
  • opinion of her own. She advocated a high tone of sentiment; but she did
  • not know the sensations of sympathy and pity; tenderness and truth were
  • not in her. Too often she betrayed this, by the undue vent she gave to a
  • spiteful antipathy she had conceived against little Adele: pushing her
  • away with some contumelious epithet if she happened to approach her;
  • sometimes ordering her from the room, and always treating her with
  • coldness and acrimony. Other eyes besides mine watched these
  • manifestations of character--watched them closely, keenly, shrewdly. Yes;
  • the future bridegroom, Mr. Rochester himself, exercised over his intended
  • a ceaseless surveillance; and it was from this sagacity--this guardedness
  • of his--this perfect, clear consciousness of his fair one's defects--this
  • obvious absence of passion in his sentiments towards her, that my ever-
  • torturing pain arose.
  • I saw he was going to marry her, for family, perhaps political reasons,
  • because her rank and connections suited him; I felt he had not given her
  • his love, and that her qualifications were ill adapted to win from him
  • that treasure. This was the point--this was where the nerve was touched
  • and teased--this was where the fever was sustained and fed: _she could
  • not charm him_.
  • If she had managed the victory at once, and he had yielded and sincerely
  • laid his heart at her feet, I should have covered my face, turned to the
  • wall, and (figuratively) have died to them. If Miss Ingram had been a
  • good and noble woman, endowed with force, fervour, kindness, sense, I
  • should have had one vital struggle with two tigers--jealousy and despair:
  • then, my heart torn out and devoured, I should have admired
  • her--acknowledged her excellence, and been quiet for the rest of my days:
  • and the more absolute her superiority, the deeper would have been my
  • admiration--the more truly tranquil my quiescence. But as matters really
  • stood, to watch Miss Ingram's efforts at fascinating Mr. Rochester, to
  • witness their repeated failure--herself unconscious that they did fail;
  • vainly fancying that each shaft launched hit the mark, and infatuatedly
  • pluming herself on success, when her pride and self-complacency repelled
  • further and further what she wished to allure--to witness _this_, was to
  • be at once under ceaseless excitation and ruthless restraint.
  • Because, when she failed, I saw how she might have succeeded. Arrows
  • that continually glanced off from Mr. Rochester's breast and fell
  • harmless at his feet, might, I knew, if shot by a surer hand, have
  • quivered keen in his proud heart--have called love into his stern eye,
  • and softness into his sardonic face; or, better still, without weapons a
  • silent conquest might have been won.
  • "Why can she not influence him more, when she is privileged to draw so
  • near to him?" I asked myself. "Surely she cannot truly like him, or not
  • like him with true affection! If she did, she need not coin her smiles
  • so lavishly, flash her glances so unremittingly, manufacture airs so
  • elaborate, graces so multitudinous. It seems to me that she might, by
  • merely sitting quietly at his side, saying little and looking less, get
  • nigher his heart. I have seen in his face a far different expression
  • from that which hardens it now while she is so vivaciously accosting him;
  • but then it came of itself: it was not elicited by meretricious arts and
  • calculated manoeuvres; and one had but to accept it--to answer what he
  • asked without pretension, to address him when needful without grimace--and
  • it increased and grew kinder and more genial, and warmed one like a
  • fostering sunbeam. How will she manage to please him when they are
  • married? I do not think she will manage it; and yet it might be managed;
  • and his wife might, I verily believe, be the very happiest woman the sun
  • shines on."
  • I have not yet said anything condemnatory of Mr. Rochester's project of
  • marrying for interest and connections. It surprised me when I first
  • discovered that such was his intention: I had thought him a man unlikely
  • to be influenced by motives so commonplace in his choice of a wife; but
  • the longer I considered the position, education, &c., of the parties, the
  • less I felt justified in judging and blaming either him or Miss Ingram
  • for acting in conformity to ideas and principles instilled into them,
  • doubtless, from their childhood. All their class held these principles:
  • I supposed, then, they had reasons for holding them such as I could not
  • fathom. It seemed to me that, were I a gentleman like him, I would take
  • to my bosom only such a wife as I could love; but the very obviousness of
  • the advantages to the husband's own happiness offered by this plan
  • convinced me that there must be arguments against its general adoption of
  • which I was quite ignorant: otherwise I felt sure all the world would act
  • as I wished to act.
  • But in other points, as well as this, I was growing very lenient to my
  • master: I was forgetting all his faults, for which I had once kept a
  • sharp look-out. It had formerly been my endeavour to study all sides of
  • his character: to take the bad with the good; and from the just weighing
  • of both, to form an equitable judgment. Now I saw no bad. The sarcasm
  • that had repelled, the harshness that had startled me once, were only
  • like keen condiments in a choice dish: their presence was pungent, but
  • their absence would be felt as comparatively insipid. And as for the
  • vague something--was it a sinister or a sorrowful, a designing or a
  • desponding expression?--that opened upon a careful observer, now and
  • then, in his eye, and closed again before one could fathom the strange
  • depth partially disclosed; that something which used to make me fear and
  • shrink, as if I had been wandering amongst volcanic-looking hills, and
  • had suddenly felt the ground quiver and seen it gape: that something, I,
  • at intervals, beheld still; and with throbbing heart, but not with
  • palsied nerves. Instead of wishing to shun, I longed only to dare--to
  • divine it; and I thought Miss Ingram happy, because one day she might
  • look into the abyss at her leisure, explore its secrets and analyse their
  • nature.
  • Meantime, while I thought only of my master and his future bride--saw
  • only them, heard only their discourse, and considered only their
  • movements of importance--the rest of the party were occupied with their
  • own separate interests and pleasures. The Ladies Lynn and Ingram
  • continued to consort in solemn conferences, where they nodded their two
  • turbans at each other, and held up their four hands in confronting
  • gestures of surprise, or mystery, or horror, according to the theme on
  • which their gossip ran, like a pair of magnified puppets. Mild Mrs. Dent
  • talked with good-natured Mrs. Eshton; and the two sometimes bestowed a
  • courteous word or smile on me. Sir George Lynn, Colonel Dent, and Mr.
  • Eshton discussed politics, or county affairs, or justice business. Lord
  • Ingram flirted with Amy Eshton; Louisa played and sang to and with one of
  • the Messrs. Lynn; and Mary Ingram listened languidly to the gallant
  • speeches of the other. Sometimes all, as with one consent, suspended
  • their by-play to observe and listen to the principal actors: for, after
  • all, Mr. Rochester and--because closely connected with him--Miss Ingram
  • were the life and soul of the party. If he was absent from the room an
  • hour, a perceptible dulness seemed to steal over the spirits of his
  • guests; and his re-entrance was sure to give a fresh impulse to the
  • vivacity of conversation.
  • The want of his animating influence appeared to be peculiarly felt one
  • day that he had been summoned to Millcote on business, and was not likely
  • to return till late. The afternoon was wet: a walk the party had
  • proposed to take to see a gipsy camp, lately pitched on a common beyond
  • Hay, was consequently deferred. Some of the gentlemen were gone to the
  • stables: the younger ones, together with the younger ladies, were playing
  • billiards in the billiard-room. The dowagers Ingram and Lynn sought
  • solace in a quiet game at cards. Blanche Ingram, after having repelled,
  • by supercilious taciturnity, some efforts of Mrs. Dent and Mrs. Eshton to
  • draw her into conversation, had first murmured over some sentimental
  • tunes and airs on the piano, and then, having fetched a novel from the
  • library, had flung herself in haughty listlessness on a sofa, and
  • prepared to beguile, by the spell of fiction, the tedious hours of
  • absence. The room and the house were silent: only now and then the
  • merriment of the billiard-players was heard from above.
  • It was verging on dusk, and the clock had already given warning of the
  • hour to dress for dinner, when little Adele, who knelt by me in the
  • drawing-room window-seat, suddenly exclaimed--
  • "Voila, Monsieur Rochester, qui revient!"
  • I turned, and Miss Ingram darted forwards from her sofa: the others, too,
  • looked up from their several occupations; for at the same time a
  • crunching of wheels and a splashing tramp of horse-hoofs became audible
  • on the wet gravel. A post-chaise was approaching.
  • "What can possess him to come home in that style?" said Miss Ingram. "He
  • rode Mesrour (the black horse), did he not, when he went out? and Pilot
  • was with him:--what has he done with the animals?"
  • As she said this, she approached her tall person and ample garments so
  • near the window, that I was obliged to bend back almost to the breaking
  • of my spine: in her eagerness she did not observe me at first, but when
  • she did, she curled her lip and moved to another casement. The
  • post-chaise stopped; the driver rang the door-bell, and a gentleman
  • alighted attired in travelling garb; but it was not Mr. Rochester; it was
  • a tall, fashionable-looking man, a stranger.
  • "How provoking!" exclaimed Miss Ingram: "you tiresome monkey!"
  • (apostrophising Adele), "who perched you up in the window to give false
  • intelligence?" and she cast on me an angry glance, as if I were in fault.
  • Some parleying was audible in the hall, and soon the new-comer entered.
  • He bowed to Lady Ingram, as deeming her the eldest lady present.
  • "It appears I come at an inopportune time, madam," said he, "when my
  • friend, Mr. Rochester, is from home; but I arrive from a very long
  • journey, and I think I may presume so far on old and intimate
  • acquaintance as to instal myself here till he returns."
  • His manner was polite; his accent, in speaking, struck me as being
  • somewhat unusual,--not precisely foreign, but still not altogether
  • English: his age might be about Mr. Rochester's,--between thirty and
  • forty; his complexion was singularly sallow: otherwise he was a
  • fine-looking man, at first sight especially. On closer examination, you
  • detected something in his face that displeased, or rather that failed to
  • please. His features were regular, but too relaxed: his eye was large
  • and well cut, but the life looking out of it was a tame, vacant life--at
  • least so I thought.
  • The sound of the dressing-bell dispersed the party. It was not till
  • after dinner that I saw him again: he then seemed quite at his ease. But
  • I liked his physiognomy even less than before: it struck me as being at
  • the same time unsettled and inanimate. His eye wandered, and had no
  • meaning in its wandering: this gave him an odd look, such as I never
  • remembered to have seen. For a handsome and not an unamiable-looking
  • man, he repelled me exceedingly: there was no power in that
  • smooth-skinned face of a full oval shape: no firmness in that aquiline
  • nose and small cherry mouth; there was no thought on the low, even
  • forehead; no command in that blank, brown eye.
  • As I sat in my usual nook, and looked at him with the light of the
  • girandoles on the mantelpiece beaming full over him--for he occupied an
  • arm-chair drawn close to the fire, and kept shrinking still nearer, as if
  • he were cold, I compared him with Mr. Rochester. I think (with deference
  • be it spoken) the contrast could not be much greater between a sleek
  • gander and a fierce falcon: between a meek sheep and the rough-coated
  • keen-eyed dog, its guardian.
  • He had spoken of Mr. Rochester as an old friend. A curious friendship
  • theirs must have been: a pointed illustration, indeed, of the old adage
  • that "extremes meet."
  • Two or three of the gentlemen sat near him, and I caught at times scraps
  • of their conversation across the room. At first I could not make much
  • sense of what I heard; for the discourse of Louisa Eshton and Mary
  • Ingram, who sat nearer to me, confused the fragmentary sentences that
  • reached me at intervals. These last were discussing the stranger; they
  • both called him "a beautiful man." Louisa said he was "a love of a
  • creature," and she "adored him;" and Mary instanced his "pretty little
  • mouth, and nice nose," as her ideal of the charming.
  • "And what a sweet-tempered forehead he has!" cried Louisa,--"so
  • smooth--none of those frowning irregularities I dislike so much; and such
  • a placid eye and smile!"
  • And then, to my great relief, Mr. Henry Lynn summoned them to the other
  • side of the room, to settle some point about the deferred excursion to
  • Hay Common.
  • I was now able to concentrate my attention on the group by the fire, and
  • I presently gathered that the new-comer was called Mr. Mason; then I
  • learned that he was but just arrived in England, and that he came from
  • some hot country: which was the reason, doubtless, his face was so
  • sallow, and that he sat so near the hearth, and wore a surtout in the
  • house. Presently the words Jamaica, Kingston, Spanish Town, indicated
  • the West Indies as his residence; and it was with no little surprise I
  • gathered, ere long, that he had there first seen and become acquainted
  • with Mr. Rochester. He spoke of his friend's dislike of the burning
  • heats, the hurricanes, and rainy seasons of that region. I knew Mr.
  • Rochester had been a traveller: Mrs. Fairfax had said so; but I thought
  • the continent of Europe had bounded his wanderings; till now I had never
  • heard a hint given of visits to more distant shores.
  • I was pondering these things, when an incident, and a somewhat unexpected
  • one, broke the thread of my musings. Mr. Mason, shivering as some one
  • chanced to open the door, asked for more coal to be put on the fire,
  • which had burnt out its flame, though its mass of cinder still shone hot
  • and red. The footman who brought the coal, in going out, stopped near
  • Mr. Eshton's chair, and said something to him in a low voice, of which I
  • heard only the words, "old woman,"--"quite troublesome."
  • "Tell her she shall be put in the stocks if she does not take herself
  • off," replied the magistrate.
  • "No--stop!" interrupted Colonel Dent. "Don't send her away, Eshton; we
  • might turn the thing to account; better consult the ladies." And
  • speaking aloud, he continued--"Ladies, you talked of going to Hay Common
  • to visit the gipsy camp; Sam here says that one of the old Mother Bunches
  • is in the servants' hall at this moment, and insists upon being brought
  • in before 'the quality,' to tell them their fortunes. Would you like to
  • see her?"
  • "Surely, colonel," cried Lady Ingram, "you would not encourage such a low
  • impostor? Dismiss her, by all means, at once!"
  • "But I cannot persuade her to go away, my lady," said the footman; "nor
  • can any of the servants: Mrs. Fairfax is with her just now, entreating
  • her to be gone; but she has taken a chair in the chimney-corner, and says
  • nothing shall stir her from it till she gets leave to come in here."
  • "What does she want?" asked Mrs. Eshton.
  • "'To tell the gentry their fortunes,' she says, ma'am; and she swears she
  • must and will do it."
  • "What is she like?" inquired the Misses Eshton, in a breath.
  • "A shockingly ugly old creature, miss; almost as black as a crock."
  • "Why, she's a real sorceress!" cried Frederick Lynn. "Let us have her
  • in, of course."
  • "To be sure," rejoined his brother; "it would be a thousand pities to
  • throw away such a chance of fun."
  • "My dear boys, what are you thinking about?" exclaimed Mrs. Lynn.
  • "I cannot possibly countenance any such inconsistent proceeding," chimed
  • in the Dowager Ingram.
  • "Indeed, mama, but you can--and will," pronounced the haughty voice of
  • Blanche, as she turned round on the piano-stool; where till now she had
  • sat silent, apparently examining sundry sheets of music. "I have a
  • curiosity to hear my fortune told: therefore, Sam, order the beldame
  • forward."
  • "My darling Blanche! recollect--"
  • "I do--I recollect all you can suggest; and I must have my will--quick,
  • Sam!"
  • "Yes--yes--yes!" cried all the juveniles, both ladies and gentlemen. "Let
  • her come--it will be excellent sport!"
  • The footman still lingered. "She looks such a rough one," said he.
  • "Go!" ejaculated Miss Ingram, and the man went.
  • Excitement instantly seized the whole party: a running fire of raillery
  • and jests was proceeding when Sam returned.
  • "She won't come now," said he. "She says it's not her mission to appear
  • before the 'vulgar herd' (them's her words). I must show her into a room
  • by herself, and then those who wish to consult her must go to her one by
  • one."
  • "You see now, my queenly Blanche," began Lady Ingram, "she encroaches. Be
  • advised, my angel girl--and--"
  • "Show her into the library, of course," cut in the "angel girl." "It is
  • not my mission to listen to her before the vulgar herd either: I mean to
  • have her all to myself. Is there a fire in the library?"
  • "Yes, ma'am--but she looks such a tinkler."
  • "Cease that chatter, blockhead! and do my bidding."
  • Again Sam vanished; and mystery, animation, expectation rose to full flow
  • once more.
  • "She's ready now," said the footman, as he reappeared. "She wishes to
  • know who will be her first visitor."
  • "I think I had better just look in upon her before any of the ladies go,"
  • said Colonel Dent.
  • "Tell her, Sam, a gentleman is coming."
  • Sam went and returned.
  • "She says, sir, that she'll have no gentlemen; they need not trouble
  • themselves to come near her; nor," he added, with difficulty suppressing
  • a titter, "any ladies either, except the young, and single."
  • "By Jove, she has taste!" exclaimed Henry Lynn.
  • Miss Ingram rose solemnly: "I go first," she said, in a tone which might
  • have befitted the leader of a forlorn hope, mounting a breach in the van
  • of his men.
  • "Oh, my best! oh, my dearest! pause--reflect!" was her mama's cry; but
  • she swept past her in stately silence, passed through the door which
  • Colonel Dent held open, and we heard her enter the library.
  • A comparative silence ensued. Lady Ingram thought it "le cas" to wring
  • her hands: which she did accordingly. Miss Mary declared she felt, for
  • her part, she never dared venture. Amy and Louisa Eshton tittered under
  • their breath, and looked a little frightened.
  • The minutes passed very slowly: fifteen were counted before the library-
  • door again opened. Miss Ingram returned to us through the arch.
  • Would she laugh? Would she take it as a joke? All eyes met her with a
  • glance of eager curiosity, and she met all eyes with one of rebuff and
  • coldness; she looked neither flurried nor merry: she walked stiffly to
  • her seat, and took it in silence.
  • "Well, Blanche?" said Lord Ingram.
  • "What did she say, sister?" asked Mary.
  • "What did you think? How do you feel?--Is she a real fortune-teller?"
  • demanded the Misses Eshton.
  • "Now, now, good people," returned Miss Ingram, "don't press upon me.
  • Really your organs of wonder and credulity are easily excited: you seem,
  • by the importance of you all--my good mama included--ascribe to this
  • matter, absolutely to believe we have a genuine witch in the house, who
  • is in close alliance with the old gentleman. I have seen a gipsy
  • vagabond; she has practised in hackneyed fashion the science of palmistry
  • and told me what such people usually tell. My whim is gratified; and now
  • I think Mr. Eshton will do well to put the hag in the stocks to-morrow
  • morning, as he threatened."
  • Miss Ingram took a book, leant back in her chair, and so declined further
  • conversation. I watched her for nearly half-an-hour: during all that
  • time she never turned a page, and her face grew momently darker, more
  • dissatisfied, and more sourly expressive of disappointment. She had
  • obviously not heard anything to her advantage: and it seemed to me, from
  • her prolonged fit of gloom and taciturnity, that she herself,
  • notwithstanding her professed indifference, attached undue importance to
  • whatever revelations had been made her.
  • {During all that time she never turned a page: p184.jpg}
  • Meantime, Mary Ingram, Amy and Louisa Eshton, declared they dared not go
  • alone; and yet they all wished to go. A negotiation was opened through
  • the medium of the ambassador, Sam; and after much pacing to and fro,
  • till, I think, the said Sam's calves must have ached with the exercise,
  • permission was at last, with great difficulty, extorted from the rigorous
  • Sibyl, for the three to wait upon her in a body.
  • Their visit was not so still as Miss Ingram's had been: we heard
  • hysterical giggling and little shrieks proceeding from the library; and
  • at the end of about twenty minutes they burst the door open, and came
  • running across the hall, as if they were half-scared out of their wits.
  • "I am sure she is something not right!" they cried, one and all. "She
  • told us such things! She knows all about us!" and they sank breathless
  • into the various seats the gentlemen hastened to bring them.
  • Pressed for further explanation, they declared she had told them of
  • things they had said and done when they were mere children; described
  • books and ornaments they had in their boudoirs at home: keepsakes that
  • different relations had presented to them. They affirmed that she had
  • even divined their thoughts, and had whispered in the ear of each the
  • name of the person she liked best in the world, and informed them of what
  • they most wished for.
  • Here the gentlemen interposed with earnest petitions to be further
  • enlightened on these two last-named points; but they got only blushes,
  • ejaculations, tremors, and titters, in return for their importunity. The
  • matrons, meantime, offered vinaigrettes and wielded fans; and again and
  • again reiterated the expression of their concern that their warning had
  • not been taken in time; and the elder gentlemen laughed, and the younger
  • urged their services on the agitated fair ones.
  • In the midst of the tumult, and while my eyes and ears were fully engaged
  • in the scene before me, I heard a hem close at my elbow: I turned, and
  • saw Sam.
  • "If you please, miss, the gipsy declares that there is another young
  • single lady in the room who has not been to her yet, and she swears she
  • will not go till she has seen all. I thought it must be you: there is no
  • one else for it. What shall I tell her?"
  • "Oh, I will go by all means," I answered: and I was glad of the
  • unexpected opportunity to gratify my much-excited curiosity. I slipped
  • out of the room, unobserved by any eye--for the company were gathered in
  • one mass about the trembling trio just returned--and I closed the door
  • quietly behind me.
  • "If you like, miss," said Sam, "I'll wait in the hall for you; and if she
  • frightens you, just call and I'll come in."
  • "No, Sam, return to the kitchen: I am not in the least afraid." Nor was
  • I; but I was a good deal interested and excited.
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • The library looked tranquil enough as I entered it, and the Sibyl--if
  • Sibyl she were--was seated snugly enough in an easy-chair at the chimney-
  • corner. She had on a red cloak and a black bonnet: or rather, a broad-
  • brimmed gipsy hat, tied down with a striped handkerchief under her chin.
  • An extinguished candle stood on the table; she was bending over the fire,
  • and seemed reading in a little black book, like a prayer-book, by the
  • light of the blaze: she muttered the words to herself, as most old women
  • do, while she read; she did not desist immediately on my entrance: it
  • appeared she wished to finish a paragraph.
  • I stood on the rug and warmed my hands, which were rather cold with
  • sitting at a distance from the drawing-room fire. I felt now as composed
  • as ever I did in my life: there was nothing indeed in the gipsy's
  • appearance to trouble one's calm. She shut her book and slowly looked
  • up; her hat-brim partially shaded her face, yet I could see, as she
  • raised it, that it was a strange one. It looked all brown and black: elf-
  • locks bristled out from beneath a white band which passed under her chin,
  • and came half over her cheeks, or rather jaws: her eye confronted me at
  • once, with a bold and direct gaze.
  • "Well, and you want your fortune told?" she said, in a voice as decided
  • as her glance, as harsh as her features.
  • "I don't care about it, mother; you may please yourself: but I ought to
  • warn you, I have no faith."
  • "It's like your impudence to say so: I expected it of you; I heard it in
  • your step as you crossed the threshold."
  • "Did you? You've a quick ear."
  • "I have; and a quick eye and a quick brain."
  • "You need them all in your trade."
  • "I do; especially when I've customers like you to deal with. Why don't
  • you tremble?"
  • "I'm not cold."
  • "Why don't you turn pale?"
  • "I am not sick."
  • "Why don't you consult my art?"
  • "I'm not silly."
  • The old crone "nichered" a laugh under her bonnet and bandage; she then
  • drew out a short black pipe, and lighting it began to smoke. Having
  • indulged a while in this sedative, she raised her bent body, took the
  • pipe from her lips, and while gazing steadily at the fire, said very
  • deliberately--"You are cold; you are sick; and you are silly."
  • "Prove it," I rejoined.
  • "I will, in few words. You are cold, because you are alone: no contact
  • strikes the fire from you that is in you. You are sick; because the best
  • of feelings, the highest and the sweetest given to man, keeps far away
  • from you. You are silly, because, suffer as you may, you will not beckon
  • it to approach, nor will you stir one step to meet it where it waits
  • you."
  • She again put her short black pipe to her lips, and renewed her smoking
  • with vigour.
  • "You might say all that to almost any one who you knew lived as a
  • solitary dependent in a great house."
  • "I might say it to almost any one: but would it be true of almost any
  • one?"
  • "In my circumstances."
  • "Yes; just so, in _your_ circumstances: but find me another precisely
  • placed as you are."
  • "It would be easy to find you thousands."
  • "You could scarcely find me one. If you knew it, you are peculiarly
  • situated: very near happiness; yes, within reach of it. The materials
  • are all prepared; there only wants a movement to combine them. Chance
  • laid them somewhat apart; let them be once approached and bliss results."
  • "I don't understand enigmas. I never could guess a riddle in my life."
  • "If you wish me to speak more plainly, show me your palm."
  • "And I must cross it with silver, I suppose?"
  • "To be sure."
  • I gave her a shilling: she put it into an old stocking-foot which she
  • took out of her pocket, and having tied it round and returned it, she
  • told me to hold out my hand. I did. She approached her face to the
  • palm, and pored over it without touching it.
  • "It is too fine," said she. "I can make nothing of such a hand as that;
  • almost without lines: besides, what is in a palm? Destiny is not written
  • there."
  • "I believe you," said I.
  • "No," she continued, "it is in the face: on the forehead, about the eyes,
  • in the lines of the mouth. Kneel, and lift up your head."
  • "Ah! now you are coming to reality," I said, as I obeyed her. "I shall
  • begin to put some faith in you presently."
  • I knelt within half a yard of her. She stirred the fire, so that a
  • ripple of light broke from the disturbed coal: the glare, however, as she
  • sat, only threw her face into deeper shadow: mine, it illumined.
  • "I wonder with what feelings you came to me to-night," she said, when she
  • had examined me a while. "I wonder what thoughts are busy in your heart
  • during all the hours you sit in yonder room with the fine people flitting
  • before you like shapes in a magic-lantern: just as little sympathetic
  • communion passing between you and them as if they were really mere
  • shadows of human forms, and not the actual substance."
  • "I feel tired often, sleepy sometimes, but seldom sad."
  • "Then you have some secret hope to buoy you up and please you with
  • whispers of the future?"
  • "Not I. The utmost I hope is, to save money enough out of my earnings to
  • set up a school some day in a little house rented by myself."
  • "A mean nutriment for the spirit to exist on: and sitting in that window-
  • seat (you see I know your habits )--"
  • "You have learned them from the servants."
  • "Ah! you think yourself sharp. Well, perhaps I have: to speak truth, I
  • have an acquaintance with one of them, Mrs. Poole--"
  • I started to my feet when I heard the name.
  • "You have--have you?" thought I; "there is diablerie in the business
  • after all, then!"
  • "Don't be alarmed," continued the strange being; "she's a safe hand is
  • Mrs. Poole: close and quiet; any one may repose confidence in her. But,
  • as I was saying: sitting in that window-seat, do you think of nothing but
  • your future school? Have you no present interest in any of the company
  • who occupy the sofas and chairs before you? Is there not one face you
  • study? one figure whose movements you follow with at least curiosity?"
  • "I like to observe all the faces and all the figures."
  • "But do you never single one from the rest--or it may be, two?"
  • "I do frequently; when the gestures or looks of a pair seem telling a
  • tale: it amuses me to watch them."
  • "What tale do you like best to hear?"
  • "Oh, I have not much choice! They generally run on the same
  • theme--courtship; and promise to end in the same catastrophe--marriage."
  • "And do you like that monotonous theme?"
  • "Positively, I don't care about it: it is nothing to me."
  • "Nothing to you? When a lady, young and full of life and health,
  • charming with beauty and endowed with the gifts of rank and fortune, sits
  • and smiles in the eyes of a gentleman you--"
  • "I what?"
  • "You know--and perhaps think well of."
  • "I don't know the gentlemen here. I have scarcely interchanged a
  • syllable with one of them; and as to thinking well of them, I consider
  • some respectable, and stately, and middle-aged, and others young,
  • dashing, handsome, and lively: but certainly they are all at liberty to
  • be the recipients of whose smiles they please, without my feeling
  • disposed to consider the transaction of any moment to me."
  • "You don't know the gentlemen here? You have not exchanged a syllable
  • with one of them? Will you say that of the master of the house!"
  • "He is not at home."
  • "A profound remark! A most ingenious quibble! He went to Millcote this
  • morning, and will be back here to-night or to-morrow: does that
  • circumstance exclude him from the list of your acquaintance--blot him, as
  • it were, out of existence?"
  • "No; but I can scarcely see what Mr. Rochester has to do with the theme
  • you had introduced."
  • "I was talking of ladies smiling in the eyes of gentlemen; and of late so
  • many smiles have been shed into Mr. Rochester's eyes that they overflow
  • like two cups filled above the brim: have you never remarked that?"
  • "Mr. Rochester has a right to enjoy the society of his guests."
  • "No question about his right: but have you never observed that, of all
  • the tales told here about matrimony, Mr. Rochester has been favoured with
  • the most lively and the most continuous?"
  • "The eagerness of a listener quickens the tongue of a narrator." I said
  • this rather to myself than to the gipsy, whose strange talk, voice,
  • manner, had by this time wrapped me in a kind of dream. One unexpected
  • sentence came from her lips after another, till I got involved in a web
  • of mystification; and wondered what unseen spirit had been sitting for
  • weeks by my heart watching its workings and taking record of every pulse.
  • "Eagerness of a listener!" repeated she: "yes; Mr. Rochester has sat by
  • the hour, his ear inclined to the fascinating lips that took such delight
  • in their task of communicating; and Mr. Rochester was so willing to
  • receive and looked so grateful for the pastime given him; you have
  • noticed this?"
  • "Grateful! I cannot remember detecting gratitude in his face."
  • "Detecting! You have analysed, then. And what did you detect, if not
  • gratitude?"
  • I said nothing.
  • "You have seen love: have you not?--and, looking forward, you have seen
  • him married, and beheld his bride happy?"
  • "Humph! Not exactly. Your witch's skill is rather at fault sometimes."
  • "What the devil have you seen, then?"
  • "Never mind: I came here to inquire, not to confess. Is it known that
  • Mr. Rochester is to be married?"
  • "Yes; and to the beautiful Miss Ingram."
  • "Shortly?"
  • "Appearances would warrant that conclusion: and, no doubt (though, with
  • an audacity that wants chastising out of you, you seem to question it),
  • they will be a superlatively happy pair. He must love such a handsome,
  • noble, witty, accomplished lady; and probably she loves him, or, if not
  • his person, at least his purse. I know she considers the Rochester
  • estate eligible to the last degree; though (God pardon me!) I told her
  • something on that point about an hour ago which made her look wondrous
  • grave: the corners of her mouth fell half an inch. I would advise her
  • blackaviced suitor to look out: if another comes, with a longer or
  • clearer rent-roll,--he's dished--"
  • "But, mother, I did not come to hear Mr. Rochester's fortune: I came to
  • hear my own; and you have told me nothing of it."
  • "Your fortune is yet doubtful: when I examined your face, one trait
  • contradicted another. Chance has meted you a measure of happiness: that
  • I know. I knew it before I came here this evening. She has laid it
  • carefully on one side for you. I saw her do it. It depends on yourself
  • to stretch out your hand, and take it up: but whether you will do so, is
  • the problem I study. Kneel again on the rug."
  • "Don't keep me long; the fire scorches me."
  • {She did not stoop towards me, but only gazed, leaning back in her chair:
  • p190.jpg}
  • I knelt. She did not stoop towards me, but only gazed, leaning back in
  • her chair. She began muttering,--
  • "The flame flickers in the eye; the eye shines like dew; it looks soft
  • and full of feeling; it smiles at my jargon: it is susceptible;
  • impression follows impression through its clear sphere; where it ceases
  • to smile, it is sad; an unconscious lassitude weighs on the lid: that
  • signifies melancholy resulting from loneliness. It turns from me; it
  • will not suffer further scrutiny; it seems to deny, by a mocking glance,
  • the truth of the discoveries I have already made,--to disown the charge
  • both of sensibility and chagrin: its pride and reserve only confirm me in
  • my opinion. The eye is favourable.
  • "As to the mouth, it delights at times in laughter; it is disposed to
  • impart all that the brain conceives; though I daresay it would be silent
  • on much the heart experiences. Mobile and flexible, it was never
  • intended to be compressed in the eternal silence of solitude: it is a
  • mouth which should speak much and smile often, and have human affection
  • for its interlocutor. That feature too is propitious.
  • "I see no enemy to a fortunate issue but in the brow; and that brow
  • professes to say,--'I can live alone, if self-respect, and circumstances
  • require me so to do. I need not sell my soul to buy bliss. I have an
  • inward treasure born with me, which can keep me alive if all extraneous
  • delights should be withheld, or offered only at a price I cannot afford
  • to give.' The forehead declares, 'Reason sits firm and holds the reins,
  • and she will not let the feelings burst away and hurry her to wild
  • chasms. The passions may rage furiously, like true heathens, as they
  • are; and the desires may imagine all sorts of vain things: but judgment
  • shall still have the last word in every argument, and the casting vote in
  • every decision. Strong wind, earthquake-shock, and fire may pass by: but
  • I shall follow the guiding of that still small voice which interprets the
  • dictates of conscience.'
  • "Well said, forehead; your declaration shall be respected. I have formed
  • my plans--right plans I deem them--and in them I have attended to the
  • claims of conscience, the counsels of reason. I know how soon youth
  • would fade and bloom perish, if, in the cup of bliss offered, but one
  • dreg of shame, or one flavour of remorse were detected; and I do not want
  • sacrifice, sorrow, dissolution--such is not my taste. I wish to foster,
  • not to blight--to earn gratitude, not to wring tears of blood--no, nor of
  • brine: my harvest must be in smiles, in endearments, in sweet--That will
  • do. I think I rave in a kind of exquisite delirium. I should wish now
  • to protract this moment _ad infinitum_; but I dare not. So far I have
  • governed myself thoroughly. I have acted as I inwardly swore I would
  • act; but further might try me beyond my strength. Rise, Miss Eyre: leave
  • me; the play is played out'."
  • Where was I? Did I wake or sleep? Had I been dreaming? Did I dream
  • still? The old woman's voice had changed: her accent, her gesture, and
  • all were familiar to me as my own face in a glass--as the speech of my
  • own tongue. I got up, but did not go. I looked; I stirred the fire, and
  • I looked again: but she drew her bonnet and her bandage closer about her
  • face, and again beckoned me to depart. The flame illuminated her hand
  • stretched out: roused now, and on the alert for discoveries, I at once
  • noticed that hand. It was no more the withered limb of eld than my own;
  • it was a rounded supple member, with smooth fingers, symmetrically
  • turned; a broad ring flashed on the little finger, and stooping forward,
  • I looked at it, and saw a gem I had seen a hundred times before. Again I
  • looked at the face; which was no longer turned from me--on the contrary,
  • the bonnet was doffed, the bandage displaced, the head advanced.
  • "Well, Jane, do you know me?" asked the familiar voice.
  • "Only take off the red cloak, sir, and then--"
  • "But the string is in a knot--help me."
  • "Break it, sir."
  • "There, then--'Off, ye lendings!'" And Mr. Rochester stepped out of his
  • disguise.
  • "Now, sir, what a strange idea!"
  • "But well carried out, eh? Don't you think so?"
  • "With the ladies you must have managed well."
  • "But not with you?"
  • "You did not act the character of a gipsy with me."
  • "What character did I act? My own?"
  • "No; some unaccountable one. In short, I believe you have been trying to
  • draw me out--or in; you have been talking nonsense to make me talk
  • nonsense. It is scarcely fair, sir."
  • "Do you forgive me, Jane?"
  • "I cannot tell till I have thought it all over. If, on reflection, I
  • find I have fallen into no great absurdity, I shall try to forgive you;
  • but it was not right."
  • "Oh, you have been very correct--very careful, very sensible."
  • I reflected, and thought, on the whole, I had. It was a comfort; but,
  • indeed, I had been on my guard almost from the beginning of the
  • interview. Something of masquerade I suspected. I knew gipsies and
  • fortune-tellers did not express themselves as this seeming old woman had
  • expressed herself; besides I had noted her feigned voice, her anxiety to
  • conceal her features. But my mind had been running on Grace Poole--that
  • living enigma, that mystery of mysteries, as I considered her. I had
  • never thought of Mr. Rochester.
  • "Well," said he, "what are you musing about? What does that grave smile
  • signify?"
  • "Wonder and self-congratulation, sir. I have your permission to retire
  • now, I suppose?"
  • "No; stay a moment; and tell me what the people in the drawing-room
  • yonder are doing."
  • "Discussing the gipsy, I daresay."
  • "Sit down!--Let me hear what they said about me."
  • "I had better not stay long, sir; it must be near eleven o'clock. Oh,
  • are you aware, Mr. Rochester, that a stranger has arrived here since you
  • left this morning?"
  • "A stranger!--no; who can it be? I expected no one; is he gone?"
  • "No; he said he had known you long, and that he could take the liberty of
  • installing himself here till you returned."
  • "The devil he did! Did he give his name?"
  • "His name is Mason, sir; and he comes from the West Indies; from Spanish
  • Town, in Jamaica, I think."
  • Mr. Rochester was standing near me; he had taken my hand, as if to lead
  • me to a chair. As I spoke he gave my wrist a convulsive grip; the smile
  • on his lips froze: apparently a spasm caught his breath.
  • "Mason!--the West Indies!" he said, in the tone one might fancy a
  • speaking automaton to enounce its single words; "Mason!--the West
  • Indies!" he reiterated; and he went over the syllables three times,
  • growing, in the intervals of speaking, whiter than ashes: he hardly
  • seemed to know what he was doing.
  • "Do you feel ill, sir?" I inquired.
  • "Jane, I've got a blow; I've got a blow, Jane!" He staggered.
  • "Oh, lean on me, sir."
  • "Jane, you offered me your shoulder once before; let me have it now."
  • "Yes, sir, yes; and my arm."
  • He sat down, and made me sit beside him. Holding my hand in both his
  • own, he chafed it; gazing on me, at the same time, with the most troubled
  • and dreary look.
  • "My little friend!" said he, "I wish I were in a quiet island with only
  • you; and trouble, and danger, and hideous recollections removed from me."
  • "Can I help you, sir?--I'd give my life to serve you."
  • "Jane, if aid is wanted, I'll seek it at your hands; I promise you that."
  • "Thank you, sir. Tell me what to do,--I'll try, at least, to do it."
  • "Fetch me now, Jane, a glass of wine from the dining-room: they will be
  • at supper there; and tell me if Mason is with them, and what he is
  • doing."
  • I went. I found all the party in the dining-room at supper, as Mr.
  • Rochester had said; they were not seated at table,--the supper was
  • arranged on the sideboard; each had taken what he chose, and they stood
  • about here and there in groups, their plates and glasses in their hands.
  • Every one seemed in high glee; laughter and conversation were general and
  • animated. Mr. Mason stood near the fire, talking to Colonel and Mrs.
  • Dent, and appeared as merry as any of them. I filled a wine-glass (I saw
  • Miss Ingram watch me frowningly as I did so: she thought I was taking a
  • liberty, I daresay), and I returned to the library.
  • Mr. Rochester's extreme pallor had disappeared, and he looked once more
  • firm and stern. He took the glass from my hand.
  • "Here is to your health, ministrant spirit!" he said. He swallowed the
  • contents and returned it to me. "What are they doing, Jane?"
  • "Laughing and talking, sir."
  • "They don't look grave and mysterious, as if they had heard something
  • strange?"
  • "Not at all: they are full of jests and gaiety."
  • "And Mason?"
  • "He was laughing too."
  • "If all these people came in a body and spat at me, what would you do,
  • Jane?"
  • "Turn them out of the room, sir, if I could."
  • He half smiled. "But if I were to go to them, and they only looked at me
  • coldly, and whispered sneeringly amongst each other, and then dropped off
  • and left me one by one, what then? Would you go with them?"
  • "I rather think not, sir: I should have more pleasure in staying with
  • you."
  • "To comfort me?"
  • "Yes, sir, to comfort you, as well as I could."
  • "And if they laid you under a ban for adhering to me?"
  • "I, probably, should know nothing about their ban; and if I did, I should
  • care nothing about it."
  • "Then, you could dare censure for my sake?"
  • "I could dare it for the sake of any friend who deserved my adherence; as
  • you, I am sure, do."
  • "Go back now into the room; step quietly up to Mason, and whisper in his
  • ear that Mr. Rochester is come and wishes to see him: show him in here
  • and then leave me."
  • "Yes, sir."
  • I did his behest. The company all stared at me as I passed straight
  • among them. I sought Mr. Mason, delivered the message, and preceded him
  • from the room: I ushered him into the library, and then I went upstairs.
  • At a late hour, after I had been in bed some time, I heard the visitors
  • repair to their chambers: I distinguished Mr. Rochester's voice, and
  • heard him say, "This way, Mason; this is your room."
  • He spoke cheerfully: the gay tones set my heart at ease. I was soon
  • asleep.
  • CHAPTER XX
  • I had forgotten to draw my curtain, which I usually did, and also to let
  • down my window-blind. The consequence was, that when the moon, which was
  • full and bright (for the night was fine), came in her course to that
  • space in the sky opposite my casement, and looked in at me through the
  • unveiled panes, her glorious gaze roused me. Awaking in the dead of
  • night, I opened my eyes on her disk--silver-white and crystal clear. It
  • was beautiful, but too solemn; I half rose, and stretched my arm to draw
  • the curtain.
  • Good God! What a cry!
  • The night--its silence--its rest, was rent in twain by a savage, a sharp,
  • a shrilly sound that ran from end to end of Thornfield Hall.
  • My pulse stopped: my heart stood still; my stretched arm was paralysed.
  • The cry died, and was not renewed. Indeed, whatever being uttered that
  • fearful shriek could not soon repeat it: not the widest-winged condor on
  • the Andes could, twice in succession, send out such a yell from the cloud
  • shrouding his eyrie. The thing delivering such utterance must rest ere
  • it could repeat the effort.
  • It came out of the third storey; for it passed overhead. And
  • overhead--yes, in the room just above my chamber-ceiling--I now heard a
  • struggle: a deadly one it seemed from the noise; and a half-smothered
  • voice shouted--
  • "Help! help! help!" three times rapidly.
  • "Will no one come?" it cried; and then, while the staggering and stamping
  • went on wildly, I distinguished through plank and plaster:--
  • "Rochester! Rochester! for God's sake, come!"
  • A chamber-door opened: some one ran, or rushed, along the gallery.
  • Another step stamped on the flooring above and something fell; and there
  • was silence.
  • I had put on some clothes, though horror shook all my limbs; I issued
  • from my apartment. The sleepers were all aroused: ejaculations,
  • terrified murmurs sounded in every room; door after door unclosed; one
  • looked out and another looked out; the gallery filled. Gentlemen and
  • ladies alike had quitted their beds; and "Oh! what is it?"--"Who is
  • hurt?"--"What has happened?"--"Fetch a light!"--"Is it fire?"--"Are there
  • robbers?"--"Where shall we run?" was demanded confusedly on all hands.
  • But for the moonlight they would have been in complete darkness. They
  • ran to and fro; they crowded together: some sobbed, some stumbled: the
  • confusion was inextricable.
  • "Where the devil is Rochester?" cried Colonel Dent. "I cannot find him
  • in his bed."
  • "Here! here!" was shouted in return. "Be composed, all of you: I'm
  • coming."
  • And the door at the end of the gallery opened, and Mr. Rochester advanced
  • with a candle: he had just descended from the upper storey. One of the
  • ladies ran to him directly; she seized his arm: it was Miss Ingram.
  • "What awful event has taken place?" said she. "Speak! let us know the
  • worst at once!"
  • "But don't pull me down or strangle me," he replied: for the Misses
  • Eshton were clinging about him now; and the two dowagers, in vast white
  • wrappers, were bearing down on him like ships in full sail.
  • "All's right!--all's right!" he cried. "It's a mere rehearsal of Much
  • Ado about Nothing. Ladies, keep off, or I shall wax dangerous."
  • And dangerous he looked: his black eyes darted sparks. Calming himself
  • by an effort, he added--
  • "A servant has had the nightmare; that is all. She's an excitable,
  • nervous person: she construed her dream into an apparition, or something
  • of that sort, no doubt; and has taken a fit with fright. Now, then, I
  • must see you all back into your rooms; for, till the house is settled,
  • she cannot be looked after. Gentlemen, have the goodness to set the
  • ladies the example. Miss Ingram, I am sure you will not fail in evincing
  • superiority to idle terrors. Amy and Louisa, return to your nests like a
  • pair of doves, as you are. Mesdames" (to the dowagers), "you will take
  • cold to a dead certainty, if you stay in this chill gallery any longer."
  • And so, by dint of alternate coaxing and commanding, he contrived to get
  • them all once more enclosed in their separate dormitories. I did not
  • wait to be ordered back to mine, but retreated unnoticed, as unnoticed I
  • had left it.
  • Not, however, to go to bed: on the contrary, I began and dressed myself
  • carefully. The sounds I had heard after the scream, and the words that
  • had been uttered, had probably been heard only by me; for they had
  • proceeded from the room above mine: but they assured me that it was not a
  • servant's dream which had thus struck horror through the house; and that
  • the explanation Mr. Rochester had given was merely an invention framed to
  • pacify his guests. I dressed, then, to be ready for emergencies. When
  • dressed, I sat a long time by the window looking out over the silent
  • grounds and silvered fields and waiting for I knew not what. It seemed
  • to me that some event must follow the strange cry, struggle, and call.
  • No: stillness returned: each murmur and movement ceased gradually, and in
  • about an hour Thornfield Hall was again as hushed as a desert. It seemed
  • that sleep and night had resumed their empire. Meantime the moon
  • declined: she was about to set. Not liking to sit in the cold and
  • darkness, I thought I would lie down on my bed, dressed as I was. I left
  • the window, and moved with little noise across the carpet; as I stooped
  • to take off my shoes, a cautious hand tapped low at the door.
  • "Am I wanted?" I asked.
  • "Are you up?" asked the voice I expected to hear, viz., my master's.
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "And dressed?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Come out, then, quietly."
  • I obeyed. Mr. Rochester stood in the gallery holding a light.
  • "I want you," he said: "come this way: take your time, and make no
  • noise."
  • My slippers were thin: I could walk the matted floor as softly as a cat.
  • He glided up the gallery and up the stairs, and stopped in the dark, low
  • corridor of the fateful third storey: I had followed and stood at his
  • side.
  • "Have you a sponge in your room?" he asked in a whisper.
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "Have you any salts--volatile salts?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Go back and fetch both."
  • I returned, sought the sponge on the washstand, the salts in my drawer,
  • and once more retraced my steps. He still waited; he held a key in his
  • hand: approaching one of the small, black doors, he put it in the lock;
  • he paused, and addressed me again.
  • "You don't turn sick at the sight of blood?"
  • "I think I shall not: I have never been tried yet."
  • I felt a thrill while I answered him; but no coldness, and no faintness.
  • "Just give me your hand," he said: "it will not do to risk a fainting
  • fit."
  • I put my fingers into his. "Warm and steady," was his remark: he turned
  • the key and opened the door.
  • I saw a room I remembered to have seen before, the day Mrs. Fairfax
  • showed me over the house: it was hung with tapestry; but the tapestry was
  • now looped up in one part, and there was a door apparent, which had then
  • been concealed. This door was open; a light shone out of the room
  • within: I heard thence a snarling, snatching sound, almost like a dog
  • quarrelling. Mr. Rochester, putting down his candle, said to me, "Wait a
  • minute," and he went forward to the inner apartment. A shout of laughter
  • greeted his entrance; noisy at first, and terminating in Grace Poole's
  • own goblin ha! ha! _She_ then was there. He made some sort of
  • arrangement without speaking, though I heard a low voice address him: he
  • came out and closed the door behind him.
  • "Here, Jane!" he said; and I walked round to the other side of a large
  • bed, which with its drawn curtains concealed a considerable portion of
  • the chamber. An easy-chair was near the bed-head: a man sat in it,
  • dressed with the exception of his coat; he was still; his head leant
  • back; his eyes were closed. Mr. Rochester held the candle over him; I
  • recognised in his pale and seemingly lifeless face--the stranger, Mason:
  • I saw too that his linen on one side, and one arm, was almost soaked in
  • blood.
  • "Hold the candle," said Mr. Rochester, and I took it: he fetched a basin
  • of water from the washstand: "Hold that," said he. I obeyed. He took
  • the sponge, dipped it in, and moistened the corpse-like face; he asked
  • for my smelling-bottle, and applied it to the nostrils. Mr. Mason
  • shortly unclosed his eyes; he groaned. Mr. Rochester opened the shirt of
  • the wounded man, whose arm and shoulder were bandaged: he sponged away
  • blood, trickling fast down.
  • "Is there immediate danger?" murmured Mr. Mason.
  • "Pooh! No--a mere scratch. Don't be so overcome, man: bear up! I'll
  • fetch a surgeon for you now, myself: you'll be able to be removed by
  • morning, I hope. Jane," he continued.
  • "Sir?"
  • "I shall have to leave you in this room with this gentleman, for an hour,
  • or perhaps two hours: you will sponge the blood as I do when it returns:
  • if he feels faint, you will put the glass of water on that stand to his
  • lips, and your salts to his nose. You will not speak to him on any
  • pretext--and--Richard, it will be at the peril of your life if you speak
  • to her: open your lips--agitate yourself--and I'll not answer for the
  • consequences."
  • Again the poor man groaned; he looked as if he dared not move; fear,
  • either of death or of something else, appeared almost to paralyse him.
  • Mr. Rochester put the now bloody sponge into my hand, and I proceeded to
  • use it as he had done. He watched me a second, then saying,
  • "Remember!--No conversation," he left the room. I experienced a strange
  • feeling as the key grated in the lock, and the sound of his retreating
  • step ceased to be heard.
  • Here then I was in the third storey, fastened into one of its mystic
  • cells; night around me; a pale and bloody spectacle under my eyes and
  • hands; a murderess hardly separated from me by a single door: yes--that
  • was appalling--the rest I could bear; but I shuddered at the thought of
  • Grace Poole bursting out upon me.
  • I must keep to my post, however. I must watch this ghastly
  • countenance--these blue, still lips forbidden to unclose--these eyes now
  • shut, now opening, now wandering through the room, now fixing on me, and
  • ever glazed with the dulness of horror. I must dip my hand again and
  • again in the basin of blood and water, and wipe away the trickling gore.
  • I must see the light of the unsnuffed candle wane on my employment; the
  • shadows darken on the wrought, antique tapestry round me, and grow black
  • under the hangings of the vast old bed, and quiver strangely over the
  • doors of a great cabinet opposite--whose front, divided into twelve
  • panels, bore, in grim design, the heads of the twelve apostles, each
  • enclosed in its separate panel as in a frame; while above them at the top
  • rose an ebon crucifix and a dying Christ.
  • According as the shifting obscurity and flickering gleam hovered here or
  • glanced there, it was now the bearded physician, Luke, that bent his
  • brow; now St. John's long hair that waved; and anon the devilish face of
  • Judas, that grew out of the panel, and seemed gathering life and
  • threatening a revelation of the arch-traitor--of Satan himself--in his
  • subordinate's form.
  • Amidst all this, I had to listen as well as watch: to listen for the
  • movements of the wild beast or the fiend in yonder side den. But since
  • Mr. Rochester's visit it seemed spellbound: all the night I heard but
  • three sounds at three long intervals,--a step creak, a momentary renewal
  • of the snarling, canine noise, and a deep human groan.
  • Then my own thoughts worried me. What crime was this that lived
  • incarnate in this sequestered mansion, and could neither be expelled nor
  • subdued by the owner?--what mystery, that broke out now in fire and now
  • in blood, at the deadest hours of night? What creature was it, that,
  • masked in an ordinary woman's face and shape, uttered the voice, now of a
  • mocking demon, and anon of a carrion-seeking bird of prey?
  • And this man I bent over--this commonplace, quiet stranger--how had he
  • become involved in the web of horror? and why had the Fury flown at him?
  • What made him seek this quarter of the house at an untimely season, when
  • he should have been asleep in bed? I had heard Mr. Rochester assign him
  • an apartment below--what brought him here! And why, now, was he so tame
  • under the violence or treachery done him? Why did he so quietly submit
  • to the concealment Mr. Rochester enforced? Why _did_ Mr. Rochester
  • enforce this concealment? His guest had been outraged, his own life on a
  • former occasion had been hideously plotted against; and both attempts he
  • smothered in secrecy and sank in oblivion! Lastly, I saw Mr. Mason was
  • submissive to Mr. Rochester; that the impetuous will of the latter held
  • complete sway over the inertness of the former: the few words which had
  • passed between them assured me of this. It was evident that in their
  • former intercourse, the passive disposition of the one had been
  • habitually influenced by the active energy of the other: whence then had
  • arisen Mr. Rochester's dismay when he heard of Mr. Mason's arrival? Why
  • had the mere name of this unresisting individual--whom his word now
  • sufficed to control like a child--fallen on him, a few hours since, as a
  • thunderbolt might fall on an oak?
  • Oh! I could not forget his look and his paleness when he whispered:
  • "Jane, I have got a blow--I have got a blow, Jane." I could not forget
  • how the arm had trembled which he rested on my shoulder: and it was no
  • light matter which could thus bow the resolute spirit and thrill the
  • vigorous frame of Fairfax Rochester.
  • "When will he come? When will he come?" I cried inwardly, as the night
  • lingered and lingered--as my bleeding patient drooped, moaned, sickened:
  • and neither day nor aid arrived. I had, again and again, held the water
  • to Mason's white lips; again and again offered him the stimulating salts:
  • my efforts seemed ineffectual: either bodily or mental suffering, or loss
  • of blood, or all three combined, were fast prostrating his strength. He
  • moaned so, and looked so weak, wild, and lost, I feared he was dying; and
  • I might not even speak to him.
  • The candle, wasted at last, went out; as it expired, I perceived streaks
  • of grey light edging the window curtains: dawn was then approaching.
  • Presently I heard Pilot bark far below, out of his distant kennel in the
  • courtyard: hope revived. Nor was it unwarranted: in five minutes more
  • the grating key, the yielding lock, warned me my watch was relieved. It
  • could not have lasted more than two hours: many a week has seemed
  • shorter.
  • Mr. Rochester entered, and with him the surgeon he had been to fetch.
  • "Now, Carter, be on the alert," he said to this last: "I give you but
  • half-an-hour for dressing the wound, fastening the bandages, getting the
  • patient downstairs and all."
  • "But is he fit to move, sir?"
  • "No doubt of it; it is nothing serious; he is nervous, his spirits must
  • be kept up. Come, set to work."
  • Mr. Rochester drew back the thick curtain, drew up the holland blind, let
  • in all the daylight he could; and I was surprised and cheered to see how
  • far dawn was advanced: what rosy streaks were beginning to brighten the
  • east. Then he approached Mason, whom the surgeon was already handling.
  • "Now, my good fellow, how are you?" he asked.
  • "She's done for me, I fear," was the faint reply.
  • "Not a whit!--courage! This day fortnight you'll hardly be a pin the
  • worse of it: you've lost a little blood; that's all. Carter, assure him
  • there's no danger."
  • "I can do that conscientiously," said Carter, who had now undone the
  • bandages; "only I wish I could have got here sooner: he would not have
  • bled so much--but how is this? The flesh on the shoulder is torn as well
  • as cut. This wound was not done with a knife: there have been teeth
  • here!"
  • "She bit me," he murmured. "She worried me like a tigress, when
  • Rochester got the knife from her."
  • "You should not have yielded: you should have grappled with her at once,"
  • said Mr. Rochester.
  • "But under such circumstances, what could one do?" returned Mason. "Oh,
  • it was frightful!" he added, shuddering. "And I did not expect it: she
  • looked so quiet at first."
  • "I warned you," was his friend's answer; "I said--be on your guard when
  • you go near her. Besides, you might have waited till to-morrow, and had
  • me with you: it was mere folly to attempt the interview to-night, and
  • alone."
  • "I thought I could have done some good."
  • "You thought! you thought! Yes, it makes me impatient to hear you: but,
  • however, you have suffered, and are likely to suffer enough for not
  • taking my advice; so I'll say no more. Carter--hurry!--hurry! The sun
  • will soon rise, and I must have him off."
  • "Directly, sir; the shoulder is just bandaged. I must look to this other
  • wound in the arm: she has had her teeth here too, I think."
  • "She sucked the blood: she said she'd drain my heart," said Mason.
  • I saw Mr. Rochester shudder: a singularly marked expression of disgust,
  • horror, hatred, warped his countenance almost to distortion; but he only
  • said--
  • "Come, be silent, Richard, and never mind her gibberish: don't repeat
  • it."
  • "I wish I could forget it," was the answer.
  • "You will when you are out of the country: when you get back to Spanish
  • Town, you may think of her as dead and buried--or rather, you need not
  • think of her at all."
  • "Impossible to forget this night!"
  • "It is not impossible: have some energy, man. You thought you were as
  • dead as a herring two hours since, and you are all alive and talking now.
  • There!--Carter has done with you or nearly so; I'll make you decent in a
  • trice. Jane" (he turned to me for the first time since his re-entrance),
  • "take this key: go down into my bedroom, and walk straight forward into
  • my dressing-room: open the top drawer of the wardrobe and take out a
  • clean shirt and neck-handkerchief: bring them here; and be nimble."
  • I went; sought the repository he had mentioned, found the articles named,
  • and returned with them.
  • "Now," said he, "go to the other side of the bed while I order his
  • toilet; but don't leave the room: you may be wanted again."
  • I retired as directed.
  • "Was anybody stirring below when you went down, Jane?" inquired Mr.
  • Rochester presently.
  • "No, sir; all was very still."
  • "We shall get you off cannily, Dick: and it will be better, both for your
  • sake, and for that of the poor creature in yonder. I have striven long
  • to avoid exposure, and I should not like it to come at last. Here,
  • Carter, help him on with his waist-coat. Where did you leave your furred
  • cloak? You can't travel a mile without that, I know, in this damned cold
  • climate. In your room?--Jane, run down to Mr. Mason's room,--the one
  • next mine,--and fetch a cloak you will see there."
  • Again I ran, and again returned, bearing an immense mantle lined and
  • edged with fur.
  • "Now, I've another errand for you," said my untiring master; "you must
  • away to my room again. What a mercy you are shod with velvet, Jane!--a
  • clod-hopping messenger would never do at this juncture. You must open
  • the middle drawer of my toilet-table and take out a little phial and a
  • little glass you will find there,--quick!"
  • I flew thither and back, bringing the desired vessels.
  • "That's well! Now, doctor, I shall take the liberty of administering a
  • dose myself, on my own responsibility. I got this cordial at Rome, of an
  • Italian charlatan--a fellow you would have kicked, Carter. It is not a
  • thing to be used indiscriminately, but it is good upon occasion: as now,
  • for instance. Jane, a little water."
  • He held out the tiny glass, and I half filled it from the water-bottle on
  • the washstand.
  • "That will do;--now wet the lip of the phial."
  • I did so; he measured twelve drops of a crimson liquid, and presented it
  • to Mason.
  • "Drink, Richard: it will give you the heart you lack, for an hour or so."
  • "But will it hurt me?--is it inflammatory?"
  • "Drink! drink! drink!"
  • Mr. Mason obeyed, because it was evidently useless to resist. He was
  • dressed now: he still looked pale, but he was no longer gory and sullied.
  • Mr. Rochester let him sit three minutes after he had swallowed the
  • liquid; he then took his arm--
  • "Now I am sure you can get on your feet," he said--"try."
  • The patient rose.
  • "Carter, take him under the other shoulder. Be of good cheer, Richard;
  • step out--that's it!"
  • "I do feel better," remarked Mr. Mason.
  • "I am sure you do. Now, Jane, trip on before us away to the backstairs;
  • unbolt the side-passage door, and tell the driver of the post-chaise you
  • will see in the yard--or just outside, for I told him not to drive his
  • rattling wheels over the pavement--to be ready; we are coming: and, Jane,
  • if any one is about, come to the foot of the stairs and hem."
  • It was by this time half-past five, and the sun was on the point of
  • rising; but I found the kitchen still dark and silent. The side-passage
  • door was fastened; I opened it with as little noise as possible: all the
  • yard was quiet; but the gates stood wide open, and there was a
  • post-chaise, with horses ready harnessed, and driver seated on the box,
  • stationed outside. I approached him, and said the gentlemen were coming;
  • he nodded: then I looked carefully round and listened. The stillness of
  • early morning slumbered everywhere; the curtains were yet drawn over the
  • servants' chamber windows; little birds were just twittering in the
  • blossom-blanched orchard trees, whose boughs drooped like white garlands
  • over the wall enclosing one side of the yard; the carriage horses stamped
  • from time to time in their closed stables: all else was still.
  • The gentlemen now appeared. Mason, supported by Mr. Rochester and the
  • surgeon, seemed to walk with tolerable ease: they assisted him into the
  • chaise; Carter followed.
  • "Take care of him," said Mr. Rochester to the latter, "and keep him at
  • your house till he is quite well: I shall ride over in a day or two to
  • see how he gets on. Richard, how is it with you?"
  • "The fresh air revives me, Fairfax."
  • "Leave the window open on his side, Carter; there is no wind--good-bye,
  • Dick."
  • "Fairfax--"
  • "Well what is it?"
  • "Let her be taken care of; let her be treated as tenderly as may be: let
  • her--" he stopped and burst into tears.
  • "I do my best; and have done it, and will do it," was the answer: he shut
  • up the chaise door, and the vehicle drove away.
  • "Yet would to God there was an end of all this!" added Mr. Rochester, as
  • he closed and barred the heavy yard-gates.
  • This done, he moved with slow step and abstracted air towards a door in
  • the wall bordering the orchard. I, supposing he had done with me,
  • prepared to return to the house; again, however, I heard him call "Jane!"
  • He had opened the portal and stood at it, waiting for me.
  • "Come where there is some freshness, for a few moments," he said; "that
  • house is a mere dungeon: don't you feel it so?"
  • "It seems to me a splendid mansion, sir."
  • "The glamour of inexperience is over your eyes," he answered; "and you
  • see it through a charmed medium: you cannot discern that the gilding is
  • slime and the silk draperies cobwebs; that the marble is sordid slate,
  • and the polished woods mere refuse chips and scaly bark. Now _here_" (he
  • pointed to the leafy enclosure we had entered) "all is real, sweet, and
  • pure."
  • He strayed down a walk edged with box, with apple trees, pear trees, and
  • cherry trees on one side, and a border on the other full of all sorts of
  • old-fashioned flowers, stocks, sweet-williams, primroses, pansies,
  • mingled with southernwood, sweet-briar, and various fragrant herbs. They
  • were fresh now as a succession of April showers and gleams, followed by a
  • lovely spring morning, could make them: the sun was just entering the
  • dappled east, and his light illumined the wreathed and dewy orchard trees
  • and shone down the quiet walks under them.
  • "Jane, will you have a flower?"
  • He gathered a half-blown rose, the first on the bush, and offered it to
  • me.
  • "Thank you, sir."
  • "Do you like this sunrise, Jane? That sky with its high and light clouds
  • which are sure to melt away as the day waxes warm--this placid and balmly
  • atmosphere?"
  • "I do, very much."
  • "You have passed a strange night, Jane."
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "And it has made you look pale--were you afraid when I left you alone
  • with Mason?"
  • "I was afraid of some one coming out of the inner room."
  • "But I had fastened the door--I had the key in my pocket: I should have
  • been a careless shepherd if I had left a lamb--my pet lamb--so near a
  • wolf's den, unguarded: you were safe."
  • "Will Grace Poole live here still, sir?"
  • "Oh yes! don't trouble your head about her--put the thing out of your
  • thoughts."
  • "Yet it seems to me your life is hardly secure while she stays."
  • "Never fear--I will take care of myself."
  • "Is the danger you apprehended last night gone by now, sir?"
  • "I cannot vouch for that till Mason is out of England: nor even then. To
  • live, for me, Jane, is to stand on a crater-crust which may crack and
  • spue fire any day."
  • "But Mr. Mason seems a man easily led. Your influence, sir, is evidently
  • potent with him: he will never set you at defiance or wilfully injure
  • you."
  • "Oh, no! Mason will not defy me; nor, knowing it, will he hurt me--but,
  • unintentionally, he might in a moment, by one careless word, deprive me,
  • if not of life, yet for ever of happiness."
  • "Tell him to be cautious, sir: let him know what you fear, and show him
  • how to avert the danger."
  • He laughed sardonically, hastily took my hand, and as hastily threw it
  • from him.
  • "If I could do that, simpleton, where would the danger be? Annihilated
  • in a moment. Ever since I have known Mason, I have only had to say to
  • him 'Do that,' and the thing has been done. But I cannot give him orders
  • in this case: I cannot say 'Beware of harming me, Richard;' for it is
  • imperative that I should keep him ignorant that harm to me is possible.
  • Now you look puzzled; and I will puzzle you further. You are my little
  • friend, are you not?"
  • "I like to serve you, sir, and to obey you in all that is right."
  • "Precisely: I see you do. I see genuine contentment in your gait and
  • mien, your eye and face, when you are helping me and pleasing me--working
  • for me, and with me, in, as you characteristically say, '_all that is
  • right_:' for if I bid you do what you thought wrong, there would be no
  • light-footed running, no neat-handed alacrity, no lively glance and
  • animated complexion. My friend would then turn to me, quiet and pale,
  • and would say, 'No, sir; that is impossible: I cannot do it, because it
  • is wrong;' and would become immutable as a fixed star. Well, you too
  • have power over me, and may injure me: yet I dare not show you where I am
  • vulnerable, lest, faithful and friendly as you are, you should transfix
  • me at once."
  • "If you have no more to fear from Mr. Mason than you have from me, sir,
  • you are very safe."
  • "God grant it may be so! Here, Jane, is an arbour; sit down."
  • The arbour was an arch in the wall, lined with ivy; it contained a rustic
  • seat. Mr. Rochester took it, leaving room, however, for me: but I stood
  • before him.
  • "Sit," he said; "the bench is long enough for two. You don't hesitate to
  • take a place at my side, do you? Is that wrong, Jane?"
  • I answered him by assuming it: to refuse would, I felt, have been unwise.
  • "Now, my little friend, while the sun drinks the dew--while all the
  • flowers in this old garden awake and expand, and the birds fetch their
  • young ones' breakfast out of the Thornfield, and the early bees do their
  • first spell of work--I'll put a case to you, which you must endeavour to
  • suppose your own: but first, look at me, and tell me you are at ease, and
  • not fearing that I err in detaining you, or that you err in staying."
  • "No, sir; I am content."
  • "Well then, Jane, call to aid your fancy:--suppose you were no longer a
  • girl well reared and disciplined, but a wild boy indulged from childhood
  • upwards; imagine yourself in a remote foreign land; conceive that you
  • there commit a capital error, no matter of what nature or from what
  • motives, but one whose consequences must follow you through life and
  • taint all your existence. Mind, I don't say a _crime_; I am not speaking
  • of shedding of blood or any other guilty act, which might make the
  • perpetrator amenable to the law: my word is _error_. The results of what
  • you have done become in time to you utterly insupportable; you take
  • measures to obtain relief: unusual measures, but neither unlawful nor
  • culpable. Still you are miserable; for hope has quitted you on the very
  • confines of life: your sun at noon darkens in an eclipse, which you feel
  • will not leave it till the time of setting. Bitter and base associations
  • have become the sole food of your memory: you wander here and there,
  • seeking rest in exile: happiness in pleasure--I mean in heartless,
  • sensual pleasure--such as dulls intellect and blights feeling.
  • Heart-weary and soul-withered, you come home after years of voluntary
  • banishment: you make a new acquaintance--how or where no matter: you find
  • in this stranger much of the good and bright qualities which you have
  • sought for twenty years, and never before encountered; and they are all
  • fresh, healthy, without soil and without taint. Such society revives,
  • regenerates: you feel better days come back--higher wishes, purer
  • feelings; you desire to recommence your life, and to spend what remains
  • to you of days in a way more worthy of an immortal being. To attain this
  • end, are you justified in overleaping an obstacle of custom--a mere
  • conventional impediment which neither your conscience sanctifies nor your
  • judgment approves?"
  • He paused for an answer: and what was I to say? Oh, for some good spirit
  • to suggest a judicious and satisfactory response! Vain aspiration! The
  • west wind whispered in the ivy round me; but no gentle Ariel borrowed its
  • breath as a medium of speech: the birds sang in the tree-tops; but their
  • song, however sweet, was inarticulate.
  • Again Mr. Rochester propounded his query:
  • "Is the wandering and sinful, but now rest-seeking and repentant, man
  • justified in daring the world's opinion, in order to attach to him for
  • ever this gentle, gracious, genial stranger, thereby securing his own
  • peace of mind and regeneration of life?"
  • "Sir," I answered, "a wanderer's repose or a sinner's reformation should
  • never depend on a fellow-creature. Men and women die; philosophers
  • falter in wisdom, and Christians in goodness: if any one you know has
  • suffered and erred, let him look higher than his equals for strength to
  • amend and solace to heal."
  • "But the instrument--the instrument! God, who does the work, ordains the
  • instrument. I have myself--I tell it you without parable--been a
  • worldly, dissipated, restless man; and I believe I have found the
  • instrument for my cure in--"
  • He paused: the birds went on carolling, the leaves lightly rustling. I
  • almost wondered they did not check their songs and whispers to catch the
  • suspended revelation; but they would have had to wait many minutes--so
  • long was the silence protracted. At last I looked up at the tardy
  • speaker: he was looking eagerly at me.
  • "Little friend," said he, in quite a changed tone--while his face changed
  • too, losing all its softness and gravity, and becoming harsh and
  • sarcastic--"you have noticed my tender penchant for Miss Ingram: don't
  • you think if I married her she would regenerate me with a vengeance?"
  • He got up instantly, went quite to the other end of the walk, and when he
  • came back he was humming a tune.
  • "Jane, Jane," said he, stopping before me, "you are quite pale with your
  • vigils: don't you curse me for disturbing your rest?"
  • "Curse you? No, sir."
  • "Shake hands in confirmation of the word. What cold fingers! They were
  • warmer last night when I touched them at the door of the mysterious
  • chamber. Jane, when will you watch with me again?"
  • "Whenever I can be useful, sir."
  • "For instance, the night before I am married! I am sure I shall not be
  • able to sleep. Will you promise to sit up with me to bear me company? To
  • you I can talk of my lovely one: for now you have seen her and know her."
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "She's a rare one, is she not, Jane?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "A strapper--a real strapper, Jane: big, brown, and buxom; with hair just
  • such as the ladies of Carthage must have had. Bless me! there's Dent and
  • Lynn in the stables! Go in by the shrubbery, through that wicket."
  • As I went one way, he went another, and I heard him in the yard, saying
  • cheerfully--
  • "Mason got the start of you all this morning; he was gone before sunrise:
  • I rose at four to see him off."
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • Presentiments are strange things! and so are sympathies; and so are
  • signs; and the three combined make one mystery to which humanity has not
  • yet found the key. I never laughed at presentiments in my life, because
  • I have had strange ones of my own. Sympathies, I believe, exist (for
  • instance, between far-distant, long-absent, wholly estranged relatives
  • asserting, notwithstanding their alienation, the unity of the source to
  • which each traces his origin) whose workings baffle mortal comprehension.
  • And signs, for aught we know, may be but the sympathies of Nature with
  • man.
  • When I was a little girl, only six years old, I one night heard Bessie
  • Leaven say to Martha Abbot that she had been dreaming about a little
  • child; and that to dream of children was a sure sign of trouble, either
  • to one's self or one's kin. The saying might have worn out of my memory,
  • had not a circumstance immediately followed which served indelibly to fix
  • it there. The next day Bessie was sent for home to the deathbed of her
  • little sister.
  • Of late I had often recalled this saying and this incident; for during
  • the past week scarcely a night had gone over my couch that had not
  • brought with it a dream of an infant, which I sometimes hushed in my
  • arms, sometimes dandled on my knee, sometimes watched playing with
  • daisies on a lawn, or again, dabbling its hands in running water. It was
  • a wailing child this night, and a laughing one the next: now it nestled
  • close to me, and now it ran from me; but whatever mood the apparition
  • evinced, whatever aspect it wore, it failed not for seven successive
  • nights to meet me the moment I entered the land of slumber.
  • I did not like this iteration of one idea--this strange recurrence of one
  • image, and I grew nervous as bedtime approached and the hour of the
  • vision drew near. It was from companionship with this baby-phantom I had
  • been roused on that moonlight night when I heard the cry; and it was on
  • the afternoon of the day following I was summoned downstairs by a message
  • that some one wanted me in Mrs. Fairfax's room. On repairing thither, I
  • found a man waiting for me, having the appearance of a gentleman's
  • servant: he was dressed in deep mourning, and the hat he held in his hand
  • was surrounded with a crape band.
  • "I daresay you hardly remember me, Miss," he said, rising as I entered;
  • "but my name is Leaven: I lived coachman with Mrs. Reed when you were at
  • Gateshead, eight or nine years since, and I live there still."
  • "Oh, Robert! how do you do? I remember you very well: you used to give
  • me a ride sometimes on Miss Georgiana's bay pony. And how is Bessie? You
  • are married to Bessie?"
  • "Yes, Miss: my wife is very hearty, thank you; she brought me another
  • little one about two months since--we have three now--and both mother and
  • child are thriving."
  • "And are the family well at the house, Robert?"
  • "I am sorry I can't give you better news of them, Miss: they are very
  • badly at present--in great trouble."
  • "I hope no one is dead," I said, glancing at his black dress. He too
  • looked down at the crape round his hat and replied--
  • "Mr. John died yesterday was a week, at his chambers in London."
  • "Mr. John?"
  • "Yes."
  • "And how does his mother bear it?"
  • "Why, you see, Miss Eyre, it is not a common mishap: his life has been
  • very wild: these last three years he gave himself up to strange ways, and
  • his death was shocking."
  • "I heard from Bessie he was not doing well."
  • "Doing well! He could not do worse: he ruined his health and his estate
  • amongst the worst men and the worst women. He got into debt and into
  • jail: his mother helped him out twice, but as soon as he was free he
  • returned to his old companions and habits. His head was not strong: the
  • knaves he lived amongst fooled him beyond anything I ever heard. He came
  • down to Gateshead about three weeks ago and wanted missis to give up all
  • to him. Missis refused: her means have long been much reduced by his
  • extravagance; so he went back again, and the next news was that he was
  • dead. How he died, God knows!--they say he killed himself."
  • I was silent: the things were frightful. Robert Leaven resumed--
  • "Missis had been out of health herself for some time: she had got very
  • stout, but was not strong with it; and the loss of money and fear of
  • poverty were quite breaking her down. The information about Mr. John's
  • death and the manner of it came too suddenly: it brought on a stroke. She
  • was three days without speaking; but last Tuesday she seemed rather
  • better: she appeared as if she wanted to say something, and kept making
  • signs to my wife and mumbling. It was only yesterday morning, however,
  • that Bessie understood she was pronouncing your name; and at last she
  • made out the words, 'Bring Jane--fetch Jane Eyre: I want to speak to
  • her.' Bessie is not sure whether she is in her right mind, or means
  • anything by the words; but she told Miss Reed and Miss Georgiana, and
  • advised them to send for you. The young ladies put it off at first; but
  • their mother grew so restless, and said, 'Jane, Jane,' so many times,
  • that at last they consented. I left Gateshead yesterday: and if you can
  • get ready, Miss, I should like to take you back with me early to-morrow
  • morning."
  • "Yes, Robert, I shall be ready: it seems to me that I ought to go."
  • "I think so too, Miss. Bessie said she was sure you would not refuse:
  • but I suppose you will have to ask leave before you can get off?"
  • "Yes; and I will do it now;" and having directed him to the servants'
  • hall, and recommended him to the care of John's wife, and the attentions
  • of John himself, I went in search of Mr. Rochester.
  • He was not in any of the lower rooms; he was not in the yard, the
  • stables, or the grounds. I asked Mrs. Fairfax if she had seen him;--yes:
  • she believed he was playing billiards with Miss Ingram. To the billiard-
  • room I hastened: the click of balls and the hum of voices resounded
  • thence; Mr. Rochester, Miss Ingram, the two Misses Eshton, and their
  • admirers, were all busied in the game. It required some courage to
  • disturb so interesting a party; my errand, however, was one I could not
  • defer, so I approached the master where he stood at Miss Ingram's side.
  • She turned as I drew near, and looked at me haughtily: her eyes seemed to
  • demand, "What can the creeping creature want now?" and when I said, in a
  • low voice, "Mr. Rochester," she made a movement as if tempted to order me
  • away. I remember her appearance at the moment--it was very graceful and
  • very striking: she wore a morning robe of sky-blue crape; a gauzy azure
  • scarf was twisted in her hair. She had been all animation with the game,
  • and irritated pride did not lower the expression of her haughty
  • lineaments.
  • "Does that person want you?" she inquired of Mr. Rochester; and Mr.
  • Rochester turned to see who the "person" was. He made a curious
  • grimace--one of his strange and equivocal demonstrations--threw down his
  • cue and followed me from the room.
  • "Well, Jane?" he said, as he rested his back against the schoolroom door,
  • which he had shut.
  • "If you please, sir, I want leave of absence for a week or two."
  • "What to do?--where to go?"
  • "To see a sick lady who has sent for me."
  • "What sick lady?--where does she live?"
  • "At Gateshead; in ---shire."
  • "-shire? That is a hundred miles off! Who may she be that sends for
  • people to see her that distance?"
  • "Her name is Reed, sir--Mrs. Reed."
  • "Reed of Gateshead? There was a Reed of Gateshead, a magistrate."
  • "It is his widow, sir."
  • "And what have you to do with her? How do you know her?"
  • "Mr. Reed was my uncle--my mother's brother."
  • "The deuce he was! You never told me that before: you always said you
  • had no relations."
  • "None that would own me, sir. Mr. Reed is dead, and his wife cast me
  • off."
  • "Why?"
  • "Because I was poor, and burdensome, and she disliked me."
  • "But Reed left children?--you must have cousins? Sir George Lynn was
  • talking of a Reed of Gateshead yesterday, who, he said, was one of the
  • veriest rascals on town; and Ingram was mentioning a Georgiana Reed of
  • the same place, who was much admired for her beauty a season or two ago
  • in London."
  • "John Reed is dead, too, sir: he ruined himself and half-ruined his
  • family, and is supposed to have committed suicide. The news so shocked
  • his mother that it brought on an apoplectic attack."
  • "And what good can you do her? Nonsense, Jane! I would never think of
  • running a hundred miles to see an old lady who will, perhaps, be dead
  • before you reach her: besides, you say she cast you off."
  • "Yes, sir, but that is long ago; and when her circumstances were very
  • different: I could not be easy to neglect her wishes now."
  • "How long will you stay?"
  • "As short a time as possible, sir."
  • "Promise me only to stay a week--"
  • "I had better not pass my word: I might be obliged to break it."
  • "At all events you _will_ come back: you will not be induced under any
  • pretext to take up a permanent residence with her?"
  • "Oh, no! I shall certainly return if all be well."
  • "And who goes with you? You don't travel a hundred miles alone."
  • "No, sir, she has sent her coachman."
  • "A person to be trusted?"
  • "Yes, sir, he has lived ten years in the family."
  • Mr. Rochester meditated. "When do you wish to go?"
  • "Early to-morrow morning, sir."
  • "Well, you must have some money; you can't travel without money, and I
  • daresay you have not much: I have given you no salary yet. How much have
  • you in the world, Jane?" he asked, smiling.
  • I drew out my purse; a meagre thing it was. "Five shillings, sir." He
  • took the purse, poured the hoard into his palm, and chuckled over it as
  • if its scantiness amused him. Soon he produced his pocket-book: "Here,"
  • said he, offering me a note; it was fifty pounds, and he owed me but
  • fifteen. I told him I had no change.
  • "I don't want change; you know that. Take your wages."
  • I declined accepting more than was my due. He scowled at first; then, as
  • if recollecting something, he said--
  • "Right, right! Better not give you all now: you would, perhaps, stay
  • away three months if you had fifty pounds. There are ten; is it not
  • plenty?"
  • "Yes, sir, but now you owe me five."
  • "Come back for it, then; I am your banker for forty pounds."
  • "Mr. Rochester, I may as well mention another matter of business to you
  • while I have the opportunity."
  • "Matter of business? I am curious to hear it."
  • "You have as good as informed me, sir, that you are going shortly to be
  • married?"
  • "Yes; what then?"
  • "In that case, sir, Adele ought to go to school: I am sure you will
  • perceive the necessity of it."
  • "To get her out of my bride's way, who might otherwise walk over her
  • rather too emphatically? There's sense in the suggestion; not a doubt of
  • it. Adele, as you say, must go to school; and you, of course, must march
  • straight to--the devil?"
  • "I hope not, sir; but I must seek another situation somewhere."
  • "In course!" he exclaimed, with a twang of voice and a distortion of
  • features equally fantastic and ludicrous. He looked at me some minutes.
  • "And old Madam Reed, or the Misses, her daughters, will be solicited by
  • you to seek a place, I suppose?"
  • "No, sir; I am not on such terms with my relatives as would justify me in
  • asking favours of them--but I shall advertise."
  • "You shall walk up the pyramids of Egypt!" he growled. "At your peril
  • you advertise! I wish I had only offered you a sovereign instead of ten
  • pounds. Give me back nine pounds, Jane; I've a use for it."
  • "And so have I, sir," I returned, putting my hands and my purse behind
  • me. "I could not spare the money on any account."
  • "Little niggard!" said he, "refusing me a pecuniary request! Give me
  • five pounds, Jane."
  • "Not five shillings, sir; nor five pence."
  • "Just let me look at the cash."
  • "No, sir; you are not to be trusted."
  • "Jane!"
  • "Sir?"
  • "Promise me one thing."
  • "I'll promise you anything, sir, that I think I am likely to perform."
  • "Not to advertise: and to trust this quest of a situation to me. I'll
  • find you one in time."
  • "I shall be glad so to do, sir, if you, in your turn, will promise that I
  • and Adele shall be both safe out of the house before your bride enters
  • it."
  • "Very well! very well! I'll pledge my word on it. You go to-morrow,
  • then?"
  • "Yes, sir; early."
  • "Shall you come down to the drawing-room after dinner?"
  • "No, sir, I must prepare for the journey."
  • "Then you and I must bid good-bye for a little while?"
  • "I suppose so, sir."
  • "And how do people perform that ceremony of parting, Jane? Teach me; I'm
  • not quite up to it."
  • "They say, Farewell, or any other form they prefer."
  • "Then say it."
  • "Farewell, Mr. Rochester, for the present."
  • "What must I say?"
  • "The same, if you like, sir."
  • "Farewell, Miss Eyre, for the present; is that all?"
  • "Yes?"
  • "It seems stingy, to my notions, and dry, and unfriendly. I should like
  • something else: a little addition to the rite. If one shook hands, for
  • instance; but no--that would not content me either. So you'll do no more
  • than say Farewell, Jane?"
  • "It is enough, sir: as much good-will may be conveyed in one hearty word
  • as in many."
  • "Very likely; but it is blank and cool--'Farewell.'"
  • "How long is he going to stand with his back against that door?" I asked
  • myself; "I want to commence my packing." The dinner-bell rang, and
  • suddenly away he bolted, without another syllable: I saw him no more
  • during the day, and was off before he had risen in the morning.
  • I reached the lodge at Gateshead about five o'clock in the afternoon of
  • the first of May: I stepped in there before going up to the hall. It was
  • very clean and neat: the ornamental windows were hung with little white
  • curtains; the floor was spotless; the grate and fire-irons were burnished
  • bright, and the fire burnt clear. Bessie sat on the hearth, nursing her
  • last-born, and Robert and his sister played quietly in a corner.
  • "Bless you!--I knew you would come!" exclaimed Mrs. Leaven, as I entered.
  • "Yes, Bessie," said I, after I had kissed her; "and I trust I am not too
  • late. How is Mrs. Reed?--Alive still, I hope."
  • "Yes, she is alive; and more sensible and collected than she was. The
  • doctor says she may linger a week or two yet; but he hardly thinks she
  • will finally recover."
  • "Has she mentioned me lately?"
  • "She was talking of you only this morning, and wishing you would come,
  • but she is sleeping now, or was ten minutes ago, when I was up at the
  • house. She generally lies in a kind of lethargy all the afternoon, and
  • wakes up about six or seven. Will you rest yourself here an hour, Miss,
  • and then I will go up with you?"
  • Robert here entered, and Bessie laid her sleeping child in the cradle and
  • went to welcome him: afterwards she insisted on my taking off my bonnet
  • and having some tea; for she said I looked pale and tired. I was glad to
  • accept her hospitality; and I submitted to be relieved of my travelling
  • garb just as passively as I used to let her undress me when a child.
  • Old times crowded fast back on me as I watched her bustling about--setting
  • out the tea-tray with her best china, cutting bread and butter, toasting
  • a tea-cake, and, between whiles, giving little Robert or Jane an
  • occasional tap or push, just as she used to give me in former days.
  • Bessie had retained her quick temper as well as her light foot and good
  • looks.
  • Tea ready, I was going to approach the table; but she desired me to sit
  • still, quite in her old peremptory tones. I must be served at the
  • fireside, she said; and she placed before me a little round stand with my
  • cup and a plate of toast, absolutely as she used to accommodate me with
  • some privately purloined dainty on a nursery chair: and I smiled and
  • obeyed her as in bygone days.
  • She wanted to know if I was happy at Thornfield Hall, and what sort of a
  • person the mistress was; and when I told her there was only a master,
  • whether he was a nice gentleman, and if I liked him. I told her he was
  • rather an ugly man, but quite a gentleman; and that he treated me kindly,
  • and I was content. Then I went on to describe to her the gay company
  • that had lately been staying at the house; and to these details Bessie
  • listened with interest: they were precisely of the kind she relished.
  • In such conversation an hour was soon gone: Bessie restored to me my
  • bonnet, &c., and, accompanied by her, I quitted the lodge for the hall.
  • It was also accompanied by her that I had, nearly nine years ago, walked
  • down the path I was now ascending. On a dark, misty, raw morning in
  • January, I had left a hostile roof with a desperate and embittered
  • heart--a sense of outlawry and almost of reprobation--to seek the chilly
  • harbourage of Lowood: that bourne so far away and unexplored. The same
  • hostile roof now again rose before me: my prospects were doubtful yet;
  • and I had yet an aching heart. I still felt as a wanderer on the face of
  • the earth; but I experienced firmer trust in myself and my own powers,
  • and less withering dread of oppression. The gaping wound of my wrongs,
  • too, was now quite healed; and the flame of resentment extinguished.
  • "You shall go into the breakfast-room first," said Bessie, as she
  • preceded me through the hall; "the young ladies will be there."
  • In another moment I was within that apartment. There was every article
  • of furniture looking just as it did on the morning I was first introduced
  • to Mr. Brocklehurst: the very rug he had stood upon still covered the
  • hearth. Glancing at the bookcases, I thought I could distinguish the two
  • volumes of Bewick's British Birds occupying their old place on the third
  • shelf, and Gulliver's Travels and the Arabian Nights ranged just above.
  • The inanimate objects were not changed; but the living things had altered
  • past recognition.
  • Two young ladies appeared before me; one very tall, almost as tall as
  • Miss Ingram--very thin too, with a sallow face and severe mien. There
  • was something ascetic in her look, which was augmented by the extreme
  • plainness of a straight-skirted, black, stuff dress, a starched linen
  • collar, hair combed away from the temples, and the nun-like ornament of a
  • string of ebony beads and a crucifix. This I felt sure was Eliza, though
  • I could trace little resemblance to her former self in that elongated and
  • colourless visage.
  • The other was as certainly Georgiana: but not the Georgiana I
  • remembered--the slim and fairy-like girl of eleven. This was a
  • full-blown, very plump damsel, fair as waxwork, with handsome and regular
  • features, languishing blue eyes, and ringleted yellow hair. The hue of
  • her dress was black too; but its fashion was so different from her
  • sister's--so much more flowing and becoming--it looked as stylish as the
  • other's looked puritanical.
  • In each of the sisters there was one trait of the mother--and only one;
  • the thin and pallid elder daughter had her parent's Cairngorm eye: the
  • blooming and luxuriant younger girl had her contour of jaw and
  • chin--perhaps a little softened, but still imparting an indescribable
  • hardness to the countenance otherwise so voluptuous and buxom.
  • Both ladies, as I advanced, rose to welcome me, and both addressed me by
  • the name of "Miss Eyre." Eliza's greeting was delivered in a short,
  • abrupt voice, without a smile; and then she sat down again, fixed her
  • eyes on the fire, and seemed to forget me. Georgiana added to her "How
  • d'ye do?" several commonplaces about my journey, the weather, and so on,
  • uttered in rather a drawling tone: and accompanied by sundry side-glances
  • that measured me from head to foot--now traversing the folds of my drab
  • merino pelisse, and now lingering on the plain trimming of my cottage
  • bonnet. Young ladies have a remarkable way of letting you know that they
  • think you a "quiz" without actually saying the words. A certain
  • superciliousness of look, coolness of manner, nonchalance of tone,
  • express fully their sentiments on the point, without committing them by
  • any positive rudeness in word or deed.
  • A sneer, however, whether covert or open, had now no longer that power
  • over me it once possessed: as I sat between my cousins, I was surprised
  • to find how easy I felt under the total neglect of the one and the semi-
  • sarcastic attentions of the other--Eliza did not mortify, nor Georgiana
  • ruffle me. The fact was, I had other things to think about; within the
  • last few months feelings had been stirred in me so much more potent than
  • any they could raise--pains and pleasures so much more acute and
  • exquisite had been excited than any it was in their power to inflict or
  • bestow--that their airs gave me no concern either for good or bad.
  • "How is Mrs. Reed?" I asked soon, looking calmly at Georgiana, who
  • thought fit to bridle at the direct address, as if it were an unexpected
  • liberty.
  • "Mrs. Reed? Ah! mama, you mean; she is extremely poorly: I doubt if you
  • can see her to-night."
  • "If," said I, "you would just step upstairs and tell her I am come, I
  • should be much obliged to you."
  • Georgiana almost started, and she opened her blue eyes wild and wide. "I
  • know she had a particular wish to see me," I added, "and I would not
  • defer attending to her desire longer than is absolutely necessary."
  • "Mama dislikes being disturbed in an evening," remarked Eliza. I soon
  • rose, quietly took off my bonnet and gloves, uninvited, and said I would
  • just step out to Bessie--who was, I dared say, in the kitchen--and ask
  • her to ascertain whether Mrs. Reed was disposed to receive me or not to-
  • night. I went, and having found Bessie and despatched her on my errand,
  • I proceeded to take further measures. It had heretofore been my habit
  • always to shrink from arrogance: received as I had been to-day, I should,
  • a year ago, have resolved to quit Gateshead the very next morning; now,
  • it was disclosed to me all at once that that would be a foolish plan. I
  • had taken a journey of a hundred miles to see my aunt, and I must stay
  • with her till she was better--or dead: as to her daughters' pride or
  • folly, I must put it on one side, make myself independent of it. So I
  • addressed the housekeeper; asked her to show me a room, told her I should
  • probably be a visitor here for a week or two, had my trunk conveyed to my
  • chamber, and followed it thither myself: I met Bessie on the landing.
  • "Missis is awake," said she; "I have told her you are here: come and let
  • us see if she will know you."
  • I did not need to be guided to the well-known room, to which I had so
  • often been summoned for chastisement or reprimand in former days. I
  • hastened before Bessie; I softly opened the door: a shaded light stood on
  • the table, for it was now getting dark. There was the great four-post
  • bed with amber hangings as of old; there the toilet-table, the armchair,
  • and the footstool, at which I had a hundred times been sentenced to
  • kneel, to ask pardon for offences by me uncommitted. I looked into a
  • certain corner near, half-expecting to see the slim outline of a once
  • dreaded switch which used to lurk there, waiting to leap out imp-like and
  • lace my quivering palm or shrinking neck. I approached the bed; I opened
  • the curtains and leant over the high-piled pillows.
  • Well did I remember Mrs. Reed's face, and I eagerly sought the familiar
  • image. It is a happy thing that time quells the longings of vengeance
  • and hushes the promptings of rage and aversion. I had left this woman in
  • bitterness and hate, and I came back to her now with no other emotion
  • than a sort of ruth for her great sufferings, and a strong yearning to
  • forget and forgive all injuries--to be reconciled and clasp hands in
  • amity.
  • The well-known face was there: stern, relentless as ever--there was that
  • peculiar eye which nothing could melt, and the somewhat raised,
  • imperious, despotic eyebrow. How often had it lowered on me menace and
  • hate! and how the recollection of childhood's terrors and sorrows revived
  • as I traced its harsh line now! And yet I stooped down and kissed her:
  • she looked at me.
  • "Is this Jane Eyre?" she said.
  • "Yes, Aunt Reed. How are you, dear aunt?"
  • I had once vowed that I would never call her aunt again: I thought it no
  • sin to forget and break that vow now. My fingers had fastened on her
  • hand which lay outside the sheet: had she pressed mine kindly, I should
  • at that moment have experienced true pleasure. But unimpressionable
  • natures are not so soon softened, nor are natural antipathies so readily
  • eradicated. Mrs. Reed took her hand away, and, turning her face rather
  • from me, she remarked that the night was warm. Again she regarded me so
  • icily, I felt at once that her opinion of me--her feeling towards me--was
  • unchanged and unchangeable. I knew by her stony eye--opaque to
  • tenderness, indissoluble to tears--that she was resolved to consider me
  • bad to the last; because to believe me good would give her no generous
  • pleasure: only a sense of mortification.
  • I felt pain, and then I felt ire; and then I felt a determination to
  • subdue her--to be her mistress in spite both of her nature and her will.
  • My tears had risen, just as in childhood: I ordered them back to their
  • source. I brought a chair to the bed-head: I sat down and leaned over
  • the pillow.
  • "You sent for me," I said, "and I am here; and it is my intention to stay
  • till I see how you get on."
  • "Oh, of course! You have seen my daughters?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Well, you may tell them I wish you to stay till I can talk some things
  • over with you I have on my mind: to-night it is too late, and I have a
  • difficulty in recalling them. But there was something I wished to
  • say--let me see--"
  • The wandering look and changed utterance told what wreck had taken place
  • in her once vigorous frame. Turning restlessly, she drew the bedclothes
  • round her; my elbow, resting on a corner of the quilt, fixed it down: she
  • was at once irritated.
  • "Sit up!" said she; "don't annoy me with holding the clothes fast. Are
  • you Jane Eyre?"
  • "I am Jane Eyre."
  • "I have had more trouble with that child than any one would believe. Such
  • a burden to be left on my hands--and so much annoyance as she caused me,
  • daily and hourly, with her incomprehensible disposition, and her sudden
  • starts of temper, and her continual, unnatural watchings of one's
  • movements! I declare she talked to me once like something mad, or like a
  • fiend--no child ever spoke or looked as she did; I was glad to get her
  • away from the house. What did they do with her at Lowood? The fever
  • broke out there, and many of the pupils died. She, however, did not die:
  • but I said she did--I wish she had died!"
  • "A strange wish, Mrs. Reed; why do you hate her so?"
  • "I had a dislike to her mother always; for she was my husband's only
  • sister, and a great favourite with him: he opposed the family's disowning
  • her when she made her low marriage; and when news came of her death, he
  • wept like a simpleton. He would send for the baby; though I entreated
  • him rather to put it out to nurse and pay for its maintenance. I hated
  • it the first time I set my eyes on it--a sickly, whining, pining thing!
  • It would wail in its cradle all night long--not screaming heartily like
  • any other child, but whimpering and moaning. Reed pitied it; and he used
  • to nurse it and notice it as if it had been his own: more, indeed, than
  • he ever noticed his own at that age. He would try to make my children
  • friendly to the little beggar: the darlings could not bear it, and he was
  • angry with them when they showed their dislike. In his last illness, he
  • had it brought continually to his bedside; and but an hour before he
  • died, he bound me by vow to keep the creature. I would as soon have been
  • charged with a pauper brat out of a workhouse: but he was weak, naturally
  • weak. John does not at all resemble his father, and I am glad of it:
  • John is like me and like my brothers--he is quite a Gibson. Oh, I wish
  • he would cease tormenting me with letters for money? I have no more
  • money to give him: we are getting poor. I must send away half the
  • servants and shut up part of the house; or let it off. I can never
  • submit to do that--yet how are we to get on? Two-thirds of my income
  • goes in paying the interest of mortgages. John gambles dreadfully, and
  • always loses--poor boy! He is beset by sharpers: John is sunk and
  • degraded--his look is frightful--I feel ashamed for him when I see him."
  • She was getting much excited. "I think I had better leave her now," said
  • I to Bessie, who stood on the other side of the bed.
  • "Perhaps you had, Miss: but she often talks in this way towards night--in
  • the morning she is calmer."
  • I rose. "Stop!" exclaimed Mrs. Reed, "there is another thing I wished to
  • say. He threatens me--he continually threatens me with his own death, or
  • mine: and I dream sometimes that I see him laid out with a great wound in
  • his throat, or with a swollen and blackened face. I am come to a strange
  • pass: I have heavy troubles. What is to be done? How is the money to be
  • had?"
  • Bessie now endeavoured to persuade her to take a sedative draught: she
  • succeeded with difficulty. Soon after, Mrs. Reed grew more composed, and
  • sank into a dozing state. I then left her.
  • More than ten days elapsed before I had again any conversation with her.
  • She continued either delirious or lethargic; and the doctor forbade
  • everything which could painfully excite her. Meantime, I got on as well
  • as I could with Georgiana and Eliza. They were very cold, indeed, at
  • first. Eliza would sit half the day sewing, reading, or writing, and
  • scarcely utter a word either to me or her sister. Georgiana would
  • chatter nonsense to her canary bird by the hour, and take no notice of
  • me. But I was determined not to seem at a loss for occupation or
  • amusement: I had brought my drawing materials with me, and they served me
  • for both.
  • Provided with a case of pencils, and some sheets of paper, I used to take
  • a seat apart from them, near the window, and busy myself in sketching
  • fancy vignettes, representing any scene that happened momentarily to
  • shape itself in the ever-shifting kaleidoscope of imagination: a glimpse
  • of sea between two rocks; the rising moon, and a ship crossing its disk;
  • a group of reeds and water-flags, and a naiad's head, crowned with lotus-
  • flowers, rising out of them; an elf sitting in a hedge-sparrow's nest,
  • under a wreath of hawthorn-bloom.
  • One morning I fell to sketching a face: what sort of a face it was to be,
  • I did not care or know. I took a soft black pencil, gave it a broad
  • point, and worked away. Soon I had traced on the paper a broad and
  • prominent forehead and a square lower outline of visage: that contour
  • gave me pleasure; my fingers proceeded actively to fill it with features.
  • Strongly-marked horizontal eyebrows must be traced under that brow; then
  • followed, naturally, a well-defined nose, with a straight ridge and full
  • nostrils; then a flexible-looking mouth, by no means narrow; then a firm
  • chin, with a decided cleft down the middle of it: of course, some black
  • whiskers were wanted, and some jetty hair, tufted on the temples, and
  • waved above the forehead. Now for the eyes: I had left them to the last,
  • because they required the most careful working. I drew them large; I
  • shaped them well: the eyelashes I traced long and sombre; the irids
  • lustrous and large. "Good! but not quite the thing," I thought, as I
  • surveyed the effect: "they want more force and spirit;" and I wrought the
  • shades blacker, that the lights might flash more brilliantly--a happy
  • touch or two secured success. There, I had a friend's face under my
  • gaze; and what did it signify that those young ladies turned their backs
  • on me? I looked at it; I smiled at the speaking likeness: I was absorbed
  • and content.
  • "Is that a portrait of some one you know?" asked Eliza, who had
  • approached me unnoticed. I responded that it was merely a fancy head,
  • and hurried it beneath the other sheets. Of course, I lied: it was, in
  • fact, a very faithful representation of Mr. Rochester. But what was that
  • to her, or to any one but myself? Georgiana also advanced to look. The
  • other drawings pleased her much, but she called that "an ugly man." They
  • both seemed surprised at my skill. I offered to sketch their portraits;
  • and each, in turn, sat for a pencil outline. Then Georgiana produced her
  • album. I promised to contribute a water-colour drawing: this put her at
  • once into good humour. She proposed a walk in the grounds. Before we
  • had been out two hours, we were deep in a confidential conversation: she
  • had favoured me with a description of the brilliant winter she had spent
  • in London two seasons ago--of the admiration she had there excited--the
  • attention she had received; and I even got hints of the titled conquest
  • she had made. In the course of the afternoon and evening these hints
  • were enlarged on: various soft conversations were reported, and
  • sentimental scenes represented; and, in short, a volume of a novel of
  • fashionable life was that day improvised by her for my benefit. The
  • communications were renewed from day to day: they always ran on the same
  • theme--herself, her loves, and woes. It was strange she never once
  • adverted either to her mother's illness, or her brother's death, or the
  • present gloomy state of the family prospects. Her mind seemed wholly
  • taken up with reminiscences of past gaiety, and aspirations after
  • dissipations to come. She passed about five minutes each day in her
  • mother's sick-room, and no more.
  • Eliza still spoke little: she had evidently no time to talk. I never saw
  • a busier person than she seemed to be; yet it was difficult to say what
  • she did: or rather, to discover any result of her diligence. She had an
  • alarm to call her up early. I know not how she occupied herself before
  • breakfast, but after that meal she divided her time into regular
  • portions, and each hour had its allotted task. Three times a day she
  • studied a little book, which I found, on inspection, was a Common Prayer
  • Book. I asked her once what was the great attraction of that volume, and
  • she said, "the Rubric." Three hours she gave to stitching, with gold
  • thread, the border of a square crimson cloth, almost large enough for a
  • carpet. In answer to my inquiries after the use of this article, she
  • informed me it was a covering for the altar of a new church lately
  • erected near Gateshead. Two hours she devoted to her diary; two to
  • working by herself in the kitchen-garden; and one to the regulation of
  • her accounts. She seemed to want no company; no conversation. I believe
  • she was happy in her way: this routine sufficed for her; and nothing
  • annoyed her so much as the occurrence of any incident which forced her to
  • vary its clockwork regularity.
  • She told me one evening, when more disposed to be communicative than
  • usual, that John's conduct, and the threatened ruin of the family, had
  • been a source of profound affliction to her: but she had now, she said,
  • settled her mind, and formed her resolution. Her own fortune she had
  • taken care to secure; and when her mother died--and it was wholly
  • improbable, she tranquilly remarked, that she should either recover or
  • linger long--she would execute a long-cherished project: seek a
  • retirement where punctual habits would be permanently secured from
  • disturbance, and place safe barriers between herself and a frivolous
  • world. I asked if Georgiana would accompany her.
  • "Of course not. Georgiana and she had nothing in common: they never had
  • had. She would not be burdened with her society for any consideration.
  • Georgiana should take her own course; and she, Eliza, would take hers."
  • Georgiana, when not unburdening her heart to me, spent most of her time
  • in lying on the sofa, fretting about the dulness of the house, and
  • wishing over and over again that her aunt Gibson would send her an
  • invitation up to town. "It would be so much better," she said, "if she
  • could only get out of the way for a month or two, till all was over." I
  • did not ask what she meant by "all being over," but I suppose she
  • referred to the expected decease of her mother and the gloomy sequel of
  • funeral rites. Eliza generally took no more notice of her sister's
  • indolence and complaints than if no such murmuring, lounging object had
  • been before her. One day, however, as she put away her account-book and
  • unfolded her embroidery, she suddenly took her up thus--
  • "Georgiana, a more vain and absurd animal than you was certainly never
  • allowed to cumber the earth. You had no right to be born, for you make
  • no use of life. Instead of living for, in, and with yourself, as a
  • reasonable being ought, you seek only to fasten your feebleness on some
  • other person's strength: if no one can be found willing to burden her or
  • himself with such a fat, weak, puffy, useless thing, you cry out that you
  • are ill-treated, neglected, miserable. Then, too, existence for you must
  • be a scene of continual change and excitement, or else the world is a
  • dungeon: you must be admired, you must be courted, you must be
  • flattered--you must have music, dancing, and society--or you languish,
  • you die away. Have you no sense to devise a system which will make you
  • independent of all efforts, and all wills, but your own? Take one day;
  • share it into sections; to each section apportion its task: leave no
  • stray unemployed quarters of an hour, ten minutes, five minutes--include
  • all; do each piece of business in its turn with method, with rigid
  • regularity. The day will close almost before you are aware it has begun;
  • and you are indebted to no one for helping you to get rid of one vacant
  • moment: you have had to seek no one's company, conversation, sympathy,
  • forbearance; you have lived, in short, as an independent being ought to
  • do. Take this advice: the first and last I shall offer you; then you
  • will not want me or any one else, happen what may. Neglect it--go on as
  • heretofore, craving, whining, and idling--and suffer the results of your
  • idiocy, however bad and insuperable they may be. I tell you this
  • plainly; and listen: for though I shall no more repeat what I am now
  • about to say, I shall steadily act on it. After my mother's death, I
  • wash my hands of you: from the day her coffin is carried to the vault in
  • Gateshead Church, you and I will be as separate as if we had never known
  • each other. You need not think that because we chanced to be born of the
  • same parents, I shall suffer you to fasten me down by even the feeblest
  • claim: I can tell you this--if the whole human race, ourselves excepted,
  • were swept away, and we two stood alone on the earth, I would leave you
  • in the old world, and betake myself to the new."
  • She closed her lips.
  • "You might have spared yourself the trouble of delivering that tirade,"
  • answered Georgiana. "Everybody knows you are the most selfish, heartless
  • creature in existence: and _I_ know your spiteful hatred towards me: I
  • have had a specimen of it before in the trick you played me about Lord
  • Edwin Vere: you could not bear me to be raised above you, to have a
  • title, to be received into circles where you dare not show your face, and
  • so you acted the spy and informer, and ruined my prospects for ever."
  • Georgiana took out her handkerchief and blew her nose for an hour
  • afterwards; Eliza sat cold, impassable, and assiduously industrious.
  • True, generous feeling is made small account of by some, but here were
  • two natures rendered, the one intolerably acrid, the other despicably
  • savourless for the want of it. Feeling without judgment is a washy
  • draught indeed; but judgment untempered by feeling is too bitter and
  • husky a morsel for human deglutition.
  • It was a wet and windy afternoon: Georgiana had fallen asleep on the sofa
  • over the perusal of a novel; Eliza was gone to attend a saint's-day
  • service at the new church--for in matters of religion she was a rigid
  • formalist: no weather ever prevented the punctual discharge of what she
  • considered her devotional duties; fair or foul, she went to church thrice
  • every Sunday, and as often on week-days as there were prayers.
  • I bethought myself to go upstairs and see how the dying woman sped, who
  • lay there almost unheeded: the very servants paid her but a remittent
  • attention: the hired nurse, being little looked after, would slip out of
  • the room whenever she could. Bessie was faithful; but she had her own
  • family to mind, and could only come occasionally to the hall. I found
  • the sick-room unwatched, as I had expected: no nurse was there; the
  • patient lay still, and seemingly lethargic; her livid face sunk in the
  • pillows: the fire was dying in the grate. I renewed the fuel,
  • re-arranged the bedclothes, gazed awhile on her who could not now gaze on
  • me, and then I moved away to the window.
  • The rain beat strongly against the panes, the wind blew tempestuously:
  • "One lies there," I thought, "who will soon be beyond the war of earthly
  • elements. Whither will that spirit--now struggling to quit its material
  • tenement--flit when at length released?"
  • In pondering the great mystery, I thought of Helen Burns, recalled her
  • dying words--her faith--her doctrine of the equality of disembodied
  • souls. I was still listening in thought to her well-remembered
  • tones--still picturing her pale and spiritual aspect, her wasted face and
  • sublime gaze, as she lay on her placid deathbed, and whispered her
  • longing to be restored to her divine Father's bosom--when a feeble voice
  • murmured from the couch behind: "Who is that?"
  • I knew Mrs. Reed had not spoken for days: was she reviving? I went up to
  • her.
  • "It is I, Aunt Reed."
  • "Who--I?" was her answer. "Who are you?" looking at me with surprise and
  • a sort of alarm, but still not wildly. "You are quite a stranger to
  • me--where is Bessie?"
  • "She is at the lodge, aunt."
  • "Aunt," she repeated. "Who calls me aunt? You are not one of the
  • Gibsons; and yet I know you--that face, and the eyes and forehead, are
  • quiet familiar to me: you are like--why, you are like Jane Eyre!"
  • I said nothing: I was afraid of occasioning some shock by declaring my
  • identity.
  • "Yet," said she, "I am afraid it is a mistake: my thoughts deceive me. I
  • wished to see Jane Eyre, and I fancy a likeness where none exists:
  • besides, in eight years she must be so changed." I now gently assured
  • her that I was the person she supposed and desired me to be: and seeing
  • that I was understood, and that her senses were quite collected, I
  • explained how Bessie had sent her husband to fetch me from Thornfield.
  • "I am very ill, I know," she said ere long. "I was trying to turn myself
  • a few minutes since, and find I cannot move a limb. It is as well I
  • should ease my mind before I die: what we think little of in health,
  • burdens us at such an hour as the present is to me. Is the nurse here?
  • or is there no one in the room but you?"
  • I assured her we were alone.
  • "Well, I have twice done you a wrong which I regret now. One was in
  • breaking the promise which I gave my husband to bring you up as my own
  • child; the other--" she stopped. "After all, it is of no great
  • importance, perhaps," she murmured to herself: "and then I may get
  • better; and to humble myself so to her is painful."
  • She made an effort to alter her position, but failed: her face changed;
  • she seemed to experience some inward sensation--the precursor, perhaps,
  • of the last pang.
  • "Well, I must get it over. Eternity is before me: I had better tell
  • her.--Go to my dressing-case, open it, and take out a letter you will see
  • there."
  • I obeyed her directions. "Read the letter," she said.
  • It was short, and thus conceived:--
  • "Madam,--Will you have the goodness to send me the address of my
  • niece, Jane Eyre, and to tell me how she is? It is my intention to
  • write shortly and desire her to come to me at Madeira. Providence has
  • blessed my endeavours to secure a competency; and as I am unmarried
  • and childless, I wish to adopt her during my life, and bequeath her at
  • my death whatever I may have to leave.--I am, Madam, &c., &c.,
  • "JOHN EYRE, Madeira."
  • It was dated three years back.
  • "Why did I never hear of this?" I asked.
  • "Because I disliked you too fixedly and thoroughly ever to lend a hand in
  • lifting you to prosperity. I could not forget your conduct to me,
  • Jane--the fury with which you once turned on me; the tone in which you
  • declared you abhorred me the worst of anybody in the world; the
  • unchildlike look and voice with which you affirmed that the very thought
  • of me made you sick, and asserted that I had treated you with miserable
  • cruelty. I could not forget my own sensations when you thus started up
  • and poured out the venom of your mind: I felt fear as if an animal that I
  • had struck or pushed had looked up at me with human eyes and cursed me in
  • a man's voice.--Bring me some water! Oh, make haste!"
  • "Dear Mrs. Reed," said I, as I offered her the draught she required,
  • "think no more of all this, let it pass away from your mind. Forgive me
  • for my passionate language: I was a child then; eight, nine years have
  • passed since that day."
  • She heeded nothing of what I said; but when she had tasted the water and
  • drawn breath, she went on thus--
  • "I tell you I could not forget it; and I took my revenge: for you to be
  • adopted by your uncle, and placed in a state of ease and comfort, was
  • what I could not endure. I wrote to him; I said I was sorry for his
  • disappointment, but Jane Eyre was dead: she had died of typhus fever at
  • Lowood. Now act as you please: write and contradict my assertion--expose
  • my falsehood as soon as you like. You were born, I think, to be my
  • torment: my last hour is racked by the recollection of a deed which, but
  • for you, I should never have been tempted to commit."
  • "If you could but be persuaded to think no more of it, aunt, and to
  • regard me with kindness and forgiveness"
  • "You have a very bad disposition," said she, "and one to this day I feel
  • it impossible to understand: how for nine years you could be patient and
  • quiescent under any treatment, and in the tenth break out all fire and
  • violence, I can never comprehend."
  • "My disposition is not so bad as you think: I am passionate, but not
  • vindictive. Many a time, as a little child, I should have been glad to
  • love you if you would have let me; and I long earnestly to be reconciled
  • to you now: kiss me, aunt."
  • I approached my cheek to her lips: she would not touch it. She said I
  • oppressed her by leaning over the bed, and again demanded water. As I
  • laid her down--for I raised her and supported her on my arm while she
  • drank--I covered her ice-cold and clammy hand with mine: the feeble
  • fingers shrank from my touch--the glazing eyes shunned my gaze.
  • "Love me, then, or hate me, as you will," I said at last, "you have my
  • full and free forgiveness: ask now for God's, and be at peace."
  • Poor, suffering woman! it was too late for her to make now the effort to
  • change her habitual frame of mind: living, she had ever hated me--dying,
  • she must hate me still.
  • The nurse now entered, and Bessie followed. I yet lingered half-an-hour
  • longer, hoping to see some sign of amity: but she gave none. She was
  • fast relapsing into stupor; nor did her mind again rally: at twelve
  • o'clock that night she died. I was not present to close her eyes, nor
  • were either of her daughters. They came to tell us the next morning that
  • all was over. She was by that time laid out. Eliza and I went to look
  • at her: Georgiana, who had burst out into loud weeping, said she dared
  • not go. There was stretched Sarah Reed's once robust and active frame,
  • rigid and still: her eye of flint was covered with its cold lid; her brow
  • and strong traits wore yet the impress of her inexorable soul. A strange
  • and solemn object was that corpse to me. I gazed on it with gloom and
  • pain: nothing soft, nothing sweet, nothing pitying, or hopeful, or
  • subduing did it inspire; only a grating anguish for _her_ woes--not _my_
  • loss--and a sombre tearless dismay at the fearfulness of death in such a
  • form.
  • Eliza surveyed her parent calmly. After a silence of some minutes she
  • observed--
  • "With her constitution she should have lived to a good old age: her life
  • was shortened by trouble." And then a spasm constricted her mouth for an
  • instant: as it passed away she turned and left the room, and so did I.
  • Neither of us had dropt a tear.
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • Mr. Rochester had given me but one week's leave of absence: yet a month
  • elapsed before I quitted Gateshead. I wished to leave immediately after
  • the funeral, but Georgiana entreated me to stay till she could get off to
  • London, whither she was now at last invited by her uncle, Mr. Gibson, who
  • had come down to direct his sister's interment and settle the family
  • affairs. Georgiana said she dreaded being left alone with Eliza; from
  • her she got neither sympathy in her dejection, support in her fears, nor
  • aid in her preparations; so I bore with her feeble-minded wailings and
  • selfish lamentations as well as I could, and did my best in sewing for
  • her and packing her dresses. It is true, that while I worked, she would
  • idle; and I thought to myself, "If you and I were destined to live always
  • together, cousin, we would commence matters on a different footing. I
  • should not settle tamely down into being the forbearing party; I should
  • assign you your share of labour, and compel you to accomplish it, or else
  • it should be left undone: I should insist, also, on your keeping some of
  • those drawling, half-insincere complaints hushed in your own breast. It
  • is only because our connection happens to be very transitory, and comes
  • at a peculiarly mournful season, that I consent thus to render it so
  • patient and compliant on my part."
  • At last I saw Georgiana off; but now it was Eliza's turn to request me to
  • stay another week. Her plans required all her time and attention, she
  • said; she was about to depart for some unknown bourne; and all day long
  • she stayed in her own room, her door bolted within, filling trunks,
  • emptying drawers, burning papers, and holding no communication with any
  • one. She wished me to look after the house, to see callers, and answer
  • notes of condolence.
  • One morning she told me I was at liberty. "And," she added, "I am
  • obliged to you for your valuable services and discreet conduct! There is
  • some difference between living with such an one as you and with
  • Georgiana: you perform your own part in life and burden no one.
  • To-morrow," she continued, "I set out for the Continent. I shall take up
  • my abode in a religious house near Lisle--a nunnery you would call it;
  • there I shall be quiet and unmolested. I shall devote myself for a time
  • to the examination of the Roman Catholic dogmas, and to a careful study
  • of the workings of their system: if I find it to be, as I half suspect it
  • is, the one best calculated to ensure the doing of all things decently
  • and in order, I shall embrace the tenets of Rome and probably take the
  • veil."
  • I neither expressed surprise at this resolution nor attempted to dissuade
  • her from it. "The vocation will fit you to a hair," I thought: "much
  • good may it do you!"
  • When we parted, she said: "Good-bye, cousin Jane Eyre; I wish you well:
  • you have some sense."
  • I then returned: "You are not without sense, cousin Eliza; but what you
  • have, I suppose, in another year will be walled up alive in a French
  • convent. However, it is not my business, and so it suits you, I don't
  • much care."
  • "You are in the right," said she; and with these words we each went our
  • separate way. As I shall not have occasion to refer either to her or her
  • sister again, I may as well mention here, that Georgiana made an
  • advantageous match with a wealthy worn-out man of fashion, and that Eliza
  • actually took the veil, and is at this day superior of the convent where
  • she passed the period of her novitiate, and which she endowed with her
  • fortune.
  • How people feel when they are returning home from an absence, long or
  • short, I did not know: I had never experienced the sensation. I had
  • known what it was to come back to Gateshead when a child after a long
  • walk, to be scolded for looking cold or gloomy; and later, what it was to
  • come back from church to Lowood, to long for a plenteous meal and a good
  • fire, and to be unable to get either. Neither of these returnings was
  • very pleasant or desirable: no magnet drew me to a given point,
  • increasing in its strength of attraction the nearer I came. The return
  • to Thornfield was yet to be tried.
  • My journey seemed tedious--very tedious: fifty miles one day, a night
  • spent at an inn; fifty miles the next day. During the first twelve hours
  • I thought of Mrs. Reed in her last moments; I saw her disfigured and
  • discoloured face, and heard her strangely altered voice. I mused on the
  • funeral day, the coffin, the hearse, the black train of tenants and
  • servants--few was the number of relatives--the gaping vault, the silent
  • church, the solemn service. Then I thought of Eliza and Georgiana; I
  • beheld one the cynosure of a ball-room, the other the inmate of a convent
  • cell; and I dwelt on and analysed their separate peculiarities of person
  • and character. The evening arrival at the great town of--scattered these
  • thoughts; night gave them quite another turn: laid down on my traveller's
  • bed, I left reminiscence for anticipation.
  • I was going back to Thornfield: but how long was I to stay there? Not
  • long; of that I was sure. I had heard from Mrs. Fairfax in the interim
  • of my absence: the party at the hall was dispersed; Mr. Rochester had
  • left for London three weeks ago, but he was then expected to return in a
  • fortnight. Mrs. Fairfax surmised that he was gone to make arrangements
  • for his wedding, as he had talked of purchasing a new carriage: she said
  • the idea of his marrying Miss Ingram still seemed strange to her; but
  • from what everybody said, and from what she had herself seen, she could
  • no longer doubt that the event would shortly take place. "You would be
  • strangely incredulous if you did doubt it," was my mental comment. "I
  • don't doubt it."
  • The question followed, "Where was I to go?" I dreamt of Miss Ingram all
  • the night: in a vivid morning dream I saw her closing the gates of
  • Thornfield against me and pointing me out another road; and Mr. Rochester
  • looked on with his arms folded--smiling sardonically, as it seemed, at
  • both her and me.
  • I had not notified to Mrs. Fairfax the exact day of my return; for I did
  • not wish either car or carriage to meet me at Millcote. I proposed to
  • walk the distance quietly by myself; and very quietly, after leaving my
  • box in the ostler's care, did I slip away from the George Inn, about six
  • o'clock of a June evening, and take the old road to Thornfield: a road
  • which lay chiefly through fields, and was now little frequented.
  • It was not a bright or splendid summer evening, though fair and soft: the
  • haymakers were at work all along the road; and the sky, though far from
  • cloudless, was such as promised well for the future: its blue--where blue
  • was visible--was mild and settled, and its cloud strata high and thin.
  • The west, too, was warm: no watery gleam chilled it--it seemed as if
  • there was a fire lit, an altar burning behind its screen of marbled
  • vapour, and out of apertures shone a golden redness.
  • I felt glad as the road shortened before me: so glad that I stopped once
  • to ask myself what that joy meant: and to remind reason that it was not
  • to my home I was going, or to a permanent resting-place, or to a place
  • where fond friends looked out for me and waited my arrival. "Mrs.
  • Fairfax will smile you a calm welcome, to be sure," said I; "and little
  • Adele will clap her hands and jump to see you: but you know very well you
  • are thinking of another than they, and that he is not thinking of you."
  • But what is so headstrong as youth? What so blind as inexperience? These
  • affirmed that it was pleasure enough to have the privilege of again
  • looking on Mr. Rochester, whether he looked on me or not; and they
  • added--"Hasten! hasten! be with him while you may: but a few more days or
  • weeks, at most, and you are parted from him for ever!" And then I
  • strangled a new-born agony--a deformed thing which I could not persuade
  • myself to own and rear--and ran on.
  • They are making hay, too, in Thornfield meadows: or rather, the labourers
  • are just quitting their work, and returning home with their rakes on
  • their shoulders, now, at the hour I arrive. I have but a field or two to
  • traverse, and then I shall cross the road and reach the gates. How full
  • the hedges are of roses! But I have no time to gather any; I want to be
  • at the house. I passed a tall briar, shooting leafy and flowery branches
  • across the path; I see the narrow stile with stone steps; and I see--Mr.
  • Rochester sitting there, a book and a pencil in his hand; he is writing.
  • Well, he is not a ghost; yet every nerve I have is unstrung: for a moment
  • I am beyond my own mastery. What does it mean? I did not think I should
  • tremble in this way when I saw him, or lose my voice or the power of
  • motion in his presence. I will go back as soon as I can stir: I need not
  • make an absolute fool of myself. I know another way to the house. It
  • does not signify if I knew twenty ways; for he has seen me.
  • "Hillo!" he cries; and he puts up his book and his pencil. "There you
  • are! Come on, if you please."
  • I suppose I do come on; though in what fashion I know not; being scarcely
  • cognisant of my movements, and solicitous only to appear calm; and, above
  • all, to control the working muscles of my face--which I feel rebel
  • insolently against my will, and struggle to express what I had resolved
  • to conceal. But I have a veil--it is down: I may make shift yet to
  • behave with decent composure.
  • "And this is Jane Eyre? Are you coming from Millcote, and on foot?
  • Yes--just one of your tricks: not to send for a carriage, and come
  • clattering over street and road like a common mortal, but to steal into
  • the vicinage of your home along with twilight, just as if you were a
  • dream or a shade. What the deuce have you done with yourself this last
  • month?"
  • "I have been with my aunt, sir, who is dead."
  • "A true Janian reply! Good angels be my guard! She comes from the other
  • world--from the abode of people who are dead; and tells me so when she
  • meets me alone here in the gloaming! If I dared, I'd touch you, to see
  • if you are substance or shadow, you elf!--but I'd as soon offer to take
  • hold of a blue _ignis fatuus_ light in a marsh. Truant! truant!" he
  • added, when he had paused an instant. "Absent from me a whole month, and
  • forgetting me quite, I'll be sworn!"
  • I knew there would be pleasure in meeting my master again, even though
  • broken by the fear that he was so soon to cease to be my master, and by
  • the knowledge that I was nothing to him: but there was ever in Mr.
  • Rochester (so at least I thought) such a wealth of the power of
  • communicating happiness, that to taste but of the crumbs he scattered to
  • stray and stranger birds like me, was to feast genially. His last words
  • were balm: they seemed to imply that it imported something to him whether
  • I forgot him or not. And he had spoken of Thornfield as my home--would
  • that it were my home!
  • He did not leave the stile, and I hardly liked to ask to go by. I
  • inquired soon if he had not been to London.
  • "Yes; I suppose you found that out by second-sight."
  • "Mrs. Fairfax told me in a letter."
  • "And did she inform you what I went to do?"
  • "Oh, yes, sir! Everybody knew your errand."
  • "You must see the carriage, Jane, and tell me if you don't think it will
  • suit Mrs. Rochester exactly; and whether she won't look like Queen
  • Boadicea, leaning back against those purple cushions. I wish, Jane, I
  • were a trifle better adapted to match with her externally. Tell me now,
  • fairy as you are--can't you give me a charm, or a philter, or something
  • of that sort, to make me a handsome man?"
  • "It would be past the power of magic, sir;" and, in thought, I added, "A
  • loving eye is all the charm needed: to such you are handsome enough; or
  • rather your sternness has a power beyond beauty."
  • Mr. Rochester had sometimes read my unspoken thoughts with an acumen to
  • me incomprehensible: in the present instance he took no notice of my
  • abrupt vocal response; but he smiled at me with a certain smile he had of
  • his own, and which he used but on rare occasions. He seemed to think it
  • too good for common purposes: it was the real sunshine of feeling--he
  • shed it over me now.
  • "Pass, Janet," said he, making room for me to cross the stile: "go up
  • home, and stay your weary little wandering feet at a friend's threshold."
  • All I had now to do was to obey him in silence: no need for me to
  • colloquise further. I got over the stile without a word, and meant to
  • leave him calmly. An impulse held me fast--a force turned me round. I
  • said--or something in me said for me, and in spite of me--
  • "Thank you, Mr. Rochester, for your great kindness. I am strangely glad
  • to get back again to you: and wherever you are is my home--my only home."
  • I walked on so fast that even he could hardly have overtaken me had he
  • tried. Little Adele was half wild with delight when she saw me. Mrs.
  • Fairfax received me with her usual plain friendliness. Leah smiled, and
  • even Sophie bid me "bon soir" with glee. This was very pleasant; there
  • is no happiness like that of being loved by your fellow-creatures, and
  • feeling that your presence is an addition to their comfort.
  • I that evening shut my eyes resolutely against the future: I stopped my
  • ears against the voice that kept warning me of near separation and coming
  • grief. When tea was over and Mrs. Fairfax had taken her knitting, and I
  • had assumed a low seat near her, and Adele, kneeling on the carpet, had
  • nestled close up to me, and a sense of mutual affection seemed to
  • surround us with a ring of golden peace, I uttered a silent prayer that
  • we might not be parted far or soon; but when, as we thus sat, Mr.
  • Rochester entered, unannounced, and looking at us, seemed to take
  • pleasure in the spectacle of a group so amicable--when he said he
  • supposed the old lady was all right now that she had got her adopted
  • daughter back again, and added that he saw Adele was "prete a croquer sa
  • petite maman Anglaise"--I half ventured to hope that he would, even after
  • his marriage, keep us together somewhere under the shelter of his
  • protection, and not quite exiled from the sunshine of his presence.
  • A fortnight of dubious calm succeeded my return to Thornfield Hall.
  • Nothing was said of the master's marriage, and I saw no preparation going
  • on for such an event. Almost every day I asked Mrs. Fairfax if she had
  • yet heard anything decided: her answer was always in the negative. Once
  • she said she had actually put the question to Mr. Rochester as to when he
  • was going to bring his bride home; but he had answered her only by a joke
  • and one of his queer looks, and she could not tell what to make of him.
  • One thing specially surprised me, and that was, there were no journeyings
  • backward and forward, no visits to Ingram Park: to be sure it was twenty
  • miles off, on the borders of another county; but what was that distance
  • to an ardent lover? To so practised and indefatigable a horseman as Mr.
  • Rochester, it would be but a morning's ride. I began to cherish hopes I
  • had no right to conceive: that the match was broken off; that rumour had
  • been mistaken; that one or both parties had changed their minds. I used
  • to look at my master's face to see if it were sad or fierce; but I could
  • not remember the time when it had been so uniformly clear of clouds or
  • evil feelings. If, in the moments I and my pupil spent with him, I
  • lacked spirits and sank into inevitable dejection, he became even gay.
  • Never had he called me more frequently to his presence; never been kinder
  • to me when there--and, alas! never had I loved him so well.
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • A splendid Midsummer shone over England: skies so pure, suns so radiant
  • as were then seen in long succession, seldom favour even singly, our wave-
  • girt land. It was as if a band of Italian days had come from the South,
  • like a flock of glorious passenger birds, and lighted to rest them on the
  • cliffs of Albion. The hay was all got in; the fields round Thornfield
  • were green and shorn; the roads white and baked; the trees were in their
  • dark prime; hedge and wood, full-leaved and deeply tinted, contrasted
  • well with the sunny hue of the cleared meadows between.
  • On Midsummer-eve, Adele, weary with gathering wild strawberries in Hay
  • Lane half the day, had gone to bed with the sun. I watched her drop
  • asleep, and when I left her, I sought the garden.
  • It was now the sweetest hour of the twenty-four:--"Day its fervid fires
  • had wasted," and dew fell cool on panting plain and scorched summit.
  • Where the sun had gone down in simple state--pure of the pomp of
  • clouds--spread a solemn purple, burning with the light of red jewel and
  • furnace flame at one point, on one hill-peak, and extending high and
  • wide, soft and still softer, over half heaven. The east had its own
  • charm or fine deep blue, and its own modest gem, a casino and solitary
  • star: soon it would boast the moon; but she was yet beneath the horizon.
  • I walked a while on the pavement; but a subtle, well-known scent--that of
  • a cigar--stole from some window; I saw the library casement open a
  • handbreadth; I knew I might be watched thence; so I went apart into the
  • orchard. No nook in the grounds more sheltered and more Eden-like; it
  • was full of trees, it bloomed with flowers: a very high wall shut it out
  • from the court, on one side; on the other, a beech avenue screened it
  • from the lawn. At the bottom was a sunk fence; its sole separation from
  • lonely fields: a winding walk, bordered with laurels and terminating in a
  • giant horse-chestnut, circled at the base by a seat, led down to the
  • fence. Here one could wander unseen. While such honey-dew fell, such
  • silence reigned, such gloaming gathered, I felt as if I could haunt such
  • shade for ever; but in threading the flower and fruit parterres at the
  • upper part of the enclosure, enticed there by the light the now rising
  • moon cast on this more open quarter, my step is stayed--not by sound, not
  • by sight, but once more by a warning fragrance.
  • Sweet-briar and southernwood, jasmine, pink, and rose have long been
  • yielding their evening sacrifice of incense: this new scent is neither of
  • shrub nor flower; it is--I know it well--it is Mr. Rochester's cigar. I
  • look round and I listen. I see trees laden with ripening fruit. I hear
  • a nightingale warbling in a wood half a mile off; no moving form is
  • visible, no coming step audible; but that perfume increases: I must flee.
  • I make for the wicket leading to the shrubbery, and I see Mr. Rochester
  • entering. I step aside into the ivy recess; he will not stay long: he
  • will soon return whence he came, and if I sit still he will never see me.
  • But no--eventide is as pleasant to him as to me, and this antique garden
  • as attractive; and he strolls on, now lifting the gooseberry-tree
  • branches to look at the fruit, large as plums, with which they are laden;
  • now taking a ripe cherry from the wall; now stooping towards a knot of
  • flowers, either to inhale their fragrance or to admire the dew-beads on
  • their petals. A great moth goes humming by me; it alights on a plant at
  • Mr. Rochester's foot: he sees it, and bends to examine it.
  • "Now, he has his back towards me," thought I, "and he is occupied too;
  • perhaps, if I walk softly, I can slip away unnoticed."
  • I trode on an edging of turf that the crackle of the pebbly gravel might
  • not betray me: he was standing among the beds at a yard or two distant
  • from where I had to pass; the moth apparently engaged him. "I shall get
  • by very well," I meditated. As I crossed his shadow, thrown long over
  • the garden by the moon, not yet risen high, he said quietly, without
  • turning--
  • "Jane, come and look at this fellow."
  • I had made no noise: he had not eyes behind--could his shadow feel? I
  • started at first, and then I approached him.
  • "Look at his wings," said he, "he reminds me rather of a West Indian
  • insect; one does not often see so large and gay a night-rover in England;
  • there! he is flown."
  • The moth roamed away. I was sheepishly retreating also; but Mr.
  • Rochester followed me, and when we reached the wicket, he said--
  • "Turn back: on so lovely a night it is a shame to sit in the house; and
  • surely no one can wish to go to bed while sunset is thus at meeting with
  • moonrise."
  • It is one of my faults, that though my tongue is sometimes prompt enough
  • at an answer, there are times when it sadly fails me in framing an
  • excuse; and always the lapse occurs at some crisis, when a facile word or
  • plausible pretext is specially wanted to get me out of painful
  • embarrassment. I did not like to walk at this hour alone with Mr.
  • Rochester in the shadowy orchard; but I could not find a reason to allege
  • for leaving him. I followed with lagging step, and thoughts busily bent
  • on discovering a means of extrication; but he himself looked so composed
  • and so grave also, I became ashamed of feeling any confusion: the evil--if
  • evil existent or prospective there was--seemed to lie with me only; his
  • mind was unconscious and quiet.
  • "Jane," he recommenced, as we entered the laurel walk, and slowly strayed
  • down in the direction of the sunk fence and the horse-chestnut,
  • "Thornfield is a pleasant place in summer, is it not?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "You must have become in some degree attached to the house,--you, who
  • have an eye for natural beauties, and a good deal of the organ of
  • Adhesiveness?"
  • "I am attached to it, indeed."
  • "And though I don't comprehend how it is, I perceive you have acquired a
  • degree of regard for that foolish little child Adele, too; and even for
  • simple dame Fairfax?"
  • "Yes, sir; in different ways, I have an affection for both."
  • "And would be sorry to part with them?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Pity!" he said, and sighed and paused. "It is always the way of events
  • in this life," he continued presently: "no sooner have you got settled in
  • a pleasant resting-place, than a voice calls out to you to rise and move
  • on, for the hour of repose is expired."
  • "Must I move on, sir?" I asked. "Must I leave Thornfield?"
  • "I believe you must, Jane. I am sorry, Janet, but I believe indeed you
  • must."
  • This was a blow: but I did not let it prostrate me.
  • "Well, sir, I shall be ready when the order to march comes."
  • "It is come now--I must give it to-night."
  • "Then you _are_ going to be married, sir?"
  • "Ex-act-ly--pre-cise-ly: with your usual acuteness, you have hit the nail
  • straight on the head."
  • "Soon, sir?"
  • "Very soon, my--that is, Miss Eyre: and you'll remember, Jane, the first
  • time I, or Rumour, plainly intimated to you that it was my intention to
  • put my old bachelor's neck into the sacred noose, to enter into the holy
  • estate of matrimony--to take Miss Ingram to my bosom, in short (she's an
  • extensive armful: but that's not to the point--one can't have too much of
  • such a very excellent thing as my beautiful Blanche): well, as I was
  • saying--listen to me, Jane! You're not turning your head to look after
  • more moths, are you? That was only a lady-clock, child, 'flying away
  • home.' I wish to remind you that it was you who first said to me, with
  • that discretion I respect in you--with that foresight, prudence, and
  • humility which befit your responsible and dependent position--that in
  • case I married Miss Ingram, both you and little Adele had better trot
  • forthwith. I pass over the sort of slur conveyed in this suggestion on
  • the character of my beloved; indeed, when you are far away, Janet, I'll
  • try to forget it: I shall notice only its wisdom; which is such that I
  • have made it my law of action. Adele must go to school; and you, Miss
  • Eyre, must get a new situation."
  • "Yes, sir, I will advertise immediately: and meantime, I suppose--" I was
  • going to say, "I suppose I may stay here, till I find another shelter to
  • betake myself to:" but I stopped, feeling it would not do to risk a long
  • sentence, for my voice was not quite under command.
  • "In about a month I hope to be a bridegroom," continued Mr. Rochester;
  • "and in the interim, I shall myself look out for employment and an asylum
  • for you."
  • "Thank you, sir; I am sorry to give--"
  • "Oh, no need to apologise! I consider that when a dependent does her
  • duty as well as you have done yours, she has a sort of claim upon her
  • employer for any little assistance he can conveniently render her; indeed
  • I have already, through my future mother-in-law, heard of a place that I
  • think will suit: it is to undertake the education of the five daughters
  • of Mrs. Dionysius O'Gall of Bitternutt Lodge, Connaught, Ireland. You'll
  • like Ireland, I think: they're such warm-hearted people there, they say."
  • "It is a long way off, sir."
  • "No matter--a girl of your sense will not object to the voyage or the
  • distance."
  • "Not the voyage, but the distance: and then the sea is a barrier--"
  • "From what, Jane?"
  • "From England and from Thornfield: and--"
  • "Well?"
  • "From _you_, sir."
  • I said this almost involuntarily, and, with as little sanction of free
  • will, my tears gushed out. I did not cry so as to be heard, however; I
  • avoided sobbing. The thought of Mrs. O'Gall and Bitternutt Lodge struck
  • cold to my heart; and colder the thought of all the brine and foam,
  • destined, as it seemed, to rush between me and the master at whose side I
  • now walked, and coldest the remembrance of the wider ocean--wealth,
  • caste, custom intervened between me and what I naturally and inevitably
  • loved.
  • "It is a long way," I again said.
  • "It is, to be sure; and when you get to Bitternutt Lodge, Connaught,
  • Ireland, I shall never see you again, Jane: that's morally certain. I
  • never go over to Ireland, not having myself much of a fancy for the
  • country. We have been good friends, Jane; have we not?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "And when friends are on the eve of separation, they like to spend the
  • little time that remains to them close to each other. Come! we'll talk
  • over the voyage and the parting quietly half-an-hour or so, while the
  • stars enter into their shining life up in heaven yonder: here is the
  • chestnut tree: here is the bench at its old roots. Come, we will sit
  • there in peace to-night, though we should never more be destined to sit
  • there together." He seated me and himself.
  • "It is a long way to Ireland, Janet, and I am sorry to send my little
  • friend on such weary travels: but if I can't do better, how is it to be
  • helped? Are you anything akin to me, do you think, Jane?"
  • I could risk no sort of answer by this time: my heart was still.
  • "Because," he said, "I sometimes have a queer feeling with regard to
  • you--especially when you are near me, as now: it is as if I had a string
  • somewhere under my left ribs, tightly and inextricably knotted to a
  • similar string situated in the corresponding quarter of your little
  • frame. And if that boisterous Channel, and two hundred miles or so of
  • land come broad between us, I am afraid that cord of communion will be
  • snapt; and then I've a nervous notion I should take to bleeding inwardly.
  • As for you,--you'd forget me."
  • "That I _never_ should, sir: you know--" Impossible to proceed.
  • "Jane, do you hear that nightingale singing in the wood? Listen!"
  • In listening, I sobbed convulsively; for I could repress what I endured
  • no longer; I was obliged to yield, and I was shaken from head to foot
  • with acute distress. When I did speak, it was only to express an
  • impetuous wish that I had never been born, or never come to Thornfield.
  • "Because you are sorry to leave it?"
  • The vehemence of emotion, stirred by grief and love within me, was
  • claiming mastery, and struggling for full sway, and asserting a right to
  • predominate, to overcome, to live, rise, and reign at last: yes,--and to
  • speak.
  • "I grieve to leave Thornfield: I love Thornfield:--I love it, because I
  • have lived in it a full and delightful life,--momentarily at least. I
  • have not been trampled on. I have not been petrified. I have not been
  • buried with inferior minds, and excluded from every glimpse of communion
  • with what is bright and energetic and high. I have talked, face to face,
  • with what I reverence, with what I delight in,--with an original, a
  • vigorous, an expanded mind. I have known you, Mr. Rochester; and it
  • strikes me with terror and anguish to feel I absolutely must be torn from
  • you for ever. I see the necessity of departure; and it is like looking
  • on the necessity of death."
  • "Where do you see the necessity?" he asked suddenly.
  • "Where? You, sir, have placed it before me."
  • "In what shape?"
  • "In the shape of Miss Ingram; a noble and beautiful woman,--your bride."
  • "My bride! What bride? I have no bride!"
  • "But you will have."
  • "Yes;--I will!--I will!" He set his teeth.
  • "Then I must go:--you have said it yourself."
  • "No: you must stay! I swear it--and the oath shall be kept."
  • "I tell you I must go!" I retorted, roused to something like passion. "Do
  • you think I can stay to become nothing to you? Do you think I am an
  • automaton?--a machine without feelings? and can bear to have my morsel of
  • bread snatched from my lips, and my drop of living water dashed from my
  • cup? Do you think, because I am poor, obscure, plain, and little, I am
  • soulless and heartless? You think wrong!--I have as much soul as
  • you,--and full as much heart! And if God had gifted me with some beauty
  • and much wealth, I should have made it as hard for you to leave me, as it
  • is now for me to leave you. I am not talking to you now through the
  • medium of custom, conventionalities, nor even of mortal flesh;--it is my
  • spirit that addresses your spirit; just as if both had passed through the
  • grave, and we stood at God's feet, equal,--as we are!"
  • "As we are!" repeated Mr. Rochester--"so," he added, enclosing me in his
  • arms. Gathering me to his breast, pressing his lips on my lips: "so,
  • Jane!"
  • "Yes, so, sir," I rejoined: "and yet not so; for you are a married man--or
  • as good as a married man, and wed to one inferior to you--to one with
  • whom you have no sympathy--whom I do not believe you truly love; for I
  • have seen and heard you sneer at her. I would scorn such a union:
  • therefore I am better than you--let me go!"
  • "Where, Jane? To Ireland?"
  • "Yes--to Ireland. I have spoken my mind, and can go anywhere now."
  • "Jane, be still; don't struggle so, like a wild frantic bird that is
  • rending its own plumage in its desperation."
  • "I am no bird; and no net ensnares me; I am a free human being with an
  • independent will, which I now exert to leave you."
  • Another effort set me at liberty, and I stood erect before him.
  • "And your will shall decide your destiny," he said: "I offer you my hand,
  • my heart, and a share of all my possessions."
  • "You play a farce, which I merely laugh at."
  • "I ask you to pass through life at my side--to be my second self, and
  • best earthly companion."
  • "For that fate you have already made your choice, and must abide by it."
  • "Jane, be still a few moments: you are over-excited: I will be still
  • too."
  • A waft of wind came sweeping down the laurel-walk, and trembled through
  • the boughs of the chestnut: it wandered away--away--to an indefinite
  • distance--it died. The nightingale's song was then the only voice of the
  • hour: in listening to it, I again wept. Mr. Rochester sat quiet, looking
  • at me gently and seriously. Some time passed before he spoke; he at last
  • said--
  • "Come to my side, Jane, and let us explain and understand one another."
  • "I will never again come to your side: I am torn away now, and cannot
  • return."
  • "But, Jane, I summon you as my wife: it is you only I intend to marry."
  • I was silent: I thought he mocked me.
  • "Come, Jane--come hither."
  • "Your bride stands between us."
  • He rose, and with a stride reached me.
  • "My bride is here," he said, again drawing me to him, "because my equal
  • is here, and my likeness. Jane, will you marry me?"
  • Still I did not answer, and still I writhed myself from his grasp: for I
  • was still incredulous.
  • "Do you doubt me, Jane?"
  • "Entirely."
  • "You have no faith in me?"
  • "Not a whit."
  • "Am I a liar in your eyes?" he asked passionately. "Little sceptic, you
  • _shall_ be convinced. What love have I for Miss Ingram? None: and that
  • you know. What love has she for me? None: as I have taken pains to
  • prove: I caused a rumour to reach her that my fortune was not a third of
  • what was supposed, and after that I presented myself to see the result;
  • it was coldness both from her and her mother. I would not--I could
  • not--marry Miss Ingram. You--you strange, you almost unearthly thing!--I
  • love as my own flesh. You--poor and obscure, and small and plain as you
  • are--I entreat to accept me as a husband."
  • "What, me!" I ejaculated, beginning in his earnestness--and especially in
  • his incivility--to credit his sincerity: "me who have not a friend in the
  • world but you--if you are my friend: not a shilling but what you have
  • given me?"
  • "You, Jane, I must have you for my own--entirely my own. Will you be
  • mine? Say yes, quickly."
  • "Mr. Rochester, let me look at your face: turn to the moonlight."
  • "Why?"
  • "Because I want to read your countenance--turn!"
  • "There! you will find it scarcely more legible than a crumpled, scratched
  • page. Read on: only make haste, for I suffer."
  • His face was very much agitated and very much flushed, and there were
  • strong workings in the features, and strange gleams in the eyes.
  • "Oh, Jane, you torture me!" he exclaimed. "With that searching and yet
  • faithful and generous look, you torture me!"
  • "How can I do that? If you are true, and your offer real, my only
  • feelings to you must be gratitude and devotion--they cannot torture."
  • "Gratitude!" he ejaculated; and added wildly--"Jane accept me quickly.
  • Say, Edward--give me my name--Edward--I will marry you."
  • "Are you in earnest? Do you truly love me? Do you sincerely wish me to
  • be your wife?"
  • "I do; and if an oath is necessary to satisfy you, I swear it."
  • "Then, sir, I will marry you."
  • "Edward--my little wife!"
  • "Dear Edward!"
  • "Come to me--come to me entirely now," said he; and added, in his deepest
  • tone, speaking in my ear as his cheek was laid on mine, "Make my
  • happiness--I will make yours."
  • "God pardon me!" he subjoined ere long; "and man meddle not with me: I
  • have her, and will hold her."
  • "There is no one to meddle, sir. I have no kindred to interfere."
  • "No--that is the best of it," he said. And if I had loved him less I
  • should have thought his accent and look of exultation savage; but,
  • sitting by him, roused from the nightmare of parting--called to the
  • paradise of union--I thought only of the bliss given me to drink in so
  • abundant a flow. Again and again he said, "Are you happy, Jane?" And
  • again and again I answered, "Yes." After which he murmured, "It will
  • atone--it will atone. Have I not found her friendless, and cold, and
  • comfortless? Will I not guard, and cherish, and solace her? Is there
  • not love in my heart, and constancy in my resolves? It will expiate at
  • God's tribunal. I know my Maker sanctions what I do. For the world's
  • judgment--I wash my hands thereof. For man's opinion--I defy it."
  • But what had befallen the night? The moon was not yet set, and we were
  • all in shadow: I could scarcely see my master's face, near as I was. And
  • what ailed the chestnut tree? it writhed and groaned; while wind roared
  • in the laurel walk, and came sweeping over us.
  • "We must go in," said Mr. Rochester: "the weather changes. I could have
  • sat with thee till morning, Jane."
  • "And so," thought I, "could I with you." I should have said so, perhaps,
  • but a livid, vivid spark leapt out of a cloud at which I was looking, and
  • there was a crack, a crash, and a close rattling peal; and I thought only
  • of hiding my dazzled eyes against Mr. Rochester's shoulder.
  • The rain rushed down. He hurried me up the walk, through the grounds,
  • and into the house; but we were quite wet before we could pass the
  • threshold. He was taking off my shawl in the hall, and shaking the water
  • out of my loosened hair, when Mrs. Fairfax emerged from her room. I did
  • not observe her at first, nor did Mr. Rochester. The lamp was lit. The
  • clock was on the stroke of twelve.
  • "Hasten to take off your wet things," said he; "and before you go, good-
  • night--good-night, my darling!"
  • He kissed me repeatedly. When I looked up, on leaving his arms, there
  • stood the widow, pale, grave, and amazed. I only smiled at her, and ran
  • upstairs. "Explanation will do for another time," thought I. Still,
  • when I reached my chamber, I felt a pang at the idea she should even
  • temporarily misconstrue what she had seen. But joy soon effaced every
  • other feeling; and loud as the wind blew, near and deep as the thunder
  • crashed, fierce and frequent as the lightning gleamed, cataract-like as
  • the rain fell during a storm of two hours' duration, I experienced no
  • fear and little awe. Mr. Rochester came thrice to my door in the course
  • of it, to ask if I was safe and tranquil: and that was comfort, that was
  • strength for anything.
  • Before I left my bed in the morning, little Adele came running in to tell
  • me that the great horse-chestnut at the bottom of the orchard had been
  • struck by lightning in the night, and half of it split away.
  • CHAPTER XXIV
  • As I rose and dressed, I thought over what had happened, and wondered if
  • it were a dream. I could not be certain of the reality till I had seen
  • Mr. Rochester again, and heard him renew his words of love and promise.
  • While arranging my hair, I looked at my face in the glass, and felt it
  • was no longer plain: there was hope in its aspect and life in its colour;
  • and my eyes seemed as if they had beheld the fount of fruition, and
  • borrowed beams from the lustrous ripple. I had often been unwilling to
  • look at my master, because I feared he could not be pleased at my look;
  • but I was sure I might lift my face to his now, and not cool his
  • affection by its expression. I took a plain but clean and light summer
  • dress from my drawer and put it on: it seemed no attire had ever so well
  • become me, because none had I ever worn in so blissful a mood.
  • I was not surprised, when I ran down into the hall, to see that a
  • brilliant June morning had succeeded to the tempest of the night; and to
  • feel, through the open glass door, the breathing of a fresh and fragrant
  • breeze. Nature must be gladsome when I was so happy. A beggar-woman and
  • her little boy--pale, ragged objects both--were coming up the walk, and I
  • ran down and gave them all the money I happened to have in my purse--some
  • three or four shillings: good or bad, they must partake of my jubilee.
  • The rooks cawed, and blither birds sang; but nothing was so merry or so
  • musical as my own rejoicing heart.
  • Mrs. Fairfax surprised me by looking out of the window with a sad
  • countenance, and saying gravely--"Miss Eyre, will you come to breakfast?"
  • During the meal she was quiet and cool: but I could not undeceive her
  • then. I must wait for my master to give explanations; and so must she. I
  • ate what I could, and then I hastened upstairs. I met Adele leaving the
  • schoolroom.
  • "Where are you going? It is time for lessons."
  • "Mr. Rochester has sent me away to the nursery."
  • "Where is he?"
  • "In there," pointing to the apartment she had left; and I went in, and
  • there he stood.
  • "Come and bid me good-morning," said he. I gladly advanced; and it was
  • not merely a cold word now, or even a shake of the hand that I received,
  • but an embrace and a kiss. It seemed natural: it seemed genial to be so
  • well loved, so caressed by him.
  • "Jane, you look blooming, and smiling, and pretty," said he: "truly
  • pretty this morning. Is this my pale, little elf? Is this my mustard-
  • seed? This little sunny-faced girl with the dimpled cheek and rosy lips;
  • the satin-smooth hazel hair, and the radiant hazel eyes?" (I had green
  • eyes, reader; but you must excuse the mistake: for him they were
  • new-dyed, I suppose.)
  • "It is Jane Eyre, sir."
  • "Soon to be Jane Rochester," he added: "in four weeks, Janet; not a day
  • more. Do you hear that?"
  • I did, and I could not quite comprehend it: it made me giddy. The
  • feeling, the announcement sent through me, was something stronger than
  • was consistent with joy--something that smote and stunned. It was, I
  • think almost fear.
  • "You blushed, and now you are white, Jane: what is that for?"
  • "Because you gave me a new name--Jane Rochester; and it seems so
  • strange."
  • "Yes, Mrs. Rochester," said he; "young Mrs. Rochester--Fairfax
  • Rochester's girl-bride."
  • "It can never be, sir; it does not sound likely. Human beings never
  • enjoy complete happiness in this world. I was not born for a different
  • destiny to the rest of my species: to imagine such a lot befalling me is
  • a fairy tale--a day-dream."
  • "Which I can and will realise. I shall begin to-day. This morning I
  • wrote to my banker in London to send me certain jewels he has in his
  • keeping,--heirlooms for the ladies of Thornfield. In a day or two I hope
  • to pour them into your lap: for every privilege, every attention shall be
  • yours that I would accord a peer's daughter, if about to marry her."
  • "Oh, sir!--never rain jewels! I don't like to hear them spoken of.
  • Jewels for Jane Eyre sounds unnatural and strange: I would rather not
  • have them."
  • "I will myself put the diamond chain round your neck, and the circlet on
  • your forehead,--which it will become: for nature, at least, has stamped
  • her patent of nobility on this brow, Jane; and I will clasp the bracelets
  • on these fine wrists, and load these fairy-like fingers with rings."
  • "No, no, sir! think of other subjects, and speak of other things, and in
  • another strain. Don't address me as if I were a beauty; I am your plain,
  • Quakerish governess."
  • "You are a beauty in my eyes, and a beauty just after the desire of my
  • heart,--delicate and aerial."
  • "Puny and insignificant, you mean. You are dreaming, sir,--or you are
  • sneering. For God's sake don't be ironical!"
  • "I will make the world acknowledge you a beauty, too," he went on, while
  • I really became uneasy at the strain he had adopted, because I felt he
  • was either deluding himself or trying to delude me. "I will attire my
  • Jane in satin and lace, and she shall have roses in her hair; and I will
  • cover the head I love best with a priceless veil."
  • "And then you won't know me, sir; and I shall not be your Jane Eyre any
  • longer, but an ape in a harlequin's jacket--a jay in borrowed plumes. I
  • would as soon see you, Mr. Rochester, tricked out in stage-trappings, as
  • myself clad in a court-lady's robe; and I don't call you handsome, sir,
  • though I love you most dearly: far too dearly to flatter you. Don't
  • flatter me."
  • He pursued his theme, however, without noticing my deprecation. "This
  • very day I shall take you in the carriage to Millcote, and you must
  • choose some dresses for yourself. I told you we shall be married in four
  • weeks. The wedding is to take place quietly, in the church down below
  • yonder; and then I shall waft you away at once to town. After a brief
  • stay there, I shall bear my treasure to regions nearer the sun: to French
  • vineyards and Italian plains; and she shall see whatever is famous in old
  • story and in modern record: she shall taste, too, of the life of cities;
  • and she shall learn to value herself by just comparison with others."
  • "Shall I travel?--and with you, sir?"
  • "You shall sojourn at Paris, Rome, and Naples: at Florence, Venice, and
  • Vienna: all the ground I have wandered over shall be re-trodden by you:
  • wherever I stamped my hoof, your sylph's foot shall step also. Ten years
  • since, I flew through Europe half mad; with disgust, hate, and rage as my
  • companions: now I shall revisit it healed and cleansed, with a very angel
  • as my comforter."
  • I laughed at him as he said this. "I am not an angel," I asserted; "and
  • I will not be one till I die: I will be myself. Mr. Rochester, you must
  • neither expect nor exact anything celestial of me--for you will not get
  • it, any more than I shall get it of you: which I do not at all
  • anticipate."
  • "What do you anticipate of me?"
  • "For a little while you will perhaps be as you are now,--a very little
  • while; and then you will turn cool; and then you will be capricious; and
  • then you will be stern, and I shall have much ado to please you: but when
  • you get well used to me, you will perhaps like me again,--_like_ me, I
  • say, not _love_ me. I suppose your love will effervesce in six months,
  • or less. I have observed in books written by men, that period assigned
  • as the farthest to which a husband's ardour extends. Yet, after all, as
  • a friend and companion, I hope never to become quite distasteful to my
  • dear master."
  • "Distasteful! and like you again! I think I shall like you again, and
  • yet again: and I will make you confess I do not only _like_, but _love_
  • you--with truth, fervour, constancy."
  • "Yet are you not capricious, sir?"
  • "To women who please me only by their faces, I am the very devil when I
  • find out they have neither souls nor hearts--when they open to me a
  • perspective of flatness, triviality, and perhaps imbecility, coarseness,
  • and ill-temper: but to the clear eye and eloquent tongue, to the soul
  • made of fire, and the character that bends but does not break--at once
  • supple and stable, tractable and consistent--I am ever tender and true."
  • "Had you ever experience of such a character, sir? Did you ever love
  • such an one?"
  • "I love it now."
  • "But before me: if I, indeed, in any respect come up to your difficult
  • standard?"
  • "I never met your likeness. Jane, you please me, and you master me--you
  • seem to submit, and I like the sense of pliancy you impart; and while I
  • am twining the soft, silken skein round my finger, it sends a thrill up
  • my arm to my heart. I am influenced--conquered; and the influence is
  • sweeter than I can express; and the conquest I undergo has a witchery
  • beyond any triumph I can win. Why do you smile, Jane? What does that
  • inexplicable, that uncanny turn of countenance mean?"
  • "I was thinking, sir (you will excuse the idea; it was involuntary), I
  • was thinking of Hercules and Samson with their charmers--"
  • "You were, you little elfish--"
  • "Hush, sir! You don't talk very wisely just now; any more than those
  • gentlemen acted very wisely. However, had they been married, they would
  • no doubt by their severity as husbands have made up for their softness as
  • suitors; and so will you, I fear. I wonder how you will answer me a year
  • hence, should I ask a favour it does not suit your convenience or
  • pleasure to grant."
  • "Ask me something now, Jane,--the least thing: I desire to be entreated--"
  • "Indeed I will, sir; I have my petition all ready."
  • "Speak! But if you look up and smile with that countenance, I shall
  • swear concession before I know to what, and that will make a fool of me."
  • "Not at all, sir; I ask only this: don't send for the jewels, and don't
  • crown me with roses: you might as well put a border of gold lace round
  • that plain pocket handkerchief you have there."
  • "I might as well 'gild refined gold.' I know it: your request is granted
  • then--for the time. I will remand the order I despatched to my banker.
  • But you have not yet asked for anything; you have prayed a gift to be
  • withdrawn: try again."
  • "Well then, sir, have the goodness to gratify my curiosity, which is much
  • piqued on one point."
  • He looked disturbed. "What? what?" he said hastily. "Curiosity is a
  • dangerous petition: it is well I have not taken a vow to accord every
  • request--"
  • "But there can be no danger in complying with this, sir."
  • "Utter it, Jane: but I wish that instead of a mere inquiry into, perhaps,
  • a secret, it was a wish for half my estate."
  • "Now, King Ahasuerus! What do I want with half your estate? Do you
  • think I am a Jew-usurer, seeking good investment in land? I would much
  • rather have all your confidence. You will not exclude me from your
  • confidence if you admit me to your heart?"
  • "You are welcome to all my confidence that is worth having, Jane; but for
  • God's sake, don't desire a useless burden! Don't long for poison--don't
  • turn out a downright Eve on my hands!"
  • "Why not, sir? You have just been telling me how much you liked to be
  • conquered, and how pleasant over-persuasion is to you. Don't you think I
  • had better take advantage of the confession, and begin and coax and
  • entreat--even cry and be sulky if necessary--for the sake of a mere essay
  • of my power?"
  • "I dare you to any such experiment. Encroach, presume, and the game is
  • up."
  • "Is it, sir? You soon give in. How stern you look now! Your eyebrows
  • have become as thick as my finger, and your forehead resembles what, in
  • some very astonishing poetry, I once saw styled, 'a blue-piled
  • thunderloft.' That will be your married look, sir, I suppose?"
  • "If that will be _your_ married look, I, as a Christian, will soon give
  • up the notion of consorting with a mere sprite or salamander. But what
  • had you to ask, thing,--out with it?"
  • "There, you are less than civil now; and I like rudeness a great deal
  • better than flattery. I had rather be a _thing_ than an angel. This is
  • what I have to ask,--Why did you take such pains to make me believe you
  • wished to marry Miss Ingram?"
  • "Is that all? Thank God it is no worse!" And now he unknit his black
  • brows; looked down, smiling at me, and stroked my hair, as if well
  • pleased at seeing a danger averted. "I think I may confess," he
  • continued, "even although I should make you a little indignant, Jane--and
  • I have seen what a fire-spirit you can be when you are indignant. You
  • glowed in the cool moonlight last night, when you mutinied against fate,
  • and claimed your rank as my equal. Janet, by-the-bye, it was you who
  • made me the offer."
  • "Of course I did. But to the point if you please, sir--Miss Ingram?"
  • "Well, I feigned courtship of Miss Ingram, because I wished to render you
  • as madly in love with me as I was with you; and I knew jealousy would be
  • the best ally I could call in for the furtherance of that end."
  • "Excellent! Now you are small--not one whit bigger than the end of my
  • little finger. It was a burning shame and a scandalous disgrace to act
  • in that way. Did you think nothing of Miss Ingram's feelings, sir?"
  • "Her feelings are concentrated in one--pride; and that needs humbling.
  • Were you jealous, Jane?"
  • "Never mind, Mr. Rochester: it is in no way interesting to you to know
  • that. Answer me truly once more. Do you think Miss Ingram will not
  • suffer from your dishonest coquetry? Won't she feel forsaken and
  • deserted?"
  • "Impossible!--when I told you how she, on the contrary, deserted me: the
  • idea of my insolvency cooled, or rather extinguished, her flame in a
  • moment."
  • "You have a curious, designing mind, Mr. Rochester. I am afraid your
  • principles on some points are eccentric."
  • "My principles were never trained, Jane: they may have grown a little
  • awry for want of attention."
  • "Once again, seriously; may I enjoy the great good that has been
  • vouchsafed to me, without fearing that any one else is suffering the
  • bitter pain I myself felt a while ago?"
  • "That you may, my good little girl: there is not another being in the
  • world has the same pure love for me as yourself--for I lay that pleasant
  • unction to my soul, Jane, a belief in your affection."
  • I turned my lips to the hand that lay on my shoulder. I loved him very
  • much--more than I could trust myself to say--more than words had power to
  • express.
  • "Ask something more," he said presently; "it is my delight to be
  • entreated, and to yield."
  • I was again ready with my request. "Communicate your intentions to Mrs.
  • Fairfax, sir: she saw me with you last night in the hall, and she was
  • shocked. Give her some explanation before I see her again. It pains me
  • to be misjudged by so good a woman."
  • "Go to your room, and put on your bonnet," he replied. "I mean you to
  • accompany me to Millcote this morning; and while you prepare for the
  • drive, I will enlighten the old lady's understanding. Did she think,
  • Janet, you had given the world for love, and considered it well lost?"
  • "I believe she thought I had forgotten my station, and yours, sir."
  • "Station! station!--your station is in my heart, and on the necks of
  • those who would insult you, now or hereafter.--Go."
  • I was soon dressed; and when I heard Mr. Rochester quit Mrs. Fairfax's
  • parlour, I hurried down to it. The old lady, had been reading her
  • morning portion of Scripture--the Lesson for the day; her Bible lay open
  • before her, and her spectacles were upon it. Her occupation, suspended
  • by Mr. Rochester's announcement, seemed now forgotten: her eyes, fixed on
  • the blank wall opposite, expressed the surprise of a quiet mind stirred
  • by unwonted tidings. Seeing me, she roused herself: she made a sort of
  • effort to smile, and framed a few words of congratulation; but the smile
  • expired, and the sentence was abandoned unfinished. She put up her
  • spectacles, shut the Bible, and pushed her chair back from the table.
  • "I feel so astonished," she began, "I hardly know what to say to you,
  • Miss Eyre. I have surely not been dreaming, have I? Sometimes I half
  • fall asleep when I am sitting alone and fancy things that have never
  • happened. It has seemed to me more than once when I have been in a doze,
  • that my dear husband, who died fifteen years since, has come in and sat
  • down beside me; and that I have even heard him call me by my name, Alice,
  • as he used to do. Now, can you tell me whether it is actually true that
  • Mr. Rochester has asked you to marry him? Don't laugh at me. But I
  • really thought he came in here five minutes ago, and said that in a month
  • you would be his wife."
  • "He has said the same thing to me," I replied.
  • "He has! Do you believe him? Have you accepted him?"
  • "Yes."
  • She looked at me bewildered. "I could never have thought it. He is a
  • proud man: all the Rochesters were proud: and his father, at least, liked
  • money. He, too, has always been called careful. He means to marry you?"
  • "He tells me so."
  • She surveyed my whole person: in her eyes I read that they had there
  • found no charm powerful enough to solve the enigma.
  • "It passes me!" she continued; "but no doubt, it is true since you say
  • so. How it will answer, I cannot tell: I really don't know. Equality of
  • position and fortune is often advisable in such cases; and there are
  • twenty years of difference in your ages. He might almost be your
  • father."
  • "No, indeed, Mrs. Fairfax!" exclaimed I, nettled; "he is nothing like my
  • father! No one, who saw us together, would suppose it for an instant.
  • Mr. Rochester looks as young, and is as young, as some men at five-and-
  • twenty."
  • "Is it really for love he is going to marry you?" she asked.
  • I was so hurt by her coldness and scepticism, that the tears rose to my
  • eyes.
  • "I am sorry to grieve you," pursued the widow; "but you are so young, and
  • so little acquainted with men, I wished to put you on your guard. It is
  • an old saying that 'all is not gold that glitters;' and in this case I do
  • fear there will be something found to be different to what either you or
  • I expect."
  • "Why?--am I a monster?" I said: "is it impossible that Mr. Rochester
  • should have a sincere affection for me?"
  • "No: you are very well; and much improved of late; and Mr. Rochester, I
  • daresay, is fond of you. I have always noticed that you were a sort of
  • pet of his. There are times when, for your sake, I have been a little
  • uneasy at his marked preference, and have wished to put you on your
  • guard: but I did not like to suggest even the possibility of wrong. I
  • knew such an idea would shock, perhaps offend you; and you were so
  • discreet, and so thoroughly modest and sensible, I hoped you might be
  • trusted to protect yourself. Last night I cannot tell you what I
  • suffered when I sought all over the house, and could find you nowhere,
  • nor the master either; and then, at twelve o'clock, saw you come in with
  • him."
  • "Well, never mind that now," I interrupted impatiently; "it is enough
  • that all was right."
  • "I hope all will be right in the end," she said: "but believe me, you
  • cannot be too careful. Try and keep Mr. Rochester at a distance:
  • distrust yourself as well as him. Gentlemen in his station are not
  • accustomed to marry their governesses."
  • I was growing truly irritated: happily, Adele ran in.
  • "Let me go,--let me go to Millcote too!" she cried. "Mr. Rochester
  • won't: though there is so much room in the new carriage. Beg him to let
  • me go mademoiselle."
  • "That I will, Adele;" and I hastened away with her, glad to quit my
  • gloomy monitress. The carriage was ready: they were bringing it round to
  • the front, and my master was pacing the pavement, Pilot following him
  • backwards and forwards.
  • "Adele may accompany us, may she not, sir?"
  • "I told her no. I'll have no brats!--I'll have only you."
  • "Do let her go, Mr. Rochester, if you please: it would be better."
  • "Not it: she will be a restraint."
  • He was quite peremptory, both in look and voice. The chill of Mrs.
  • Fairfax's warnings, and the damp of her doubts were upon me: something of
  • unsubstantiality and uncertainty had beset my hopes. I half lost the
  • sense of power over him. I was about mechanically to obey him, without
  • further remonstrance; but as he helped me into the carriage, he looked at
  • my face.
  • "What is the matter?" he asked; "all the sunshine is gone. Do you really
  • wish the bairn to go? Will it annoy you if she is left behind?"
  • "I would far rather she went, sir."
  • "Then off for your bonnet, and back like a flash of lightning!" cried he
  • to Adele.
  • She obeyed him with what speed she might.
  • "After all, a single morning's interruption will not matter much," said
  • he, "when I mean shortly to claim you--your thoughts, conversation, and
  • company--for life."
  • Adele, when lifted in, commenced kissing me, by way of expressing her
  • gratitude for my intercession: she was instantly stowed away into a
  • corner on the other side of him. She then peeped round to where I sat;
  • so stern a neighbour was too restrictive to him, in his present fractious
  • mood, she dared whisper no observations, nor ask of him any information.
  • "Let her come to me," I entreated: "she will, perhaps, trouble you, sir:
  • there is plenty of room on this side."
  • He handed her over as if she had been a lapdog. "I'll send her to school
  • yet," he said, but now he was smiling.
  • Adele heard him, and asked if she was to go to school "sans
  • mademoiselle?"
  • "Yes," he replied, "absolutely sans mademoiselle; for I am to take
  • mademoiselle to the moon, and there I shall seek a cave in one of the
  • white valleys among the volcano-tops, and mademoiselle shall live with me
  • there, and only me."
  • "She will have nothing to eat: you will starve her," observed Adele.
  • "I shall gather manna for her morning and night: the plains and hillsides
  • in the moon are bleached with manna, Adele."
  • "She will want to warm herself: what will she do for a fire?"
  • "Fire rises out of the lunar mountains: when she is cold, I'll carry her
  • up to a peak, and lay her down on the edge of a crater."
  • "Oh, qu' elle y sera mal--peu comfortable! And her clothes, they will
  • wear out: how can she get new ones?"
  • Mr. Rochester professed to be puzzled. "Hem!" said he. "What would you
  • do, Adele? Cudgel your brains for an expedient. How would a white or a
  • pink cloud answer for a gown, do you think? And one could cut a pretty
  • enough scarf out of a rainbow."
  • "She is far better as she is," concluded Adele, after musing some time:
  • "besides, she would get tired of living with only you in the moon. If I
  • were mademoiselle, I would never consent to go with you."
  • "She has consented: she has pledged her word."
  • "But you can't get her there; there is no road to the moon: it is all
  • air; and neither you nor she can fly."
  • "Adele, look at that field." We were now outside Thornfield gates, and
  • bowling lightly along the smooth road to Millcote, where the dust was
  • well laid by the thunderstorm, and, where the low hedges and lofty timber
  • trees on each side glistened green and rain-refreshed.
  • "In that field, Adele, I was walking late one evening about a fortnight
  • since--the evening of the day you helped me to make hay in the orchard
  • meadows; and, as I was tired with raking swaths, I sat down to rest me on
  • a stile; and there I took out a little book and a pencil, and began to
  • write about a misfortune that befell me long ago, and a wish I had for
  • happy days to come: I was writing away very fast, though daylight was
  • fading from the leaf, when something came up the path and stopped two
  • yards off me. I looked at it. It was a little thing with a veil of
  • gossamer on its head. I beckoned it to come near me; it stood soon at my
  • knee. I never spoke to it, and it never spoke to me, in words; but I
  • read its eyes, and it read mine; and our speechless colloquy was to this
  • effect--
  • "It was a fairy, and come from Elf-land, it said; and its errand was to
  • make me happy: I must go with it out of the common world to a lonely
  • place--such as the moon, for instance--and it nodded its head towards her
  • horn, rising over Hay-hill: it told me of the alabaster cave and silver
  • vale where we might live. I said I should like to go; but reminded it,
  • as you did me, that I had no wings to fly.
  • "'Oh,' returned the fairy, 'that does not signify! Here is a talisman
  • will remove all difficulties;' and she held out a pretty gold ring. 'Put
  • it,' she said, 'on the fourth finger of my left hand, and I am yours, and
  • you are mine; and we shall leave earth, and make our own heaven yonder.'
  • She nodded again at the moon. The ring, Adele, is in my breeches-pocket,
  • under the disguise of a sovereign: but I mean soon to change it to a ring
  • again."
  • "But what has mademoiselle to do with it? I don't care for the fairy:
  • you said it was mademoiselle you would take to the moon?"
  • "Mademoiselle is a fairy," he said, whispering mysteriously. Whereupon I
  • told her not to mind his badinage; and she, on her part, evinced a fund
  • of genuine French scepticism: denominating Mr. Rochester "un vrai
  • menteur," and assuring him that she made no account whatever of his
  • "contes de fee," and that "du reste, il n'y avait pas de fees, et quand
  • meme il y en avait:" she was sure they would never appear to him, nor
  • ever give him rings, or offer to live with him in the moon.
  • The hour spent at Millcote was a somewhat harassing one to me. Mr.
  • Rochester obliged me to go to a certain silk warehouse: there I was
  • ordered to choose half-a-dozen dresses. I hated the business, I begged
  • leave to defer it: no--it should be gone through with now. By dint of
  • entreaties expressed in energetic whispers, I reduced the half-dozen to
  • two: these however, he vowed he would select himself. With anxiety I
  • watched his eye rove over the gay stores: he fixed on a rich silk of the
  • most brilliant amethyst dye, and a superb pink satin. I told him in a
  • new series of whispers, that he might as well buy me a gold gown and a
  • silver bonnet at once: I should certainly never venture to wear his
  • choice. With infinite difficulty, for he was stubborn as a stone, I
  • persuaded him to make an exchange in favour of a sober black satin and
  • pearl-grey silk. "It might pass for the present," he said; "but he would
  • yet see me glittering like a parterre."
  • Glad was I to get him out of the silk warehouse, and then out of a
  • jewellers shop: the more he bought me, the more my cheek burned with a
  • sense of annoyance and degradation. As we re-entered the carriage, and I
  • sat back feverish and fagged, I remembered what, in the hurry of events,
  • dark and bright, I had wholly forgotten--the letter of my uncle, John
  • Eyre, to Mrs. Reed: his intention to adopt me and make me his legatee.
  • "It would, indeed, be a relief," I thought, "if I had ever so small an
  • independency; I never can bear being dressed like a doll by Mr.
  • Rochester, or sitting like a second Danae with the golden shower falling
  • daily round me. I will write to Madeira the moment I get home, and tell
  • my uncle John I am going to be married, and to whom: if I had but a
  • prospect of one day bringing Mr. Rochester an accession of fortune, I
  • could better endure to be kept by him now." And somewhat relieved by
  • this idea (which I failed not to execute that day), I ventured once more
  • to meet my master's and lover's eye, which most pertinaciously sought
  • mine, though I averted both face and gaze. He smiled; and I thought his
  • smile was such as a sultan might, in a blissful and fond moment, bestow
  • on a slave his gold and gems had enriched: I crushed his hand, which was
  • ever hunting mine, vigorously, and thrust it back to him red with the
  • passionate pressure.
  • "You need not look in that way," I said; "if you do, I'll wear nothing
  • but my old Lowood frocks to the end of the chapter. I'll be married in
  • this lilac gingham: you may make a dressing-gown for yourself out of the
  • pearl-grey silk, and an infinite series of waistcoats out of the black
  • satin."
  • He chuckled; he rubbed his hands. "Oh, it is rich to see and hear her?"
  • he exclaimed. "Is she original? Is she piquant? I would not exchange
  • this one little English girl for the Grand Turk's whole seraglio, gazelle-
  • eyes, houri forms, and all!"
  • The Eastern allusion bit me again. "I'll not stand you an inch in the
  • stead of a seraglio," I said; "so don't consider me an equivalent for
  • one. If you have a fancy for anything in that line, away with you, sir,
  • to the bazaars of Stamboul without delay, and lay out in extensive slave-
  • purchases some of that spare cash you seem at a loss to spend
  • satisfactorily here."
  • "And what will you do, Janet, while I am bargaining for so many tons of
  • flesh and such an assortment of black eyes?"
  • "I'll be preparing myself to go out as a missionary to preach liberty to
  • them that are enslaved--your harem inmates amongst the rest. I'll get
  • admitted there, and I'll stir up mutiny; and you, three-tailed bashaw as
  • you are, sir, shall in a trice find yourself fettered amongst our hands:
  • nor will I, for one, consent to cut your bonds till you have signed a
  • charter, the most liberal that despot ever yet conferred."
  • "I would consent to be at your mercy, Jane."
  • "I would have no mercy, Mr. Rochester, if you supplicated for it with an
  • eye like that. While you looked so, I should be certain that whatever
  • charter you might grant under coercion, your first act, when released,
  • would be to violate its conditions."
  • "Why, Jane, what would you have? I fear you will compel me to go through
  • a private marriage ceremony, besides that performed at the altar. You
  • will stipulate, I see, for peculiar terms--what will they be?"
  • "I only want an easy mind, sir; not crushed by crowded obligations. Do
  • you remember what you said of Celine Varens?--of the diamonds, the
  • cashmeres you gave her? I will not be your English Celine Varens. I
  • shall continue to act as Adele's governess; by that I shall earn my board
  • and lodging, and thirty pounds a year besides. I'll furnish my own
  • wardrobe out of that money, and you shall give me nothing but--"
  • "Well, but what?"
  • "Your regard; and if I give you mine in return, that debt will be quit."
  • "Well, for cool native impudence and pure innate pride, you haven't your
  • equal," said he. We were now approaching Thornfield. "Will it please
  • you to dine with me to-day?" he asked, as we re-entered the gates.
  • "No, thank you, sir."
  • "And what for, 'no, thank you?' if one may inquire."
  • "I never have dined with you, sir: and I see no reason why I should now:
  • till--"
  • "Till what? You delight in half-phrases."
  • "Till I can't help it."
  • "Do you suppose I eat like an ogre or a ghoul, that you dread being the
  • companion of my repast?"
  • "I have formed no supposition on the subject, sir; but I want to go on as
  • usual for another month."
  • "You will give up your governessing slavery at once."
  • "Indeed, begging your pardon, sir, I shall not. I shall just go on with
  • it as usual. I shall keep out of your way all day, as I have been
  • accustomed to do: you may send for me in the evening, when you feel
  • disposed to see me, and I'll come then; but at no other time."
  • "I want a smoke, Jane, or a pinch of snuff, to comfort me under all this,
  • 'pour me donner une contenance,' as Adele would say; and unfortunately I
  • have neither my cigar-case, nor my snuff-box. But listen--whisper. It
  • is your time now, little tyrant, but it will be mine presently; and when
  • once I have fairly seized you, to have and to hold, I'll
  • just--figuratively speaking--attach you to a chain like this" (touching
  • his watch-guard). "Yes, bonny wee thing, I'll wear you in my bosom, lest
  • my jewel I should tyne."
  • He said this as he helped me to alight from the carriage, and while he
  • afterwards lifted out Adele, I entered the house, and made good my
  • retreat upstairs.
  • He duly summoned me to his presence in the evening. I had prepared an
  • occupation for him; for I was determined not to spend the whole time in a
  • _tete-a-tete_ conversation. I remembered his fine voice; I knew he liked
  • to sing--good singers generally do. I was no vocalist myself, and, in
  • his fastidious judgment, no musician, either; but I delighted in
  • listening when the performance was good. No sooner had twilight, that
  • hour of romance, began to lower her blue and starry banner over the
  • lattice, than I rose, opened the piano, and entreated him, for the love
  • of heaven, to give me a song. He said I was a capricious witch, and that
  • he would rather sing another time; but I averred that no time was like
  • the present.
  • "Did I like his voice?" he asked.
  • "Very much." I was not fond of pampering that susceptible vanity of his;
  • but for once, and from motives of expediency, I would e'en soothe and
  • stimulate it.
  • "Then, Jane, you must play the accompaniment."
  • "Very well, sir, I will try."
  • I did try, but was presently swept off the stool and denominated "a
  • little bungler." Being pushed unceremoniously to one side--which was
  • precisely what I wished--he usurped my place, and proceeded to accompany
  • himself: for he could play as well as sing. I hied me to the
  • window-recess. And while I sat there and looked out on the still trees
  • and dim lawn, to a sweet air was sung in mellow tones the following
  • strain:--
  • "The truest love that ever heart
  • Felt at its kindled core,
  • Did through each vein, in quickened start,
  • The tide of being pour.
  • Her coming was my hope each day,
  • Her parting was my pain;
  • The chance that did her steps delay
  • Was ice in every vein.
  • I dreamed it would be nameless bliss,
  • As I loved, loved to be;
  • And to this object did I press
  • As blind as eagerly.
  • But wide as pathless was the space
  • That lay our lives between,
  • And dangerous as the foamy race
  • Of ocean-surges green.
  • And haunted as a robber-path
  • Through wilderness or wood;
  • For Might and Right, and Woe and Wrath,
  • Between our spirits stood.
  • I dangers dared; I hindrance scorned;
  • I omens did defy:
  • Whatever menaced, harassed, warned,
  • I passed impetuous by.
  • On sped my rainbow, fast as light;
  • I flew as in a dream;
  • For glorious rose upon my sight
  • That child of Shower and Gleam.
  • Still bright on clouds of suffering dim
  • Shines that soft, solemn joy;
  • Nor care I now, how dense and grim
  • Disasters gather nigh.
  • I care not in this moment sweet,
  • Though all I have rushed o'er
  • Should come on pinion, strong and fleet,
  • Proclaiming vengeance sore:
  • Though haughty Hate should strike me down,
  • Right, bar approach to me,
  • And grinding Might, with furious frown,
  • Swear endless enmity.
  • My love has placed her little hand
  • With noble faith in mine,
  • And vowed that wedlock's sacred band
  • Our nature shall entwine.
  • My love has sworn, with sealing kiss,
  • With me to live--to die;
  • I have at last my nameless bliss.
  • As I love--loved am I!"
  • He rose and came towards me, and I saw his face all kindled, and his full
  • falcon-eye flashing, and tenderness and passion in every lineament. I
  • quailed momentarily--then I rallied. Soft scene, daring demonstration, I
  • would not have; and I stood in peril of both: a weapon of defence must be
  • prepared--I whetted my tongue: as he reached me, I asked with asperity,
  • "whom he was going to marry now?"
  • "That was a strange question to be put by his darling Jane."
  • "Indeed! I considered it a very natural and necessary one: he had talked
  • of his future wife dying with him. What did he mean by such a pagan
  • idea? _I_ had no intention of dying with him--he might depend on that."
  • "Oh, all he longed, all he prayed for, was that I might live with him!
  • Death was not for such as I."
  • "Indeed it was: I had as good a right to die when my time came as he had:
  • but I should bide that time, and not be hurried away in a suttee."
  • "Would I forgive him for the selfish idea, and prove my pardon by a
  • reconciling kiss?"
  • "No: I would rather be excused."
  • Here I heard myself apostrophised as a "hard little thing;" and it was
  • added, "any other woman would have been melted to marrow at hearing such
  • stanzas crooned in her praise."
  • I assured him I was naturally hard--very flinty, and that he would often
  • find me so; and that, moreover, I was determined to show him divers
  • rugged points in my character before the ensuing four weeks elapsed: he
  • should know fully what sort of a bargain he had made, while there was yet
  • time to rescind it.
  • "Would I be quiet and talk rationally?"
  • "I would be quiet if he liked, and as to talking rationally, I flattered
  • myself I was doing that now."
  • He fretted, pished, and pshawed. "Very good," I thought; "you may fume
  • and fidget as you please: but this is the best plan to pursue with you, I
  • am certain. I like you more than I can say; but I'll not sink into a
  • bathos of sentiment: and with this needle of repartee I'll keep you from
  • the edge of the gulf too; and, moreover, maintain by its pungent aid that
  • distance between you and myself most conducive to our real mutual
  • advantage."
  • From less to more, I worked him up to considerable irritation; then,
  • after he had retired, in dudgeon, quite to the other end of the room, I
  • got up, and saying, "I wish you good-night, sir," in my natural and
  • wonted respectful manner, I slipped out by the side-door and got away.
  • The system thus entered on, I pursued during the whole season of
  • probation; and with the best success. He was kept, to be sure, rather
  • cross and crusty; but on the whole I could see he was excellently
  • entertained, and that a lamb-like submission and turtle-dove sensibility,
  • while fostering his despotism more, would have pleased his judgment,
  • satisfied his common-sense, and even suited his taste less.
  • In other people's presence I was, as formerly, deferential and quiet; any
  • other line of conduct being uncalled for: it was only in the evening
  • conferences I thus thwarted and afflicted him. He continued to send for
  • me punctually the moment the clock struck seven; though when I appeared
  • before him now, he had no such honeyed terms as "love" and "darling" on
  • his lips: the best words at my service were "provoking puppet,"
  • "malicious elf," "sprite," "changeling," &c. For caresses, too, I now
  • got grimaces; for a pressure of the hand, a pinch on the arm; for a kiss
  • on the cheek, a severe tweak of the ear. It was all right: at present I
  • decidedly preferred these fierce favours to anything more tender. Mrs.
  • Fairfax, I saw, approved me: her anxiety on my account vanished;
  • therefore I was certain I did well. Meantime, Mr. Rochester affirmed I
  • was wearing him to skin and bone, and threatened awful vengeance for my
  • present conduct at some period fast coming. I laughed in my sleeve at
  • his menaces. "I can keep you in reasonable check now," I reflected; "and
  • I don't doubt to be able to do it hereafter: if one expedient loses its
  • virtue, another must be devised."
  • Yet after all my task was not an easy one; often I would rather have
  • pleased than teased him. My future husband was becoming to me my whole
  • world; and more than the world: almost my hope of heaven. He stood
  • between me and every thought of religion, as an eclipse intervenes
  • between man and the broad sun. I could not, in those days, see God for
  • His creature: of whom I had made an idol.
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • The month of courtship had wasted: its very last hours were being
  • numbered. There was no putting off the day that advanced--the bridal
  • day; and all preparations for its arrival were complete. _I_, at least,
  • had nothing more to do: there were my trunks, packed, locked, corded,
  • ranged in a row along the wall of my little chamber; to-morrow, at this
  • time, they would be far on their road to London: and so should I
  • (D.V.),--or rather, not I, but one Jane Rochester, a person whom as yet I
  • knew not. The cards of address alone remained to nail on: they lay, four
  • little squares, in the drawer. Mr. Rochester had himself written the
  • direction, "Mrs. Rochester, --- Hotel, London," on each: I could not
  • persuade myself to affix them, or to have them affixed. Mrs. Rochester!
  • She did not exist: she would not be born till to-morrow, some time after
  • eight o'clock a.m.; and I would wait to be assured she had come into the
  • world alive before I assigned to her all that property. It was enough
  • that in yonder closet, opposite my dressing-table, garments said to be
  • hers had already displaced my black stuff Lowood frock and straw bonnet:
  • for not to me appertained that suit of wedding raiment; the
  • pearl-coloured robe, the vapoury veil pendent from the usurped
  • portmanteau. I shut the closet to conceal the strange, wraith-like
  • apparel it contained; which, at this evening hour--nine o'clock--gave out
  • certainly a most ghostly shimmer through the shadow of my apartment. "I
  • will leave you by yourself, white dream," I said. "I am feverish: I hear
  • the wind blowing: I will go out of doors and feel it."
  • It was not only the hurry of preparation that made me feverish; not only
  • the anticipation of the great change--the new life which was to commence
  • to-morrow: both these circumstances had their share, doubtless, in
  • producing that restless, excited mood which hurried me forth at this late
  • hour into the darkening grounds: but a third cause influenced my mind
  • more than they.
  • I had at heart a strange and anxious thought. Something had happened
  • which I could not comprehend; no one knew of or had seen the event but
  • myself: it had taken place the preceding night. Mr. Rochester that night
  • was absent from home; nor was he yet returned: business had called him to
  • a small estate of two or three farms he possessed thirty miles
  • off--business it was requisite he should settle in person, previous to
  • his meditated departure from England. I waited now his return; eager to
  • disburthen my mind, and to seek of him the solution of the enigma that
  • perplexed me. Stay till he comes, reader; and, when I disclose my secret
  • to him, you shall share the confidence.
  • I sought the orchard, driven to its shelter by the wind, which all day
  • had blown strong and full from the south, without, however, bringing a
  • speck of rain. Instead of subsiding as night drew on, it seemed to
  • augment its rush and deepen its roar: the trees blew steadfastly one way,
  • never writhing round, and scarcely tossing back their boughs once in an
  • hour; so continuous was the strain bending their branchy heads
  • northward--the clouds drifted from pole to pole, fast following, mass on
  • mass: no glimpse of blue sky had been visible that July day.
  • It was not without a certain wild pleasure I ran before the wind,
  • delivering my trouble of mind to the measureless air-torrent thundering
  • through space. Descending the laurel walk, I faced the wreck of the
  • chestnut-tree; it stood up black and riven: the trunk, split down the
  • centre, gasped ghastly. The cloven halves were not broken from each
  • other, for the firm base and strong roots kept them unsundered below;
  • though community of vitality was destroyed--the sap could flow no more:
  • their great boughs on each side were dead, and next winter's tempests
  • would be sure to fell one or both to earth: as yet, however, they might
  • be said to form one tree--a ruin, but an entire ruin.
  • "You did right to hold fast to each other," I said: as if the monster-
  • splinters were living things, and could hear me. "I think, scathed as
  • you look, and charred and scorched, there must be a little sense of life
  • in you yet, rising out of that adhesion at the faithful, honest roots:
  • you will never have green leaves more--never more see birds making nests
  • and singing idyls in your boughs; the time of pleasure and love is over
  • with you: but you are not desolate: each of you has a comrade to
  • sympathise with him in his decay." As I looked up at them, the moon
  • appeared momentarily in that part of the sky which filled their fissure;
  • her disk was blood-red and half overcast; she seemed to throw on me one
  • bewildered, dreary glance, and buried herself again instantly in the deep
  • drift of cloud. The wind fell, for a second, round Thornfield; but far
  • away over wood and water, poured a wild, melancholy wail: it was sad to
  • listen to, and I ran off again.
  • Here and there I strayed through the orchard, gathered up the apples with
  • which the grass round the tree roots was thickly strewn; then I employed
  • myself in dividing the ripe from the unripe; I carried them into the
  • house and put them away in the store-room. Then I repaired to the
  • library to ascertain whether the fire was lit, for, though summer, I knew
  • on such a gloomy evening Mr. Rochester would like to see a cheerful
  • hearth when he came in: yes, the fire had been kindled some time, and
  • burnt well. I placed his arm-chair by the chimney-corner: I wheeled the
  • table near it: I let down the curtain, and had the candles brought in
  • ready for lighting. More restless than ever, when I had completed these
  • arrangements I could not sit still, nor even remain in the house: a
  • little time-piece in the room and the old clock in the hall
  • simultaneously struck ten.
  • "How late it grows!" I said. "I will run down to the gates: it is
  • moonlight at intervals; I can see a good way on the road. He may be
  • coming now, and to meet him will save some minutes of suspense."
  • The wind roared high in the great trees which embowered the gates; but
  • the road as far as I could see, to the right hand and the left, was all
  • still and solitary: save for the shadows of clouds crossing it at
  • intervals as the moon looked out, it was but a long pale line, unvaried
  • by one moving speck.
  • A puerile tear dimmed my eye while I looked--a tear of disappointment and
  • impatience; ashamed of it, I wiped it away. I lingered; the moon shut
  • herself wholly within her chamber, and drew close her curtain of dense
  • cloud: the night grew dark; rain came driving fast on the gale.
  • "I wish he would come! I wish he would come!" I exclaimed, seized with
  • hypochondriac foreboding. I had expected his arrival before tea; now it
  • was dark: what could keep him? Had an accident happened? The event of
  • last night again recurred to me. I interpreted it as a warning of
  • disaster. I feared my hopes were too bright to be realised; and I had
  • enjoyed so much bliss lately that I imagined my fortune had passed its
  • meridian, and must now decline.
  • "Well, I cannot return to the house," I thought; "I cannot sit by the
  • fireside, while he is abroad in inclement weather: better tire my limbs
  • than strain my heart; I will go forward and meet him."
  • I set out; I walked fast, but not far: ere I had measured a quarter of a
  • mile, I heard the tramp of hoofs; a horseman came on, full gallop; a dog
  • ran by his side. Away with evil presentiment! It was he: here he was,
  • mounted on Mesrour, followed by Pilot. He saw me; for the moon had
  • opened a blue field in the sky, and rode in it watery bright: he took his
  • hat off, and waved it round his head. I now ran to meet him.
  • "There!" he exclaimed, as he stretched out his hand and bent from the
  • saddle: "You can't do without me, that is evident. Step on my boot-toe;
  • give me both hands: mount!"
  • I obeyed: joy made me agile: I sprang up before him. A hearty kissing I
  • got for a welcome, and some boastful triumph, which I swallowed as well
  • as I could. He checked himself in his exultation to demand, "But is
  • there anything the matter, Janet, that you come to meet me at such an
  • hour? Is there anything wrong?"
  • "No, but I thought you would never come. I could not bear to wait in the
  • house for you, especially with this rain and wind."
  • "Rain and wind, indeed! Yes, you are dripping like a mermaid; pull my
  • cloak round you: but I think you are feverish, Jane: both your cheek and
  • hand are burning hot. I ask again, is there anything the matter?"
  • "Nothing now; I am neither afraid nor unhappy."
  • "Then you have been both?"
  • "Rather: but I'll tell you all about it by-and-bye, sir; and I daresay
  • you will only laugh at me for my pains."
  • "I'll laugh at you heartily when to-morrow is past; till then I dare not:
  • my prize is not certain. This is you, who have been as slippery as an
  • eel this last month, and as thorny as a briar-rose? I could not lay a
  • finger anywhere but I was pricked; and now I seem to have gathered up a
  • stray lamb in my arms. You wandered out of the fold to seek your
  • shepherd, did you, Jane?"
  • "I wanted you: but don't boast. Here we are at Thornfield: now let me
  • get down."
  • He landed me on the pavement. As John took his horse, and he followed me
  • into the hall, he told me to make haste and put something dry on, and
  • then return to him in the library; and he stopped me, as I made for the
  • staircase, to extort a promise that I would not be long: nor was I long;
  • in five minutes I rejoined him. I found him at supper.
  • "Take a seat and bear me company, Jane: please God, it is the last meal
  • but one you will eat at Thornfield Hall for a long time."
  • I sat down near him, but told him I could not eat. "Is it because you
  • have the prospect of a journey before you, Jane? Is it the thoughts of
  • going to London that takes away your appetite?"
  • "I cannot see my prospects clearly to-night, sir; and I hardly know what
  • thoughts I have in my head. Everything in life seems unreal."
  • "Except me: I am substantial enough--touch me."
  • "You, sir, are the most phantom-like of all: you are a mere dream."
  • He held out his hand, laughing. "Is that a dream?" said he, placing it
  • close to my eyes. He had a rounded, muscular, and vigorous hand, as well
  • as a long, strong arm.
  • "Yes; though I touch it, it is a dream," said I, as I put it down from
  • before my face. "Sir, have you finished supper?"
  • "Yes, Jane."
  • I rang the bell and ordered away the tray. When we were again alone, I
  • stirred the fire, and then took a low seat at my master's knee.
  • "It is near midnight," I said.
  • "Yes: but remember, Jane, you promised to wake with me the night before
  • my wedding."
  • "I did; and I will keep my promise, for an hour or two at least: I have
  • no wish to go to bed."
  • "Are all your arrangements complete?"
  • "All, sir."
  • "And on my part likewise," he returned, "I have settled everything; and
  • we shall leave Thornfield to-morrow, within half-an-hour after our return
  • from church."
  • "Very well, sir."
  • "With what an extraordinary smile you uttered that word--'very well,'
  • Jane! What a bright spot of colour you have on each cheek! and how
  • strangely your eyes glitter! Are you well?"
  • "I believe I am."
  • "Believe! What is the matter? Tell me what you feel."
  • "I could not, sir: no words could tell you what I feel. I wish this
  • present hour would never end: who knows with what fate the next may come
  • charged?"
  • "This is hypochondria, Jane. You have been over-excited, or
  • over-fatigued."
  • "Do you, sir, feel calm and happy?"
  • "Calm?--no: but happy--to the heart's core."
  • I looked up at him to read the signs of bliss in his face: it was ardent
  • and flushed.
  • "Give me your confidence, Jane," he said: "relieve your mind of any
  • weight that oppresses it, by imparting it to me. What do you fear?--that
  • I shall not prove a good husband?"
  • "It is the idea farthest from my thoughts."
  • "Are you apprehensive of the new sphere you are about to enter?--of the
  • new life into which you are passing?"
  • "No."
  • "You puzzle me, Jane: your look and tone of sorrowful audacity perplex
  • and pain me. I want an explanation."
  • "Then, sir, listen. You were from home last night?"
  • "I was: I know that; and you hinted a while ago at something which had
  • happened in my absence:--nothing, probably, of consequence; but, in
  • short, it has disturbed you. Let me hear it. Mrs. Fairfax has said
  • something, perhaps? or you have overheard the servants talk?--your
  • sensitive self-respect has been wounded?"
  • "No, sir." It struck twelve--I waited till the time-piece had concluded
  • its silver chime, and the clock its hoarse, vibrating stroke, and then I
  • proceeded.
  • "All day yesterday I was very busy, and very happy in my ceaseless
  • bustle; for I am not, as you seem to think, troubled by any haunting
  • fears about the new sphere, et cetera: I think it a glorious thing to
  • have the hope of living with you, because I love you. No, sir, don't
  • caress me now--let me talk undisturbed. Yesterday I trusted well in
  • Providence, and believed that events were working together for your good
  • and mine: it was a fine day, if you recollect--the calmness of the air
  • and sky forbade apprehensions respecting your safety or comfort on your
  • journey. I walked a little while on the pavement after tea, thinking of
  • you; and I beheld you in imagination so near me, I scarcely missed your
  • actual presence. I thought of the life that lay before me--_your_ life,
  • sir--an existence more expansive and stirring than my own: as much more
  • so as the depths of the sea to which the brook runs are than the shallows
  • of its own strait channel. I wondered why moralists call this world a
  • dreary wilderness: for me it blossomed like a rose. Just at sunset, the
  • air turned cold and the sky cloudy: I went in, Sophie called me upstairs
  • to look at my wedding-dress, which they had just brought; and under it in
  • the box I found your present--the veil which, in your princely
  • extravagance, you sent for from London: resolved, I suppose, since I
  • would not have jewels, to cheat me into accepting something as costly. I
  • smiled as I unfolded it, and devised how I would tease you about your
  • aristocratic tastes, and your efforts to masque your plebeian bride in
  • the attributes of a peeress. I thought how I would carry down to you the
  • square of unembroidered blond I had myself prepared as a covering for my
  • low-born head, and ask if that was not good enough for a woman who could
  • bring her husband neither fortune, beauty, nor connections. I saw
  • plainly how you would look; and heard your impetuous republican answers,
  • and your haughty disavowal of any necessity on your part to augment your
  • wealth, or elevate your standing, by marrying either a purse or a
  • coronet."
  • "How well you read me, you witch!" interposed Mr. Rochester: "but what
  • did you find in the veil besides its embroidery? Did you find poison, or
  • a dagger, that you look so mournful now?"
  • "No, no, sir; besides the delicacy and richness of the fabric, I found
  • nothing save Fairfax Rochester's pride; and that did not scare me,
  • because I am used to the sight of the demon. But, sir, as it grew dark,
  • the wind rose: it blew yesterday evening, not as it blows now--wild and
  • high--but 'with a sullen, moaning sound' far more eerie. I wished you
  • were at home. I came into this room, and the sight of the empty chair
  • and fireless hearth chilled me. For some time after I went to bed, I
  • could not sleep--a sense of anxious excitement distressed me. The gale
  • still rising, seemed to my ear to muffle a mournful under-sound; whether
  • in the house or abroad I could not at first tell, but it recurred,
  • doubtful yet doleful at every lull; at last I made out it must be some
  • dog howling at a distance. I was glad when it ceased. On sleeping, I
  • continued in dreams the idea of a dark and gusty night. I continued also
  • the wish to be with you, and experienced a strange, regretful
  • consciousness of some barrier dividing us. During all my first sleep, I
  • was following the windings of an unknown road; total obscurity environed
  • me; rain pelted me; I was burdened with the charge of a little child: a
  • very small creature, too young and feeble to walk, and which shivered in
  • my cold arms, and wailed piteously in my ear. I thought, sir, that you
  • were on the road a long way before me; and I strained every nerve to
  • overtake you, and made effort on effort to utter your name and entreat
  • you to stop--but my movements were fettered, and my voice still died away
  • inarticulate; while you, I felt, withdrew farther and farther every
  • moment."
  • "And these dreams weigh on your spirits now, Jane, when I am close to
  • you? Little nervous subject! Forget visionary woe, and think only of
  • real happiness! You say you love me, Janet: yes--I will not forget that;
  • and you cannot deny it. _Those_ words did not die inarticulate on your
  • lips. I heard them clear and soft: a thought too solemn perhaps, but
  • sweet as music--'I think it is a glorious thing to have the hope of
  • living with you, Edward, because I love you.' Do you love me,
  • Jane?--repeat it."
  • "I do, sir--I do, with my whole heart."
  • "Well," he said, after some minutes' silence, "it is strange; but that
  • sentence has penetrated my breast painfully. Why? I think because you
  • said it with such an earnest, religious energy, and because your upward
  • gaze at me now is the very sublime of faith, truth, and devotion: it is
  • too much as if some spirit were near me. Look wicked, Jane: as you know
  • well how to look: coin one of your wild, shy, provoking smiles; tell me
  • you hate me--tease me, vex me; do anything but move me: I would rather be
  • incensed than saddened."
  • "I will tease you and vex you to your heart's content, when I have
  • finished my tale: but hear me to the end."
  • "I thought, Jane, you had told me all. I thought I had found the source
  • of your melancholy in a dream."
  • I shook my head. "What! is there more? But I will not believe it to be
  • anything important. I warn you of incredulity beforehand. Go on."
  • The disquietude of his air, the somewhat apprehensive impatience of his
  • manner, surprised me: but I proceeded.
  • "I dreamt another dream, sir: that Thornfield Hall was a dreary ruin, the
  • retreat of bats and owls. I thought that of all the stately front
  • nothing remained but a shell-like wall, very high and very
  • fragile-looking. I wandered, on a moonlight night, through the grass-
  • grown enclosure within: here I stumbled over a marble hearth, and there
  • over a fallen fragment of cornice. Wrapped up in a shawl, I still
  • carried the unknown little child: I might not lay it down anywhere,
  • however tired were my arms--however much its weight impeded my progress,
  • I must retain it. I heard the gallop of a horse at a distance on the
  • road; I was sure it was you; and you were departing for many years and
  • for a distant country. I climbed the thin wall with frantic perilous
  • haste, eager to catch one glimpse of you from the top: the stones rolled
  • from under my feet, the ivy branches I grasped gave way, the child clung
  • round my neck in terror, and almost strangled me; at last I gained the
  • summit. I saw you like a speck on a white track, lessening every moment.
  • The blast blew so strong I could not stand. I sat down on the narrow
  • ledge; I hushed the scared infant in my lap: you turned an angle of the
  • road: I bent forward to take a last look; the wall crumbled; I was
  • shaken; the child rolled from my knee, I lost my balance, fell, and
  • woke."
  • "Now, Jane, that is all."
  • "All the preface, sir; the tale is yet to come. On waking, a gleam
  • dazzled my eyes; I thought--Oh, it is daylight! But I was mistaken; it
  • was only candlelight. Sophie, I supposed, had come in. There was a
  • light in the dressing-table, and the door of the closet, where, before
  • going to bed, I had hung my wedding-dress and veil, stood open; I heard a
  • rustling there. I asked, 'Sophie, what are you doing?' No one answered;
  • but a form emerged from the closet; it took the light, held it aloft, and
  • surveyed the garments pendent from the portmanteau. 'Sophie! Sophie!' I
  • again cried: and still it was silent. I had risen up in bed, I bent
  • forward: first surprise, then bewilderment, came over me; and then my
  • blood crept cold through my veins. Mr. Rochester, this was not Sophie,
  • it was not Leah, it was not Mrs. Fairfax: it was not--no, I was sure of
  • it, and am still--it was not even that strange woman, Grace Poole."
  • "It must have been one of them," interrupted my master.
  • "No, sir, I solemnly assure you to the contrary. The shape standing
  • before me had never crossed my eyes within the precincts of Thornfield
  • Hall before; the height, the contour were new to me."
  • "Describe it, Jane."
  • "It seemed, sir, a woman, tall and large, with thick and dark hair
  • hanging long down her back. I know not what dress she had on: it was
  • white and straight; but whether gown, sheet, or shroud, I cannot tell."
  • "Did you see her face?"
  • "Not at first. But presently she took my veil from its place; she held
  • it up, gazed at it long, and then she threw it over her own head, and
  • turned to the mirror. At that moment I saw the reflection of the visage
  • and features quite distinctly in the dark oblong glass."
  • "And how were they?"
  • "Fearful and ghastly to me--oh, sir, I never saw a face like it! It was
  • a discoloured face--it was a savage face. I wish I could forget the roll
  • of the red eyes and the fearful blackened inflation of the lineaments!"
  • "Ghosts are usually pale, Jane."
  • "This, sir, was purple: the lips were swelled and dark; the brow
  • furrowed: the black eyebrows widely raised over the bloodshot eyes. Shall
  • I tell you of what it reminded me?"
  • "You may."
  • "Of the foul German spectre--the Vampyre."
  • "Ah!--what did it do?"
  • "Sir, it removed my veil from its gaunt head, rent it in two parts, and
  • flinging both on the floor, trampled on them."
  • {It removed my veil from its gaunt head, rent it in two parts, and
  • flinging both on the floor, trampled on them: p272.jpg}
  • "Afterwards?"
  • "It drew aside the window-curtain and looked out; perhaps it saw dawn
  • approaching, for, taking the candle, it retreated to the door. Just at
  • my bedside, the figure stopped: the fiery eyes glared upon me--she thrust
  • up her candle close to my face, and extinguished it under my eyes. I was
  • aware her lurid visage flamed over mine, and I lost consciousness: for
  • the second time in my life--only the second time--I became insensible
  • from terror."
  • "Who was with you when you revived?"
  • "No one, sir, but the broad day. I rose, bathed my head and face in
  • water, drank a long draught; felt that though enfeebled I was not ill,
  • and determined that to none but you would I impart this vision. Now,
  • sir, tell me who and what that woman was?"
  • "The creature of an over-stimulated brain; that is certain. I must be
  • careful of you, my treasure: nerves like yours were not made for rough
  • handling."
  • "Sir, depend on it, my nerves were not in fault; the thing was real: the
  • transaction actually took place."
  • "And your previous dreams, were they real too? Is Thornfield Hall a
  • ruin? Am I severed from you by insuperable obstacles? Am I leaving you
  • without a tear--without a kiss--without a word?"
  • "Not yet."
  • "Am I about to do it? Why, the day is already commenced which is to bind
  • us indissolubly; and when we are once united, there shall be no
  • recurrence of these mental terrors: I guarantee that."
  • "Mental terrors, sir! I wish I could believe them to be only such: I
  • wish it more now than ever; since even you cannot explain to me the
  • mystery of that awful visitant."
  • "And since I cannot do it, Jane, it must have been unreal."
  • "But, sir, when I said so to myself on rising this morning, and when I
  • looked round the room to gather courage and comfort from the cheerful
  • aspect of each familiar object in full daylight, there--on the carpet--I
  • saw what gave the distinct lie to my hypothesis,--the veil, torn from top
  • to bottom in two halves!"
  • I felt Mr. Rochester start and shudder; he hastily flung his arms round
  • me. "Thank God!" he exclaimed, "that if anything malignant did come near
  • you last night, it was only the veil that was harmed. Oh, to think what
  • might have happened!"
  • He drew his breath short, and strained me so close to him, I could
  • scarcely pant. After some minutes' silence, he continued, cheerily--
  • "Now, Janet, I'll explain to you all about it. It was half dream, half
  • reality. A woman did, I doubt not, enter your room: and that woman
  • was--must have been--Grace Poole. You call her a strange being yourself:
  • from all you know, you have reason so to call her--what did she do to me?
  • what to Mason? In a state between sleeping and waking, you noticed her
  • entrance and her actions; but feverish, almost delirious as you were, you
  • ascribed to her a goblin appearance different from her own: the long
  • dishevelled hair, the swelled black face, the exaggerated stature, were
  • figments of imagination; results of nightmare: the spiteful tearing of
  • the veil was real: and it is like her. I see you would ask why I keep
  • such a woman in my house: when we have been married a year and a day, I
  • will tell you; but not now. Are you satisfied, Jane? Do you accept my
  • solution of the mystery?"
  • I reflected, and in truth it appeared to me the only possible one:
  • satisfied I was not, but to please him I endeavoured to appear
  • so--relieved, I certainly did feel; so I answered him with a contented
  • smile. And now, as it was long past one, I prepared to leave him.
  • "Does not Sophie sleep with Adele in the nursery?" he asked, as I lit my
  • candle.
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "And there is room enough in Adele's little bed for you. You must share
  • it with her to-night, Jane: it is no wonder that the incident you have
  • related should make you nervous, and I would rather you did not sleep
  • alone: promise me to go to the nursery."
  • "I shall be very glad to do so, sir."
  • "And fasten the door securely on the inside. Wake Sophie when you go
  • upstairs, under pretence of requesting her to rouse you in good time to-
  • morrow; for you must be dressed and have finished breakfast before eight.
  • And now, no more sombre thoughts: chase dull care away, Janet. Don't you
  • hear to what soft whispers the wind has fallen? and there is no more
  • beating of rain against the window-panes: look here" (he lifted up the
  • curtain)--"it is a lovely night!"
  • It was. Half heaven was pure and stainless: the clouds, now trooping
  • before the wind, which had shifted to the west, were filing off eastward
  • in long, silvered columns. The moon shone peacefully.
  • "Well," said Mr. Rochester, gazing inquiringly into my eyes, "how is my
  • Janet now?"
  • "The night is serene, sir; and so am I."
  • "And you will not dream of separation and sorrow to-night; but of happy
  • love and blissful union."
  • This prediction was but half fulfilled: I did not indeed dream of sorrow,
  • but as little did I dream of joy; for I never slept at all. With little
  • Adele in my arms, I watched the slumber of childhood--so tranquil, so
  • passionless, so innocent--and waited for the coming day: all my life was
  • awake and astir in my frame: and as soon as the sun rose I rose too. I
  • remember Adele clung to me as I left her: I remember I kissed her as I
  • loosened her little hands from my neck; and I cried over her with strange
  • emotion, and quitted her because I feared my sobs would break her still
  • sound repose. She seemed the emblem of my past life; and here I was now
  • to array myself to meet, the dread, but adored, type of my unknown future
  • day.
  • CHAPTER XXVI
  • Sophie came at seven to dress me: she was very long indeed in
  • accomplishing her task; so long that Mr. Rochester, grown, I suppose,
  • impatient of my delay, sent up to ask why I did not come. She was just
  • fastening my veil (the plain square of blond after all) to my hair with a
  • brooch; I hurried from under her hands as soon as I could.
  • "Stop!" she cried in French. "Look at yourself in the mirror: you have
  • not taken one peep."
  • So I turned at the door: I saw a robed and veiled figure, so unlike my
  • usual self that it seemed almost the image of a stranger. "Jane!" called
  • a voice, and I hastened down. I was received at the foot of the stairs
  • by Mr. Rochester.
  • "Lingerer!" he said, "my brain is on fire with impatience, and you tarry
  • so long!"
  • He took me into the dining-room, surveyed me keenly all over, pronounced
  • me "fair as a lily, and not only the pride of his life, but the desire of
  • his eyes," and then telling me he would give me but ten minutes to eat
  • some breakfast, he rang the bell. One of his lately hired servants, a
  • footman, answered it.
  • "Is John getting the carriage ready?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "Is the luggage brought down?"
  • "They are bringing it down, sir."
  • "Go you to the church: see if Mr. Wood (the clergyman) and the clerk are
  • there: return and tell me."
  • The church, as the reader knows, was but just beyond the gates; the
  • footman soon returned.
  • "Mr. Wood is in the vestry, sir, putting on his surplice."
  • "And the carriage?"
  • "The horses are harnessing."
  • "We shall not want it to go to church; but it must be ready the moment we
  • return: all the boxes and luggage arranged and strapped on, and the
  • coachman in his seat."
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "Jane, are you ready?"
  • I rose. There were no groomsmen, no bridesmaids, no relatives to wait
  • for or marshal: none but Mr. Rochester and I. Mrs. Fairfax stood in the
  • hall as we passed. I would fain have spoken to her, but my hand was
  • held by a grasp of iron: I was hurried along by a stride I could hardly
  • follow; and to look at Mr. Rochester's face was to feel that not a second
  • of delay would be tolerated for any purpose. I wonder what other
  • bridegroom ever looked as he did--so bent up to a purpose, so grimly
  • resolute: or who, under such steadfast brows, ever revealed such flaming
  • and flashing eyes.
  • I know not whether the day was fair or foul; in descending the drive, I
  • gazed neither on sky nor earth: my heart was with my eyes; and both
  • seemed migrated into Mr. Rochester's frame. I wanted to see the
  • invisible thing on which, as we went along, he appeared to fasten a
  • glance fierce and fell. I wanted to feel the thoughts whose force he
  • seemed breasting and resisting.
  • At the churchyard wicket he stopped: he discovered I was quite out of
  • breath. "Am I cruel in my love?" he said. "Delay an instant: lean on
  • me, Jane."
  • And now I can recall the picture of the grey old house of God rising calm
  • before me, of a rook wheeling round the steeple, of a ruddy morning sky
  • beyond. I remember something, too, of the green grave-mounds; and I have
  • not forgotten, either, two figures of strangers straying amongst the low
  • hillocks and reading the mementoes graven on the few mossy head-stones. I
  • noticed them, because, as they saw us, they passed round to the back of
  • the church; and I doubted not they were going to enter by the side-aisle
  • door and witness the ceremony. By Mr. Rochester they were not observed;
  • he was earnestly looking at my face from which the blood had, I daresay,
  • momentarily fled: for I felt my forehead dewy, and my cheeks and lips
  • cold. When I rallied, which I soon did, he walked gently with me up the
  • path to the porch.
  • We entered the quiet and humble temple; the priest waited in his white
  • surplice at the lowly altar, the clerk beside him. All was still: two
  • shadows only moved in a remote corner. My conjecture had been correct:
  • the strangers had slipped in before us, and they now stood by the vault
  • of the Rochesters, their backs towards us, viewing through the rails the
  • old time-stained marble tomb, where a kneeling angel guarded the remains
  • of Damer de Rochester, slain at Marston Moor in the time of the civil
  • wars, and of Elizabeth, his wife.
  • Our place was taken at the communion rails. Hearing a cautious step
  • behind me, I glanced over my shoulder: one of the strangers--a gentleman,
  • evidently--was advancing up the chancel. The service began. The
  • explanation of the intent of matrimony was gone through; and then the
  • clergyman came a step further forward, and, bending slightly towards Mr.
  • Rochester, went on.
  • "I require and charge you both (as ye will answer at the dreadful day of
  • judgment, when the secrets of all hearts shall be disclosed), that if
  • either of you know any impediment why ye may not lawfully be joined
  • together in matrimony, ye do now confess it; for be ye well assured that
  • so many as are coupled together otherwise than God's Word doth allow, are
  • not joined together by God, neither is their matrimony lawful."
  • He paused, as the custom is. When is the pause after that sentence ever
  • broken by reply? Not, perhaps, once in a hundred years. And the
  • clergyman, who had not lifted his eyes from his book, and had held his
  • breath but for a moment, was proceeding: his hand was already stretched
  • towards Mr. Rochester, as his lips unclosed to ask, "Wilt thou have this
  • woman for thy wedded wife?"--when a distinct and near voice said--
  • "The marriage cannot go on: I declare the existence of an impediment."
  • The clergyman looked up at the speaker and stood mute; the clerk did the
  • same; Mr. Rochester moved slightly, as if an earthquake had rolled under
  • his feet: taking a firmer footing, and not turning his head or eyes, he
  • said, "Proceed."
  • Profound silence fell when he had uttered that word, with deep but low
  • intonation. Presently Mr. Wood said--
  • "I cannot proceed without some investigation into what has been asserted,
  • and evidence of its truth or falsehood."
  • "The ceremony is quite broken off," subjoined the voice behind us. "I am
  • in a condition to prove my allegation: an insuperable impediment to this
  • marriage exists."
  • Mr. Rochester heard, but heeded not: he stood stubborn and rigid, making
  • no movement but to possess himself of my hand. What a hot and strong
  • grasp he had! and how like quarried marble was his pale, firm, massive
  • front at this moment! How his eye shone, still watchful, and yet wild
  • beneath!
  • Mr. Wood seemed at a loss. "What is the nature of the impediment?" he
  • asked. "Perhaps it may be got over--explained away?"
  • "Hardly," was the answer. "I have called it insuperable, and I speak
  • advisedly."
  • The speaker came forward and leaned on the rails. He continued, uttering
  • each word distinctly, calmly, steadily, but not loudly--
  • "It simply consists in the existence of a previous marriage. Mr.
  • Rochester has a wife now living."
  • My nerves vibrated to those low-spoken words as they had never vibrated
  • to thunder--my blood felt their subtle violence as it had never felt
  • frost or fire; but I was collected, and in no danger of swooning. I
  • looked at Mr. Rochester: I made him look at me. His whole face was
  • colourless rock: his eye was both spark and flint. He disavowed nothing:
  • he seemed as if he would defy all things. Without speaking, without
  • smiling, without seeming to recognise in me a human being, he only twined
  • my waist with his arm and riveted me to his side.
  • "Who are you?" he asked of the intruder.
  • "My name is Briggs, a solicitor of --- Street, London."
  • "And you would thrust on me a wife?"
  • "I would remind you of your lady's existence, sir, which the law
  • recognises, if you do not."
  • "Favour me with an account of her--with her name, her parentage, her
  • place of abode."
  • "Certainly." Mr. Briggs calmly took a paper from his pocket, and read
  • out in a sort of official, nasal voice:--
  • "'I affirm and can prove that on the 20th of October A.D. --- (a date of
  • fifteen years back), Edward Fairfax Rochester, of Thornfield Hall, in the
  • county of ---, and of Ferndean Manor, in ---shire, England, was married
  • to my sister, Bertha Antoinetta Mason, daughter of Jonas Mason, merchant,
  • and of Antoinetta his wife, a Creole, at --- church, Spanish Town,
  • Jamaica. The record of the marriage will be found in the register of
  • that church--a copy of it is now in my possession. Signed, Richard
  • Mason.'"
  • "That--if a genuine document--may prove I have been married, but it does
  • not prove that the woman mentioned therein as my wife is still living."
  • "She was living three months ago," returned the lawyer.
  • "How do you know?"
  • "I have a witness to the fact, whose testimony even you, sir, will
  • scarcely controvert."
  • "Produce him--or go to hell."
  • "I will produce him first--he is on the spot. Mr. Mason, have the
  • goodness to step forward."
  • Mr. Rochester, on hearing the name, set his teeth; he experienced, too, a
  • sort of strong convulsive quiver; near to him as I was, I felt the
  • spasmodic movement of fury or despair run through his frame. The second
  • stranger, who had hitherto lingered in the background, now drew near; a
  • pale face looked over the solicitor's shoulder--yes, it was Mason
  • himself. Mr. Rochester turned and glared at him. His eye, as I have
  • often said, was a black eye: it had now a tawny, nay, a bloody light in
  • its gloom; and his face flushed--olive cheek and hueless forehead
  • received a glow as from spreading, ascending heart-fire: and he stirred,
  • lifted his strong arm--he could have struck Mason, dashed him on the
  • church-floor, shocked by ruthless blow the breath from his body--but
  • Mason shrank away, and cried faintly, "Good God!" Contempt fell cool on
  • Mr. Rochester--his passion died as if a blight had shrivelled it up: he
  • only asked--"What have _you_ to say?"
  • An inaudible reply escaped Mason's white lips.
  • "The devil is in it if you cannot answer distinctly. I again demand,
  • what have you to say?"
  • "Sir--sir," interrupted the clergyman, "do not forget you are in a sacred
  • place." Then addressing Mason, he inquired gently, "Are you aware, sir,
  • whether or not this gentleman's wife is still living?"
  • "Courage," urged the lawyer,--"speak out."
  • "She is now living at Thornfield Hall," said Mason, in more articulate
  • tones: "I saw her there last April. I am her brother."
  • "At Thornfield Hall!" ejaculated the clergyman. "Impossible! I am an
  • old resident in this neighbourhood, sir, and I never heard of a Mrs.
  • Rochester at Thornfield Hall."
  • I saw a grim smile contort Mr. Rochester's lips, and he muttered--
  • "No, by God! I took care that none should hear of it--or of her under
  • that name." He mused--for ten minutes he held counsel with himself: he
  • formed his resolve, and announced it--
  • "Enough! all shall bolt out at once, like the bullet from the barrel.
  • Wood, close your book and take off your surplice; John Green (to the
  • clerk), leave the church: there will be no wedding to-day." The man
  • obeyed.
  • Mr. Rochester continued, hardily and recklessly: "Bigamy is an ugly
  • word!--I meant, however, to be a bigamist; but fate has out-manoeuvred
  • me, or Providence has checked me,--perhaps the last. I am little better
  • than a devil at this moment; and, as my pastor there would tell me,
  • deserve no doubt the sternest judgments of God, even to the quenchless
  • fire and deathless worm. Gentlemen, my plan is broken up:--what this
  • lawyer and his client say is true: I have been married, and the woman to
  • whom I was married lives! You say you never heard of a Mrs. Rochester at
  • the house up yonder, Wood; but I daresay you have many a time inclined
  • your ear to gossip about the mysterious lunatic kept there under watch
  • and ward. Some have whispered to you that she is my bastard half-sister:
  • some, my cast-off mistress. I now inform you that she is my wife, whom I
  • married fifteen years ago,--Bertha Mason by name; sister of this resolute
  • personage, who is now, with his quivering limbs and white cheeks, showing
  • you what a stout heart men may bear. Cheer up, Dick!--never fear me!--I'd
  • almost as soon strike a woman as you. Bertha Mason is mad; and she came
  • of a mad family; idiots and maniacs through three generations! Her
  • mother, the Creole, was both a madwoman and a drunkard!--as I found out
  • after I had wed the daughter: for they were silent on family secrets
  • before. Bertha, like a dutiful child, copied her parent in both points.
  • I had a charming partner--pure, wise, modest: you can fancy I was a happy
  • man. I went through rich scenes! Oh! my experience has been heavenly,
  • if you only knew it! But I owe you no further explanation. Briggs,
  • Wood, Mason, I invite you all to come up to the house and visit Mrs.
  • Poole's patient, and _my wife_! You shall see what sort of a being I was
  • cheated into espousing, and judge whether or not I had a right to break
  • the compact, and seek sympathy with something at least human. This
  • girl," he continued, looking at me, "knew no more than you, Wood, of the
  • disgusting secret: she thought all was fair and legal and never dreamt
  • she was going to be entrapped into a feigned union with a defrauded
  • wretch, already bound to a bad, mad, and embruted partner! Come all of
  • you--follow!"
  • Still holding me fast, he left the church: the three gentlemen came
  • after. At the front door of the hall we found the carriage.
  • "Take it back to the coach-house, John," said Mr. Rochester coolly; "it
  • will not be wanted to-day."
  • At our entrance, Mrs. Fairfax, Adele, Sophie, Leah, advanced to meet and
  • greet us.
  • "To the right-about--every soul!" cried the master; "away with your
  • congratulations! Who wants them? Not I!--they are fifteen years too
  • late!"
  • He passed on and ascended the stairs, still holding my hand, and still
  • beckoning the gentlemen to follow him, which they did. We mounted the
  • first staircase, passed up the gallery, proceeded to the third storey:
  • the low, black door, opened by Mr. Rochester's master-key, admitted us to
  • the tapestried room, with its great bed and its pictorial cabinet.
  • "You know this place, Mason," said our guide; "she bit and stabbed you
  • here."
  • He lifted the hangings from the wall, uncovering the second door: this,
  • too, he opened. In a room without a window, there burnt a fire guarded
  • by a high and strong fender, and a lamp suspended from the ceiling by a
  • chain. Grace Poole bent over the fire, apparently cooking something in a
  • saucepan. In the deep shade, at the farther end of the room, a figure
  • ran backwards and forwards. What it was, whether beast or human being,
  • one could not, at first sight, tell: it grovelled, seemingly, on all
  • fours; it snatched and growled like some strange wild animal: but it was
  • covered with clothing, and a quantity of dark, grizzled hair, wild as a
  • mane, hid its head and face.
  • "Good-morrow, Mrs. Poole!" said Mr. Rochester. "How are you? and how is
  • your charge to-day?"
  • "We're tolerable, sir, I thank you," replied Grace, lifting the boiling
  • mess carefully on to the hob: "rather snappish, but not 'rageous."
  • A fierce cry seemed to give the lie to her favourable report: the clothed
  • hyena rose up, and stood tall on its hind-feet.
  • "Ah! sir, she sees you!" exclaimed Grace: "you'd better not stay."
  • "Only a few moments, Grace: you must allow me a few moments."
  • "Take care then, sir!--for God's sake, take care!"
  • The maniac bellowed: she parted her shaggy locks from her visage, and
  • gazed wildly at her visitors. I recognised well that purple face,--those
  • bloated features. Mrs. Poole advanced.
  • "Keep out of the way," said Mr. Rochester, thrusting her aside: "she has
  • no knife now, I suppose, and I'm on my guard."
  • "One never knows what she has, sir: she is so cunning: it is not in
  • mortal discretion to fathom her craft."
  • "We had better leave her," whispered Mason.
  • "Go to the devil!" was his brother-in-law's recommendation.
  • "'Ware!" cried Grace. The three gentlemen retreated simultaneously. Mr.
  • Rochester flung me behind him: the lunatic sprang and grappled his throat
  • viciously, and laid her teeth to his cheek: they struggled. She was a
  • big woman, in stature almost equalling her husband, and corpulent
  • besides: she showed virile force in the contest--more than once she
  • almost throttled him, athletic as he was. He could have settled her with
  • a well-planted blow; but he would not strike: he would only wrestle. At
  • last he mastered her arms; Grace Poole gave him a cord, and he pinioned
  • them behind her: with more rope, which was at hand, he bound her to a
  • chair. The operation was performed amidst the fiercest yells and the
  • most convulsive plunges. Mr. Rochester then turned to the spectators: he
  • looked at them with a smile both acrid and desolate.
  • "That is _my wife_," said he. "Such is the sole conjugal embrace I am
  • ever to know--such are the endearments which are to solace my leisure
  • hours! And _this_ is what I wished to have" (laying his hand on my
  • shoulder): "this young girl, who stands so grave and quiet at the mouth
  • of hell, looking collectedly at the gambols of a demon, I wanted her just
  • as a change after that fierce ragout. Wood and Briggs, look at the
  • difference! Compare these clear eyes with the red balls yonder--this
  • face with that mask--this form with that bulk; then judge me, priest of
  • the gospel and man of the law, and remember with what judgment ye judge
  • ye shall be judged! Off with you now. I must shut up my prize."
  • We all withdrew. Mr. Rochester stayed a moment behind us, to give some
  • further order to Grace Poole. The solicitor addressed me as he descended
  • the stair.
  • "You, madam," said he, "are cleared from all blame: your uncle will be
  • glad to hear it--if, indeed, he should be still living--when Mr. Mason
  • returns to Madeira."
  • "My uncle! What of him? Do you know him?"
  • "Mr. Mason does. Mr. Eyre has been the Funchal correspondent of his
  • house for some years. When your uncle received your letter intimating
  • the contemplated union between yourself and Mr. Rochester, Mr. Mason, who
  • was staying at Madeira to recruit his health, on his way back to Jamaica,
  • happened to be with him. Mr. Eyre mentioned the intelligence; for he
  • knew that my client here was acquainted with a gentleman of the name of
  • Rochester. Mr. Mason, astonished and distressed as you may suppose,
  • revealed the real state of matters. Your uncle, I am sorry to say, is
  • now on a sick bed; from which, considering the nature of his
  • disease--decline--and the stage it has reached, it is unlikely he will
  • ever rise. He could not then hasten to England himself, to extricate you
  • from the snare into which you had fallen, but he implored Mr. Mason to
  • lose no time in taking steps to prevent the false marriage. He referred
  • him to me for assistance. I used all despatch, and am thankful I was not
  • too late: as you, doubtless, must be also. Were I not morally certain
  • that your uncle will be dead ere you reach Madeira, I would advise you to
  • accompany Mr. Mason back; but as it is, I think you had better remain in
  • England till you can hear further, either from or of Mr. Eyre. Have we
  • anything else to stay for?" he inquired of Mr. Mason.
  • "No, no--let us be gone," was the anxious reply; and without waiting to
  • take leave of Mr. Rochester, they made their exit at the hall door. The
  • clergyman stayed to exchange a few sentences, either of admonition or
  • reproof, with his haughty parishioner; this duty done, he too departed.
  • I heard him go as I stood at the half-open door of my own room, to which
  • I had now withdrawn. The house cleared, I shut myself in, fastened the
  • bolt that none might intrude, and proceeded--not to weep, not to mourn, I
  • was yet too calm for that, but--mechanically to take off the wedding
  • dress, and replace it by the stuff gown I had worn yesterday, as I
  • thought, for the last time. I then sat down: I felt weak and tired. I
  • leaned my arms on a table, and my head dropped on them. And now I
  • thought: till now I had only heard, seen, moved--followed up and down
  • where I was led or dragged--watched event rush on event, disclosure open
  • beyond disclosure: but _now_, _I thought_.
  • The morning had been a quiet morning enough--all except the brief scene
  • with the lunatic: the transaction in the church had not been noisy; there
  • was no explosion of passion, no loud altercation, no dispute, no defiance
  • or challenge, no tears, no sobs: a few words had been spoken, a calmly
  • pronounced objection to the marriage made; some stern, short questions
  • put by Mr. Rochester; answers, explanations given, evidence adduced; an
  • open admission of the truth had been uttered by my master; then the
  • living proof had been seen; the intruders were gone, and all was over.
  • I was in my own room as usual--just myself, without obvious change:
  • nothing had smitten me, or scathed me, or maimed me. And yet where was
  • the Jane Eyre of yesterday?--where was her life?--where were her
  • prospects?
  • Jane Eyre, who had been an ardent, expectant woman--almost a bride, was a
  • cold, solitary girl again: her life was pale; her prospects were
  • desolate. A Christmas frost had come at midsummer; a white December
  • storm had whirled over June; ice glazed the ripe apples, drifts crushed
  • the blowing roses; on hayfield and cornfield lay a frozen shroud: lanes
  • which last night blushed full of flowers, to-day were pathless with
  • untrodden snow; and the woods, which twelve hours since waved leafy and
  • flagrant as groves between the tropics, now spread, waste, wild, and
  • white as pine-forests in wintry Norway. My hopes were all dead--struck
  • with a subtle doom, such as, in one night, fell on all the first-born in
  • the land of Egypt. I looked on my cherished wishes, yesterday so
  • blooming and glowing; they lay stark, chill, livid corpses that could
  • never revive. I looked at my love: that feeling which was my
  • master's--which he had created; it shivered in my heart, like a suffering
  • child in a cold cradle; sickness and anguish had seized it; it could not
  • seek Mr. Rochester's arms--it could not derive warmth from his breast.
  • Oh, never more could it turn to him; for faith was blighted--confidence
  • destroyed! Mr. Rochester was not to me what he had been; for he was not
  • what I had thought him. I would not ascribe vice to him; I would not say
  • he had betrayed me; but the attribute of stainless truth was gone from
  • his idea, and from his presence I must go: _that_ I perceived well.
  • When--how--whither, I could not yet discern; but he himself, I doubted
  • not, would hurry me from Thornfield. Real affection, it seemed, he could
  • not have for me; it had been only fitful passion: that was balked; he
  • would want me no more. I should fear even to cross his path now: my view
  • must be hateful to him. Oh, how blind had been my eyes! How weak my
  • conduct!
  • My eyes were covered and closed: eddying darkness seemed to swim round
  • me, and reflection came in as black and confused a flow. Self-abandoned,
  • relaxed, and effortless, I seemed to have laid me down in the dried-up
  • bed of a great river; I heard a flood loosened in remote mountains, and
  • felt the torrent come: to rise I had no will, to flee I had no strength.
  • I lay faint, longing to be dead. One idea only still throbbed life-like
  • within me--a remembrance of God: it begot an unuttered prayer: these
  • words went wandering up and down in my rayless mind, as something that
  • should be whispered, but no energy was found to express them--
  • "Be not far from me, for trouble is near: there is none to help."
  • It was near: and as I had lifted no petition to Heaven to avert it--as I
  • had neither joined my hands, nor bent my knees, nor moved my lips--it
  • came: in full heavy swing the torrent poured over me. The whole
  • consciousness of my life lorn, my love lost, my hope quenched, my faith
  • death-struck, swayed full and mighty above me in one sullen mass. That
  • bitter hour cannot be described: in truth, "the waters came into my soul;
  • I sank in deep mire: I felt no standing; I came into deep waters; the
  • floods overflowed me."
  • CHAPTER XXVII
  • Some time in the afternoon I raised my head, and looking round and seeing
  • the western sun gilding the sign of its decline on the wall, I asked,
  • "What am I to do?"
  • But the answer my mind gave--"Leave Thornfield at once"--was so prompt,
  • so dread, that I stopped my ears. I said I could not bear such words
  • now. "That I am not Edward Rochester's bride is the least part of my
  • woe," I alleged: "that I have wakened out of most glorious dreams, and
  • found them all void and vain, is a horror I could bear and master; but
  • that I must leave him decidedly, instantly, entirely, is intolerable. I
  • cannot do it."
  • But, then, a voice within me averred that I could do it and foretold that
  • I should do it. I wrestled with my own resolution: I wanted to be weak
  • that I might avoid the awful passage of further suffering I saw laid out
  • for me; and Conscience, turned tyrant, held Passion by the throat, told
  • her tauntingly, she had yet but dipped her dainty foot in the slough, and
  • swore that with that arm of iron he would thrust her down to unsounded
  • depths of agony.
  • "Let me be torn away," then I cried. "Let another help me!"
  • "No; you shall tear yourself away, none shall help you: you shall
  • yourself pluck out your right eye; yourself cut off your right hand: your
  • heart shall be the victim, and you the priest to transfix it."
  • I rose up suddenly, terror-struck at the solitude which so ruthless a
  • judge haunted,--at the silence which so awful a voice filled. My head
  • swam as I stood erect. I perceived that I was sickening from excitement
  • and inanition; neither meat nor drink had passed my lips that day, for I
  • had taken no breakfast. And, with a strange pang, I now reflected that,
  • long as I had been shut up here, no message had been sent to ask how I
  • was, or to invite me to come down: not even little Adele had tapped at
  • the door; not even Mrs. Fairfax had sought me. "Friends always forget
  • those whom fortune forsakes," I murmured, as I undrew the bolt and passed
  • out. I stumbled over an obstacle: my head was still dizzy, my sight was
  • dim, and my limbs were feeble. I could not soon recover myself. I fell,
  • but not on to the ground: an outstretched arm caught me. I looked up--I
  • was supported by Mr. Rochester, who sat in a chair across my chamber
  • threshold.
  • "You come out at last," he said. "Well, I have been waiting for you
  • long, and listening: yet not one movement have I heard, nor one sob: five
  • minutes more of that death-like hush, and I should have forced the lock
  • like a burglar. So you shun me?--you shut yourself up and grieve alone!
  • I would rather you had come and upbraided me with vehemence. You are
  • passionate. I expected a scene of some kind. I was prepared for the hot
  • rain of tears; only I wanted them to be shed on my breast: now a
  • senseless floor has received them, or your drenched handkerchief. But I
  • err: you have not wept at all! I see a white cheek and a faded eye, but
  • no trace of tears. I suppose, then, your heart has been weeping blood?"
  • "Well, Jane! not a word of reproach? Nothing bitter--nothing poignant?
  • Nothing to cut a feeling or sting a passion? You sit quietly where I
  • have placed you, and regard me with a weary, passive look."
  • "Jane, I never meant to wound you thus. If the man who had but one
  • little ewe lamb that was dear to him as a daughter, that ate of his bread
  • and drank of his cup, and lay in his bosom, had by some mistake
  • slaughtered it at the shambles, he would not have rued his bloody blunder
  • more than I now rue mine. Will you ever forgive me?"
  • Reader, I forgave him at the moment and on the spot. There was such deep
  • remorse in his eye, such true pity in his tone, such manly energy in his
  • manner; and besides, there was such unchanged love in his whole look and
  • mien--I forgave him all: yet not in words, not outwardly; only at my
  • heart's core.
  • "You know I am a scoundrel, Jane?" ere long he inquired
  • wistfully--wondering, I suppose, at my continued silence and tameness,
  • the result rather of weakness than of will.
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "Then tell me so roundly and sharply--don't spare me."
  • "I cannot: I am tired and sick. I want some water." He heaved a sort of
  • shuddering sigh, and taking me in his arms, carried me downstairs. At
  • first I did not know to what room he had borne me; all was cloudy to my
  • glazed sight: presently I felt the reviving warmth of a fire; for, summer
  • as it was, I had become icy cold in my chamber. He put wine to my lips;
  • I tasted it and revived; then I ate something he offered me, and was soon
  • myself. I was in the library--sitting in his chair--he was quite near.
  • "If I could go out of life now, without too sharp a pang, it would be
  • well for me," I thought; "then I should not have to make the effort of
  • cracking my heart-strings in rending them from among Mr. Rochester's. I
  • must leave him, it appears. I do not want to leave him--I cannot leave
  • him."
  • "How are you now, Jane?"
  • "Much better, sir; I shall be well soon."
  • "Taste the wine again, Jane."
  • I obeyed him; then he put the glass on the table, stood before me, and
  • looked at me attentively. Suddenly he turned away, with an inarticulate
  • exclamation, full of passionate emotion of some kind; he walked fast
  • through the room and came back; he stooped towards me as if to kiss me;
  • but I remembered caresses were now forbidden. I turned my face away and
  • put his aside.
  • "What!--How is this?" he exclaimed hastily. "Oh, I know! you won't kiss
  • the husband of Bertha Mason? You consider my arms filled and my embraces
  • appropriated?"
  • "At any rate, there is neither room nor claim for me, sir."
  • "Why, Jane? I will spare you the trouble of much talking; I will answer
  • for you--Because I have a wife already, you would reply.--I guess
  • rightly?"
  • "Yes."
  • "If you think so, you must have a strange opinion of me; you must regard
  • me as a plotting profligate--a base and low rake who has been simulating
  • disinterested love in order to draw you into a snare deliberately laid,
  • and strip you of honour and rob you of self-respect. What do you say to
  • that? I see you can say nothing in the first place, you are faint still,
  • and have enough to do to draw your breath; in the second place, you
  • cannot yet accustom yourself to accuse and revile me, and besides, the
  • flood-gates of tears are opened, and they would rush out if you spoke
  • much; and you have no desire to expostulate, to upbraid, to make a scene:
  • you are thinking how _to act_--_talking_ you consider is of no use. I
  • know you--I am on my guard."
  • "Sir, I do not wish to act against you," I said; and my unsteady voice
  • warned me to curtail my sentence.
  • "Not in your sense of the word, but in mine you are scheming to destroy
  • me. You have as good as said that I am a married man--as a married man
  • you will shun me, keep out of my way: just now you have refused to kiss
  • me. You intend to make yourself a complete stranger to me: to live under
  • this roof only as Adele's governess; if ever I say a friendly word to
  • you, if ever a friendly feeling inclines you again to me, you will
  • say,--'That man had nearly made me his mistress: I must be ice and rock
  • to him;' and ice and rock you will accordingly become."
  • I cleared and steadied my voice to reply: "All is changed about me, sir;
  • I must change too--there is no doubt of that; and to avoid fluctuations
  • of feeling, and continual combats with recollections and associations,
  • there is only one way--Adele must have a new governess, sir."
  • "Oh, Adele will go to school--I have settled that already; nor do I mean
  • to torment you with the hideous associations and recollections of
  • Thornfield Hall--this accursed place--this tent of Achan--this insolent
  • vault, offering the ghastliness of living death to the light of the open
  • sky--this narrow stone hell, with its one real fiend, worse than a legion
  • of such as we imagine. Jane, you shall not stay here, nor will I. I was
  • wrong ever to bring you to Thornfield Hall, knowing as I did how it was
  • haunted. I charged them to conceal from you, before I ever saw you, all
  • knowledge of the curse of the place; merely because I feared Adele never
  • would have a governess to stay if she knew with what inmate she was
  • housed, and my plans would not permit me to remove the maniac
  • elsewhere--though I possess an old house, Ferndean Manor, even more
  • retired and hidden than this, where I could have lodged her safely
  • enough, had not a scruple about the unhealthiness of the situation, in
  • the heart of a wood, made my conscience recoil from the arrangement.
  • Probably those damp walls would soon have eased me of her charge: but to
  • each villain his own vice; and mine is not a tendency to indirect
  • assassination, even of what I most hate.
  • "Concealing the mad-woman's neighbourhood from you, however, was
  • something like covering a child with a cloak and laying it down near a
  • upas-tree: that demon's vicinage is poisoned, and always was. But I'll
  • shut up Thornfield Hall: I'll nail up the front door and board the lower
  • windows: I'll give Mrs. Poole two hundred a year to live here with _my
  • wife_, as you term that fearful hag: Grace will do much for money, and
  • she shall have her son, the keeper at Grimsby Retreat, to bear her
  • company and be at hand to give her aid in the paroxysms, when _my wife_
  • is prompted by her familiar to burn people in their beds at night, to
  • stab them, to bite their flesh from their bones, and so on--"
  • "Sir," I interrupted him, "you are inexorable for that unfortunate lady:
  • you speak of her with hate--with vindictive antipathy. It is cruel--she
  • cannot help being mad."
  • "Jane, my little darling (so I will call you, for so you are), you don't
  • know what you are talking about; you misjudge me again: it is not because
  • she is mad I hate her. If you were mad, do you think I should hate you?"
  • "I do indeed, sir."
  • "Then you are mistaken, and you know nothing about me, and nothing about
  • the sort of love of which I am capable. Every atom of your flesh is as
  • dear to me as my own: in pain and sickness it would still be dear. Your
  • mind is my treasure, and if it were broken, it would be my treasure
  • still: if you raved, my arms should confine you, and not a strait
  • waistcoat--your grasp, even in fury, would have a charm for me: if you
  • flew at me as wildly as that woman did this morning, I should receive you
  • in an embrace, at least as fond as it would be restrictive. I should not
  • shrink from you with disgust as I did from her: in your quiet moments you
  • should have no watcher and no nurse but me; and I could hang over you
  • with untiring tenderness, though you gave me no smile in return; and
  • never weary of gazing into your eyes, though they had no longer a ray of
  • recognition for me.--But why do I follow that train of ideas? I was
  • talking of removing you from Thornfield. All, you know, is prepared for
  • prompt departure: to-morrow you shall go. I only ask you to endure one
  • more night under this roof, Jane; and then, farewell to its miseries and
  • terrors for ever! I have a place to repair to, which will be a secure
  • sanctuary from hateful reminiscences, from unwelcome intrusion--even from
  • falsehood and slander."
  • "And take Adele with you, sir," I interrupted; "she will be a companion
  • for you."
  • "What do you mean, Jane? I told you I would send Adele to school; and
  • what do I want with a child for a companion, and not my own child,--a
  • French dancer's bastard? Why do you importune me about her! I say, why
  • do you assign Adele to me for a companion?"
  • "You spoke of a retirement, sir; and retirement and solitude are dull:
  • too dull for you."
  • "Solitude! solitude!" he reiterated with irritation. "I see I must come
  • to an explanation. I don't know what sphynx-like expression is forming
  • in your countenance. You are to share my solitude. Do you understand?"
  • I shook my head: it required a degree of courage, excited as he was
  • becoming, even to risk that mute sign of dissent. He had been walking
  • fast about the room, and he stopped, as if suddenly rooted to one spot.
  • He looked at me long and hard: I turned my eyes from him, fixed them on
  • the fire, and tried to assume and maintain a quiet, collected aspect.
  • "Now for the hitch in Jane's character," he said at last, speaking more
  • calmly than from his look I had expected him to speak. "The reel of silk
  • has run smoothly enough so far; but I always knew there would come a knot
  • and a puzzle: here it is. Now for vexation, and exasperation, and
  • endless trouble! By God! I long to exert a fraction of Samson's
  • strength, and break the entanglement like tow!"
  • He recommenced his walk, but soon again stopped, and this time just
  • before me.
  • "Jane! will you hear reason?" (he stooped and approached his lips to my
  • ear); "because, if you won't, I'll try violence." His voice was hoarse;
  • his look that of a man who is just about to burst an insufferable bond
  • and plunge headlong into wild license. I saw that in another moment, and
  • with one impetus of frenzy more, I should be able to do nothing with him.
  • The present--the passing second of time--was all I had in which to
  • control and restrain him--a movement of repulsion, flight, fear would
  • have sealed my doom,--and his. But I was not afraid: not in the least. I
  • felt an inward power; a sense of influence, which supported me. The
  • crisis was perilous; but not without its charm: such as the Indian,
  • perhaps, feels when he slips over the rapid in his canoe. I took hold of
  • his clenched hand, loosened the contorted fingers, and said to him,
  • soothingly--
  • "Sit down; I'll talk to you as long as you like, and hear all you have to
  • say, whether reasonable or unreasonable."
  • He sat down: but he did not get leave to speak directly. I had been
  • struggling with tears for some time: I had taken great pains to repress
  • them, because I knew he would not like to see me weep. Now, however, I
  • considered it well to let them flow as freely and as long as they liked.
  • If the flood annoyed him, so much the better. So I gave way and cried
  • heartily.
  • Soon I heard him earnestly entreating me to be composed. I said I could
  • not while he was in such a passion.
  • "But I am not angry, Jane: I only love you too well; and you had steeled
  • your little pale face with such a resolute, frozen look, I could not
  • endure it. Hush, now, and wipe your eyes."
  • His softened voice announced that he was subdued; so I, in my turn,
  • became calm. Now he made an effort to rest his head on my shoulder, but
  • I would not permit it. Then he would draw me to him: no.
  • "Jane! Jane!" he said, in such an accent of bitter sadness it thrilled
  • along every nerve I had; "you don't love me, then? It was only my
  • station, and the rank of my wife, that you valued? Now that you think me
  • disqualified to become your husband, you recoil from my touch as if I
  • were some toad or ape."
  • These words cut me: yet what could I do or I say? I ought probably to
  • have done or said nothing; but I was so tortured by a sense of remorse at
  • thus hurting his feelings, I could not control the wish to drop balm
  • where I had wounded.
  • "I _do_ love you," I said, "more than ever: but I must not show or
  • indulge the feeling: and this is the last time I must express it."
  • "The last time, Jane! What! do you think you can live with me, and see
  • me daily, and yet, if you still love me, be always cold and distant?"
  • "No, sir; that I am certain I could not; and therefore I see there is but
  • one way: but you will be furious if I mention it."
  • "Oh, mention it! If I storm, you have the art of weeping."
  • "Mr. Rochester, I must leave you."
  • "For how long, Jane? For a few minutes, while you smooth your hair--which
  • is somewhat dishevelled; and bathe your face--which looks feverish?"
  • "I must leave Adele and Thornfield. I must part with you for my whole
  • life: I must begin a new existence among strange faces and strange
  • scenes."
  • "Of course: I told you you should. I pass over the madness about parting
  • from me. You mean you must become a part of me. As to the new
  • existence, it is all right: you shall yet be my wife: I am not married.
  • You shall be Mrs. Rochester--both virtually and nominally. I shall keep
  • only to you so long as you and I live. You shall go to a place I have in
  • the south of France: a whitewashed villa on the shores of the
  • Mediterranean. There you shall live a happy, and guarded, and most
  • innocent life. Never fear that I wish to lure you into error--to make
  • you my mistress. Why did you shake your head? Jane, you must be
  • reasonable, or in truth I shall again become frantic."
  • His voice and hand quivered: his large nostrils dilated; his eye blazed:
  • still I dared to speak.
  • "Sir, your wife is living: that is a fact acknowledged this morning by
  • yourself. If I lived with you as you desire, I should then be your
  • mistress: to say otherwise is sophistical--is false."
  • "Jane, I am not a gentle-tempered man--you forget that: I am not long-
  • enduring; I am not cool and dispassionate. Out of pity to me and
  • yourself, put your finger on my pulse, feel how it throbs, and--beware!"
  • He bared his wrist, and offered it to me: the blood was forsaking his
  • cheek and lips, they were growing livid; I was distressed on all hands.
  • To agitate him thus deeply, by a resistance he so abhorred, was cruel: to
  • yield was out of the question. I did what human beings do instinctively
  • when they are driven to utter extremity--looked for aid to one higher
  • than man: the words "God help me!" burst involuntarily from my lips.
  • "I am a fool!" cried Mr. Rochester suddenly. "I keep telling her I am
  • not married, and do not explain to her why. I forget she knows nothing
  • of the character of that woman, or of the circumstances attending my
  • infernal union with her. Oh, I am certain Jane will agree with me in
  • opinion, when she knows all that I know! Just put your hand in mine,
  • Janet--that I may have the evidence of touch as well as sight, to prove
  • you are near me--and I will in a few words show you the real state of the
  • case. Can you listen to me?"
  • "Yes, sir; for hours if you will."
  • "I ask only minutes. Jane, did you ever hear or know that I was not the
  • eldest son of my house: that I had once a brother older than I?"
  • "I remember Mrs. Fairfax told me so once."
  • "And did you ever hear that my father was an avaricious, grasping man?"
  • "I have understood something to that effect."
  • "Well, Jane, being so, it was his resolution to keep the property
  • together; he could not bear the idea of dividing his estate and leaving
  • me a fair portion: all, he resolved, should go to my brother, Rowland.
  • Yet as little could he endure that a son of his should be a poor man. I
  • must be provided for by a wealthy marriage. He sought me a partner
  • betimes. Mr. Mason, a West India planter and merchant, was his old
  • acquaintance. He was certain his possessions were real and vast: he made
  • inquiries. Mr. Mason, he found, had a son and daughter; and he learned
  • from him that he could and would give the latter a fortune of thirty
  • thousand pounds: that sufficed. When I left college, I was sent out to
  • Jamaica, to espouse a bride already courted for me. My father said
  • nothing about her money; but he told me Miss Mason was the boast of
  • Spanish Town for her beauty: and this was no lie. I found her a fine
  • woman, in the style of Blanche Ingram: tall, dark, and majestic. Her
  • family wished to secure me because I was of a good race; and so did she.
  • They showed her to me in parties, splendidly dressed. I seldom saw her
  • alone, and had very little private conversation with her. She flattered
  • me, and lavishly displayed for my pleasure her charms and
  • accomplishments. All the men in her circle seemed to admire her and envy
  • me. I was dazzled, stimulated: my senses were excited; and being
  • ignorant, raw, and inexperienced, I thought I loved her. There is no
  • folly so besotted that the idiotic rivalries of society, the prurience,
  • the rashness, the blindness of youth, will not hurry a man to its
  • commission. Her relatives encouraged me; competitors piqued me; she
  • allured me: a marriage was achieved almost before I knew where I was. Oh,
  • I have no respect for myself when I think of that act!--an agony of
  • inward contempt masters me. I never loved, I never esteemed, I did not
  • even know her. I was not sure of the existence of one virtue in her
  • nature: I had marked neither modesty, nor benevolence, nor candour, nor
  • refinement in her mind or manners--and, I married her:--gross,
  • grovelling, mole-eyed blockhead that I was! With less sin I might
  • have--But let me remember to whom I am speaking."
  • "My bride's mother I had never seen: I understood she was dead. The
  • honeymoon over, I learned my mistake; she was only mad, and shut up in a
  • lunatic asylum. There was a younger brother, too--a complete dumb idiot.
  • The elder one, whom you have seen (and whom I cannot hate, whilst I abhor
  • all his kindred, because he has some grains of affection in his feeble
  • mind, shown in the continued interest he takes in his wretched sister,
  • and also in a dog-like attachment he once bore me), will probably be in
  • the same state one day. My father and my brother Rowland knew all this;
  • but they thought only of the thirty thousand pounds, and joined in the
  • plot against me."
  • "These were vile discoveries; but except for the treachery of
  • concealment, I should have made them no subject of reproach to my wife,
  • even when I found her nature wholly alien to mine, her tastes obnoxious
  • to me, her cast of mind common, low, narrow, and singularly incapable of
  • being led to anything higher, expanded to anything larger--when I found
  • that I could not pass a single evening, nor even a single hour of the day
  • with her in comfort; that kindly conversation could not be sustained
  • between us, because whatever topic I started, immediately received from
  • her a turn at once coarse and trite, perverse and imbecile--when I
  • perceived that I should never have a quiet or settled household, because
  • no servant would bear the continued outbreaks of her violent and
  • unreasonable temper, or the vexations of her absurd, contradictory,
  • exacting orders--even then I restrained myself: I eschewed upbraiding, I
  • curtailed remonstrance; I tried to devour my repentance and disgust in
  • secret; I repressed the deep antipathy I felt.
  • "Jane, I will not trouble you with abominable details: some strong words
  • shall express what I have to say. I lived with that woman upstairs four
  • years, and before that time she had tried me indeed: her character
  • ripened and developed with frightful rapidity; her vices sprang up fast
  • and rank: they were so strong, only cruelty could check them, and I would
  • not use cruelty. What a pigmy intellect she had, and what giant
  • propensities! How fearful were the curses those propensities entailed on
  • me! Bertha Mason, the true daughter of an infamous mother, dragged me
  • through all the hideous and degrading agonies which must attend a man
  • bound to a wife at once intemperate and unchaste.
  • "My brother in the interval was dead, and at the end of the four years my
  • father died too. I was rich enough now--yet poor to hideous indigence: a
  • nature the most gross, impure, depraved I ever saw, was associated with
  • mine, and called by the law and by society a part of me. And I could not
  • rid myself of it by any legal proceedings: for the doctors now discovered
  • that _my wife_ was mad--her excesses had prematurely developed the germs
  • of insanity. Jane, you don't like my narrative; you look almost
  • sick--shall I defer the rest to another day?"
  • "No, sir, finish it now; I pity you--I do earnestly pity you."
  • "Pity, Jane, from some people is a noxious and insulting sort of tribute,
  • which one is justified in hurling back in the teeth of those who offer
  • it; but that is the sort of pity native to callous, selfish hearts; it is
  • a hybrid, egotistical pain at hearing of woes, crossed with ignorant
  • contempt for those who have endured them. But that is not your pity,
  • Jane; it is not the feeling of which your whole face is full at this
  • moment--with which your eyes are now almost overflowing--with which your
  • heart is heaving--with which your hand is trembling in mine. Your pity,
  • my darling, is the suffering mother of love: its anguish is the very
  • natal pang of the divine passion. I accept it, Jane; let the daughter
  • have free advent--my arms wait to receive her."
  • "Now, sir, proceed; what did you do when you found she was mad?"
  • "Jane, I approached the verge of despair; a remnant of self-respect was
  • all that intervened between me and the gulf. In the eyes of the world, I
  • was doubtless covered with grimy dishonour; but I resolved to be clean in
  • my own sight--and to the last I repudiated the contamination of her
  • crimes, and wrenched myself from connection with her mental defects.
  • Still, society associated my name and person with hers; I yet saw her and
  • heard her daily: something of her breath (faugh!) mixed with the air I
  • breathed; and besides, I remembered I had once been her husband--that
  • recollection was then, and is now, inexpressibly odious to me; moreover,
  • I knew that while she lived I could never be the husband of another and
  • better wife; and, though five years my senior (her family and her father
  • had lied to me even in the particular of her age), she was likely to live
  • as long as I, being as robust in frame as she was infirm in mind. Thus,
  • at the age of twenty-six, I was hopeless.
  • "One night I had been awakened by her yells--(since the medical men had
  • pronounced her mad, she had, of course, been shut up)--it was a fiery
  • West Indian night; one of the description that frequently precede the
  • hurricanes of those climates. Being unable to sleep in bed, I got up and
  • opened the window. The air was like sulphur-steams--I could find no
  • refreshment anywhere. Mosquitoes came buzzing in and hummed sullenly
  • round the room; the sea, which I could hear from thence, rumbled dull
  • like an earthquake--black clouds were casting up over it; the moon was
  • setting in the waves, broad and red, like a hot cannon-ball--she threw
  • her last bloody glance over a world quivering with the ferment of
  • tempest. I was physically influenced by the atmosphere and scene, and my
  • ears were filled with the curses the maniac still shrieked out; wherein
  • she momentarily mingled my name with such a tone of demon-hate, with such
  • language!--no professed harlot ever had a fouler vocabulary than she:
  • though two rooms off, I heard every word--the thin partitions of the West
  • India house opposing but slight obstruction to her wolfish cries.
  • "'This life,' said I at last, 'is hell: this is the air--those are the
  • sounds of the bottomless pit! I have a right to deliver myself from it
  • if I can. The sufferings of this mortal state will leave me with the
  • heavy flesh that now cumbers my soul. Of the fanatic's burning eternity
  • I have no fear: there is not a future state worse than this present
  • one--let me break away, and go home to God!'
  • "I said this whilst I knelt down at, and unlocked a trunk which contained
  • a brace of loaded pistols: I mean to shoot myself. I only entertained
  • the intention for a moment; for, not being insane, the crisis of
  • exquisite and unalloyed despair, which had originated the wish and design
  • of self-destruction, was past in a second.
  • "A wind fresh from Europe blew over the ocean and rushed through the open
  • casement: the storm broke, streamed, thundered, blazed, and the air grew
  • pure. I then framed and fixed a resolution. While I walked under the
  • dripping orange-trees of my wet garden, and amongst its drenched
  • pomegranates and pine-apples, and while the refulgent dawn of the tropics
  • kindled round me--I reasoned thus, Jane--and now listen; for it was true
  • Wisdom that consoled me in that hour, and showed me the right path to
  • follow.
  • "The sweet wind from Europe was still whispering in the refreshed leaves,
  • and the Atlantic was thundering in glorious liberty; my heart, dried up
  • and scorched for a long time, swelled to the tone, and filled with living
  • blood--my being longed for renewal--my soul thirsted for a pure draught.
  • I saw hope revive--and felt regeneration possible. From a flowery arch
  • at the bottom of my garden I gazed over the sea--bluer than the sky: the
  • old world was beyond; clear prospects opened thus:--
  • "'Go,' said Hope, 'and live again in Europe: there it is not known what a
  • sullied name you bear, nor what a filthy burden is bound to you. You may
  • take the maniac with you to England; confine her with due attendance and
  • precautions at Thornfield: then travel yourself to what clime you will,
  • and form what new tie you like. That woman, who has so abused your long-
  • suffering, so sullied your name, so outraged your honour, so blighted
  • your youth, is not your wife, nor are you her husband. See that she is
  • cared for as her condition demands, and you have done all that God and
  • humanity require of you. Let her identity, her connection with yourself,
  • be buried in oblivion: you are bound to impart them to no living being.
  • Place her in safety and comfort: shelter her degradation with secrecy,
  • and leave her.'
  • "I acted precisely on this suggestion. My father and brother had not
  • made my marriage known to their acquaintance; because, in the very first
  • letter I wrote to apprise them of the union--having already begun to
  • experience extreme disgust of its consequences, and, from the family
  • character and constitution, seeing a hideous future opening to me--I
  • added an urgent charge to keep it secret: and very soon the infamous
  • conduct of the wife my father had selected for me was such as to make him
  • blush to own her as his daughter-in-law. Far from desiring to publish
  • the connection, he became as anxious to conceal it as myself.
  • "To England, then, I conveyed her; a fearful voyage I had with such a
  • monster in the vessel. Glad was I when I at last got her to Thornfield,
  • and saw her safely lodged in that third-storey room, of whose secret
  • inner cabinet she has now for ten years made a wild beast's den--a
  • goblin's cell. I had some trouble in finding an attendant for her, as it
  • was necessary to select one on whose fidelity dependence could be placed;
  • for her ravings would inevitably betray my secret: besides, she had lucid
  • intervals of days--sometimes weeks--which she filled up with abuse of me.
  • At last I hired Grace Poole from the Grimbsy Retreat. She and the
  • surgeon, Carter (who dressed Mason's wounds that night he was stabbed and
  • worried), are the only two I have ever admitted to my confidence. Mrs.
  • Fairfax may indeed have suspected something, but she could have gained no
  • precise knowledge as to facts. Grace has, on the whole, proved a good
  • keeper; though, owing partly to a fault of her own, of which it appears
  • nothing can cure her, and which is incident to her harassing profession,
  • her vigilance has been more than once lulled and baffled. The lunatic is
  • both cunning and malignant; she has never failed to take advantage of her
  • guardian's temporary lapses; once to secrete the knife with which she
  • stabbed her brother, and twice to possess herself of the key of her cell,
  • and issue therefrom in the night-time. On the first of these occasions,
  • she perpetrated the attempt to burn me in my bed; on the second, she paid
  • that ghastly visit to you. I thank Providence, who watched over you,
  • that she then spent her fury on your wedding apparel, which perhaps
  • brought back vague reminiscences of her own bridal days: but on what
  • might have happened, I cannot endure to reflect. When I think of the
  • thing which flew at my throat this morning, hanging its black and scarlet
  • visage over the nest of my dove, my blood curdles--"
  • "And what, sir," I asked, while he paused, "did you do when you had
  • settled her here? Where did you go?"
  • "What did I do, Jane? I transformed myself into a will-o'-the-wisp.
  • Where did I go? I pursued wanderings as wild as those of the
  • March-spirit. I sought the Continent, and went devious through all its
  • lands. My fixed desire was to seek and find a good and intelligent
  • woman, whom I could love: a contrast to the fury I left at Thornfield--"
  • "But you could not marry, sir."
  • "I had determined and was convinced that I could and ought. It was not
  • my original intention to deceive, as I have deceived you. I meant to
  • tell my tale plainly, and make my proposals openly: and it appeared to me
  • so absolutely rational that I should be considered free to love and be
  • loved, I never doubted some woman might be found willing and able to
  • understand my case and accept me, in spite of the curse with which I was
  • burdened."
  • "Well, sir?"
  • "When you are inquisitive, Jane, you always make me smile. You open your
  • eyes like an eager bird, and make every now and then a restless movement,
  • as if answers in speech did not flow fast enough for you, and you wanted
  • to read the tablet of one's heart. But before I go on, tell me what you
  • mean by your 'Well, sir?' It is a small phrase very frequent with you;
  • and which many a time has drawn me on and on through interminable talk: I
  • don't very well know why."
  • "I mean,--What next? How did you proceed? What came of such an event?"
  • "Precisely! and what do you wish to know now?"
  • "Whether you found any one you liked: whether you asked her to marry you;
  • and what she said."
  • "I can tell you whether I found any one I liked, and whether I asked her
  • to marry me: but what she said is yet to be recorded in the book of Fate.
  • For ten long years I roved about, living first in one capital, then
  • another: sometimes in St. Petersburg; oftener in Paris; occasionally in
  • Rome, Naples, and Florence. Provided with plenty of money and the
  • passport of an old name, I could choose my own society: no circles were
  • closed against me. I sought my ideal of a woman amongst English ladies,
  • French countesses, Italian signoras, and German grafinnen. I could not
  • find her. Sometimes, for a fleeting moment, I thought I caught a glance,
  • heard a tone, beheld a form, which announced the realisation of my dream:
  • but I was presently undeserved. You are not to suppose that I desired
  • perfection, either of mind or person. I longed only for what suited
  • me--for the antipodes of the Creole: and I longed vainly. Amongst them
  • all I found not one whom, had I been ever so free, I--warned as I was of
  • the risks, the horrors, the loathings of incongruous unions--would have
  • asked to marry me. Disappointment made me reckless. I tried
  • dissipation--never debauchery: that I hated, and hate. That was my
  • Indian Messalina's attribute: rooted disgust at it and her restrained me
  • much, even in pleasure. Any enjoyment that bordered on riot seemed to
  • approach me to her and her vices, and I eschewed it.
  • "Yet I could not live alone; so I tried the companionship of mistresses.
  • The first I chose was Celine Varens--another of those steps which make a
  • man spurn himself when he recalls them. You already know what she was,
  • and how my liaison with her terminated. She had two successors: an
  • Italian, Giacinta, and a German, Clara; both considered singularly
  • handsome. What was their beauty to me in a few weeks? Giacinta was
  • unprincipled and violent: I tired of her in three months. Clara was
  • honest and quiet; but heavy, mindless, and unimpressible: not one whit to
  • my taste. I was glad to give her a sufficient sum to set her up in a
  • good line of business, and so get decently rid of her. But, Jane, I see
  • by your face you are not forming a very favourable opinion of me just
  • now. You think me an unfeeling, loose-principled rake: don't you?"
  • "I don't like you so well as I have done sometimes, indeed, sir. Did it
  • not seem to you in the least wrong to live in that way, first with one
  • mistress and then another? You talk of it as a mere matter of course."
  • "It was with me; and I did not like it. It was a grovelling fashion of
  • existence: I should never like to return to it. Hiring a mistress is the
  • next worse thing to buying a slave: both are often by nature, and always
  • by position, inferior: and to live familiarly with inferiors is
  • degrading. I now hate the recollection of the time I passed with Celine,
  • Giacinta, and Clara."
  • I felt the truth of these words; and I drew from them the certain
  • inference, that if I were so far to forget myself and all the teaching
  • that had ever been instilled into me, as--under any pretext--with any
  • justification--through any temptation--to become the successor of these
  • poor girls, he would one day regard me with the same feeling which now in
  • his mind desecrated their memory. I did not give utterance to this
  • conviction: it was enough to feel it. I impressed it on my heart, that
  • it might remain there to serve me as aid in the time of trial.
  • "Now, Jane, why don't you say 'Well, sir?' I have not done. You are
  • looking grave. You disapprove of me still, I see. But let me come to
  • the point. Last January, rid of all mistresses--in a harsh, bitter frame
  • of mind, the result of a useless, roving, lonely life--corroded with
  • disappointment, sourly disposed against all men, and especially against
  • all womankind (for I began to regard the notion of an intellectual,
  • faithful, loving woman as a mere dream), recalled by business, I came
  • back to England.
  • "On a frosty winter afternoon, I rode in sight of Thornfield Hall.
  • Abhorred spot! I expected no peace--no pleasure there. On a stile in
  • Hay Lane I saw a quiet little figure sitting by itself. I passed it as
  • negligently as I did the pollard willow opposite to it: I had no
  • presentiment of what it would be to me; no inward warning that the
  • arbitress of my life--my genius for good or evil--waited there in humble
  • guise. I did not know it, even when, on the occasion of Mesrour's
  • accident, it came up and gravely offered me help. Childish and slender
  • creature! It seemed as if a linnet had hopped to my foot and proposed to
  • bear me on its tiny wing. I was surly; but the thing would not go: it
  • stood by me with strange perseverance, and looked and spoke with a sort
  • of authority. I must be aided, and by that hand: and aided I was.
  • "When once I had pressed the frail shoulder, something new--a fresh sap
  • and sense--stole into my frame. It was well I had learnt that this elf
  • must return to me--that it belonged to my house down below--or I could
  • not have felt it pass away from under my hand, and seen it vanish behind
  • the dim hedge, without singular regret. I heard you come home that
  • night, Jane, though probably you were not aware that I thought of you or
  • watched for you. The next day I observed you--myself unseen--for half-an-
  • hour, while you played with Adele in the gallery. It was a snowy day, I
  • recollect, and you could not go out of doors. I was in my room; the door
  • was ajar: I could both listen and watch. Adele claimed your outward
  • attention for a while; yet I fancied your thoughts were elsewhere: but
  • you were very patient with her, my little Jane; you talked to her and
  • amused her a long time. When at last she left you, you lapsed at once
  • into deep reverie: you betook yourself slowly to pace the gallery. Now
  • and then, in passing a casement, you glanced out at the thick-falling
  • snow; you listened to the sobbing wind, and again you paced gently on and
  • dreamed. I think those day visions were not dark: there was a
  • pleasurable illumination in your eye occasionally, a soft excitement in
  • your aspect, which told of no bitter, bilious, hypochondriac brooding:
  • your look revealed rather the sweet musings of youth when its spirit
  • follows on willing wings the flight of Hope up and on to an ideal heaven.
  • The voice of Mrs. Fairfax, speaking to a servant in the hall, wakened
  • you: and how curiously you smiled to and at yourself, Janet! There was
  • much sense in your smile: it was very shrewd, and seemed to make light of
  • your own abstraction. It seemed to say--'My fine visions are all very
  • well, but I must not forget they are absolutely unreal. I have a rosy
  • sky and a green flowery Eden in my brain; but without, I am perfectly
  • aware, lies at my feet a rough tract to travel, and around me gather
  • black tempests to encounter.' You ran downstairs and demanded of Mrs.
  • Fairfax some occupation: the weekly house accounts to make up, or
  • something of that sort, I think it was. I was vexed with you for getting
  • out of my sight.
  • "Impatiently I waited for evening, when I might summon you to my
  • presence. An unusual--to me--a perfectly new character I suspected was
  • yours: I desired to search it deeper and know it better. You entered the
  • room with a look and air at once shy and independent: you were quaintly
  • dressed--much as you are now. I made you talk: ere long I found you full
  • of strange contrasts. Your garb and manner were restricted by rule; your
  • air was often diffident, and altogether that of one refined by nature,
  • but absolutely unused to society, and a good deal afraid of making
  • herself disadvantageously conspicuous by some solecism or blunder; yet
  • when addressed, you lifted a keen, a daring, and a glowing eye to your
  • interlocutor's face: there was penetration and power in each glance you
  • gave; when plied by close questions, you found ready and round answers.
  • Very soon you seemed to get used to me: I believe you felt the existence
  • of sympathy between you and your grim and cross master, Jane; for it was
  • astonishing to see how quickly a certain pleasant ease tranquillised your
  • manner: snarl as I would, you showed no surprise, fear, annoyance, or
  • displeasure at my moroseness; you watched me, and now and then smiled at
  • me with a simple yet sagacious grace I cannot describe. I was at once
  • content and stimulated with what I saw: I liked what I had seen, and
  • wished to see more. Yet, for a long time, I treated you distantly, and
  • sought your company rarely. I was an intellectual epicure, and wished to
  • prolong the gratification of making this novel and piquant acquaintance:
  • besides, I was for a while troubled with a haunting fear that if I
  • handled the flower freely its bloom would fade--the sweet charm of
  • freshness would leave it. I did not then know that it was no transitory
  • blossom, but rather the radiant resemblance of one, cut in an
  • indestructible gem. Moreover, I wished to see whether you would seek me
  • if I shunned you--but you did not; you kept in the schoolroom as still as
  • your own desk and easel; if by chance I met you, you passed me as soon,
  • and with as little token of recognition, as was consistent with respect.
  • Your habitual expression in those days, Jane, was a thoughtful look; not
  • despondent, for you were not sickly; but not buoyant, for you had little
  • hope, and no actual pleasure. I wondered what you thought of me, or if
  • you ever thought of me, and resolved to find this out.
  • "I resumed my notice of you. There was something glad in your glance,
  • and genial in your manner, when you conversed: I saw you had a social
  • heart; it was the silent schoolroom--it was the tedium of your life--that
  • made you mournful. I permitted myself the delight of being kind to you;
  • kindness stirred emotion soon: your face became soft in expression, your
  • tones gentle; I liked my name pronounced by your lips in a grateful happy
  • accent. I used to enjoy a chance meeting with you, Jane, at this time:
  • there was a curious hesitation in your manner: you glanced at me with a
  • slight trouble--a hovering doubt: you did not know what my caprice might
  • be--whether I was going to play the master and be stern, or the friend
  • and be benignant. I was now too fond of you often to simulate the first
  • whim; and, when I stretched my hand out cordially, such bloom and light
  • and bliss rose to your young, wistful features, I had much ado often to
  • avoid straining you then and there to my heart."
  • "Don't talk any more of those days, sir," I interrupted, furtively
  • dashing away some tears from my eyes; his language was torture to me; for
  • I knew what I must do--and do soon--and all these reminiscences, and
  • these revelations of his feelings only made my work more difficult.
  • "No, Jane," he returned: "what necessity is there to dwell on the Past,
  • when the Present is so much surer--the Future so much brighter?"
  • I shuddered to hear the infatuated assertion.
  • "You see now how the case stands--do you not?" he continued. "After a
  • youth and manhood passed half in unutterable misery and half in dreary
  • solitude, I have for the first time found what I can truly love--I have
  • found you. You are my sympathy--my better self--my good angel. I am
  • bound to you with a strong attachment. I think you good, gifted, lovely:
  • a fervent, a solemn passion is conceived in my heart; it leans to you,
  • draws you to my centre and spring of life, wraps my existence about you,
  • and, kindling in pure, powerful flame, fuses you and me in one.
  • "It was because I felt and knew this, that I resolved to marry you. To
  • tell me that I had already a wife is empty mockery: you know now that I
  • had but a hideous demon. I was wrong to attempt to deceive you; but I
  • feared a stubbornness that exists in your character. I feared early
  • instilled prejudice: I wanted to have you safe before hazarding
  • confidences. This was cowardly: I should have appealed to your nobleness
  • and magnanimity at first, as I do now--opened to you plainly my life of
  • agony--described to you my hunger and thirst after a higher and worthier
  • existence--shown to you, not my _resolution_ (that word is weak), but my
  • resistless _bent_ to love faithfully and well, where I am faithfully and
  • well loved in return. Then I should have asked you to accept my pledge
  • of fidelity and to give me yours. Jane--give it me now."
  • A pause.
  • "Why are you silent, Jane?"
  • I was experiencing an ordeal: a hand of fiery iron grasped my vitals.
  • Terrible moment: full of struggle, blackness, burning! Not a human being
  • that ever lived could wish to be loved better than I was loved; and him
  • who thus loved me I absolutely worshipped: and I must renounce love and
  • idol. One drear word comprised my intolerable duty--"Depart!"
  • "Jane, you understand what I want of you? Just this promise--'I will be
  • yours, Mr. Rochester.'"
  • "Mr. Rochester, I will _not_ be yours."
  • Another long silence.
  • "Jane!" recommenced he, with a gentleness that broke me down with grief,
  • and turned me stone-cold with ominous terror--for this still voice was
  • the pant of a lion rising--"Jane, do you mean to go one way in the world,
  • and to let me go another?"
  • "I do."
  • "Jane" (bending towards and embracing me), "do you mean it now?"
  • "I do."
  • "And now?" softly kissing my forehead and cheek.
  • "I do," extricating myself from restraint rapidly and completely.
  • "Oh, Jane, this is bitter! This--this is wicked. It would not be wicked
  • to love me."
  • "It would to obey you."
  • A wild look raised his brows--crossed his features: he rose; but he
  • forebore yet. I laid my hand on the back of a chair for support: I
  • shook, I feared--but I resolved.
  • "One instant, Jane. Give one glance to my horrible life when you are
  • gone. All happiness will be torn away with you. What then is left? For
  • a wife I have but the maniac upstairs: as well might you refer me to some
  • corpse in yonder churchyard. What shall I do, Jane? Where turn for a
  • companion and for some hope?"
  • "Do as I do: trust in God and yourself. Believe in heaven. Hope to meet
  • again there."
  • "Then you will not yield?"
  • "No."
  • "Then you condemn me to live wretched and to die accursed?" His voice
  • rose.
  • "I advise you to live sinless, and I wish you to die tranquil."
  • "Then you snatch love and innocence from me? You fling me back on lust
  • for a passion--vice for an occupation?"
  • "Mr. Rochester, I no more assign this fate to you than I grasp at it for
  • myself. We were born to strive and endure--you as well as I: do so. You
  • will forget me before I forget you."
  • "You make me a liar by such language: you sully my honour. I declared I
  • could not change: you tell me to my face I shall change soon. And what a
  • distortion in your judgment, what a perversity in your ideas, is proved
  • by your conduct! Is it better to drive a fellow-creature to despair than
  • to transgress a mere human law, no man being injured by the breach? for
  • you have neither relatives nor acquaintances whom you need fear to offend
  • by living with me?"
  • This was true: and while he spoke my very conscience and reason turned
  • traitors against me, and charged me with crime in resisting him. They
  • spoke almost as loud as Feeling: and that clamoured wildly. "Oh,
  • comply!" it said. "Think of his misery; think of his danger--look at his
  • state when left alone; remember his headlong nature; consider the
  • recklessness following on despair--soothe him; save him; love him; tell
  • him you love him and will be his. Who in the world cares for _you_? or
  • who will be injured by what you do?"
  • Still indomitable was the reply--"_I_ care for myself. The more
  • solitary, the more friendless, the more unsustained I am, the more I will
  • respect myself. I will keep the law given by God; sanctioned by man. I
  • will hold to the principles received by me when I was sane, and not
  • mad--as I am now. Laws and principles are not for the times when there
  • is no temptation: they are for such moments as this, when body and soul
  • rise in mutiny against their rigour; stringent are they; inviolate they
  • shall be. If at my individual convenience I might break them, what would
  • be their worth? They have a worth--so I have always believed; and if I
  • cannot believe it now, it is because I am insane--quite insane: with my
  • veins running fire, and my heart beating faster than I can count its
  • throbs. Preconceived opinions, foregone determinations, are all I have
  • at this hour to stand by: there I plant my foot."
  • I did. Mr. Rochester, reading my countenance, saw I had done so. His
  • fury was wrought to the highest: he must yield to it for a moment,
  • whatever followed; he crossed the floor and seized my arm and grasped my
  • waist. He seemed to devour me with his flaming glance: physically, I
  • felt, at the moment, powerless as stubble exposed to the draught and glow
  • of a furnace: mentally, I still possessed my soul, and with it the
  • certainty of ultimate safety. The soul, fortunately, has an
  • interpreter--often an unconscious, but still a truthful interpreter--in
  • the eye. My eye rose to his; and while I looked in his fierce face I
  • gave an involuntary sigh; his gripe was painful, and my over-taxed
  • strength almost exhausted.
  • "Never," said he, as he ground his teeth, "never was anything at once so
  • frail and so indomitable. A mere reed she feels in my hand!" (And he
  • shook me with the force of his hold.) "I could bend her with my finger
  • and thumb: and what good would it do if I bent, if I uptore, if I crushed
  • her? Consider that eye: consider the resolute, wild, free thing looking
  • out of it, defying me, with more than courage--with a stern triumph.
  • Whatever I do with its cage, I cannot get at it--the savage, beautiful
  • creature! If I tear, if I rend the slight prison, my outrage will only
  • let the captive loose. Conqueror I might be of the house; but the inmate
  • would escape to heaven before I could call myself possessor of its clay
  • dwelling-place. And it is you, spirit--with will and energy, and virtue
  • and purity--that I want: not alone your brittle frame. Of yourself you
  • could come with soft flight and nestle against my heart, if you would:
  • seized against your will, you will elude the grasp like an essence--you
  • will vanish ere I inhale your fragrance. Oh! come, Jane, come!"
  • As he said this, he released me from his clutch, and only looked at me.
  • The look was far worse to resist than the frantic strain: only an idiot,
  • however, would have succumbed now. I had dared and baffled his fury; I
  • must elude his sorrow: I retired to the door.
  • "You are going, Jane?"
  • "I am going, sir."
  • "You are leaving me?"
  • "Yes."
  • "You will not come? You will not be my comforter, my rescuer? My deep
  • love, my wild woe, my frantic prayer, are all nothing to you?"
  • What unutterable pathos was in his voice! How hard it was to reiterate
  • firmly, "I am going."
  • "Jane!"
  • "Mr. Rochester!"
  • "Withdraw, then,--I consent; but remember, you leave me here in anguish.
  • Go up to your own room; think over all I have said, and, Jane, cast a
  • glance on my sufferings--think of me."
  • He turned away; he threw himself on his face on the sofa. "Oh, Jane! my
  • hope--my love--my life!" broke in anguish from his lips. Then came a
  • deep, strong sob.
  • I had already gained the door; but, reader, I walked back--walked back as
  • determinedly as I had retreated. I knelt down by him; I turned his face
  • from the cushion to me; I kissed his cheek; I smoothed his hair with my
  • hand.
  • "God bless you, my dear master!" I said. "God keep you from harm and
  • wrong--direct you, solace you--reward you well for your past kindness to
  • me."
  • "Little Jane's love would have been my best reward," he answered;
  • "without it, my heart is broken. But Jane will give me her love:
  • yes--nobly, generously."
  • Up the blood rushed to his face; forth flashed the fire from his eyes;
  • erect he sprang; he held his arms out; but I evaded the embrace, and at
  • once quitted the room.
  • "Farewell!" was the cry of my heart as I left him. Despair added,
  • "Farewell for ever!"
  • * * * * *
  • That night I never thought to sleep; but a slumber fell on me as soon as
  • I lay down in bed. I was transported in thought to the scenes of
  • childhood: I dreamt I lay in the red-room at Gateshead; that the night
  • was dark, and my mind impressed with strange fears. The light that long
  • ago had struck me into syncope, recalled in this vision, seemed glidingly
  • to mount the wall, and tremblingly to pause in the centre of the obscured
  • ceiling. I lifted up my head to look: the roof resolved to clouds, high
  • and dim; the gleam was such as the moon imparts to vapours she is about
  • to sever. I watched her come--watched with the strangest anticipation;
  • as though some word of doom were to be written on her disk. She broke
  • forth as never moon yet burst from cloud: a hand first penetrated the
  • sable folds and waved them away; then, not a moon, but a white human form
  • shone in the azure, inclining a glorious brow earthward. It gazed and
  • gazed on me. It spoke to my spirit: immeasurably distant was the tone,
  • yet so near, it whispered in my heart--
  • "My daughter, flee temptation."
  • "Mother, I will."
  • So I answered after I had waked from the trance-like dream. It was yet
  • night, but July nights are short: soon after midnight, dawn comes. "It
  • cannot be too early to commence the task I have to fulfil," thought I. I
  • rose: I was dressed; for I had taken off nothing but my shoes. I knew
  • where to find in my drawers some linen, a locket, a ring. In seeking
  • these articles, I encountered the beads of a pearl necklace Mr. Rochester
  • had forced me to accept a few days ago. I left that; it was not mine: it
  • was the visionary bride's who had melted in air. The other articles I
  • made up in a parcel; my purse, containing twenty shillings (it was all I
  • had), I put in my pocket: I tied on my straw bonnet, pinned my shawl,
  • took the parcel and my slippers, which I would not put on yet, and stole
  • from my room.
  • "Farewell, kind Mrs. Fairfax!" I whispered, as I glided past her door.
  • "Farewell, my darling Adele!" I said, as I glanced towards the nursery.
  • No thought could be admitted of entering to embrace her. I had to
  • deceive a fine ear: for aught I knew it might now be listening.
  • I would have got past Mr. Rochester's chamber without a pause; but my
  • heart momentarily stopping its beat at that threshold, my foot was forced
  • to stop also. No sleep was there: the inmate was walking restlessly from
  • wall to wall; and again and again he sighed while I listened. There was
  • a heaven--a temporary heaven--in this room for me, if I chose: I had but
  • to go in and to say--
  • "Mr. Rochester, I will love you and live with you through life till
  • death," and a fount of rapture would spring to my lips. I thought of
  • this.
  • That kind master, who could not sleep now, was waiting with impatience
  • for day. He would send for me in the morning; I should be gone. He
  • would have me sought for: vainly. He would feel himself forsaken; his
  • love rejected: he would suffer; perhaps grow desperate. I thought of
  • this too. My hand moved towards the lock: I caught it back, and glided
  • on.
  • Drearily I wound my way downstairs: I knew what I had to do, and I did it
  • mechanically. I sought the key of the side-door in the kitchen; I
  • sought, too, a phial of oil and a feather; I oiled the key and the lock.
  • I got some water, I got some bread: for perhaps I should have to walk
  • far; and my strength, sorely shaken of late, must not break down. All
  • this I did without one sound. I opened the door, passed out, shut it
  • softly. Dim dawn glimmered in the yard. The great gates were closed and
  • locked; but a wicket in one of them was only latched. Through that I
  • departed: it, too, I shut; and now I was out of Thornfield.
  • A mile off, beyond the fields, lay a road which stretched in the contrary
  • direction to Millcote; a road I had never travelled, but often noticed,
  • and wondered where it led: thither I bent my steps. No reflection was to
  • be allowed now: not one glance was to be cast back; not even one forward.
  • Not one thought was to be given either to the past or the future. The
  • first was a page so heavenly sweet--so deadly sad--that to read one line
  • of it would dissolve my courage and break down my energy. The last was
  • an awful blank: something like the world when the deluge was gone by.
  • I skirted fields, and hedges, and lanes till after sunrise. I believe it
  • was a lovely summer morning: I know my shoes, which I had put on when I
  • left the house, were soon wet with dew. But I looked neither to rising
  • sun, nor smiling sky, nor wakening nature. He who is taken out to pass
  • through a fair scene to the scaffold, thinks not of the flowers that
  • smile on his road, but of the block and axe-edge; of the disseverment of
  • bone and vein; of the grave gaping at the end: and I thought of drear
  • flight and homeless wandering--and oh! with agony I thought of what I
  • left. I could not help it. I thought of him now--in his room--watching
  • the sunrise; hoping I should soon come to say I would stay with him and
  • be his. I longed to be his; I panted to return: it was not too late; I
  • could yet spare him the bitter pang of bereavement. As yet my flight, I
  • was sure, was undiscovered. I could go back and be his comforter--his
  • pride; his redeemer from misery, perhaps from ruin. Oh, that fear of his
  • self-abandonment--far worse than my abandonment--how it goaded me! It
  • was a barbed arrow-head in my breast; it tore me when I tried to extract
  • it; it sickened me when remembrance thrust it farther in. Birds began
  • singing in brake and copse: birds were faithful to their mates; birds
  • were emblems of love. What was I? In the midst of my pain of heart and
  • frantic effort of principle, I abhorred myself. I had no solace from
  • self-approbation: none even from self-respect. I had
  • injured--wounded--left my master. I was hateful in my own eyes. Still I
  • could not turn, nor retrace one step. God must have led me on. As to my
  • own will or conscience, impassioned grief had trampled one and stifled
  • the other. I was weeping wildly as I walked along my solitary way: fast,
  • fast I went like one delirious. A weakness, beginning inwardly,
  • extending to the limbs, seized me, and I fell: I lay on the ground some
  • minutes, pressing my face to the wet turf. I had some fear--or hope--that
  • here I should die: but I was soon up; crawling forwards on my hands and
  • knees, and then again raised to my feet--as eager and as determined as
  • ever to reach the road.
  • When I got there, I was forced to sit to rest me under the hedge; and
  • while I sat, I heard wheels, and saw a coach come on. I stood up and
  • lifted my hand; it stopped. I asked where it was going: the driver named
  • a place a long way off, and where I was sure Mr. Rochester had no
  • connections. I asked for what sum he would take me there; he said thirty
  • shillings; I answered I had but twenty; well, he would try to make it do.
  • He further gave me leave to get into the inside, as the vehicle was
  • empty: I entered, was shut in, and it rolled on its way.
  • Gentle reader, may you never feel what I then felt! May your eyes never
  • shed such stormy, scalding, heart-wrung tears as poured from mine. May
  • you never appeal to Heaven in prayers so hopeless and so agonised as in
  • that hour left my lips; for never may you, like me, dread to be the
  • instrument of evil to what you wholly love.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII
  • Two days are passed. It is a summer evening; the coachman has set me
  • down at a place called Whitcross; he could take me no farther for the sum
  • I had given, and I was not possessed of another shilling in the world.
  • The coach is a mile off by this time; I am alone. At this moment I
  • discover that I forgot to take my parcel out of the pocket of the coach,
  • where I had placed it for safety; there it remains, there it must remain;
  • and now, I am absolutely destitute.
  • Whitcross is no town, nor even a hamlet; it is but a stone pillar set up
  • where four roads meet: whitewashed, I suppose, to be more obvious at a
  • distance and in darkness. Four arms spring from its summit: the nearest
  • town to which these point is, according to the inscription, distant ten
  • miles; the farthest, above twenty. From the well-known names of these
  • towns I learn in what county I have lighted; a north-midland shire, dusk
  • with moorland, ridged with mountain: this I see. There are great moors
  • behind and on each hand of me; there are waves of mountains far beyond
  • that deep valley at my feet. The population here must be thin, and I see
  • no passengers on these roads: they stretch out east, west, north, and
  • south--white, broad, lonely; they are all cut in the moor, and the
  • heather grows deep and wild to their very verge. Yet a chance traveller
  • might pass by; and I wish no eye to see me now: strangers would wonder
  • what I am doing, lingering here at the sign-post, evidently objectless
  • and lost. I might be questioned: I could give no answer but what would
  • sound incredible and excite suspicion. Not a tie holds me to human
  • society at this moment--not a charm or hope calls me where my
  • fellow-creatures are--none that saw me would have a kind thought or a
  • good wish for me. I have no relative but the universal mother, Nature: I
  • will seek her breast and ask repose.
  • I struck straight into the heath; I held on to a hollow I saw deeply
  • furrowing the brown moorside; I waded knee-deep in its dark growth; I
  • turned with its turnings, and finding a moss-blackened granite crag in a
  • hidden angle, I sat down under it. High banks of moor were about me; the
  • crag protected my head: the sky was over that.
  • Some time passed before I felt tranquil even here: I had a vague dread
  • that wild cattle might be near, or that some sportsman or poacher might
  • discover me. If a gust of wind swept the waste, I looked up, fearing it
  • was the rush of a bull; if a plover whistled, I imagined it a man.
  • Finding my apprehensions unfounded, however, and calmed by the deep
  • silence that reigned as evening declined at nightfall, I took confidence.
  • As yet I had not thought; I had only listened, watched, dreaded; now I
  • regained the faculty of reflection.
  • What was I to do? Where to go? Oh, intolerable questions, when I could
  • do nothing and go nowhere!--when a long way must yet be measured by my
  • weary, trembling limbs before I could reach human habitation--when cold
  • charity must be entreated before I could get a lodging: reluctant
  • sympathy importuned, almost certain repulse incurred, before my tale
  • could be listened to, or one of my wants relieved!
  • I touched the heath: it was dry, and yet warm with the heat of the summer
  • day. I looked at the sky; it was pure: a kindly star twinkled just above
  • the chasm ridge. The dew fell, but with propitious softness; no breeze
  • whispered. Nature seemed to me benign and good; I thought she loved me,
  • outcast as I was; and I, who from man could anticipate only mistrust,
  • rejection, insult, clung to her with filial fondness. To-night, at
  • least, I would be her guest, as I was her child: my mother would lodge me
  • without money and without price. I had one morsel of bread yet: the
  • remnant of a roll I had bought in a town we passed through at noon with a
  • stray penny--my last coin. I saw ripe bilberries gleaming here and
  • there, like jet beads in the heath: I gathered a handful and ate them
  • with the bread. My hunger, sharp before, was, if not satisfied, appeased
  • by this hermit's meal. I said my evening prayers at its conclusion, and
  • then chose my couch.
  • {I said my evening prayers: p311.jpg}
  • Beside the crag the heath was very deep: when I lay down my feet were
  • buried in it; rising high on each side, it left only a narrow space for
  • the night-air to invade. I folded my shawl double, and spread it over me
  • for a coverlet; a low, mossy swell was my pillow. Thus lodged, I was
  • not, at least--at the commencement of the night, cold.
  • My rest might have been blissful enough, only a sad heart broke it. It
  • plained of its gaping wounds, its inward bleeding, its riven chords. It
  • trembled for Mr. Rochester and his doom; it bemoaned him with bitter
  • pity; it demanded him with ceaseless longing; and, impotent as a bird
  • with both wings broken, it still quivered its shattered pinions in vain
  • attempts to seek him.
  • Worn out with this torture of thought, I rose to my knees. Night was
  • come, and her planets were risen: a safe, still night: too serene for the
  • companionship of fear. We know that God is everywhere; but certainly we
  • feel His presence most when His works are on the grandest scale spread
  • before us; and it is in the unclouded night-sky, where His worlds wheel
  • their silent course, that we read clearest His infinitude, His
  • omnipotence, His omnipresence. I had risen to my knees to pray for Mr.
  • Rochester. Looking up, I, with tear-dimmed eyes, saw the mighty Milky-
  • way. Remembering what it was--what countless systems there swept space
  • like a soft trace of light--I felt the might and strength of God. Sure
  • was I of His efficiency to save what He had made: convinced I grew that
  • neither earth should perish, nor one of the souls it treasured. I turned
  • my prayer to thanksgiving: the Source of Life was also the Saviour of
  • spirits. Mr. Rochester was safe; he was God's, and by God would he be
  • guarded. I again nestled to the breast of the hill; and ere long in
  • sleep forgot sorrow.
  • But next day, Want came to me pale and bare. Long after the little birds
  • had left their nests; long after bees had come in the sweet prime of day
  • to gather the heath honey before the dew was dried--when the long morning
  • shadows were curtailed, and the sun filled earth and sky--I got up, and I
  • looked round me.
  • What a still, hot, perfect day! What a golden desert this spreading
  • moor! Everywhere sunshine. I wished I could live in it and on it. I
  • saw a lizard run over the crag; I saw a bee busy among the sweet
  • bilberries. I would fain at the moment have become bee or lizard, that I
  • might have found fitting nutriment, permanent shelter here. But I was a
  • human being, and had a human being's wants: I must not linger where there
  • was nothing to supply them. I rose; I looked back at the bed I had left.
  • Hopeless of the future, I wished but this--that my Maker had that night
  • thought good to require my soul of me while I slept; and that this weary
  • frame, absolved by death from further conflict with fate, had now but to
  • decay quietly, and mingle in peace with the soil of this wilderness.
  • Life, however, was yet in my possession, with all its requirements, and
  • pains, and responsibilities. The burden must be carried; the want
  • provided for; the suffering endured; the responsibility fulfilled. I set
  • out.
  • Whitcross regained, I followed a road which led from the sun, now fervent
  • and high. By no other circumstance had I will to decide my choice. I
  • walked a long time, and when I thought I had nearly done enough, and
  • might conscientiously yield to the fatigue that almost overpowered
  • me--might relax this forced action, and, sitting down on a stone I saw
  • near, submit resistlessly to the apathy that clogged heart and limb--I
  • heard a bell chime--a church bell.
  • I turned in the direction of the sound, and there, amongst the romantic
  • hills, whose changes and aspect I had ceased to note an hour ago, I saw a
  • hamlet and a spire. All the valley at my right hand was full of pasture-
  • fields, and cornfields, and wood; and a glittering stream ran zig-zag
  • through the varied shades of green, the mellowing grain, the sombre
  • woodland, the clear and sunny lea. Recalled by the rumbling of wheels to
  • the road before me, I saw a heavily-laden waggon labouring up the hill,
  • and not far beyond were two cows and their drover. Human life and human
  • labour were near. I must struggle on: strive to live and bend to toil
  • like the rest.
  • About two o'clock p.m. I entered the village. At the bottom of its one
  • street there was a little shop with some cakes of bread in the window. I
  • coveted a cake of bread. With that refreshment I could perhaps regain a
  • degree of energy: without it, it would be difficult to proceed. The wish
  • to have some strength and some vigour returned to me as soon as I was
  • amongst my fellow-beings. I felt it would be degrading to faint with
  • hunger on the causeway of a hamlet. Had I nothing about me I could offer
  • in exchange for one of these rolls? I considered. I had a small silk
  • handkerchief tied round my throat; I had my gloves. I could hardly tell
  • how men and women in extremities of destitution proceeded. I did not
  • know whether either of these articles would be accepted: probably they
  • would not; but I must try.
  • I entered the shop: a woman was there. Seeing a respectably-dressed
  • person, a lady as she supposed, she came forward with civility. How
  • could she serve me? I was seized with shame: my tongue would not utter
  • the request I had prepared. I dared not offer her the half-worn gloves,
  • the creased handkerchief: besides, I felt it would be absurd. I only
  • begged permission to sit down a moment, as I was tired. Disappointed in
  • the expectation of a customer, she coolly acceded to my request. She
  • pointed to a seat; I sank into it. I felt sorely urged to weep; but
  • conscious how unseasonable such a manifestation would be, I restrained
  • it. Soon I asked her "if there were any dressmaker or plain-workwoman in
  • the village?"
  • "Yes; two or three. Quite as many as there was employment for."
  • I reflected. I was driven to the point now. I was brought face to face
  • with Necessity. I stood in the position of one without a resource,
  • without a friend, without a coin. I must do something. What? I must
  • apply somewhere. Where?
  • "Did she know of any place in the neighbourhood where a servant was
  • wanted?"
  • "Nay; she couldn't say."
  • "What was the chief trade in this place? What did most of the people
  • do?"
  • "Some were farm labourers; a good deal worked at Mr. Oliver's
  • needle-factory, and at the foundry."
  • "Did Mr. Oliver employ women?"
  • "Nay; it was men's work."
  • "And what do the women do?"
  • "I knawn't," was the answer. "Some does one thing, and some another.
  • Poor folk mun get on as they can."
  • She seemed to be tired of my questions: and, indeed, what claim had I to
  • importune her? A neighbour or two came in; my chair was evidently
  • wanted. I took leave.
  • I passed up the street, looking as I went at all the houses to the right
  • hand and to the left; but I could discover no pretext, nor see an
  • inducement to enter any. I rambled round the hamlet, going sometimes to
  • a little distance and returning again, for an hour or more. Much
  • exhausted, and suffering greatly now for want of food, I turned aside
  • into a lane and sat down under the hedge. Ere many minutes had elapsed,
  • I was again on my feet, however, and again searching something--a
  • resource, or at least an informant. A pretty little house stood at the
  • top of the lane, with a garden before it, exquisitely neat and
  • brilliantly blooming. I stopped at it. What business had I to approach
  • the white door or touch the glittering knocker? In what way could it
  • possibly be the interest of the inhabitants of that dwelling to serve me?
  • Yet I drew near and knocked. A mild-looking, cleanly-attired young woman
  • opened the door. In such a voice as might be expected from a hopeless
  • heart and fainting frame--a voice wretchedly low and faltering--I asked
  • if a servant was wanted here?
  • "No," said she; "we do not keep a servant."
  • "Can you tell me where I could get employment of any kind?" I continued.
  • "I am a stranger, without acquaintance in this place. I want some work:
  • no matter what."
  • But it was not her business to think for me, or to seek a place for me:
  • besides, in her eyes, how doubtful must have appeared my character,
  • position, tale. She shook her head, she "was sorry she could give me no
  • information," and the white door closed, quite gently and civilly: but it
  • shut me out. If she had held it open a little longer, I believe I should
  • have begged a piece of bread; for I was now brought low.
  • I could not bear to return to the sordid village, where, besides, no
  • prospect of aid was visible. I should have longed rather to deviate to a
  • wood I saw not far off, which appeared in its thick shade to offer
  • inviting shelter; but I was so sick, so weak, so gnawed with nature's
  • cravings, instinct kept me roaming round abodes where there was a chance
  • of food. Solitude would be no solitude--rest no rest--while the vulture,
  • hunger, thus sank beak and talons in my side.
  • I drew near houses; I left them, and came back again, and again I
  • wandered away: always repelled by the consciousness of having no claim to
  • ask--no right to expect interest in my isolated lot. Meantime, the
  • afternoon advanced, while I thus wandered about like a lost and starving
  • dog. In crossing a field, I saw the church spire before me: I hastened
  • towards it. Near the churchyard, and in the middle of a garden, stood a
  • well-built though small house, which I had no doubt was the parsonage. I
  • remembered that strangers who arrive at a place where they have no
  • friends, and who want employment, sometimes apply to the clergyman for
  • introduction and aid. It is the clergyman's function to help--at least
  • with advice--those who wished to help themselves. I seemed to have
  • something like a right to seek counsel here. Renewing then my courage,
  • and gathering my feeble remains of strength, I pushed on. I reached the
  • house, and knocked at the kitchen-door. An old woman opened: I asked was
  • this the parsonage?
  • "Yes."
  • "Was the clergyman in?"
  • "No."
  • "Would he be in soon?"
  • "No, he was gone from home."
  • "To a distance?"
  • "Not so far--happen three mile. He had been called away by the sudden
  • death of his father: he was at Marsh End now, and would very likely stay
  • there a fortnight longer."
  • "Was there any lady of the house?"
  • "Nay, there was naught but her, and she was housekeeper;" and of her,
  • reader, I could not bear to ask the relief for want of which I was
  • sinking; I could not yet beg; and again I crawled away.
  • Once more I took off my handkerchief--once more I thought of the cakes of
  • bread in the little shop. Oh, for but a crust! for but one mouthful to
  • allay the pang of famine! Instinctively I turned my face again to the
  • village; I found the shop again, and I went in; and though others were
  • there besides the woman I ventured the request--"Would she give me a roll
  • for this handkerchief?"
  • She looked at me with evident suspicion: "Nay, she never sold stuff i'
  • that way."
  • Almost desperate, I asked for half a cake; she again refused. "How could
  • she tell where I had got the handkerchief?" she said.
  • "Would she take my gloves?"
  • "No! what could she do with them?"
  • Reader, it is not pleasant to dwell on these details. Some say there is
  • enjoyment in looking back to painful experience past; but at this day I
  • can scarcely bear to review the times to which I allude: the moral
  • degradation, blent with the physical suffering, form too distressing a
  • recollection ever to be willingly dwelt on. I blamed none of those who
  • repulsed me. I felt it was what was to be expected, and what could not
  • be helped: an ordinary beggar is frequently an object of suspicion; a
  • well-dressed beggar inevitably so. To be sure, what I begged was
  • employment; but whose business was it to provide me with employment? Not,
  • certainly, that of persons who saw me then for the first time, and who
  • knew nothing about my character. And as to the woman who would not take
  • my handkerchief in exchange for her bread, why, she was right, if the
  • offer appeared to her sinister or the exchange unprofitable. Let me
  • condense now. I am sick of the subject.
  • A little before dark I passed a farm-house, at the open door of which the
  • farmer was sitting, eating his supper of bread and cheese. I stopped and
  • said--
  • "Will you give me a piece of bread? for I am very hungry." He cast on me
  • a glance of surprise; but without answering, he cut a thick slice from
  • his loaf, and gave it to me. I imagine he did not think I was a beggar,
  • but only an eccentric sort of lady, who had taken a fancy to his brown
  • loaf. As soon as I was out of sight of his house, I sat down and ate it.
  • I could not hope to get a lodging under a roof, and sought it in the wood
  • I have before alluded to. But my night was wretched, my rest broken: the
  • ground was damp, the air cold: besides, intruders passed near me more
  • than once, and I had again and again to change my quarters; no sense of
  • safety or tranquillity befriended me. Towards morning it rained; the
  • whole of the following day was wet. Do not ask me, reader, to give a
  • minute account of that day; as before, I sought work; as before, I was
  • repulsed; as before, I starved; but once did food pass my lips. At the
  • door of a cottage I saw a little girl about to throw a mess of cold
  • porridge into a pig trough. "Will you give me that?" I asked.
  • {"Will you give me that?" I asked: p316.jpg}
  • She stared at me. "Mother!" she exclaimed, "there is a woman wants me to
  • give her these porridge."
  • "Well lass," replied a voice within, "give it her if she's a beggar. T'
  • pig doesn't want it."
  • The girl emptied the stiffened mould into my hand, and I devoured it
  • ravenously.
  • As the wet twilight deepened, I stopped in a solitary bridle-path, which
  • I had been pursuing an hour or more.
  • "My strength is quite failing me," I said in a soliloquy. "I feel I
  • cannot go much farther. Shall I be an outcast again this night? While
  • the rain descends so, must I lay my head on the cold, drenched ground? I
  • fear I cannot do otherwise: for who will receive me? But it will be very
  • dreadful, with this feeling of hunger, faintness, chill, and this sense
  • of desolation--this total prostration of hope. In all likelihood,
  • though, I should die before morning. And why cannot I reconcile myself
  • to the prospect of death? Why do I struggle to retain a valueless life?
  • Because I know, or believe, Mr. Rochester is living: and then, to die of
  • want and cold is a fate to which nature cannot submit passively. Oh,
  • Providence! sustain me a little longer! Aid!--direct me!"
  • My glazed eye wandered over the dim and misty landscape. I saw I had
  • strayed far from the village: it was quite out of sight. The very
  • cultivation surrounding it had disappeared. I had, by cross-ways and by-
  • paths, once more drawn near the tract of moorland; and now, only a few
  • fields, almost as wild and unproductive as the heath from which they were
  • scarcely reclaimed, lay between me and the dusky hill.
  • "Well, I would rather die yonder than in a street or on a frequented
  • road," I reflected. "And far better that crows and ravens--if any ravens
  • there be in these regions--should pick my flesh from my bones, than that
  • they should be prisoned in a workhouse coffin and moulder in a pauper's
  • grave."
  • To the hill, then, I turned. I reached it. It remained now only to find
  • a hollow where I could lie down, and feel at least hidden, if not secure.
  • But all the surface of the waste looked level. It showed no variation
  • but of tint: green, where rush and moss overgrew the marshes; black,
  • where the dry soil bore only heath. Dark as it was getting, I could
  • still see these changes, though but as mere alternations of light and
  • shade; for colour had faded with the daylight.
  • My eye still roved over the sullen swell and along the moor-edge,
  • vanishing amidst the wildest scenery, when at one dim point, far in among
  • the marshes and the ridges, a light sprang up. "That is an _ignis
  • fatuus_," was my first thought; and I expected it would soon vanish. It
  • burnt on, however, quite steadily, neither receding nor advancing. "Is
  • it, then, a bonfire just kindled?" I questioned. I watched to see
  • whether it would spread: but no; as it did not diminish, so it did not
  • enlarge. "It may be a candle in a house," I then conjectured; "but if
  • so, I can never reach it. It is much too far away: and were it within a
  • yard of me, what would it avail? I should but knock at the door to have
  • it shut in my face."
  • And I sank down where I stood, and hid my face against the ground. I lay
  • still a while: the night-wind swept over the hill and over me, and died
  • moaning in the distance; the rain fell fast, wetting me afresh to the
  • skin. Could I but have stiffened to the still frost--the friendly
  • numbness of death--it might have pelted on; I should not have felt it;
  • but my yet living flesh shuddered at its chilling influence. I rose ere
  • long.
  • The light was yet there, shining dim but constant through the rain. I
  • tried to walk again: I dragged my exhausted limbs slowly towards it. It
  • led me aslant over the hill, through a wide bog, which would have been
  • impassable in winter, and was splashy and shaking even now, in the height
  • of summer. Here I fell twice; but as often I rose and rallied my
  • faculties. This light was my forlorn hope: I must gain it.
  • Having crossed the marsh, I saw a trace of white over the moor. I
  • approached it; it was a road or a track: it led straight up to the light,
  • which now beamed from a sort of knoll, amidst a clump of trees--firs,
  • apparently, from what I could distinguish of the character of their forms
  • and foliage through the gloom. My star vanished as I drew near: some
  • obstacle had intervened between me and it. I put out my hand to feel the
  • dark mass before me: I discriminated the rough stones of a low wall--above
  • it, something like palisades, and within, a high and prickly hedge. I
  • groped on. Again a whitish object gleamed before me: it was a gate--a
  • wicket; it moved on its hinges as I touched it. On each side stood a
  • sable bush-holly or yew.
  • Entering the gate and passing the shrubs, the silhouette of a house rose
  • to view, black, low, and rather long; but the guiding light shone
  • nowhere. All was obscurity. Were the inmates retired to rest? I feared
  • it must be so. In seeking the door, I turned an angle: there shot out
  • the friendly gleam again, from the lozenged panes of a very small
  • latticed window, within a foot of the ground, made still smaller by the
  • growth of ivy or some other creeping plant, whose leaves clustered thick
  • over the portion of the house wall in which it was set. The aperture was
  • so screened and narrow, that curtain or shutter had been deemed
  • unnecessary; and when I stooped down and put aside the spray of foliage
  • shooting over it, I could see all within. I could see clearly a room
  • with a sanded floor, clean scoured; a dresser of walnut, with pewter
  • plates ranged in rows, reflecting the redness and radiance of a glowing
  • peat-fire. I could see a clock, a white deal table, some chairs. The
  • candle, whose ray had been my beacon, burnt on the table; and by its
  • light an elderly woman, somewhat rough-looking, but scrupulously clean,
  • like all about her, was knitting a stocking.
  • I noticed these objects cursorily only--in them there was nothing
  • extraordinary. A group of more interest appeared near the hearth,
  • sitting still amidst the rosy peace and warmth suffusing it. Two young,
  • graceful women--ladies in every point--sat, one in a low rocking-chair,
  • the other on a lower stool; both wore deep mourning of crape and
  • bombazeen, which sombre garb singularly set off very fair necks and
  • faces: a large old pointer dog rested its massive head on the knee of one
  • girl--in the lap of the other was cushioned a black cat.
  • A strange place was this humble kitchen for such occupants! Who were
  • they? They could not be the daughters of the elderly person at the
  • table; for she looked like a rustic, and they were all delicacy and
  • cultivation. I had nowhere seen such faces as theirs: and yet, as I
  • gazed on them, I seemed intimate with every lineament. I cannot call
  • them handsome--they were too pale and grave for the word: as they each
  • bent over a book, they looked thoughtful almost to severity. A stand
  • between them supported a second candle and two great volumes, to which
  • they frequently referred, comparing them, seemingly, with the smaller
  • books they held in their hands, like people consulting a dictionary to
  • aid them in the task of translation. This scene was as silent as if all
  • the figures had been shadows and the firelit apartment a picture: so
  • hushed was it, I could hear the cinders fall from the grate, the clock
  • tick in its obscure corner; and I even fancied I could distinguish the
  • click-click of the woman's knitting-needles. When, therefore, a voice
  • broke the strange stillness at last, it was audible enough to me.
  • "Listen, Diana," said one of the absorbed students; "Franz and old Daniel
  • are together in the night-time, and Franz is telling a dream from which
  • he has awakened in terror--listen!" And in a low voice she read
  • something, of which not one word was intelligible to me; for it was in an
  • unknown tongue--neither French nor Latin. Whether it were Greek or
  • German I could not tell.
  • "That is strong," she said, when she had finished: "I relish it." The
  • other girl, who had lifted her head to listen to her sister, repeated,
  • while she gazed at the fire, a line of what had been read. At a later
  • day, I knew the language and the book; therefore, I will here quote the
  • line: though, when I first heard it, it was only like a stroke on
  • sounding brass to me--conveying no meaning:--
  • "'Da trat hervor Einer, anzusehen wie die Sternen Nacht.' Good! good!"
  • she exclaimed, while her dark and deep eye sparkled. "There you have a
  • dim and mighty archangel fitly set before you! The line is worth a
  • hundred pages of fustian. 'Ich wage die Gedanken in der Schale meines
  • Zornes und die Werke mit dem Gewichte meines Grimms.' I like it!"
  • Both were again silent.
  • "Is there ony country where they talk i' that way?" asked the old woman,
  • looking up from her knitting.
  • "Yes, Hannah--a far larger country than England, where they talk in no
  • other way."
  • "Well, for sure case, I knawn't how they can understand t' one t'other:
  • and if either o' ye went there, ye could tell what they said, I guess?"
  • "We could probably tell something of what they said, but not all--for we
  • are not as clever as you think us, Hannah. We don't speak German, and we
  • cannot read it without a dictionary to help us."
  • "And what good does it do you?"
  • "We mean to teach it some time--or at least the elements, as they say;
  • and then we shall get more money than we do now."
  • "Varry like: but give ower studying; ye've done enough for to-night."
  • "I think we have: at least I'm tired. Mary, are you?"
  • "Mortally: after all, it's tough work fagging away at a language with no
  • master but a lexicon."
  • "It is, especially such a language as this crabbed but glorious Deutsch.
  • I wonder when St. John will come home."
  • "Surely he will not be long now: it is just ten (looking at a little gold
  • watch she drew from her girdle). It rains fast, Hannah: will you have
  • the goodness to look at the fire in the parlour?"
  • The woman rose: she opened a door, through which I dimly saw a passage:
  • soon I heard her stir a fire in an inner room; she presently came back.
  • "Ah, childer!" said she, "it fair troubles me to go into yond' room now:
  • it looks so lonesome wi' the chair empty and set back in a corner."
  • She wiped her eyes with her apron: the two girls, grave before, looked
  • sad now.
  • "But he is in a better place," continued Hannah: "we shouldn't wish him
  • here again. And then, nobody need to have a quieter death nor he had."
  • "You say he never mentioned us?" inquired one of the ladies.
  • "He hadn't time, bairn: he was gone in a minute, was your father. He had
  • been a bit ailing like the day before, but naught to signify; and when
  • Mr. St. John asked if he would like either o' ye to be sent for, he fair
  • laughed at him. He began again with a bit of a heaviness in his head the
  • next day--that is, a fortnight sin'--and he went to sleep and niver
  • wakened: he wor a'most stark when your brother went into t' chamber and
  • fand him. Ah, childer! that's t' last o' t' old stock--for ye and Mr.
  • St. John is like of different soart to them 'at's gone; for all your
  • mother wor mich i' your way, and a'most as book-learned. She wor the
  • pictur' o' ye, Mary: Diana is more like your father."
  • I thought them so similar I could not tell where the old servant (for
  • such I now concluded her to be) saw the difference. Both were fair
  • complexioned and slenderly made; both possessed faces full of distinction
  • and intelligence. One, to be sure, had hair a shade darker than the
  • other, and there was a difference in their style of wearing it; Mary's
  • pale brown locks were parted and braided smooth: Diana's duskier tresses
  • covered her neck with thick curls. The clock struck ten.
  • "Ye'll want your supper, I am sure," observed Hannah; "and so will Mr.
  • St. John when he comes in."
  • And she proceeded to prepare the meal. The ladies rose; they seemed
  • about to withdraw to the parlour. Till this moment, I had been so intent
  • on watching them, their appearance and conversation had excited in me so
  • keen an interest, I had half-forgotten my own wretched position: now it
  • recurred to me. More desolate, more desperate than ever, it seemed from
  • contrast. And how impossible did it appear to touch the inmates of this
  • house with concern on my behalf; to make them believe in the truth of my
  • wants and woes--to induce them to vouchsafe a rest for my wanderings! As
  • I groped out the door, and knocked at it hesitatingly, I felt that last
  • idea to be a mere chimera. Hannah opened.
  • "What do you want?" she inquired, in a voice of surprise, as she surveyed
  • me by the light of the candle she held.
  • "May I speak to your mistresses?" I said.
  • "You had better tell me what you have to say to them. Where do you come
  • from?"
  • "I am a stranger."
  • "What is your business here at this hour?"
  • "I want a night's shelter in an out-house or anywhere, and a morsel of
  • bread to eat."
  • Distrust, the very feeling I dreaded, appeared in Hannah's face. "I'll
  • give you a piece of bread," she said, after a pause; "but we can't take
  • in a vagrant to lodge. It isn't likely."
  • "Do let me speak to your mistresses."
  • "No, not I. What can they do for you? You should not be roving about
  • now; it looks very ill."
  • "But where shall I go if you drive me away? What shall I do?"
  • "Oh, I'll warrant you know where to go and what to do. Mind you don't do
  • wrong, that's all. Here is a penny; now go--"
  • "A penny cannot feed me, and I have no strength to go farther. Don't
  • shut the door:--oh, don't, for God's sake!"
  • "I must; the rain is driving in--"
  • "Tell the young ladies. Let me see them--"
  • "Indeed, I will not. You are not what you ought to be, or you wouldn't
  • make such a noise. Move off."
  • "But I must die if I am turned away."
  • "Not you. I'm fear'd you have some ill plans agate, that bring you about
  • folk's houses at this time o' night. If you've any
  • followers--housebreakers or such like--anywhere near, you may tell them
  • we are not by ourselves in the house; we have a gentleman, and dogs, and
  • guns." Here the honest but inflexible servant clapped the door to and
  • bolted it within.
  • This was the climax. A pang of exquisite suffering--a throe of true
  • despair--rent and heaved my heart. Worn out, indeed, I was; not another
  • step could I stir. I sank on the wet doorstep: I groaned--I wrung my
  • hands--I wept in utter anguish. Oh, this spectre of death! Oh, this
  • last hour, approaching in such horror! Alas, this isolation--this
  • banishment from my kind! Not only the anchor of hope, but the footing of
  • fortitude was gone--at least for a moment; but the last I soon
  • endeavoured to regain.
  • "I can but die," I said, "and I believe in God. Let me try to wait His
  • will in silence."
  • These words I not only thought, but uttered; and thrusting back all my
  • misery into my heart, I made an effort to compel it to remain there--dumb
  • and still.
  • "All men must die," said a voice quite close at hand; "but all are not
  • condemned to meet a lingering and premature doom, such as yours would be
  • if you perished here of want."
  • "Who or what speaks?" I asked, terrified at the unexpected sound, and
  • incapable now of deriving from any occurrence a hope of aid. A form was
  • near--what form, the pitch-dark night and my enfeebled vision prevented
  • me from distinguishing. With a loud long knock, the new-comer appealed
  • to the door.
  • "Is it you, Mr. St. John?" cried Hannah.
  • "Yes--yes; open quickly."
  • "Well, how wet and cold you must be, such a wild night as it is! Come
  • in--your sisters are quite uneasy about you, and I believe there are bad
  • folks about. There has been a beggar-woman--I declare she is not gone
  • yet!--laid down there. Get up! for shame! Move off, I say!"
  • "Hush, Hannah! I have a word to say to the woman. You have done your
  • duty in excluding, now let me do mine in admitting her. I was near, and
  • listened to both you and her. I think this is a peculiar case--I must at
  • least examine into it. Young woman, rise, and pass before me into the
  • house."
  • {Hush, Hannah; I have a word to say to the woman: p323.jpg}
  • With difficulty I obeyed him. Presently I stood within that clean,
  • bright kitchen--on the very hearth--trembling, sickening; conscious of an
  • aspect in the last degree ghastly, wild, and weather-beaten. The two
  • ladies, their brother, Mr. St. John, the old servant, were all gazing at
  • me.
  • "St. John, who is it?" I heard one ask.
  • "I cannot tell: I found her at the door," was the reply.
  • "She does look white," said Hannah.
  • "As white as clay or death," was responded. "She will fall: let her
  • sit."
  • And indeed my head swam: I dropped, but a chair received me. I still
  • possessed my senses, though just now I could not speak.
  • "Perhaps a little water would restore her. Hannah, fetch some. But she
  • is worn to nothing. How very thin, and how very bloodless!"
  • "A mere spectre!"
  • "Is she ill, or only famished?"
  • "Famished, I think. Hannah, is that milk? Give it me, and a piece of
  • bread."
  • Diana (I knew her by the long curls which I saw drooping between me and
  • the fire as she bent over me) broke some bread, dipped it in milk, and
  • put it to my lips. Her face was near mine: I saw there was pity in it,
  • and I felt sympathy in her hurried breathing. In her simple words, too,
  • the same balm-like emotion spoke: "Try to eat."
  • "Yes--try," repeated Mary gently; and Mary's hand removed my sodden
  • bonnet and lifted my head. I tasted what they offered me: feebly at
  • first, eagerly soon.
  • "Not too much at first--restrain her," said the brother; "she has had
  • enough." And he withdrew the cup of milk and the plate of bread.
  • "A little more, St. John--look at the avidity in her eyes."
  • "No more at present, sister. Try if she can speak now--ask her her
  • name."
  • I felt I could speak, and I answered--"My name is Jane Elliott." Anxious
  • as ever to avoid discovery, I had before resolved to assume an _alias_.
  • "And where do you live? Where are your friends?"
  • I was silent.
  • "Can we send for any one you know?"
  • I shook my head.
  • "What account can you give of yourself?"
  • Somehow, now that I had once crossed the threshold of this house, and
  • once was brought face to face with its owners, I felt no longer outcast,
  • vagrant, and disowned by the wide world. I dared to put off the
  • mendicant--to resume my natural manner and character. I began once more
  • to know myself; and when Mr. St. John demanded an account--which at
  • present I was far too weak to render--I said after a brief pause--
  • "Sir, I can give you no details to-night."
  • "But what, then," said he, "do you expect me to do for you?"
  • "Nothing," I replied. My strength sufficed for but short answers. Diana
  • took the word--
  • "Do you mean," she asked, "that we have now given you what aid you
  • require? and that we may dismiss you to the moor and the rainy night?"
  • I looked at her. She had, I thought, a remarkable countenance, instinct
  • both with power and goodness. I took sudden courage. Answering her
  • compassionate gaze with a smile, I said--"I will trust you. If I were a
  • masterless and stray dog, I know that you would not turn me from your
  • hearth to-night: as it is, I really have no fear. Do with me and for me
  • as you like; but excuse me from much discourse--my breath is short--I
  • feel a spasm when I speak." All three surveyed me, and all three were
  • silent.
  • "Hannah," said Mr. St. John, at last, "let her sit there at present, and
  • ask her no questions; in ten minutes more, give her the remainder of that
  • milk and bread. Mary and Diana, let us go into the parlour and talk the
  • matter over."
  • They withdrew. Very soon one of the ladies returned--I could not tell
  • which. A kind of pleasant stupor was stealing over me as I sat by the
  • genial fire. In an undertone she gave some directions to Hannah. Ere
  • long, with the servant's aid, I contrived to mount a staircase; my
  • dripping clothes were removed; soon a warm, dry bed received me. I
  • thanked God--experienced amidst unutterable exhaustion a glow of grateful
  • joy--and slept.
  • CHAPTER XXIX
  • The recollection of about three days and nights succeeding this is very
  • dim in my mind. I can recall some sensations felt in that interval; but
  • few thoughts framed, and no actions performed. I knew I was in a small
  • room and in a narrow bed. To that bed I seemed to have grown; I lay on
  • it motionless as a stone; and to have torn me from it would have been
  • almost to kill me. I took no note of the lapse of time--of the change
  • from morning to noon, from noon to evening. I observed when any one
  • entered or left the apartment: I could even tell who they were; I could
  • understand what was said when the speaker stood near to me; but I could
  • not answer; to open my lips or move my limbs was equally impossible.
  • Hannah, the servant, was my most frequent visitor. Her coming disturbed
  • me. I had a feeling that she wished me away: that she did not understand
  • me or my circumstances; that she was prejudiced against me. Diana and
  • Mary appeared in the chamber once or twice a day. They would whisper
  • sentences of this sort at my bedside--
  • "It is very well we took her in."
  • "Yes; she would certainly have been found dead at the door in the morning
  • had she been left out all night. I wonder what she has gone through?"
  • "Strange hardships, I imagine--poor, emaciated, pallid wanderer?"
  • "She is not an uneducated person, I should think, by her manner of
  • speaking; her accent was quite pure; and the clothes she took off, though
  • splashed and wet, were little worn and fine."
  • "She has a peculiar face; fleshless and haggard as it is, I rather like
  • it; and when in good health and animated, I can fancy her physiognomy
  • would be agreeable."
  • Never once in their dialogues did I hear a syllable of regret at the
  • hospitality they had extended to me, or of suspicion of, or aversion to,
  • myself. I was comforted.
  • Mr. St. John came but once: he looked at me, and said my state of
  • lethargy was the result of reaction from excessive and protracted
  • fatigue. He pronounced it needless to send for a doctor: nature, he was
  • sure, would manage best, left to herself. He said every nerve had been
  • overstrained in some way, and the whole system must sleep torpid a while.
  • There was no disease. He imagined my recovery would be rapid enough when
  • once commenced. These opinions he delivered in a few words, in a quiet,
  • low voice; and added, after a pause, in the tone of a man little
  • accustomed to expansive comment, "Rather an unusual physiognomy;
  • certainly, not indicative of vulgarity or degradation."
  • "Far otherwise," responded Diana. "To speak truth, St. John, my heart
  • rather warms to the poor little soul. I wish we may be able to benefit
  • her permanently."
  • "That is hardly likely," was the reply. "You will find she is some young
  • lady who has had a misunderstanding with her friends, and has probably
  • injudiciously left them. We may, perhaps, succeed in restoring her to
  • them, if she is not obstinate: but I trace lines of force in her face
  • which make me sceptical of her tractability." He stood considering me
  • some minutes; then added, "She looks sensible, but not at all handsome."
  • "She is so ill, St. John."
  • "Ill or well, she would always be plain. The grace and harmony of beauty
  • are quite wanting in those features."
  • On the third day I was better; on the fourth, I could speak, move, rise
  • in bed, and turn. Hannah had brought me some gruel and dry toast, about,
  • as I supposed, the dinner-hour. I had eaten with relish: the food was
  • good--void of the feverish flavour which had hitherto poisoned what I had
  • swallowed. When she left me, I felt comparatively strong and revived:
  • ere long satiety of repose and desire for action stirred me. I wished to
  • rise; but what could I put on? Only my damp and bemired apparel; in
  • which I had slept on the ground and fallen in the marsh. I felt ashamed
  • to appear before my benefactors so clad. I was spared the humiliation.
  • On a chair by the bedside were all my own things, clean and dry. My
  • black silk frock hung against the wall. The traces of the bog were
  • removed from it; the creases left by the wet smoothed out: it was quite
  • decent. My very shoes and stockings were purified and rendered
  • presentable. There were the means of washing in the room, and a comb and
  • brush to smooth my hair. After a weary process, and resting every five
  • minutes, I succeeded in dressing myself. My clothes hung loose on me;
  • for I was much wasted, but I covered deficiencies with a shawl, and once
  • more, clean and respectable looking--no speck of the dirt, no trace of
  • the disorder I so hated, and which seemed so to degrade me, left--I crept
  • down a stone staircase with the aid of the banisters, to a narrow low
  • passage, and found my way presently to the kitchen.
  • It was full of the fragrance of new bread and the warmth of a generous
  • fire. Hannah was baking. Prejudices, it is well known, are most
  • difficult to eradicate from the heart whose soil has never been loosened
  • or fertilised by education: they grow there, firm as weeds among stones.
  • Hannah had been cold and stiff, indeed, at the first: latterly she had
  • begun to relent a little; and when she saw me come in tidy and
  • well-dressed, she even smiled.
  • "What, you have got up!" she said. "You are better, then. You may sit
  • you down in my chair on the hearthstone, if you will."
  • She pointed to the rocking-chair: I took it. She bustled about,
  • examining me every now and then with the corner of her eye. Turning to
  • me, as she took some loaves from the oven, she asked bluntly--
  • "Did you ever go a-begging afore you came here?"
  • I was indignant for a moment; but remembering that anger was out of the
  • question, and that I had indeed appeared as a beggar to her, I answered
  • quietly, but still not without a certain marked firmness--
  • "You are mistaken in supposing me a beggar. I am no beggar; any more
  • than yourself or your young ladies."
  • After a pause she said, "I dunnut understand that: you've like no house,
  • nor no brass, I guess?"
  • "The want of house or brass (by which I suppose you mean money) does not
  • make a beggar in your sense of the word."
  • "Are you book-learned?" she inquired presently.
  • "Yes, very."
  • "But you've never been to a boarding-school?"
  • "I was at a boarding-school eight years."
  • She opened her eyes wide. "Whatever cannot ye keep yourself for, then?"
  • "I have kept myself; and, I trust, shall keep myself again. What are you
  • going to do with these gooseberries?" I inquired, as she brought out a
  • basket of the fruit.
  • "Mak' 'em into pies."
  • "Give them to me and I'll pick them."
  • "Nay; I dunnut want ye to do nought."
  • "But I must do something. Let me have them."
  • She consented; and she even brought me a clean towel to spread over my
  • dress, "lest," as she said, "I should mucky it."
  • "Ye've not been used to sarvant's wark, I see by your hands," she
  • remarked. "Happen ye've been a dressmaker?"
  • "No, you are wrong. And now, never mind what I have been: don't trouble
  • your head further about me; but tell me the name of the house where we
  • are."
  • "Some calls it Marsh End, and some calls it Moor House."
  • "And the gentleman who lives here is called Mr. St. John?"
  • "Nay; he doesn't live here: he is only staying a while. When he is at
  • home, he is in his own parish at Morton."
  • "That village a few miles off?
  • "Aye."
  • "And what is he?"
  • "He is a parson."
  • I remembered the answer of the old housekeeper at the parsonage, when I
  • had asked to see the clergyman. "This, then, was his father's
  • residence?"
  • "Aye; old Mr. Rivers lived here, and his father, and grandfather, and
  • gurt (great) grandfather afore him."
  • "The name, then, of that gentleman, is Mr. St. John Rivers?"
  • "Aye; St. John is like his kirstened name."
  • "And his sisters are called Diana and Mary Rivers?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Their father is dead?"
  • "Dead three weeks sin' of a stroke."
  • "They have no mother?"
  • "The mistress has been dead this mony a year."
  • "Have you lived with the family long?"
  • "I've lived here thirty year. I nursed them all three."
  • "That proves you must have been an honest and faithful servant. I will
  • say so much for you, though you have had the incivility to call me a
  • beggar."
  • She again regarded me with a surprised stare. "I believe," she said, "I
  • was quite mista'en in my thoughts of you: but there is so mony cheats
  • goes about, you mun forgie me."
  • "And though," I continued, rather severely, "you wished to turn me from
  • the door, on a night when you should not have shut out a dog."
  • "Well, it was hard: but what can a body do? I thought more o' th'
  • childer nor of mysel: poor things! They've like nobody to tak' care on
  • 'em but me. I'm like to look sharpish."
  • I maintained a grave silence for some minutes.
  • "You munnut think too hardly of me," she again remarked.
  • "But I do think hardly of you," I said; "and I'll tell you why--not so
  • much because you refused to give me shelter, or regarded me as an
  • impostor, as because you just now made it a species of reproach that I
  • had no 'brass' and no house. Some of the best people that ever lived
  • have been as destitute as I am; and if you are a Christian, you ought not
  • to consider poverty a crime."
  • "No more I ought," said she: "Mr. St. John tells me so too; and I see I
  • wor wrang--but I've clear a different notion on you now to what I had.
  • You look a raight down dacent little crater."
  • "That will do--I forgive you now. Shake hands."
  • She put her floury and horny hand into mine; another and heartier smile
  • illumined her rough face, and from that moment we were friends.
  • Hannah was evidently fond of talking. While I picked the fruit, and she
  • made the paste for the pies, she proceeded to give me sundry details
  • about her deceased master and mistress, and "the childer," as she called
  • the young people.
  • Old Mr. Rivers, she said, was a plain man enough, but a gentleman, and of
  • as ancient a family as could be found. Marsh End had belonged to the
  • Rivers ever since it was a house: and it was, she affirmed, "aboon two
  • hundred year old--for all it looked but a small, humble place, naught to
  • compare wi' Mr. Oliver's grand hall down i' Morton Vale. But she could
  • remember Bill Oliver's father a journeyman needlemaker; and th' Rivers
  • wor gentry i' th' owd days o' th' Henrys, as onybody might see by looking
  • into th' registers i' Morton Church vestry." Still, she allowed, "the
  • owd maister was like other folk--naught mich out o' t' common way: stark
  • mad o' shooting, and farming, and sich like." The mistress was
  • different. She was a great reader, and studied a deal; and the "bairns"
  • had taken after her. There was nothing like them in these parts, nor
  • ever had been; they had liked learning, all three, almost from the time
  • they could speak; and they had always been "of a mak' of their own." Mr.
  • St. John, when he grew up, would go to college and be a parson; and the
  • girls, as soon as they left school, would seek places as governesses: for
  • they had told her their father had some years ago lost a great deal of
  • money by a man he had trusted turning bankrupt; and as he was now not
  • rich enough to give them fortunes, they must provide for themselves. They
  • had lived very little at home for a long while, and were only come now to
  • stay a few weeks on account of their father's death; but they did so like
  • Marsh End and Morton, and all these moors and hills about. They had been
  • in London, and many other grand towns; but they always said there was no
  • place like home; and then they were so agreeable with each other--never
  • fell out nor "threaped." She did not know where there was such a family
  • for being united.
  • Having finished my task of gooseberry picking, I asked where the two
  • ladies and their brother were now.
  • "Gone over to Morton for a walk; but they would be back in half-an-hour
  • to tea."
  • They returned within the time Hannah had allotted them: they entered by
  • the kitchen door. Mr. St. John, when he saw me, merely bowed and passed
  • through; the two ladies stopped: Mary, in a few words, kindly and calmly
  • expressed the pleasure she felt in seeing me well enough to be able to
  • come down; Diana took my hand: she shook her head at me.
  • "You should have waited for my leave to descend," she said. "You still
  • look very pale--and so thin! Poor child!--poor girl!"
  • Diana had a voice toned, to my ear, like the cooing of a dove. She
  • possessed eyes whose gaze I delighted to encounter. Her whole face
  • seemed to me full of charm. Mary's countenance was equally
  • intelligent--her features equally pretty; but her expression was more
  • reserved, and her manners, though gentle, more distant. Diana looked and
  • spoke with a certain authority: she had a will, evidently. It was my
  • nature to feel pleasure in yielding to an authority supported like hers,
  • and to bend, where my conscience and self-respect permitted, to an active
  • will.
  • "And what business have you here?" she continued. "It is not your place.
  • Mary and I sit in the kitchen sometimes, because at home we like to be
  • free, even to license--but you are a visitor, and must go into the
  • parlour."
  • "I am very well here."
  • "Not at all, with Hannah bustling about and covering you with flour."
  • "Besides, the fire is too hot for you," interposed Mary.
  • "To be sure," added her sister. "Come, you must be obedient." And still
  • holding my hand she made me rise, and led me into the inner room.
  • "Sit there," she said, placing me on the sofa, "while we take our things
  • off and get the tea ready; it is another privilege we exercise in our
  • little moorland home--to prepare our own meals when we are so inclined,
  • or when Hannah is baking, brewing, washing, or ironing."
  • She closed the door, leaving me solus with Mr. St. John, who sat
  • opposite, a book or newspaper in his hand. I examined first, the
  • parlour, and then its occupant.
  • The parlour was rather a small room, very plainly furnished, yet
  • comfortable, because clean and neat. The old-fashioned chairs were very
  • bright, and the walnut-wood table was like a looking-glass. A few
  • strange, antique portraits of the men and women of other days decorated
  • the stained walls; a cupboard with glass doors contained some books and
  • an ancient set of china. There was no superfluous ornament in the
  • room--not one modern piece of furniture, save a brace of workboxes and a
  • lady's desk in rosewood, which stood on a side-table:
  • everything--including the carpet and curtains--looked at once well worn
  • and well saved.
  • Mr. St. John--sitting as still as one of the dusty pictures on the walls,
  • keeping his eyes fixed on the page he perused, and his lips mutely
  • sealed--was easy enough to examine. Had he been a statue instead of a
  • man, he could not have been easier. He was young--perhaps from twenty-
  • eight to thirty--tall, slender; his face riveted the eye; it was like a
  • Greek face, very pure in outline: quite a straight, classic nose; quite
  • an Athenian mouth and chin. It is seldom, indeed, an English face comes
  • so near the antique models as did his. He might well be a little shocked
  • at the irregularity of my lineaments, his own being so harmonious. His
  • eyes were large and blue, with brown lashes; his high forehead,
  • colourless as ivory, was partially streaked over by careless locks of
  • fair hair.
  • This is a gentle delineation, is it not, reader? Yet he whom it
  • describes scarcely impressed one with the idea of a gentle, a yielding,
  • an impressible, or even of a placid nature. Quiescent as he now sat,
  • there was something about his nostril, his mouth, his brow, which, to my
  • perceptions, indicated elements within either restless, or hard, or
  • eager. He did not speak to me one word, nor even direct to me one
  • glance, till his sisters returned. Diana, as she passed in and out, in
  • the course of preparing tea, brought me a little cake, baked on the top
  • of the oven.
  • "Eat that now," she said: "you must be hungry. Hannah says you have had
  • nothing but some gruel since breakfast."
  • I did not refuse it, for my appetite was awakened and keen. Mr. Rivers
  • now closed his book, approached the table, and, as he took a seat, fixed
  • his blue pictorial-looking eyes full on me. There was an unceremonious
  • directness, a searching, decided steadfastness in his gaze now, which
  • told that intention, and not diffidence, had hitherto kept it averted
  • from the stranger.
  • "You are very hungry," he said.
  • "I am, sir." It is my way--it always was my way, by instinct--ever to
  • meet the brief with brevity, the direct with plainness.
  • "It is well for you that a low fever has forced you to abstain for the
  • last three days: there would have been danger in yielding to the cravings
  • of your appetite at first. Now you may eat, though still not
  • immoderately."
  • "I trust I shall not eat long at your expense, sir," was my very clumsily-
  • contrived, unpolished answer.
  • "No," he said coolly: "when you have indicated to us the residence of
  • your friends, we can write to them, and you may be restored to home."
  • "That, I must plainly tell you, is out of my power to do; being
  • absolutely without home and friends."
  • The three looked at me, but not distrustfully; I felt there was no
  • suspicion in their glances: there was more of curiosity. I speak
  • particularly of the young ladies. St. John's eyes, though clear enough
  • in a literal sense, in a figurative one were difficult to fathom. He
  • seemed to use them rather as instruments to search other people's
  • thoughts, than as agents to reveal his own: the which combination of
  • keenness and reserve was considerably more calculated to embarrass than
  • to encourage.
  • "Do you mean to say," he asked, "that you are completely isolated from
  • every connection?"
  • "I do. Not a tie links me to any living thing: not a claim do I possess
  • to admittance under any roof in England."
  • "A most singular position at your age!"
  • Here I saw his glance directed to my hands, which were folded on the
  • table before me. I wondered what he sought there: his words soon
  • explained the quest.
  • "You have never been married? You are a spinster?"
  • Diana laughed. "Why, she can't be above seventeen or eighteen years old,
  • St. John," said she.
  • "I am near nineteen: but I am not married. No."
  • I felt a burning glow mount to my face; for bitter and agitating
  • recollections were awakened by the allusion to marriage. They all saw
  • the embarrassment and the emotion. Diana and Mary relieved me by turning
  • their eyes elsewhere than to my crimsoned visage; but the colder and
  • sterner brother continued to gaze, till the trouble he had excited forced
  • out tears as well as colour.
  • "Where did you last reside?" he now asked.
  • "You are too inquisitive, St. John," murmured Mary in a low voice; but he
  • leaned over the table and required an answer by a second firm and
  • piercing look.
  • "The name of the place where, and of the person with whom I lived, is my
  • secret," I replied concisely.
  • "Which, if you like, you have, in my opinion, a right to keep, both from
  • St. John and every other questioner," remarked Diana.
  • "Yet if I know nothing about you or your history, I cannot help you," he
  • said. "And you need help, do you not?"
  • "I need it, and I seek it so far, sir, that some true philanthropist will
  • put me in the way of getting work which I can do, and the remuneration
  • for which will keep me, if but in the barest necessaries of life."
  • "I know not whether I am a true philanthropist; yet I am willing to aid
  • you to the utmost of my power in a purpose so honest. First, then, tell
  • me what you have been accustomed to do, and what you _can_ do."
  • I had now swallowed my tea. I was mightily refreshed by the beverage; as
  • much so as a giant with wine: it gave new tone to my unstrung nerves, and
  • enabled me to address this penetrating young judge steadily.
  • "Mr. Rivers," I said, turning to him, and looking at him, as he looked at
  • me, openly and without diffidence, "you and your sisters have done me a
  • great service--the greatest man can do his fellow-being; you have rescued
  • me, by your noble hospitality, from death. This benefit conferred gives
  • you an unlimited claim on my gratitude, and a claim, to a certain extent,
  • on my confidence. I will tell you as much of the history of the wanderer
  • you have harboured, as I can tell without compromising my own peace of
  • mind--my own security, moral and physical, and that of others.
  • "I am an orphan, the daughter of a clergyman. My parents died before I
  • could know them. I was brought up a dependant; educated in a charitable
  • institution. I will even tell you the name of the establishment, where I
  • passed six years as a pupil, and two as a teacher--Lowood Orphan Asylum,
  • ---shire: you will have heard of it, Mr. Rivers?--the Rev. Robert
  • Brocklehurst is the treasurer."
  • "I have heard of Mr. Brocklehurst, and I have seen the school."
  • "I left Lowood nearly a year since to become a private governess. I
  • obtained a good situation, and was happy. This place I was obliged to
  • leave four days before I came here. The reason of my departure I cannot
  • and ought not to explain: it would be useless, dangerous, and would sound
  • incredible. No blame attached to me: I am as free from culpability as
  • any one of you three. Miserable I am, and must be for a time; for the
  • catastrophe which drove me from a house I had found a paradise was of a
  • strange and direful nature. I observed but two points in planning my
  • departure--speed, secrecy: to secure these, I had to leave behind me
  • everything I possessed except a small parcel; which, in my hurry and
  • trouble of mind, I forgot to take out of the coach that brought me to
  • Whitcross. To this neighbourhood, then, I came, quite destitute. I
  • slept two nights in the open air, and wandered about two days without
  • crossing a threshold: but twice in that space of time did I taste food;
  • and it was when brought by hunger, exhaustion, and despair almost to the
  • last gasp, that you, Mr. Rivers, forbade me to perish of want at your
  • door, and took me under the shelter of your roof. I know all your
  • sisters have done for me since--for I have not been insensible during my
  • seeming torpor--and I owe to their spontaneous, genuine, genial
  • compassion as large a debt as to your evangelical charity."
  • "Don't make her talk any more now, St. John," said Diana, as I paused;
  • "she is evidently not yet fit for excitement. Come to the sofa and sit
  • down now, Miss Elliott."
  • I gave an involuntary half start at hearing the _alias_: I had forgotten
  • my new name. Mr. Rivers, whom nothing seemed to escape, noticed it at
  • once.
  • "You said your name was Jane Elliott?" he observed.
  • "I did say so; and it is the name by which I think it expedient to be
  • called at present, but it is not my real name, and when I hear it, it
  • sounds strange to me."
  • "Your real name you will not give?"
  • "No: I fear discovery above all things; and whatever disclosure would
  • lead to it, I avoid."
  • "You are quite right, I am sure," said Diana. "Now do, brother, let her
  • be at peace a while."
  • But when St. John had mused a few moments he recommenced as imperturbably
  • and with as much acumen as ever.
  • "You would not like to be long dependent on our hospitality--you would
  • wish, I see, to dispense as soon as may be with my sisters' compassion,
  • and, above all, with my _charity_ (I am quite sensible of the distinction
  • drawn, nor do I resent it--it is just): you desire to be independent of
  • us?"
  • "I do: I have already said so. Show me how to work, or how to seek work:
  • that is all I now ask; then let me go, if it be but to the meanest
  • cottage; but till then, allow me to stay here: I dread another essay of
  • the horrors of homeless destitution."
  • "Indeed you _shall_ stay here," said Diana, putting her white hand on my
  • head. "You _shall_," repeated Mary, in the tone of undemonstrative
  • sincerity which seemed natural to her.
  • "My sisters, you see, have a pleasure in keeping you," said Mr. St. John,
  • "as they would have a pleasure in keeping and cherishing a half-frozen
  • bird, some wintry wind might have driven through their casement. I feel
  • more inclination to put you in the way of keeping yourself, and shall
  • endeavour to do so; but observe, my sphere is narrow. I am but the
  • incumbent of a poor country parish: my aid must be of the humblest sort.
  • And if you are inclined to despise the day of small things, seek some
  • more efficient succour than such as I can offer."
  • "She has already said that she is willing to do anything honest she can
  • do," answered Diana for me; "and you know, St. John, she has no choice of
  • helpers: she is forced to put up with such crusty people as you."
  • "I will be a dressmaker; I will be a plain-workwoman; I will be a
  • servant, a nurse-girl, if I can be no better," I answered.
  • "Right," said Mr. St. John, quite coolly. "If such is your spirit, I
  • promise to aid you, in my own time and way."
  • He now resumed the book with which he had been occupied before tea. I
  • soon withdrew, for I had talked as much, and sat up as long, as my
  • present strength would permit.
  • CHAPTER XXX
  • The more I knew of the inmates of Moor House, the better I liked them. In
  • a few days I had so far recovered my health that I could sit up all day,
  • and walk out sometimes. I could join with Diana and Mary in all their
  • occupations; converse with them as much as they wished, and aid them when
  • and where they would allow me. There was a reviving pleasure in this
  • intercourse, of a kind now tasted by me for the first time--the pleasure
  • arising from perfect congeniality of tastes, sentiments, and principles.
  • I liked to read what they liked to read: what they enjoyed, delighted me;
  • what they approved, I reverenced. They loved their sequestered home. I,
  • too, in the grey, small, antique structure, with its low roof, its
  • latticed casements, its mouldering walls, its avenue of aged firs--all
  • grown aslant under the stress of mountain winds; its garden, dark with
  • yew and holly--and where no flowers but of the hardiest species would
  • bloom--found a charm both potent and permanent. They clung to the purple
  • moors behind and around their dwelling--to the hollow vale into which the
  • pebbly bridle-path leading from their gate descended, and which wound
  • between fern-banks first, and then amongst a few of the wildest little
  • pasture-fields that ever bordered a wilderness of heath, or gave
  • sustenance to a flock of grey moorland sheep, with their little mossy-
  • faced lambs:--they clung to this scene, I say, with a perfect enthusiasm
  • of attachment. I could comprehend the feeling, and share both its
  • strength and truth. I saw the fascination of the locality. I felt the
  • consecration of its loneliness: my eye feasted on the outline of swell
  • and sweep--on the wild colouring communicated to ridge and dell by moss,
  • by heath-bell, by flower-sprinkled turf, by brilliant bracken, and mellow
  • granite crag. These details were just to me what they were to them--so
  • many pure and sweet sources of pleasure. The strong blast and the soft
  • breeze; the rough and the halcyon day; the hours of sunrise and sunset;
  • the moonlight and the clouded night, developed for me, in these regions,
  • the same attraction as for them--wound round my faculties the same spell
  • that entranced theirs.
  • Indoors we agreed equally well. They were both more accomplished and
  • better read than I was; but with eagerness I followed in the path of
  • knowledge they had trodden before me. I devoured the books they lent me:
  • then it was full satisfaction to discuss with them in the evening what I
  • had perused during the day. Thought fitted thought; opinion met opinion:
  • we coincided, in short, perfectly.
  • If in our trio there was a superior and a leader, it was Diana.
  • Physically, she far excelled me: she was handsome; she was vigorous. In
  • her animal spirits there was an affluence of life and certainty of flow,
  • such as excited my wonder, while it baffled my comprehension. I could
  • talk a while when the evening commenced, but the first gush of vivacity
  • and fluency gone, I was fain to sit on a stool at Diana's feet, to rest
  • my head on her knee, and listen alternately to her and Mary, while they
  • sounded thoroughly the topic on which I had but touched. Diana offered
  • to teach me German. I liked to learn of her: I saw the part of
  • instructress pleased and suited her; that of scholar pleased and suited
  • me no less. Our natures dovetailed: mutual affection--of the strongest
  • kind--was the result. They discovered I could draw: their pencils and
  • colour-boxes were immediately at my service. My skill, greater in this
  • one point than theirs, surprised and charmed them. Mary would sit and
  • watch me by the hour together: then she would take lessons; and a docile,
  • intelligent, assiduous pupil she made. Thus occupied, and mutually
  • entertained, days passed like hours, and weeks like days.
  • As to Mr. St John, the intimacy which had arisen so naturally and rapidly
  • between me and his sisters did not extend to him. One reason of the
  • distance yet observed between us was, that he was comparatively seldom at
  • home: a large proportion of his time appeared devoted to visiting the
  • sick and poor among the scattered population of his parish.
  • No weather seemed to hinder him in these pastoral excursions: rain or
  • fair, he would, when his hours of morning study were over, take his hat,
  • and, followed by his father's old pointer, Carlo, go out on his mission
  • of love or duty--I scarcely know in which light he regarded it.
  • Sometimes, when the day was very unfavourable, his sisters would
  • expostulate. He would then say, with a peculiar smile, more solemn than
  • cheerful--
  • "And if I let a gust of wind or a sprinkling of rain turn me aside from
  • these easy tasks, what preparation would such sloth be for the future I
  • propose to myself?"
  • Diana and Mary's general answer to this question was a sigh, and some
  • minutes of apparently mournful meditation.
  • But besides his frequent absences, there was another barrier to
  • friendship with him: he seemed of a reserved, an abstracted, and even of
  • a brooding nature. Zealous in his ministerial labours, blameless in his
  • life and habits, he yet did not appear to enjoy that mental serenity,
  • that inward content, which should be the reward of every sincere
  • Christian and practical philanthropist. Often, of an evening, when he
  • sat at the window, his desk and papers before him, he would cease reading
  • or writing, rest his chin on his hand, and deliver himself up to I know
  • not what course of thought; but that it was perturbed and exciting might
  • be seen in the frequent flash and changeful dilation of his eye.
  • I think, moreover, that Nature was not to him that treasury of delight it
  • was to his sisters. He expressed once, and but once in my hearing, a
  • strong sense of the rugged charm of the hills, and an inborn affection
  • for the dark roof and hoary walls he called his home; but there was more
  • of gloom than pleasure in the tone and words in which the sentiment was
  • manifested; and never did he seem to roam the moors for the sake of their
  • soothing silence--never seek out or dwell upon the thousand peaceful
  • delights they could yield.
  • Incommunicative as he was, some time elapsed before I had an opportunity
  • of gauging his mind. I first got an idea of its calibre when I heard him
  • preach in his own church at Morton. I wish I could describe that sermon:
  • but it is past my power. I cannot even render faithfully the effect it
  • produced on me.
  • It began calm--and indeed, as far as delivery and pitch of voice went, it
  • was calm to the end: an earnestly felt, yet strictly restrained zeal
  • breathed soon in the distinct accents, and prompted the nervous language.
  • This grew to force--compressed, condensed, controlled. The heart was
  • thrilled, the mind astonished, by the power of the preacher: neither were
  • softened. Throughout there was a strange bitterness; an absence of
  • consolatory gentleness; stern allusions to Calvinistic
  • doctrines--election, predestination, reprobation--were frequent; and each
  • reference to these points sounded like a sentence pronounced for doom.
  • When he had done, instead of feeling better, calmer, more enlightened by
  • his discourse, I experienced an inexpressible sadness; for it seemed to
  • me--I know not whether equally so to others--that the eloquence to which
  • I had been listening had sprung from a depth where lay turbid dregs of
  • disappointment--where moved troubling impulses of insatiate yearnings and
  • disquieting aspirations. I was sure St. John Rivers--pure-lived,
  • conscientious, zealous as he was--had not yet found that peace of God
  • which passeth all understanding: he had no more found it, I thought, than
  • had I with my concealed and racking regrets for my broken idol and lost
  • elysium--regrets to which I have latterly avoided referring, but which
  • possessed me and tyrannised over me ruthlessly.
  • Meantime a month was gone. Diana and Mary were soon to leave Moor House,
  • and return to the far different life and scene which awaited them, as
  • governesses in a large, fashionable, south-of-England city, where each
  • held a situation in families by whose wealthy and haughty members they
  • were regarded only as humble dependants, and who neither knew nor sought
  • out their innate excellences, and appreciated only their acquired
  • accomplishments as they appreciated the skill of their cook or the taste
  • of their waiting-woman. Mr. St. John had said nothing to me yet about
  • the employment he had promised to obtain for me; yet it became urgent
  • that I should have a vocation of some kind. One morning, being left
  • alone with him a few minutes in the parlour, I ventured to approach the
  • window-recess--which his table, chair, and desk consecrated as a kind of
  • study--and I was going to speak, though not very well knowing in what
  • words to frame my inquiry--for it is at all times difficult to break the
  • ice of reserve glassing over such natures as his--when he saved me the
  • trouble by being the first to commence a dialogue.
  • Looking up as I drew near--"You have a question to ask of me?" he said.
  • "Yes; I wish to know whether you have heard of any service I can offer
  • myself to undertake?"
  • "I found or devised something for you three weeks ago; but as you seemed
  • both useful and happy here--as my sisters had evidently become attached
  • to you, and your society gave them unusual pleasure--I deemed it
  • inexpedient to break in on your mutual comfort till their approaching
  • departure from Marsh End should render yours necessary."
  • "And they will go in three days now?" I said.
  • "Yes; and when they go, I shall return to the parsonage at Morton: Hannah
  • will accompany me; and this old house will be shut up."
  • I waited a few moments, expecting he would go on with the subject first
  • broached: but he seemed to have entered another train of reflection: his
  • look denoted abstraction from me and my business. I was obliged to
  • recall him to a theme which was of necessity one of close and anxious
  • interest to me.
  • "What is the employment you had in view, Mr. Rivers? I hope this delay
  • will not have increased the difficulty of securing it."
  • "Oh, no; since it is an employment which depends only on me to give, and
  • you to accept."
  • He again paused: there seemed a reluctance to continue. I grew
  • impatient: a restless movement or two, and an eager and exacting glance
  • fastened on his face, conveyed the feeling to him as effectually as words
  • could have done, and with less trouble.
  • "You need be in no hurry to hear," he said: "let me frankly tell you, I
  • have nothing eligible or profitable to suggest. Before I explain,
  • recall, if you please, my notice, clearly given, that if I helped you, it
  • must be as the blind man would help the lame. I am poor; for I find
  • that, when I have paid my father's debts, all the patrimony remaining to
  • me will be this crumbling grange, the row of scathed firs behind, and the
  • patch of moorish soil, with the yew-trees and holly-bushes in front. I
  • am obscure: Rivers is an old name; but of the three sole descendants of
  • the race, two earn the dependant's crust among strangers, and the third
  • considers himself an alien from his native country--not only for life,
  • but in death. Yes, and deems, and is bound to deem, himself honoured by
  • the lot, and aspires but after the day when the cross of separation from
  • fleshly ties shall be laid on his shoulders, and when the Head of that
  • church-militant of whose humblest members he is one, shall give the word,
  • 'Rise, follow Me!'"
  • St. John said these words as he pronounced his sermons, with a quiet,
  • deep voice; with an unflushed cheek, and a coruscating radiance of
  • glance. He resumed--
  • "And since I am myself poor and obscure, I can offer you but a service of
  • poverty and obscurity. _You_ may even think it degrading--for I see now
  • your habits have been what the world calls refined: your tastes lean to
  • the ideal, and your society has at least been amongst the educated; but
  • _I_ consider that no service degrades which can better our race. I hold
  • that the more arid and unreclaimed the soil where the Christian
  • labourer's task of tillage is appointed him--the scantier the meed his
  • toil brings--the higher the honour. His, under such circumstances, is
  • the destiny of the pioneer; and the first pioneers of the Gospel were the
  • Apostles--their captain was Jesus, the Redeemer, Himself."
  • "Well?" I said, as he again paused--"proceed."
  • He looked at me before he proceeded: indeed, he seemed leisurely to read
  • my face, as if its features and lines were characters on a page. The
  • conclusions drawn from this scrutiny he partially expressed in his
  • succeeding observations.
  • "I believe you will accept the post I offer you," said he, "and hold it
  • for a while: not permanently, though: any more than I could permanently
  • keep the narrow and narrowing--the tranquil, hidden office of English
  • country incumbent; for in your nature is an alloy as detrimental to
  • repose as that in mine, though of a different kind."
  • "Do explain," I urged, when he halted once more.
  • "I will; and you shall hear how poor the proposal is,--how trivial--how
  • cramping. I shall not stay long at Morton, now that my father is dead,
  • and that I am my own master. I shall leave the place probably in the
  • course of a twelve-month; but while I do stay, I will exert myself to the
  • utmost for its improvement. Morton, when I came to it two years ago, had
  • no school: the children of the poor were excluded from every hope of
  • progress. I established one for boys: I mean now to open a second school
  • for girls. I have hired a building for the purpose, with a cottage of
  • two rooms attached to it for the mistress's house. Her salary will be
  • thirty pounds a year: her house is already furnished, very simply, but
  • sufficiently, by the kindness of a lady, Miss Oliver; the only daughter
  • of the sole rich man in my parish--Mr. Oliver, the proprietor of a needle-
  • factory and iron-foundry in the valley. The same lady pays for the
  • education and clothing of an orphan from the workhouse, on condition that
  • she shall aid the mistress in such menial offices connected with her own
  • house and the school as her occupation of teaching will prevent her
  • having time to discharge in person. Will you be this mistress?"
  • He put the question rather hurriedly; he seemed half to expect an
  • indignant, or at least a disdainful rejection of the offer: not knowing
  • all my thoughts and feelings, though guessing some, he could not tell in
  • what light the lot would appear to me. In truth it was humble--but then
  • it was sheltered, and I wanted a safe asylum: it was plodding--but then,
  • compared with that of a governess in a rich house, it was independent;
  • and the fear of servitude with strangers entered my soul like iron: it
  • was not ignoble--not unworthy--not mentally degrading, I made my
  • decision.
  • "I thank you for the proposal, Mr. Rivers, and I accept it with all my
  • heart."
  • "But you comprehend me?" he said. "It is a village school: your scholars
  • will be only poor girls--cottagers' children--at the best, farmers'
  • daughters. Knitting, sewing, reading, writing, ciphering, will be all
  • you will have to teach. What will you do with your accomplishments?
  • What, with the largest portion of your mind--sentiments--tastes?"
  • "Save them till they are wanted. They will keep."
  • "You know what you undertake, then?"
  • "I do."
  • He now smiled: and not a bitter or a sad smile, but one well pleased and
  • deeply gratified.
  • "And when will you commence the exercise of your function?"
  • "I will go to my house to-morrow, and open the school, if you like, next
  • week."
  • "Very well: so be it."
  • He rose and walked through the room. Standing still, he again looked at
  • me. He shook his head.
  • "What do you disapprove of, Mr. Rivers?" I asked.
  • "You will not stay at Morton long: no, no!"
  • "Why? What is your reason for saying so?"
  • "I read it in your eye; it is not of that description which promises the
  • maintenance of an even tenor in life."
  • "I am not ambitious."
  • He started at the word "ambitious." He repeated, "No. What made you
  • think of ambition? Who is ambitious? I know I am: but how did you find
  • it out?"
  • "I was speaking of myself."
  • "Well, if you are not ambitious, you are--" He paused.
  • "What?"
  • "I was going to say, impassioned: but perhaps you would have
  • misunderstood the word, and been displeased. I mean, that human
  • affections and sympathies have a most powerful hold on you. I am sure
  • you cannot long be content to pass your leisure in solitude, and to
  • devote your working hours to a monotonous labour wholly void of stimulus:
  • any more than I can be content," he added, with emphasis, "to live here
  • buried in morass, pent in with mountains--my nature, that God gave me,
  • contravened; my faculties, heaven-bestowed, paralysed--made useless. You
  • hear now how I contradict myself. I, who preached contentment with a
  • humble lot, and justified the vocation even of hewers of wood and drawers
  • of water in God's service--I, His ordained minister, almost rave in my
  • restlessness. Well, propensities and principles must be reconciled by
  • some means."
  • He left the room. In this brief hour I had learnt more of him than in
  • the whole previous month: yet still he puzzled me.
  • Diana and Mary Rivers became more sad and silent as the day approached
  • for leaving their brother and their home. They both tried to appear as
  • usual; but the sorrow they had to struggle against was one that could not
  • be entirely conquered or concealed. Diana intimated that this would be a
  • different parting from any they had ever yet known. It would probably,
  • as far as St. John was concerned, be a parting for years: it might be a
  • parting for life.
  • "He will sacrifice all to his long-framed resolves," she said: "natural
  • affection and feelings more potent still. St. John looks quiet, Jane;
  • but he hides a fever in his vitals. You would think him gentle, yet in
  • some things he is inexorable as death; and the worst of it is, my
  • conscience will hardly permit me to dissuade him from his severe
  • decision: certainly, I cannot for a moment blame him for it. It is
  • right, noble, Christian: yet it breaks my heart!" And the tears gushed
  • to her fine eyes. Mary bent her head low over her work.
  • "We are now without father: we shall soon be without home and brother,"
  • she murmured.
  • At that moment a little accident supervened, which seemed decreed by fate
  • purposely to prove the truth of the adage, that "misfortunes never come
  • singly," and to add to their distresses the vexing one of the slip
  • between the cup and the lip. St. John passed the window reading a
  • letter. He entered.
  • "Our uncle John is dead," said he.
  • Both the sisters seemed struck: not shocked or appalled; the tidings
  • appeared in their eyes rather momentous than afflicting.
  • "Dead?" repeated Diana.
  • "Yes."
  • She riveted a searching gaze on her brother's face. "And what then?" she
  • demanded, in a low voice.
  • "What then, Die?" he replied, maintaining a marble immobility of feature.
  • "What then? Why--nothing. Read."
  • He threw the letter into her lap. She glanced over it, and handed it to
  • Mary. Mary perused it in silence, and returned it to her brother. All
  • three looked at each other, and all three smiled--a dreary, pensive smile
  • enough.
  • "Amen! We can yet live," said Diana at last.
  • "At any rate, it makes us no worse off than we were before," remarked
  • Mary.
  • "Only it forces rather strongly on the mind the picture of what _might
  • have been_," said Mr. Rivers, "and contrasts it somewhat too vividly with
  • what _is_."
  • He folded the letter, locked it in his desk, and again went out.
  • For some minutes no one spoke. Diana then turned to me.
  • "Jane, you will wonder at us and our mysteries," she said, "and think us
  • hard-hearted beings not to be more moved at the death of so near a
  • relation as an uncle; but we have never seen him or known him. He was my
  • mother's brother. My father and he quarrelled long ago. It was by his
  • advice that my father risked most of his property in the speculation that
  • ruined him. Mutual recrimination passed between them: they parted in
  • anger, and were never reconciled. My uncle engaged afterwards in more
  • prosperous undertakings: it appears he realised a fortune of twenty
  • thousand pounds. He was never married, and had no near kindred but
  • ourselves and one other person, not more closely related than we. My
  • father always cherished the idea that he would atone for his error by
  • leaving his possessions to us; that letter informs us that he has
  • bequeathed every penny to the other relation, with the exception of
  • thirty guineas, to be divided between St. John, Diana, and Mary Rivers,
  • for the purchase of three mourning rings. He had a right, of course, to
  • do as he pleased: and yet a momentary damp is cast on the spirits by the
  • receipt of such news. Mary and I would have esteemed ourselves rich with
  • a thousand pounds each; and to St. John such a sum would have been
  • valuable, for the good it would have enabled him to do."
  • This explanation given, the subject was dropped, and no further reference
  • made to it by either Mr. Rivers or his sisters. The next day I left
  • Marsh End for Morton. The day after, Diana and Mary quitted it for
  • distant B-. In a week, Mr. Rivers and Hannah repaired to the parsonage:
  • and so the old grange was abandoned.
  • CHAPTER XXXI
  • My home, then, when I at last find a home,--is a cottage; a little room
  • with whitewashed walls and a sanded floor, containing four painted chairs
  • and a table, a clock, a cupboard, with two or three plates and dishes,
  • and a set of tea-things in delf. Above, a chamber of the same dimensions
  • as the kitchen, with a deal bedstead and chest of drawers; small, yet too
  • large to be filled with my scanty wardrobe: though the kindness of my
  • gentle and generous friends has increased that, by a modest stock of such
  • things as are necessary.
  • It is evening. I have dismissed, with the fee of an orange, the little
  • orphan who serves me as a handmaid. I am sitting alone on the hearth.
  • This morning, the village school opened. I had twenty scholars. But
  • three of the number can read: none write or cipher. Several knit, and a
  • few sew a little. They speak with the broadest accent of the district.
  • At present, they and I have a difficulty in understanding each other's
  • language. Some of them are unmannered, rough, intractable, as well as
  • ignorant; but others are docile, have a wish to learn, and evince a
  • disposition that pleases me. I must not forget that these coarsely-clad
  • little peasants are of flesh and blood as good as the scions of gentlest
  • genealogy; and that the germs of native excellence, refinement,
  • intelligence, kind feeling, are as likely to exist in their hearts as in
  • those of the best-born. My duty will be to develop these germs: surely I
  • shall find some happiness in discharging that office. Much enjoyment I
  • do not expect in the life opening before me: yet it will, doubtless, if I
  • regulate my mind, and exert my powers as I ought, yield me enough to live
  • on from day to day.
  • Was I very gleeful, settled, content, during the hours I passed in yonder
  • bare, humble schoolroom this morning and afternoon? Not to deceive
  • myself, I must reply--No: I felt desolate to a degree. I felt--yes,
  • idiot that I am--I felt degraded. I doubted I had taken a step which
  • sank instead of raising me in the scale of social existence. I was
  • weakly dismayed at the ignorance, the poverty, the coarseness of all I
  • heard and saw round me. But let me not hate and despise myself too much
  • for these feelings; I know them to be wrong--that is a great step gained;
  • I shall strive to overcome them. To-morrow, I trust, I shall get the
  • better of them partially; and in a few weeks, perhaps, they will be quite
  • subdued. In a few months, it is possible, the happiness of seeing
  • progress, and a change for the better in my scholars may substitute
  • gratification for disgust.
  • Meantime, let me ask myself one question--Which is better?--To have
  • surrendered to temptation; listened to passion; made no painful effort--no
  • struggle;--but to have sunk down in the silken snare; fallen asleep on
  • the flowers covering it; wakened in a southern clime, amongst the
  • luxuries of a pleasure villa: to have been now living in France, Mr.
  • Rochester's mistress; delirious with his love half my time--for he
  • would--oh, yes, he would have loved me well for a while. He _did_ love
  • me--no one will ever love me so again. I shall never more know the sweet
  • homage given to beauty, youth, and grace--for never to any one else shall
  • I seem to possess these charms. He was fond and proud of me--it is what
  • no man besides will ever be.--But where am I wandering, and what am I
  • saying, and above all, feeling? Whether is it better, I ask, to be a
  • slave in a fool's paradise at Marseilles--fevered with delusive bliss one
  • hour--suffocating with the bitterest tears of remorse and shame the
  • next--or to be a village-schoolmistress, free and honest, in a breezy
  • mountain nook in the healthy heart of England?
  • Yes; I feel now that I was right when I adhered to principle and law, and
  • scorned and crushed the insane promptings of a frenzied moment. God
  • directed me to a correct choice: I thank His providence for the guidance!
  • Having brought my eventide musings to this point, I rose, went to my
  • door, and looked at the sunset of the harvest-day, and at the quiet
  • fields before my cottage, which, with the school, was distant half a mile
  • from the village. The birds were singing their last strains--
  • "The air was mild, the dew was balm."
  • While I looked, I thought myself happy, and was surprised to find myself
  • ere long weeping--and why? For the doom which had reft me from adhesion
  • to my master: for him I was no more to see; for the desperate grief and
  • fatal fury--consequences of my departure--which might now, perhaps, be
  • dragging him from the path of right, too far to leave hope of ultimate
  • restoration thither. At this thought, I turned my face aside from the
  • lovely sky of eve and lonely vale of Morton--I say _lonely_, for in that
  • bend of it visible to me there was no building apparent save the church
  • and the parsonage, half-hid in trees, and, quite at the extremity, the
  • roof of Vale Hall, where the rich Mr. Oliver and his daughter lived. I
  • hid my eyes, and leant my head against the stone frame of my door; but
  • soon a slight noise near the wicket which shut in my tiny garden from the
  • meadow beyond it made me look up. A dog--old Carlo, Mr. Rivers' pointer,
  • as I saw in a moment--was pushing the gate with his nose, and St. John
  • himself leant upon it with folded arms; his brow knit, his gaze, grave
  • almost to displeasure, fixed on me. I asked him to come in.
  • "No, I cannot stay; I have only brought you a little parcel my sisters
  • left for you. I think it contains a colour-box, pencils, and paper."
  • I approached to take it: a welcome gift it was. He examined my face, I
  • thought, with austerity, as I came near: the traces of tears were
  • doubtless very visible upon it.
  • "Have you found your first day's work harder than you expected?" he
  • asked.
  • "Oh, no! On the contrary, I think in time I shall get on with my
  • scholars very well."
  • "But perhaps your accommodations--your cottage--your furniture--have
  • disappointed your expectations? They are, in truth, scanty enough; but--"
  • I interrupted--
  • "My cottage is clean and weather-proof; my furniture sufficient and
  • commodious. All I see has made me thankful, not despondent. I am not
  • absolutely such a fool and sensualist as to regret the absence of a
  • carpet, a sofa, and silver plate; besides, five weeks ago I had nothing--I
  • was an outcast, a beggar, a vagrant; now I have acquaintance, a home, a
  • business. I wonder at the goodness of God; the generosity of my friends;
  • the bounty of my lot. I do not repine."
  • "But you feel solitude an oppression? The little house there behind you
  • is dark and empty."
  • "I have hardly had time yet to enjoy a sense of tranquillity, much less
  • to grow impatient under one of loneliness."
  • "Very well; I hope you feel the content you express: at any rate, your
  • good sense will tell you that it is too soon yet to yield to the
  • vacillating fears of Lot's wife. What you had left before I saw you, of
  • course I do not know; but I counsel you to resist firmly every temptation
  • which would incline you to look back: pursue your present career
  • steadily, for some months at least."
  • "It is what I mean to do," I answered. St. John continued--
  • "It is hard work to control the workings of inclination and turn the bent
  • of nature; but that it may be done, I know from experience. God has
  • given us, in a measure, the power to make our own fate; and when our
  • energies seem to demand a sustenance they cannot get--when our will
  • strains after a path we may not follow--we need neither starve from
  • inanition, nor stand still in despair: we have but to seek another
  • nourishment for the mind, as strong as the forbidden food it longed to
  • taste--and perhaps purer; and to hew out for the adventurous foot a road
  • as direct and broad as the one Fortune has blocked up against us, if
  • rougher than it.
  • "A year ago I was myself intensely miserable, because I thought I had
  • made a mistake in entering the ministry: its uniform duties wearied me to
  • death. I burnt for the more active life of the world--for the more
  • exciting toils of a literary career--for the destiny of an artist,
  • author, orator; anything rather than that of a priest: yes, the heart of
  • a politician, of a soldier, of a votary of glory, a lover of renown, a
  • luster after power, beat under my curate's surplice. I considered; my
  • life was so wretched, it must be changed, or I must die. After a season
  • of darkness and struggling, light broke and relief fell: my cramped
  • existence all at once spread out to a plain without bounds--my powers
  • heard a call from heaven to rise, gather their full strength, spread
  • their wings, and mount beyond ken. God had an errand for me; to bear
  • which afar, to deliver it well, skill and strength, courage and
  • eloquence, the best qualifications of soldier, statesman, and orator,
  • were all needed: for these all centre in the good missionary.
  • "A missionary I resolved to be. From that moment my state of mind
  • changed; the fetters dissolved and dropped from every faculty, leaving
  • nothing of bondage but its galling soreness--which time only can heal. My
  • father, indeed, imposed the determination, but since his death, I have
  • not a legitimate obstacle to contend with; some affairs settled, a
  • successor for Morton provided, an entanglement or two of the feelings
  • broken through or cut asunder--a last conflict with human weakness, in
  • which I know I shall overcome, because I have vowed that I _will_
  • overcome--and I leave Europe for the East."
  • He said this, in his peculiar, subdued, yet emphatic voice; looking, when
  • he had ceased speaking, not at me, but at the setting sun, at which I
  • looked too. Both he and I had our backs towards the path leading up the
  • field to the wicket. We had heard no step on that grass-grown track; the
  • water running in the vale was the one lulling sound of the hour and
  • scene; we might well then start when a gay voice, sweet as a silver bell,
  • exclaimed--
  • "Good evening, Mr. Rivers. And good evening, old Carlo. Your dog is
  • quicker to recognise his friends than you are, sir; he pricked his ears
  • and wagged his tail when I was at the bottom of the field, and you have
  • your back towards me now."
  • It was true. Though Mr. Rivers had started at the first of those musical
  • accents, as if a thunderbolt had split a cloud over his head, he stood
  • yet, at the close of the sentence, in the same attitude in which the
  • speaker had surprised him--his arm resting on the gate, his face directed
  • towards the west. He turned at last, with measured deliberation. A
  • vision, as it seemed to me, had risen at his side. There appeared,
  • within three feet of him, a form clad in pure white--a youthful, graceful
  • form: full, yet fine in contour; and when, after bending to caress Carlo,
  • it lifted up its head, and threw back a long veil, there bloomed under
  • his glance a face of perfect beauty. Perfect beauty is a strong
  • expression; but I do not retrace or qualify it: as sweet features as ever
  • the temperate clime of Albion moulded; as pure hues of rose and lily as
  • ever her humid gales and vapoury skies generated and screened, justified,
  • in this instance, the term. No charm was wanting, no defect was
  • perceptible; the young girl had regular and delicate lineaments; eyes
  • shaped and coloured as we see them in lovely pictures, large, and dark,
  • and full; the long and shadowy eyelash which encircles a fine eye with so
  • soft a fascination; the pencilled brow which gives such clearness; the
  • white smooth forehead, which adds such repose to the livelier beauties of
  • tint and ray; the cheek oval, fresh, and smooth; the lips, fresh too,
  • ruddy, healthy, sweetly formed; the even and gleaming teeth without flaw;
  • the small dimpled chin; the ornament of rich, plenteous tresses--all
  • advantages, in short, which, combined, realise the ideal of beauty, were
  • fully hers. I wondered, as I looked at this fair creature: I admired her
  • with my whole heart. Nature had surely formed her in a partial mood;
  • and, forgetting her usual stinted step-mother dole of gifts, had endowed
  • this, her darling, with a grand-dame's bounty.
  • What did St. John Rivers think of this earthly angel? I naturally asked
  • myself that question as I saw him turn to her and look at her; and, as
  • naturally, I sought the answer to the inquiry in his countenance. He had
  • already withdrawn his eye from the Peri, and was looking at a humble tuft
  • of daisies which grew by the wicket.
  • "A lovely evening, but late for you to be out alone," he said, as he
  • crushed the snowy heads of the closed flowers with his foot.
  • "Oh, I only came home from S-" (she mentioned the name of a large town
  • some twenty miles distant) "this afternoon. Papa told me you had opened
  • your school, and that the new mistress was come; and so I put on my
  • bonnet after tea, and ran up the valley to see her: this is she?"
  • pointing to me.
  • "It is," said St. John.
  • "Do you think you shall like Morton?" she asked of me, with a direct and
  • naive simplicity of tone and manner, pleasing, if child-like.
  • "I hope I shall. I have many inducements to do so."
  • "Did you find your scholars as attentive as you expected?"
  • "Quite."
  • "Do you like your house?"
  • "Very much."
  • "Have I furnished it nicely?"
  • "Very nicely, indeed."
  • "And made a good choice of an attendant for you in Alice Wood?"
  • "You have indeed. She is teachable and handy." (This then, I thought,
  • is Miss Oliver, the heiress; favoured, it seems, in the gifts of fortune,
  • as well as in those of nature! What happy combination of the planets
  • presided over her birth, I wonder?)
  • "I shall come up and help you to teach sometimes," she added. "It will
  • be a change for me to visit you now and then; and I like a change. Mr.
  • Rivers, I have been _so_ gay during my stay at S-. Last night, or rather
  • this morning, I was dancing till two o'clock. The ---th regiment are
  • stationed there since the riots; and the officers are the most agreeable
  • men in the world: they put all our young knife-grinders and scissor
  • merchants to shame."
  • It seemed to me that Mr. St. John's under lip protruded, and his upper
  • lip curled a moment. His mouth certainly looked a good deal compressed,
  • and the lower part of his face unusually stern and square, as the
  • laughing girl gave him this information. He lifted his gaze, too, from
  • the daisies, and turned it on her. An unsmiling, a searching, a meaning
  • gaze it was. She answered it with a second laugh, and laughter well
  • became her youth, her roses, her dimples, her bright eyes.
  • As he stood, mute and grave, she again fell to caressing Carlo. "Poor
  • Carlo loves me," said she. "_He_ is not stern and distant to his
  • friends; and if he could speak, he would not be silent."
  • As she patted the dog's head, bending with native grace before his young
  • and austere master, I saw a glow rise to that master's face. I saw his
  • solemn eye melt with sudden fire, and flicker with resistless emotion.
  • Flushed and kindled thus, he looked nearly as beautiful for a man as she
  • for a woman. His chest heaved once, as if his large heart, weary of
  • despotic constriction, had expanded, despite the will, and made a
  • vigorous bound for the attainment of liberty. But he curbed it, I think,
  • as a resolute rider would curb a rearing steed. He responded neither by
  • word nor movement to the gentle advances made him.
  • "Papa says you never come to see us now," continued Miss Oliver, looking
  • up. "You are quite a stranger at Vale Hall. He is alone this evening,
  • and not very well: will you return with me and visit him?"
  • "It is not a seasonable hour to intrude on Mr. Oliver," answered St.
  • John.
  • "Not a seasonable hour! But I declare it is. It is just the hour when
  • papa most wants company: when the works are closed and he has no business
  • to occupy him. Now, Mr. Rivers, _do_ come. Why are you so very shy, and
  • so very sombre?" She filled up the hiatus his silence left by a reply of
  • her own.
  • "I forgot!" she exclaimed, shaking her beautiful curled head, as if
  • shocked at herself. "I am so giddy and thoughtless! _Do_ excuse me. It
  • had slipped my memory that you have good reasons to be indisposed for
  • joining in my chatter. Diana and Mary have left you, and Moor House is
  • shut up, and you are so lonely. I am sure I pity you. Do come and see
  • papa."
  • "Not to-night, Miss Rosamond, not to-night."
  • Mr. St. John spoke almost like an automaton: himself only knew the effort
  • it cost him thus to refuse.
  • "Well, if you are so obstinate, I will leave you; for I dare not stay any
  • longer: the dew begins to fall. Good evening!"
  • She held out her hand. He just touched it. "Good evening!" he repeated,
  • in a voice low and hollow as an echo. She turned, but in a moment
  • returned.
  • "Are you well?" she asked. Well might she put the question: his face was
  • blanched as her gown.
  • "Quite well," he enunciated; and, with a bow, he left the gate. She went
  • one way; he another. She turned twice to gaze after him as she tripped
  • fairy-like down the field; he, as he strode firmly across, never turned
  • at all.
  • This spectacle of another's suffering and sacrifice rapt my thoughts from
  • exclusive meditation on my own. Diana Rivers had designated her brother
  • "inexorable as death." She had not exaggerated.
  • CHAPTER XXXII
  • I continued the labours of the village-school as actively and faithfully
  • as I could. It was truly hard work at first. Some time elapsed before,
  • with all my efforts, I could comprehend my scholars and their nature.
  • Wholly untaught, with faculties quite torpid, they seemed to me
  • hopelessly dull; and, at first sight, all dull alike: but I soon found I
  • was mistaken. There was a difference amongst them as amongst the
  • educated; and when I got to know them, and they me, this difference
  • rapidly developed itself. Their amazement at me, my language, my rules,
  • and ways, once subsided, I found some of these heavy-looking, gaping
  • rustics wake up into sharp-witted girls enough. Many showed themselves
  • obliging, and amiable too; and I discovered amongst them not a few
  • examples of natural politeness, and innate self-respect, as well as of
  • excellent capacity, that won both my goodwill and my admiration. These
  • soon took a pleasure in doing their work well, in keeping their persons
  • neat, in learning their tasks regularly, in acquiring quiet and orderly
  • manners. The rapidity of their progress, in some instances, was even
  • surprising; and an honest and happy pride I took in it: besides, I began
  • personally to like some of the best girls; and they liked me. I had
  • amongst my scholars several farmers' daughters: young women grown,
  • almost. These could already read, write, and sew; and to them I taught
  • the elements of grammar, geography, history, and the finer kinds of
  • needlework. I found estimable characters amongst them--characters
  • desirous of information and disposed for improvement--with whom I passed
  • many a pleasant evening hour in their own homes. Their parents then (the
  • farmer and his wife) loaded me with attentions. There was an enjoyment
  • in accepting their simple kindness, and in repaying it by a
  • consideration--a scrupulous regard to their feelings--to which they were
  • not, perhaps, at all times accustomed, and which both charmed and
  • benefited them; because, while it elevated them in their own eyes, it
  • made them emulous to merit the deferential treatment they received.
  • I felt I became a favourite in the neighbourhood. Whenever I went out, I
  • heard on all sides cordial salutations, and was welcomed with friendly
  • smiles. To live amidst general regard, though it be but the regard of
  • working people, is like "sitting in sunshine, calm and sweet;" serene
  • inward feelings bud and bloom under the ray. At this period of my life,
  • my heart far oftener swelled with thankfulness than sank with dejection:
  • and yet, reader, to tell you all, in the midst of this calm, this useful
  • existence--after a day passed in honourable exertion amongst my scholars,
  • an evening spent in drawing or reading contentedly alone--I used to rush
  • into strange dreams at night: dreams many-coloured, agitated, full of the
  • ideal, the stirring, the stormy--dreams where, amidst unusual scenes,
  • charged with adventure, with agitating risk and romantic chance, I still
  • again and again met Mr. Rochester, always at some exciting crisis; and
  • then the sense of being in his arms, hearing his voice, meeting his eye,
  • touching his hand and cheek, loving him, being loved by him--the hope of
  • passing a lifetime at his side, would be renewed, with all its first
  • force and fire. Then I awoke. Then I recalled where I was, and how
  • situated. Then I rose up on my curtainless bed, trembling and quivering;
  • and then the still, dark night witnessed the convulsion of despair, and
  • heard the burst of passion. By nine o'clock the next morning I was
  • punctually opening the school; tranquil, settled, prepared for the steady
  • duties of the day.
  • Rosamond Oliver kept her word in coming to visit me. Her call at the
  • school was generally made in the course of her morning ride. She would
  • canter up to the door on her pony, followed by a mounted livery servant.
  • Anything more exquisite than her appearance, in her purple habit, with
  • her Amazon's cap of black velvet placed gracefully above the long curls
  • that kissed her cheek and floated to her shoulders, can scarcely be
  • imagined: and it was thus she would enter the rustic building, and glide
  • through the dazzled ranks of the village children. She generally came at
  • the hour when Mr. Rivers was engaged in giving his daily catechising
  • lesson. Keenly, I fear, did the eye of the visitress pierce the young
  • pastor's heart. A sort of instinct seemed to warn him of her entrance,
  • even when he did not see it; and when he was looking quite away from the
  • door, if she appeared at it, his cheek would glow, and his marble-seeming
  • features, though they refused to relax, changed indescribably, and in
  • their very quiescence became expressive of a repressed fervour, stronger
  • than working muscle or darting glance could indicate.
  • Of course, she knew her power: indeed, he did not, because he could not,
  • conceal it from her. In spite of his Christian stoicism, when she went
  • up and addressed him, and smiled gaily, encouragingly, even fondly in his
  • face, his hand would tremble and his eye burn. He seemed to say, with
  • his sad and resolute look, if he did not say it with his lips, "I love
  • you, and I know you prefer me. It is not despair of success that keeps
  • me dumb. If I offered my heart, I believe you would accept it. But that
  • heart is already laid on a sacred altar: the fire is arranged round it.
  • It will soon be no more than a sacrifice consumed."
  • And then she would pout like a disappointed child; a pensive cloud would
  • soften her radiant vivacity; she would withdraw her hand hastily from
  • his, and turn in transient petulance from his aspect, at once so heroic
  • and so martyr-like. St. John, no doubt, would have given the world to
  • follow, recall, retain her, when she thus left him; but he would not give
  • one chance of heaven, nor relinquish, for the elysium of her love, one
  • hope of the true, eternal Paradise. Besides, he could not bind all that
  • he had in his nature--the rover, the aspirant, the poet, the priest--in
  • the limits of a single passion. He could not--he would not--renounce his
  • wild field of mission warfare for the parlours and the peace of Vale
  • Hall. I learnt so much from himself in an inroad I once, despite his
  • reserve, had the daring to make on his confidence.
  • Miss Oliver already honoured me with frequent visits to my cottage. I
  • had learnt her whole character, which was without mystery or disguise:
  • she was coquettish but not heartless; exacting, but not worthlessly
  • selfish. She had been indulged from her birth, but was not absolutely
  • spoilt. She was hasty, but good-humoured; vain (she could not help it,
  • when every glance in the glass showed her such a flush of loveliness),
  • but not affected; liberal-handed; innocent of the pride of wealth;
  • ingenuous; sufficiently intelligent; gay, lively, and unthinking: she was
  • very charming, in short, even to a cool observer of her own sex like me;
  • but she was not profoundly interesting or thoroughly impressive. A very
  • different sort of mind was hers from that, for instance, of the sisters
  • of St. John. Still, I liked her almost as I liked my pupil Adele; except
  • that, for a child whom we have watched over and taught, a closer
  • affection is engendered than we can give an equally attractive adult
  • acquaintance.
  • She had taken an amiable caprice to me. She said I was like Mr. Rivers,
  • only, certainly, she allowed, "not one-tenth so handsome, though I was a
  • nice neat little soul enough, but he was an angel." I was, however,
  • good, clever, composed, and firm, like him. I was a _lusus naturae_, she
  • affirmed, as a village schoolmistress: she was sure my previous history,
  • if known, would make a delightful romance.
  • One evening, while, with her usual child-like activity, and thoughtless
  • yet not offensive inquisitiveness, she was rummaging the cupboard and the
  • table-drawer of my little kitchen, she discovered first two French books,
  • a volume of Schiller, a German grammar and dictionary, and then my
  • drawing-materials and some sketches, including a pencil-head of a pretty
  • little cherub-like girl, one of my scholars, and sundry views from
  • nature, taken in the Vale of Morton and on the surrounding moors. She
  • was first transfixed with surprise, and then electrified with delight.
  • "Had I done these pictures? Did I know French and German? What a
  • love--what a miracle I was! I drew better than her master in the first
  • school in S-. Would I sketch a portrait of her, to show to papa?"
  • "With pleasure," I replied; and I felt a thrill of artist-delight at the
  • idea of copying from so perfect and radiant a model. She had then on a
  • dark-blue silk dress; her arms and her neck were bare; her only ornament
  • was her chestnut tresses, which waved over her shoulders with all the
  • wild grace of natural curls. I took a sheet of fine card-board, and drew
  • a careful outline. I promised myself the pleasure of colouring it; and,
  • as it was getting late then, I told her she must come and sit another
  • day.
  • She made such a report of me to her father, that Mr. Oliver himself
  • accompanied her next evening--a tall, massive-featured, middle-aged, and
  • grey-headed man, at whose side his lovely daughter looked like a bright
  • flower near a hoary turret. He appeared a taciturn, and perhaps a proud
  • personage; but he was very kind to me. The sketch of Rosamond's portrait
  • pleased him highly: he said I must make a finished picture of it. He
  • insisted, too, on my coming the next day to spend the evening at Vale
  • Hall.
  • I went. I found it a large, handsome residence, showing abundant
  • evidences of wealth in the proprietor. Rosamond was full of glee and
  • pleasure all the time I stayed. Her father was affable; and when he
  • entered into conversation with me after tea, he expressed in strong terms
  • his approbation of what I had done in Morton school, and said he only
  • feared, from what he saw and heard, I was too good for the place, and
  • would soon quit it for one more suitable.
  • "Indeed," cried Rosamond, "she is clever enough to be a governess in a
  • high family, papa."
  • I thought I would far rather be where I am than in any high family in the
  • land. Mr. Oliver spoke of Mr. Rivers--of the Rivers family--with great
  • respect. He said it was a very old name in that neighbourhood; that the
  • ancestors of the house were wealthy; that all Morton had once belonged to
  • them; that even now he considered the representative of that house might,
  • if he liked, make an alliance with the best. He accounted it a pity that
  • so fine and talented a young man should have formed the design of going
  • out as a missionary; it was quite throwing a valuable life away. It
  • appeared, then, that her father would throw no obstacle in the way of
  • Rosamond's union with St. John. Mr. Oliver evidently regarded the young
  • clergyman's good birth, old name, and sacred profession as sufficient
  • compensation for the want of fortune.
  • It was the 5th of November, and a holiday. My little servant, after
  • helping me to clean my house, was gone, well satisfied with the fee of a
  • penny for her aid. All about me was spotless and bright--scoured floor,
  • polished grate, and well-rubbed chairs. I had also made myself neat, and
  • had now the afternoon before me to spend as I would.
  • The translation of a few pages of German occupied an hour; then I got my
  • palette and pencils, and fell to the more soothing, because easier
  • occupation, of completing Rosamond Oliver's miniature. The head was
  • finished already: there was but the background to tint and the drapery to
  • shade off; a touch of carmine, too, to add to the ripe lips--a soft curl
  • here and there to the tresses--a deeper tinge to the shadow of the lash
  • under the azured eyelid. I was absorbed in the execution of these nice
  • details, when, after one rapid tap, my door unclosed, admitting St. John
  • Rivers.
  • "I am come to see how you are spending your holiday," he said. "Not, I
  • hope, in thought? No, that is well: while you draw you will not feel
  • lonely. You see, I mistrust you still, though you have borne up
  • wonderfully so far. I have brought you a book for evening solace," and
  • he laid on the table a new publication--a poem: one of those genuine
  • productions so often vouchsafed to the fortunate public of those days--the
  • golden age of modern literature. Alas! the readers of our era are less
  • favoured. But courage! I will not pause either to accuse or repine. I
  • know poetry is not dead, nor genius lost; nor has Mammon gained power
  • over either, to bind or slay: they will both assert their existence,
  • their presence, their liberty and strength again one day. Powerful
  • angels, safe in heaven! they smile when sordid souls triumph, and feeble
  • ones weep over their destruction. Poetry destroyed? Genius banished?
  • No! Mediocrity, no: do not let envy prompt you to the thought. No; they
  • not only live, but reign and redeem: and without their divine influence
  • spread everywhere, you would be in hell--the hell of your own meanness.
  • While I was eagerly glancing at the bright pages of "Marmion" (for
  • "Marmion" it was), St. John stooped to examine my drawing. His tall
  • figure sprang erect again with a start: he said nothing. I looked up at
  • him: he shunned my eye. I knew his thoughts well, and could read his
  • heart plainly; at the moment I felt calmer and cooler than he: I had then
  • temporarily the advantage of him, and I conceived an inclination to do
  • him some good, if I could.
  • "With all his firmness and self-control," thought I, "he tasks himself
  • too far: locks every feeling and pang within--expresses, confesses,
  • imparts nothing. I am sure it would benefit him to talk a little about
  • this sweet Rosamond, whom he thinks he ought not to marry: I will make
  • him talk."
  • I said first, "Take a chair, Mr. Rivers." But he answered, as he always
  • did, that he could not stay. "Very well," I responded, mentally, "stand
  • if you like; but you shall not go just yet, I am determined: solitude is
  • at least as bad for you as it is for me. I'll try if I cannot discover
  • the secret spring of your confidence, and find an aperture in that marble
  • breast through which I can shed one drop of the balm of sympathy."
  • "Is this portrait like?" I asked bluntly.
  • "Like! Like whom? I did not observe it closely."
  • "You did, Mr. Rivers."
  • He almost started at my sudden and strange abruptness: he looked at me
  • astonished. "Oh, that is nothing yet," I muttered within. "I don't mean
  • to be baffled by a little stiffness on your part; I'm prepared to go to
  • considerable lengths." I continued, "You observed it closely and
  • distinctly; but I have no objection to your looking at it again," and I
  • rose and placed it in his hand.
  • "A well-executed picture," he said; "very soft, clear colouring; very
  • graceful and correct drawing."
  • "Yes, yes; I know all that. But what of the resemblance? Who is it
  • like?"
  • Mastering some hesitation, he answered, "Miss Oliver, I presume."
  • "Of course. And now, sir, to reward you for the accurate guess, I will
  • promise to paint you a careful and faithful duplicate of this very
  • picture, provided you admit that the gift would be acceptable to you. I
  • don't wish to throw away my time and trouble on an offering you would
  • deem worthless."
  • He continued to gaze at the picture: the longer he looked, the firmer he
  • held it, the more he seemed to covet it. "It is like!" he murmured; "the
  • eye is well managed: the colour, light, expression, are perfect. It
  • smiles!"
  • "Would it comfort, or would it wound you to have a similar painting? Tell
  • me that. When you are at Madagascar, or at the Cape, or in India, would
  • it be a consolation to have that memento in your possession? or would the
  • sight of it bring recollections calculated to enervate and distress?"
  • He now furtively raised his eyes: he glanced at me, irresolute,
  • disturbed: he again surveyed the picture.
  • "That I should like to have it is certain: whether it would be judicious
  • or wise is another question."
  • Since I had ascertained that Rosamond really preferred him, and that her
  • father was not likely to oppose the match, I--less exalted in my views
  • than St. John--had been strongly disposed in my own heart to advocate
  • their union. It seemed to me that, should he become the possessor of Mr.
  • Oliver's large fortune, he might do as much good with it as if he went
  • and laid his genius out to wither, and his strength to waste, under a
  • tropical sun. With this persuasion I now answered--
  • "As far as I can see, it would be wiser and more judicious if you were to
  • take to yourself the original at once."
  • By this time he had sat down: he had laid the picture on the table before
  • him, and with his brow supported on both hands, hung fondly over it. I
  • discerned he was now neither angry nor shocked at my audacity. I saw
  • even that to be thus frankly addressed on a subject he had deemed
  • unapproachable--to hear it thus freely handled--was beginning to be felt
  • by him as a new pleasure--an unhoped-for relief. Reserved people often
  • really need the frank discussion of their sentiments and griefs more than
  • the expansive. The sternest-seeming stoic is human after all; and to
  • "burst" with boldness and good-will into "the silent sea" of their souls
  • is often to confer on them the first of obligations.
  • "She likes you, I am sure," said I, as I stood behind his chair, "and her
  • father respects you. Moreover, she is a sweet girl--rather thoughtless;
  • but you would have sufficient thought for both yourself and her. You
  • ought to marry her."
  • "_Does_ she like me?" he asked.
  • "Certainly; better than she likes any one else. She talks of you
  • continually: there is no subject she enjoys so much or touches upon so
  • often."
  • "It is very pleasant to hear this," he said--"very: go on for another
  • quarter of an hour." And he actually took out his watch and laid it upon
  • the table to measure the time.
  • "But where is the use of going on," I asked, "when you are probably
  • preparing some iron blow of contradiction, or forging a fresh chain to
  • fetter your heart?"
  • "Don't imagine such hard things. Fancy me yielding and melting, as I am
  • doing: human love rising like a freshly opened fountain in my mind and
  • overflowing with sweet inundation all the field I have so carefully and
  • with such labour prepared--so assiduously sown with the seeds of good
  • intentions, of self-denying plans. And now it is deluged with a
  • nectarous flood--the young germs swamped--delicious poison cankering
  • them: now I see myself stretched on an ottoman in the drawing-room at
  • Vale Hall at my bride Rosamond Oliver's feet: she is talking to me with
  • her sweet voice--gazing down on me with those eyes your skilful hand has
  • copied so well--smiling at me with these coral lips. She is mine--I am
  • hers--this present life and passing world suffice to me. Hush! say
  • nothing--my heart is full of delight--my senses are entranced--let the
  • time I marked pass in peace."
  • I humoured him: the watch ticked on: he breathed fast and low: I stood
  • silent. Amidst this hush the quartet sped; he replaced the watch, laid
  • the picture down, rose, and stood on the hearth.
  • "Now," said he, "that little space was given to delirium and delusion. I
  • rested my temples on the breast of temptation, and put my neck
  • voluntarily under her yoke of flowers. I tasted her cup. The pillow was
  • burning: there is an asp in the garland: the wine has a bitter taste: her
  • promises are hollow--her offers false: I see and know all this."
  • I gazed at him in wonder.
  • "It is strange," pursued he, "that while I love Rosamond Oliver so
  • wildly--with all the intensity, indeed, of a first passion, the object of
  • which is exquisitely beautiful, graceful, fascinating--I experience at
  • the same time a calm, unwarped consciousness that she would not make me a
  • good wife; that she is not the partner suited to me; that I should
  • discover this within a year after marriage; and that to twelve months'
  • rapture would succeed a lifetime of regret. This I know."
  • "Strange indeed!" I could not help ejaculating.
  • "While something in me," he went on, "is acutely sensible to her charms,
  • something else is as deeply impressed with her defects: they are such
  • that she could sympathise in nothing I aspired to--co-operate in nothing
  • I undertook. Rosamond a sufferer, a labourer, a female apostle? Rosamond
  • a missionary's wife? No!"
  • "But you need not be a missionary. You might relinquish that scheme."
  • "Relinquish! What! my vocation? My great work? My foundation laid on
  • earth for a mansion in heaven? My hopes of being numbered in the band
  • who have merged all ambitions in the glorious one of bettering their
  • race--of carrying knowledge into the realms of ignorance--of substituting
  • peace for war--freedom for bondage--religion for superstition--the hope
  • of heaven for the fear of hell? Must I relinquish that? It is dearer
  • than the blood in my veins. It is what I have to look forward to, and to
  • live for."
  • After a considerable pause, I said--"And Miss Oliver? Are her
  • disappointment and sorrow of no interest to you?"
  • "Miss Oliver is ever surrounded by suitors and flatterers: in less than a
  • month, my image will be effaced from her heart. She will forget me; and
  • will marry, probably, some one who will make her far happier than I
  • should do."
  • "You speak coolly enough; but you suffer in the conflict. You are
  • wasting away."
  • "No. If I get a little thin, it is with anxiety about my prospects, yet
  • unsettled--my departure, continually procrastinated. Only this morning,
  • I received intelligence that the successor, whose arrival I have been so
  • long expecting, cannot be ready to replace me for three months to come
  • yet; and perhaps the three months may extend to six."
  • "You tremble and become flushed whenever Miss Oliver enters the
  • schoolroom."
  • Again the surprised expression crossed his face. He had not imagined
  • that a woman would dare to speak so to a man. For me, I felt at home in
  • this sort of discourse. I could never rest in communication with strong,
  • discreet, and refined minds, whether male or female, till I had passed
  • the outworks of conventional reserve, and crossed the threshold of
  • confidence, and won a place by their heart's very hearthstone.
  • "You are original," said he, "and not timid. There is something brave in
  • your spirit, as well as penetrating in your eye; but allow me to assure
  • you that you partially misinterpret my emotions. You think them more
  • profound and potent than they are. You give me a larger allowance of
  • sympathy than I have a just claim to. When I colour, and when I shade
  • before Miss Oliver, I do not pity myself. I scorn the weakness. I know
  • it is ignoble: a mere fever of the flesh: not, I declare, the convulsion
  • of the soul. _That_ is just as fixed as a rock, firm set in the depths
  • of a restless sea. Know me to be what I am--a cold hard man."
  • I smiled incredulously.
  • "You have taken my confidence by storm," he continued, "and now it is
  • much at your service. I am simply, in my original state--stripped of
  • that blood-bleached robe with which Christianity covers human deformity--a
  • cold, hard, ambitious man. Natural affection only, of all the
  • sentiments, has permanent power over me. Reason, and not feeling, is my
  • guide; my ambition is unlimited: my desire to rise higher, to do more
  • than others, insatiable. I honour endurance, perseverance, industry,
  • talent; because these are the means by which men achieve great ends and
  • mount to lofty eminence. I watch your career with interest, because I
  • consider you a specimen of a diligent, orderly, energetic woman: not
  • because I deeply compassionate what you have gone through, or what you
  • still suffer."
  • "You would describe yourself as a mere pagan philosopher," I said.
  • "No. There is this difference between me and deistic philosophers: I
  • believe; and I believe the Gospel. You missed your epithet. I am not a
  • pagan, but a Christian philosopher--a follower of the sect of Jesus. As
  • His disciple I adopt His pure, His merciful, His benignant doctrines. I
  • advocate them: I am sworn to spread them. Won in youth to religion, she
  • has cultivated my original qualities thus:--From the minute germ, natural
  • affection, she has developed the overshadowing tree, philanthropy. From
  • the wild stringy root of human uprightness, she has reared a due sense of
  • the Divine justice. Of the ambition to win power and renown for my
  • wretched self, she has formed the ambition to spread my Master's kingdom;
  • to achieve victories for the standard of the cross. So much has religion
  • done for me; turning the original materials to the best account; pruning
  • and training nature. But she could not eradicate nature: nor will it be
  • eradicated 'till this mortal shall put on immortality.'"
  • Having said this, he took his hat, which lay on the table beside my
  • palette. Once more he looked at the portrait.
  • "She _is_ lovely," he murmured. "She is well named the Rose of the
  • World, indeed!"
  • "And may I not paint one like it for you?"
  • "_Cui bono_? No."
  • He drew over the picture the sheet of thin paper on which I was
  • accustomed to rest my hand in painting, to prevent the cardboard from
  • being sullied. What he suddenly saw on this blank paper, it was
  • impossible for me to tell; but something had caught his eye. He took it
  • up with a snatch; he looked at the edge; then shot a glance at me,
  • inexpressibly peculiar, and quite incomprehensible: a glance that seemed
  • to take and make note of every point in my shape, face, and dress; for it
  • traversed all, quick, keen as lightning. His lips parted, as if to
  • speak: but he checked the coming sentence, whatever it was.
  • "What is the matter?" I asked.
  • "Nothing in the world," was the reply; and, replacing the paper, I saw
  • him dexterously tear a narrow slip from the margin. It disappeared in
  • his glove; and, with one hasty nod and "good-afternoon," he vanished.
  • "Well!" I exclaimed, using an expression of the district, "that caps the
  • globe, however!"
  • I, in my turn, scrutinised the paper; but saw nothing on it save a few
  • dingy stains of paint where I had tried the tint in my pencil. I
  • pondered the mystery a minute or two; but finding it insolvable, and
  • being certain it could not be of much moment, I dismissed, and soon
  • forgot it.
  • CHAPTER XXXIII
  • When Mr. St. John went, it was beginning to snow; the whirling storm
  • continued all night. The next day a keen wind brought fresh and blinding
  • falls; by twilight the valley was drifted up and almost impassable. I
  • had closed my shutter, laid a mat to the door to prevent the snow from
  • blowing in under it, trimmed my fire, and after sitting nearly an hour on
  • the hearth listening to the muffled fury of the tempest, I lit a candle,
  • took down "Marmion," and beginning--
  • "Day set on Norham's castled steep,
  • And Tweed's fair river broad and deep,
  • And Cheviot's mountains lone;
  • The massive towers, the donjon keep,
  • The flanking walls that round them sweep,
  • In yellow lustre shone"--
  • I soon forgot storm in music.
  • I heard a noise: the wind, I thought, shook the door. No; it was St.
  • John Rivers, who, lifting the latch, came in out of the frozen
  • hurricane--the howling darkness--and stood before me: the cloak that
  • covered his tall figure all white as a glacier. I was almost in
  • consternation, so little had I expected any guest from the blocked-up
  • vale that night.
  • "Any ill news?" I demanded. "Has anything happened?"
  • "No. How very easily alarmed you are!" he answered, removing his cloak
  • and hanging it up against the door, towards which he again coolly pushed
  • the mat which his entrance had deranged. He stamped the snow from his
  • boots.
  • "I shall sully the purity of your floor," said he, "but you must excuse
  • me for once." Then he approached the fire. "I have had hard work to get
  • here, I assure you," he observed, as he warmed his hands over the flame.
  • "One drift took me up to the waist; happily the snow is quite soft yet."
  • "But why are you come?" I could not forbear saying.
  • "Rather an inhospitable question to put to a visitor; but since you ask
  • it, I answer simply to have a little talk with you; I got tired of my
  • mute books and empty rooms. Besides, since yesterday I have experienced
  • the excitement of a person to whom a tale has been half-told, and who is
  • impatient to hear the sequel."
  • He sat down. I recalled his singular conduct of yesterday, and really I
  • began to fear his wits were touched. If he were insane, however, his was
  • a very cool and collected insanity: I had never seen that
  • handsome-featured face of his look more like chiselled marble than it did
  • just now, as he put aside his snow-wet hair from his forehead and let the
  • firelight shine free on his pale brow and cheek as pale, where it grieved
  • me to discover the hollow trace of care or sorrow now so plainly graved.
  • I waited, expecting he would say something I could at least comprehend;
  • but his hand was now at his chin, his finger on his lip: he was thinking.
  • It struck me that his hand looked wasted like his face. A perhaps
  • uncalled-for gush of pity came over my heart: I was moved to say--
  • "I wish Diana or Mary would come and live with you: it is too bad that
  • you should be quite alone; and you are recklessly rash about your own
  • health."
  • "Not at all," said he: "I care for myself when necessary. I am well now.
  • What do you see amiss in me?"
  • This was said with a careless, abstracted indifference, which showed that
  • my solicitude was, at least in his opinion, wholly superfluous. I was
  • silenced.
  • He still slowly moved his finger over his upper lip, and still his eye
  • dwelt dreamily on the glowing grate; thinking it urgent to say something,
  • I asked him presently if he felt any cold draught from the door, which
  • was behind him.
  • "No, no!" he responded shortly and somewhat testily.
  • "Well," I reflected, "if you won't talk, you may be still; I'll let you
  • alone now, and return to my book."
  • So I snuffed the candle and resumed the perusal of "Marmion." He soon
  • stirred; my eye was instantly drawn to his movements; he only took out a
  • morocco pocket-book, thence produced a letter, which he read in silence,
  • folded it, put it back, relapsed into meditation. It was vain to try to
  • read with such an inscrutable fixture before me; nor could I, in
  • impatience, consent to be dumb; he might rebuff me if he liked, but talk
  • I would.
  • "Have you heard from Diana and Mary lately?"
  • "Not since the letter I showed you a week ago."
  • "There has not been any change made about your own arrangements? You
  • will not be summoned to leave England sooner than you expected?"
  • "I fear not, indeed: such chance is too good to befall me." Baffled so
  • far, I changed my ground. I bethought myself to talk about the school
  • and my scholars.
  • "Mary Garrett's mother is better, and Mary came back to the school this
  • morning, and I shall have four new girls next week from the Foundry
  • Close--they would have come to-day but for the snow."
  • "Indeed!"
  • "Mr. Oliver pays for two."
  • "Does he?"
  • "He means to give the whole school a treat at Christmas."
  • "I know."
  • "Was it your suggestion?"
  • "No."
  • "Whose, then?"
  • "His daughter's, I think."
  • "It is like her: she is so good-natured."
  • "Yes."
  • Again came the blank of a pause: the clock struck eight strokes. It
  • aroused him; he uncrossed his legs, sat erect, turned to me.
  • "Leave your book a moment, and come a little nearer the fire," he said.
  • Wondering, and of my wonder finding no end, I complied.
  • "Half-an-hour ago," he pursued, "I spoke of my impatience to hear the
  • sequel of a tale: on reflection, I find the matter will be better managed
  • by my assuming the narrator's part, and converting you into a listener.
  • Before commencing, it is but fair to warn you that the story will sound
  • somewhat hackneyed in your ears; but stale details often regain a degree
  • of freshness when they pass through new lips. For the rest, whether
  • trite or novel, it is short.
  • "Twenty years ago, a poor curate--never mind his name at this moment--fell
  • in love with a rich man's daughter; she fell in love with him, and
  • married him, against the advice of all her friends, who consequently
  • disowned her immediately after the wedding. Before two years passed, the
  • rash pair were both dead, and laid quietly side by side under one slab.
  • (I have seen their grave; it formed part of the pavement of a huge
  • churchyard surrounding the grim, soot-black old cathedral of an overgrown
  • manufacturing town in ---shire.) They left a daughter, which, at its
  • very birth, Charity received in her lap--cold as that of the snow-drift I
  • almost stuck fast in to-night. Charity carried the friendless thing to
  • the house of its rich maternal relations; it was reared by an aunt-in-
  • law, called (I come to names now) Mrs. Reed of Gateshead. You start--did
  • you hear a noise? I daresay it is only a rat scrambling along the
  • rafters of the adjoining schoolroom: it was a barn before I had it
  • repaired and altered, and barns are generally haunted by rats.--To
  • proceed. Mrs. Reed kept the orphan ten years: whether it was happy or
  • not with her, I cannot say, never having been told; but at the end of
  • that time she transferred it to a place you know--being no other than
  • Lowood School, where you so long resided yourself. It seems her career
  • there was very honourable: from a pupil, she became a teacher, like
  • yourself--really it strikes me there are parallel points in her history
  • and yours--she left it to be a governess: there, again, your fates were
  • analogous; she undertook the education of the ward of a certain Mr.
  • Rochester."
  • "Mr. Rivers!" I interrupted.
  • "I can guess your feelings," he said, "but restrain them for a while: I
  • have nearly finished; hear me to the end. Of Mr. Rochester's character I
  • know nothing, but the one fact that he professed to offer honourable
  • marriage to this young girl, and that at the very altar she discovered he
  • had a wife yet alive, though a lunatic. What his subsequent conduct and
  • proposals were is a matter of pure conjecture; but when an event
  • transpired which rendered inquiry after the governess necessary, it was
  • discovered she was gone--no one could tell when, where, or how. She had
  • left Thornfield Hall in the night; every research after her course had
  • been vain: the country had been scoured far and wide; no vestige of
  • information could be gathered respecting her. Yet that she should be
  • found is become a matter of serious urgency: advertisements have been put
  • in all the papers; I myself have received a letter from one Mr. Briggs, a
  • solicitor, communicating the details I have just imparted. Is it not an
  • odd tale?"
  • "Just tell me this," said I, "and since you know so much, you surely can
  • tell it me--what of Mr. Rochester? How and where is he? What is he
  • doing? Is he well?"
  • "I am ignorant of all concerning Mr. Rochester: the letter never mentions
  • him but to narrate the fraudulent and illegal attempt I have adverted to.
  • You should rather ask the name of the governess--the nature of the event
  • which requires her appearance."
  • "Did no one go to Thornfield Hall, then? Did no one see Mr. Rochester?"
  • "I suppose not."
  • "But they wrote to him?"
  • "Of course."
  • "And what did he say? Who has his letters?"
  • "Mr. Briggs intimates that the answer to his application was not from Mr.
  • Rochester, but from a lady: it is signed 'Alice Fairfax.'"
  • I felt cold and dismayed: my worst fears then were probably true: he had
  • in all probability left England and rushed in reckless desperation to
  • some former haunt on the Continent. And what opiate for his severe
  • sufferings--what object for his strong passions--had he sought there? I
  • dared not answer the question. Oh, my poor master--once almost my
  • husband--whom I had often called "my dear Edward!"
  • "He must have been a bad man," observed Mr. Rivers.
  • "You don't know him--don't pronounce an opinion upon him," I said, with
  • warmth.
  • "Very well," he answered quietly: "and indeed my head is otherwise
  • occupied than with him: I have my tale to finish. Since you won't ask
  • the governess's name, I must tell it of my own accord. Stay! I have it
  • here--it is always more satisfactory to see important points written
  • down, fairly committed to black and white."
  • And the pocket-book was again deliberately produced, opened, sought
  • through; from one of its compartments was extracted a shabby slip of
  • paper, hastily torn off: I recognised in its texture and its stains of
  • ultra-marine, and lake, and vermillion, the ravished margin of the
  • portrait-cover. He got up, held it close to my eyes: and I read, traced
  • in Indian ink, in my own handwriting, the words "JANE EYRE"--the work
  • doubtless of some moment of abstraction.
  • "Briggs wrote to me of a Jane Eyre:" he said, "the advertisements
  • demanded a Jane Eyre: I knew a Jane Elliott.--I confess I had my
  • suspicions, but it was only yesterday afternoon they were at once
  • resolved into certainty. You own the name and renounce the _alias_?"
  • "Yes--yes; but where is Mr. Briggs? He perhaps knows more of Mr.
  • Rochester than you do."
  • "Briggs is in London. I should doubt his knowing anything at all about
  • Mr. Rochester; it is not in Mr. Rochester he is interested. Meantime,
  • you forget essential points in pursuing trifles: you do not inquire why
  • Mr. Briggs sought after you--what he wanted with you."
  • "Well, what did he want?"
  • "Merely to tell you that your uncle, Mr. Eyre of Madeira, is dead; that
  • he has left you all his property, and that you are now rich--merely
  • that--nothing more."
  • "I!--rich?"
  • "Yes, you, rich--quite an heiress."
  • Silence succeeded.
  • "You must prove your identity of course," resumed St. John presently: "a
  • step which will offer no difficulties; you can then enter on immediate
  • possession. Your fortune is vested in the English funds; Briggs has the
  • will and the necessary documents."
  • Here was a new card turned up! It is a fine thing, reader, to be lifted
  • in a moment from indigence to wealth--a very fine thing; but not a matter
  • one can comprehend, or consequently enjoy, all at once. And then there
  • are other chances in life far more thrilling and rapture-giving: _this_
  • is solid, an affair of the actual world, nothing ideal about it: all its
  • associations are solid and sober, and its manifestations are the same.
  • One does not jump, and spring, and shout hurrah! at hearing one has got a
  • fortune; one begins to consider responsibilities, and to ponder business;
  • on a base of steady satisfaction rise certain grave cares, and we contain
  • ourselves, and brood over our bliss with a solemn brow.
  • Besides, the words Legacy, Bequest, go side by side with the words,
  • Death, Funeral. My uncle I had heard was dead--my only relative; ever
  • since being made aware of his existence, I had cherished the hope of one
  • day seeing him: now, I never should. And then this money came only to
  • me: not to me and a rejoicing family, but to my isolated self. It was a
  • grand boon doubtless; and independence would be glorious--yes, I felt
  • that--that thought swelled my heart.
  • "You unbend your forehead at last," said Mr. Rivers. "I thought Medusa
  • had looked at you, and that you were turning to stone. Perhaps now you
  • will ask how much you are worth?"
  • "How much am I worth?"
  • "Oh, a trifle! Nothing of course to speak of--twenty thousand pounds, I
  • think they say--but what is that?"
  • "Twenty thousand pounds?"
  • Here was a new stunner--I had been calculating on four or five thousand.
  • This news actually took my breath for a moment: Mr. St. John, whom I had
  • never heard laugh before, laughed now.
  • "Well," said he, "if you had committed a murder, and I had told you your
  • crime was discovered, you could scarcely look more aghast."
  • "It is a large sum--don't you think there is a mistake?"
  • "No mistake at all."
  • "Perhaps you have read the figures wrong--it may be two thousand!"
  • "It is written in letters, not figures,--twenty thousand."
  • I again felt rather like an individual of but average gastronomical
  • powers sitting down to feast alone at a table spread with provisions for
  • a hundred. Mr. Rivers rose now and put his cloak on.
  • "If it were not such a very wild night," he said, "I would send Hannah
  • down to keep you company: you look too desperately miserable to be left
  • alone. But Hannah, poor woman! could not stride the drifts so well as I:
  • her legs are not quite so long: so I must e'en leave you to your sorrows.
  • Good-night."
  • He was lifting the latch: a sudden thought occurred to me. "Stop one
  • minute!" I cried.
  • "Well?"
  • "It puzzles me to know why Mr. Briggs wrote to you about me; or how he
  • knew you, or could fancy that you, living in such an out-of-the-way
  • place, had the power to aid in my discovery."
  • "Oh! I am a clergyman," he said; "and the clergy are often appealed to
  • about odd matters." Again the latch rattled.
  • "No; that does not satisfy me!" I exclaimed: and indeed there was
  • something in the hasty and unexplanatory reply which, instead of
  • allaying, piqued my curiosity more than ever.
  • "It is a very strange piece of business," I added; "I must know more
  • about it."
  • "Another time."
  • "No; to-night!--to-night!" and as he turned from the door, I placed
  • myself between it and him. He looked rather embarrassed.
  • "You certainly shall not go till you have told me all," I said.
  • "I would rather not just now."
  • "You shall!--you must!"
  • "I would rather Diana or Mary informed you."
  • Of course these objections wrought my eagerness to a climax: gratified it
  • must be, and that without delay; and I told him so.
  • "But I apprised you that I was a hard man," said he, "difficult to
  • persuade."
  • "And I am a hard woman,--impossible to put off."
  • {And I am a hard woman,--impossible to put off: p369.jpg}
  • "And then," he pursued, "I am cold: no fervour infects me."
  • "Whereas I am hot, and fire dissolves ice. The blaze there has thawed
  • all the snow from your cloak; by the same token, it has streamed on to my
  • floor, and made it like a trampled street. As you hope ever to be
  • forgiven, Mr. Rivers, the high crime and misdemeanour of spoiling a
  • sanded kitchen, tell me what I wish to know."
  • "Well, then," he said, "I yield; if not to your earnestness, to your
  • perseverance: as stone is worn by continual dropping. Besides, you must
  • know some day,--as well now as later. Your name is Jane Eyre?"
  • "Of course: that was all settled before."
  • "You are not, perhaps, aware that I am your namesake?--that I was
  • christened St. John Eyre Rivers?"
  • "No, indeed! I remember now seeing the letter E. comprised in your
  • initials written in books you have at different times lent me; but I
  • never asked for what name it stood. But what then? Surely--"
  • I stopped: I could not trust myself to entertain, much less to express,
  • the thought that rushed upon me--that embodied itself,--that, in a
  • second, stood out a strong, solid probability. Circumstances knit
  • themselves, fitted themselves, shot into order: the chain that had been
  • lying hitherto a formless lump of links was drawn out straight,--every
  • ring was perfect, the connection complete. I knew, by instinct, how the
  • matter stood, before St. John had said another word; but I cannot expect
  • the reader to have the same intuitive perception, so I must repeat his
  • explanation.
  • "My mother's name was Eyre; she had two brothers; one a clergyman, who
  • married Miss Jane Reed, of Gateshead; the other, John Eyre, Esq.,
  • merchant, late of Funchal, Madeira. Mr. Briggs, being Mr. Eyre's
  • solicitor, wrote to us last August to inform us of our uncle's death, and
  • to say that he had left his property to his brother the clergyman's
  • orphan daughter, overlooking us, in consequence of a quarrel, never
  • forgiven, between him and my father. He wrote again a few weeks since,
  • to intimate that the heiress was lost, and asking if we knew anything of
  • her. A name casually written on a slip of paper has enabled me to find
  • her out. You know the rest." Again he was going, but I set my back
  • against the door.
  • "Do let me speak," I said; "let me have one moment to draw breath and
  • reflect." I paused--he stood before me, hat in hand, looking composed
  • enough. I resumed--
  • "Your mother was my father's sister?"
  • "Yes."
  • "My aunt, consequently?"
  • He bowed.
  • "My uncle John was your uncle John? You, Diana, and Mary are his
  • sister's children, as I am his brother's child?"
  • "Undeniably."
  • "You three, then, are my cousins; half our blood on each side flows from
  • the same source?"
  • "We are cousins; yes."
  • I surveyed him. It seemed I had found a brother: one I could be proud
  • of,--one I could love; and two sisters, whose qualities were such, that,
  • when I knew them but as mere strangers, they had inspired me with genuine
  • affection and admiration. The two girls, on whom, kneeling down on the
  • wet ground, and looking through the low, latticed window of Moor House
  • kitchen, I had gazed with so bitter a mixture of interest and despair,
  • were my near kinswomen; and the young and stately gentleman who had found
  • me almost dying at his threshold was my blood relation. Glorious
  • discovery to a lonely wretch! This was wealth indeed!--wealth to the
  • heart!--a mine of pure, genial affections. This was a blessing, bright,
  • vivid, and exhilarating;--not like the ponderous gift of gold: rich and
  • welcome enough in its way, but sobering from its weight. I now clapped
  • my hands in sudden joy--my pulse bounded, my veins thrilled.
  • "Oh, I am glad!--I am glad!" I exclaimed.
  • St. John smiled. "Did I not say you neglected essential points to pursue
  • trifles?" he asked. "You were serious when I told you you had got a
  • fortune; and now, for a matter of no moment, you are excited."
  • "What can you mean? It may be of no moment to you; you have sisters and
  • don't care for a cousin; but I had nobody; and now three relations,--or
  • two, if you don't choose to be counted,--are born into my world
  • full-grown. I say again, I am glad!"
  • I walked fast through the room: I stopped, half suffocated with the
  • thoughts that rose faster than I could receive, comprehend, settle
  • them:--thoughts of what might, could, would, and should be, and that ere
  • long. I looked at the blank wall: it seemed a sky thick with ascending
  • stars,--every one lit me to a purpose or delight. Those who had saved my
  • life, whom, till this hour, I had loved barrenly, I could now benefit.
  • They were under a yoke,--I could free them: they were scattered,--I could
  • reunite them: the independence, the affluence which was mine, might be
  • theirs too. Were we not four? Twenty thousand pounds shared equally
  • would be five thousand each, justice--enough and to spare: justice would
  • be done,--mutual happiness secured. Now the wealth did not weigh on me:
  • now it was not a mere bequest of coin,--it was a legacy of life, hope,
  • enjoyment.
  • How I looked while these ideas were taking my spirit by storm, I cannot
  • tell; but I perceived soon that Mr. Rivers had placed a chair behind me,
  • and was gently attempting to make me sit down on it. He also advised me
  • to be composed; I scorned the insinuation of helplessness and
  • distraction, shook off his hand, and began to walk about again.
  • "Write to Diana and Mary to-morrow," I said, "and tell them to come home
  • directly. Diana said they would both consider themselves rich with a
  • thousand pounds, so with five thousand they will do very well."
  • "Tell me where I can get you a glass of water," said St. John; "you must
  • really make an effort to tranquillise your feelings."
  • "Nonsense! and what sort of an effect will the bequest have on you? Will
  • it keep you in England, induce you to marry Miss Oliver, and settle down
  • like an ordinary mortal?"
  • "You wander: your head becomes confused. I have been too abrupt in
  • communicating the news; it has excited you beyond your strength."
  • "Mr. Rivers! you quite put me out of patience: I am rational enough; it
  • is you who misunderstand, or rather who affect to misunderstand."
  • "Perhaps, if you explained yourself a little more fully, I should
  • comprehend better."
  • "Explain! What is there to explain? You cannot fail to see that twenty
  • thousand pounds, the sum in question, divided equally between the nephew
  • and three nieces of our uncle, will give five thousand to each? What I
  • want is, that you should write to your sisters and tell them of the
  • fortune that has accrued to them."
  • "To you, you mean."
  • "I have intimated my view of the case: I am incapable of taking any
  • other. I am not brutally selfish, blindly unjust, or fiendishly
  • ungrateful. Besides, I am resolved I will have a home and connections. I
  • like Moor House, and I will live at Moor House; I like Diana and Mary,
  • and I will attach myself for life to Diana and Mary. It would please and
  • benefit me to have five thousand pounds; it would torment and oppress me
  • to have twenty thousand; which, moreover, could never be mine in justice,
  • though it might in law. I abandon to you, then, what is absolutely
  • superfluous to me. Let there be no opposition, and no discussion about
  • it; let us agree amongst each other, and decide the point at once."
  • "This is acting on first impulses; you must take days to consider such a
  • matter, ere your word can be regarded as valid."
  • "Oh! if all you doubt is my sincerity, I am easy: you see the justice of
  • the case?"
  • "I _do_ see a certain justice; but it is contrary to all custom. Besides,
  • the entire fortune is your right: my uncle gained it by his own efforts;
  • he was free to leave it to whom he would: he left it to you. After all,
  • justice permits you to keep it: you may, with a clear conscience,
  • consider it absolutely your own."
  • "With me," said I, "it is fully as much a matter of feeling as of
  • conscience: I must indulge my feelings; I so seldom have had an
  • opportunity of doing so. Were you to argue, object, and annoy me for a
  • year, I could not forego the delicious pleasure of which I have caught a
  • glimpse--that of repaying, in part, a mighty obligation, and winning to
  • myself lifelong friends."
  • "You think so now," rejoined St. John, "because you do not know what it
  • is to possess, nor consequently to enjoy wealth: you cannot form a notion
  • of the importance twenty thousand pounds would give you; of the place it
  • would enable you to take in society; of the prospects it would open to
  • you: you cannot--"
  • "And you," I interrupted, "cannot at all imagine the craving I have for
  • fraternal and sisterly love. I never had a home, I never had brothers or
  • sisters; I must and will have them now: you are not reluctant to admit me
  • and own me, are you?"
  • "Jane, I will be your brother--my sisters will be your sisters--without
  • stipulating for this sacrifice of your just rights."
  • "Brother? Yes; at the distance of a thousand leagues! Sisters? Yes;
  • slaving amongst strangers! I, wealthy--gorged with gold I never earned
  • and do not merit! You, penniless! Famous equality and fraternisation!
  • Close union! Intimate attachment!"
  • "But, Jane, your aspirations after family ties and domestic happiness may
  • be realised otherwise than by the means you contemplate: you may marry."
  • "Nonsense, again! Marry! I don't want to marry, and never shall marry."
  • "That is saying too much: such hazardous affirmations are a proof of the
  • excitement under which you labour."
  • "It is not saying too much: I know what I feel, and how averse are my
  • inclinations to the bare thought of marriage. No one would take me for
  • love; and I will not be regarded in the light of a mere money
  • speculation. And I do not want a stranger--unsympathising, alien,
  • different from me; I want my kindred: those with whom I have full fellow-
  • feeling. Say again you will be my brother: when you uttered the words I
  • was satisfied, happy; repeat them, if you can, repeat them sincerely."
  • "I think I can. I know I have always loved my own sisters; and I know on
  • what my affection for them is grounded,--respect for their worth and
  • admiration of their talents. You too have principle and mind: your
  • tastes and habits resemble Diana's and Mary's; your presence is always
  • agreeable to me; in your conversation I have already for some time found
  • a salutary solace. I feel I can easily and naturally make room in my
  • heart for you, as my third and youngest sister."
  • "Thank you: that contents me for to-night. Now you had better go; for if
  • you stay longer, you will perhaps irritate me afresh by some mistrustful
  • scruple."
  • "And the school, Miss Eyre? It must now be shut up, I suppose?"
  • "No. I will retain my post of mistress till you get a substitute."
  • He smiled approbation: we shook hands, and he took leave.
  • I need not narrate in detail the further struggles I had, and arguments I
  • used, to get matters regarding the legacy settled as I wished. My task
  • was a very hard one; but, as I was absolutely resolved--as my cousins saw
  • at length that my mind was really and immutably fixed on making a just
  • division of the property--as they must in their own hearts have felt the
  • equity of the intention; and must, besides, have been innately conscious
  • that in my place they would have done precisely what I wished to do--they
  • yielded at length so far as to consent to put the affair to arbitration.
  • The judges chosen were Mr. Oliver and an able lawyer: both coincided in
  • my opinion: I carried my point. The instruments of transfer were drawn
  • out: St. John, Diana, Mary, and I, each became possessed of a competency.
  • CHAPTER XXXIV
  • It was near Christmas by the time all was settled: the season of general
  • holiday approached. I now closed Morton school, taking care that the
  • parting should not be barren on my side. Good fortune opens the hand as
  • well as the heart wonderfully; and to give somewhat when we have largely
  • received, is but to afford a vent to the unusual ebullition of the
  • sensations. I had long felt with pleasure that many of my rustic
  • scholars liked me, and when we parted, that consciousness was confirmed:
  • they manifested their affection plainly and strongly. Deep was my
  • gratification to find I had really a place in their unsophisticated
  • hearts: I promised them that never a week should pass in future that I
  • did not visit them, and give them an hour's teaching in their school.
  • Mr. Rivers came up as, having seen the classes, now numbering sixty
  • girls, file out before me, and locked the door, I stood with the key in
  • my hand, exchanging a few words of special farewell with some half-dozen
  • of my best scholars: as decent, respectable, modest, and well-informed
  • young women as could be found in the ranks of the British peasantry. And
  • that is saying a great deal; for after all, the British peasantry are the
  • best taught, best mannered, most self-respecting of any in Europe: since
  • those days I have seen paysannes and Bauerinnen; and the best of them
  • seemed to me ignorant, coarse, and besotted, compared with my Morton
  • girls.
  • "Do you consider you have got your reward for a season of exertion?"
  • asked Mr. Rivers, when they were gone. "Does not the consciousness of
  • having done some real good in your day and generation give pleasure?"
  • "Doubtless."
  • "And you have only toiled a few months! Would not a life devoted to the
  • task of regenerating your race be well spent?"
  • "Yes," I said; "but I could not go on for ever so: I want to enjoy my own
  • faculties as well as to cultivate those of other people. I must enjoy
  • them now; don't recall either my mind or body to the school; I am out of
  • it and disposed for full holiday."
  • He looked grave. "What now? What sudden eagerness is this you evince?
  • What are you going to do?"
  • "To be active: as active as I can. And first I must beg you to set
  • Hannah at liberty, and get somebody else to wait on you."
  • "Do you want her?"
  • "Yes, to go with me to Moor House. Diana and Mary will be at home in a
  • week, and I want to have everything in order against their arrival."
  • "I understand. I thought you were for flying off on some excursion. It
  • is better so: Hannah shall go with you."
  • "Tell her to be ready by to-morrow then; and here is the schoolroom key:
  • I will give you the key of my cottage in the morning."
  • He took it. "You give it up very gleefully," said he; "I don't quite
  • understand your light-heartedness, because I cannot tell what employment
  • you propose to yourself as a substitute for the one you are
  • relinquishing. What aim, what purpose, what ambition in life have you
  • now?"
  • "My first aim will be to _clean down_ (do you comprehend the full force
  • of the expression?)--to _clean down_ Moor House from chamber to cellar;
  • my next to rub it up with bees-wax, oil, and an indefinite number of
  • cloths, till it glitters again; my third, to arrange every chair, table,
  • bed, carpet, with mathematical precision; afterwards I shall go near to
  • ruin you in coals and peat to keep up good fires in every room; and
  • lastly, the two days preceding that on which your sisters are expected
  • will be devoted by Hannah and me to such a beating of eggs, sorting of
  • currants, grating of spices, compounding of Christmas cakes, chopping up
  • of materials for mince-pies, and solemnising of other culinary rites, as
  • words can convey but an inadequate notion of to the uninitiated like you.
  • My purpose, in short, is to have all things in an absolutely perfect
  • state of readiness for Diana and Mary before next Thursday; and my
  • ambition is to give them a beau-ideal of a welcome when they come."
  • St. John smiled slightly: still he was dissatisfied.
  • "It is all very well for the present," said he; "but seriously, I trust
  • that when the first flush of vivacity is over, you will look a little
  • higher than domestic endearments and household joys."
  • "The best things the world has!" I interrupted.
  • "No, Jane, no: this world is not the scene of fruition; do not attempt to
  • make it so: nor of rest; do not turn slothful."
  • "I mean, on the contrary, to be busy."
  • "Jane, I excuse you for the present: two months' grace I allow you for
  • the full enjoyment of your new position, and for pleasing yourself with
  • this late-found charm of relationship; but _then_, I hope you will begin
  • to look beyond Moor House and Morton, and sisterly society, and the
  • selfish calm and sensual comfort of civilised affluence. I hope your
  • energies will then once more trouble you with their strength."
  • I looked at him with surprise. "St. John," I said, "I think you are
  • almost wicked to talk so. I am disposed to be as content as a queen, and
  • you try to stir me up to restlessness! To what end?"
  • "To the end of turning to profit the talents which God has committed to
  • your keeping; and of which He will surely one day demand a strict
  • account. Jane, I shall watch you closely and anxiously--I warn you of
  • that. And try to restrain the disproportionate fervour with which you
  • throw yourself into commonplace home pleasures. Don't cling so
  • tenaciously to ties of the flesh; save your constancy and ardour for an
  • adequate cause; forbear to waste them on trite transient objects. Do you
  • hear, Jane?"
  • "Yes; just as if you were speaking Greek. I feel I have adequate cause
  • to be happy, and I _will_ be happy. Goodbye!"
  • Happy at Moor House I was, and hard I worked; and so did Hannah: she was
  • charmed to see how jovial I could be amidst the bustle of a house turned
  • topsy-turvy--how I could brush, and dust, and clean, and cook. And
  • really, after a day or two of confusion worse confounded, it was
  • delightful by degrees to invoke order from the chaos ourselves had made.
  • I had previously taken a journey to S--- to purchase some new furniture:
  • my cousins having given me _carte blanche_ to effect what alterations I
  • pleased, and a sum having been set aside for that purpose. The ordinary
  • sitting-room and bedrooms I left much as they were: for I knew Diana and
  • Mary would derive more pleasure from seeing again the old homely tables,
  • and chairs, and beds, than from the spectacle of the smartest
  • innovations. Still some novelty was necessary, to give to their return
  • the piquancy with which I wished it to be invested. Dark handsome new
  • carpets and curtains, an arrangement of some carefully selected antique
  • ornaments in porcelain and bronze, new coverings, and mirrors, and
  • dressing-cases, for the toilet tables, answered the end: they looked
  • fresh without being glaring. A spare parlour and bedroom I refurnished
  • entirely, with old mahogany and crimson upholstery: I laid canvas on the
  • passage, and carpets on the stairs. When all was finished, I thought
  • Moor House as complete a model of bright modest snugness within, as it
  • was, at this season, a specimen of wintry waste and desert dreariness
  • without.
  • The eventful Thursday at length came. They were expected about dark, and
  • ere dusk fires were lit upstairs and below; the kitchen was in perfect
  • trim; Hannah and I were dressed, and all was in readiness.
  • St. John arrived first. I had entreated him to keep quite clear of the
  • house till everything was arranged: and, indeed, the bare idea of the
  • commotion, at once sordid and trivial, going on within its walls sufficed
  • to scare him to estrangement. He found me in the kitchen, watching the
  • progress of certain cakes for tea, then baking. Approaching the hearth,
  • he asked, "If I was at last satisfied with housemaid's work?" I answered
  • by inviting him to accompany me on a general inspection of the result of
  • my labours. With some difficulty, I got him to make the tour of the
  • house. He just looked in at the doors I opened; and when he had wandered
  • upstairs and downstairs, he said I must have gone through a great deal of
  • fatigue and trouble to have effected such considerable changes in so
  • short a time: but not a syllable did he utter indicating pleasure in the
  • improved aspect of his abode.
  • This silence damped me. I thought perhaps the alterations had disturbed
  • some old associations he valued. I inquired whether this was the case:
  • no doubt in a somewhat crest-fallen tone.
  • "Not at all; he had, on the contrary, remarked that I had scrupulously
  • respected every association: he feared, indeed, I must have bestowed more
  • thought on the matter than it was worth. How many minutes, for instance,
  • had I devoted to studying the arrangement of this very room?--By-the-bye,
  • could I tell him where such a book was?"
  • I showed him the volume on the shelf: he took it down, and withdrawing to
  • his accustomed window recess, he began to read it.
  • Now, I did not like this, reader. St. John was a good man; but I began
  • to feel he had spoken truth of himself when he said he was hard and cold.
  • The humanities and amenities of life had no attraction for him--its
  • peaceful enjoyments no charm. Literally, he lived only to aspire--after
  • what was good and great, certainly; but still he would never rest, nor
  • approve of others resting round him. As I looked at his lofty forehead,
  • still and pale as a white stone--at his fine lineaments fixed in study--I
  • comprehended all at once that he would hardly make a good husband: that
  • it would be a trying thing to be his wife. I understood, as by
  • inspiration, the nature of his love for Miss Oliver; I agreed with him
  • that it was but a love of the senses. I comprehended how he should
  • despise himself for the feverish influence it exercised over him; how he
  • should wish to stifle and destroy it; how he should mistrust its ever
  • conducting permanently to his happiness or hers. I saw he was of the
  • material from which nature hews her heroes--Christian and Pagan--her
  • lawgivers, her statesmen, her conquerors: a steadfast bulwark for great
  • interests to rest upon; but, at the fireside, too often a cold cumbrous
  • column, gloomy and out of place.
  • "This parlour is not his sphere," I reflected: "the Himalayan ridge or
  • Caffre bush, even the plague-cursed Guinea Coast swamp would suit him
  • better. Well may he eschew the calm of domestic life; it is not his
  • element: there his faculties stagnate--they cannot develop or appear to
  • advantage. It is in scenes of strife and danger--where courage is
  • proved, and energy exercised, and fortitude tasked--that he will speak
  • and move, the leader and superior. A merry child would have the
  • advantage of him on this hearth. He is right to choose a missionary's
  • career--I see it now."
  • "They are coming! they are coming!" cried Hannah, throwing open the
  • parlour door. At the same moment old Carlo barked joyfully. Out I ran.
  • It was now dark; but a rumbling of wheels was audible. Hannah soon had a
  • lantern lit. The vehicle had stopped at the wicket; the driver opened
  • the door: first one well-known form, then another, stepped out. In a
  • minute I had my face under their bonnets, in contact first with Mary's
  • soft cheek, then with Diana's flowing curls. They laughed--kissed
  • me--then Hannah: patted Carlo, who was half wild with delight; asked
  • eagerly if all was well; and being assured in the affirmative, hastened
  • into the house.
  • They were stiff with their long and jolting drive from Whitcross, and
  • chilled with the frosty night air; but their pleasant countenances
  • expanded to the cheerful firelight. While the driver and Hannah brought
  • in the boxes, they demanded St. John. At this moment he advanced from
  • the parlour. They both threw their arms round his neck at once. He gave
  • each one quiet kiss, said in a low tone a few words of welcome, stood a
  • while to be talked to, and then, intimating that he supposed they would
  • soon rejoin him in the parlour, withdrew there as to a place of refuge.
  • I had lit their candles to go upstairs, but Diana had first to give
  • hospitable orders respecting the driver; this done, both followed me.
  • They were delighted with the renovation and decorations of their rooms;
  • with the new drapery, and fresh carpets, and rich tinted china vases:
  • they expressed their gratification ungrudgingly. I had the pleasure of
  • feeling that my arrangements met their wishes exactly, and that what I
  • had done added a vivid charm to their joyous return home.
  • Sweet was that evening. My cousins, full of exhilaration, were so
  • eloquent in narrative and comment, that their fluency covered St. John's
  • taciturnity: he was sincerely glad to see his sisters; but in their glow
  • of fervour and flow of joy he could not sympathise. The event of the
  • day--that is, the return of Diana and Mary--pleased him; but the
  • accompaniments of that event, the glad tumult, the garrulous glee of
  • reception irked him: I saw he wished the calmer morrow was come. In the
  • very meridian of the night's enjoyment, about an hour after tea, a rap
  • was heard at the door. Hannah entered with the intimation that "a poor
  • lad was come, at that unlikely time, to fetch Mr. Rivers to see his
  • mother, who was drawing away."
  • "Where does she live, Hannah?"
  • "Clear up at Whitcross Brow, almost four miles off, and moor and moss all
  • the way."
  • "Tell him I will go."
  • "I'm sure, sir, you had better not. It's the worst road to travel after
  • dark that can be: there's no track at all over the bog. And then it is
  • such a bitter night--the keenest wind you ever felt. You had better send
  • word, sir, that you will be there in the morning."
  • But he was already in the passage, putting on his cloak; and without one
  • objection, one murmur, he departed. It was then nine o'clock: he did not
  • return till midnight. Starved and tired enough he was: but he looked
  • happier than when he set out. He had performed an act of duty; made an
  • exertion; felt his own strength to do and deny, and was on better terms
  • with himself.
  • I am afraid the whole of the ensuing week tried his patience. It was
  • Christmas week: we took to no settled employment, but spent it in a sort
  • of merry domestic dissipation. The air of the moors, the freedom of
  • home, the dawn of prosperity, acted on Diana and Mary's spirits like some
  • life-giving elixir: they were gay from morning till noon, and from noon
  • till night. They could always talk; and their discourse, witty, pithy,
  • original, had such charms for me, that I preferred listening to, and
  • sharing in it, to doing anything else. St. John did not rebuke our
  • vivacity; but he escaped from it: he was seldom in the house; his parish
  • was large, the population scattered, and he found daily business in
  • visiting the sick and poor in its different districts.
  • One morning at breakfast, Diana, after looking a little pensive for some
  • minutes, asked him, "If his plans were yet unchanged."
  • "Unchanged and unchangeable," was the reply. And he proceeded to inform
  • us that his departure from England was now definitively fixed for the
  • ensuing year.
  • "And Rosamond Oliver?" suggested Mary, the words seeming to escape her
  • lips involuntarily: for no sooner had she uttered them, than she made a
  • gesture as if wishing to recall them. St. John had a book in his hand--it
  • was his unsocial custom to read at meals--he closed it, and looked up.
  • "Rosamond Oliver," said he, "is about to be married to Mr. Granby, one of
  • the best connected and most estimable residents in S-, grandson and heir
  • to Sir Frederic Granby: I had the intelligence from her father
  • yesterday."
  • His sisters looked at each other and at me; we all three looked at him:
  • he was serene as glass.
  • "The match must have been got up hastily," said Diana: "they cannot have
  • known each other long."
  • "But two months: they met in October at the county ball at S-. But where
  • there are no obstacles to a union, as in the present case, where the
  • connection is in every point desirable, delays are unnecessary: they will
  • be married as soon as S--- Place, which Sir Frederic gives up to them,
  • can he refitted for their reception."
  • The first time I found St. John alone after this communication, I felt
  • tempted to inquire if the event distressed him: but he seemed so little
  • to need sympathy, that, so far from venturing to offer him more, I
  • experienced some shame at the recollection of what I had already
  • hazarded. Besides, I was out of practice in talking to him: his reserve
  • was again frozen over, and my frankness was congealed beneath it. He had
  • not kept his promise of treating me like his sisters; he continually made
  • little chilling differences between us, which did not at all tend to the
  • development of cordiality: in short, now that I was acknowledged his
  • kinswoman, and lived under the same roof with him, I felt the distance
  • between us to be far greater than when he had known me only as the
  • village schoolmistress. When I remembered how far I had once been
  • admitted to his confidence, I could hardly comprehend his present
  • frigidity.
  • Such being the case, I felt not a little surprised when he raised his
  • head suddenly from the desk over which he was stooping, and said--
  • "You see, Jane, the battle is fought and the victory won."
  • Startled at being thus addressed, I did not immediately reply: after a
  • moment's hesitation I answered--
  • "But are you sure you are not in the position of those conquerors whose
  • triumphs have cost them too dear? Would not such another ruin you?"
  • "I think not; and if I were, it does not much signify; I shall never be
  • called upon to contend for such another. The event of the conflict is
  • decisive: my way is now clear; I thank God for it!" So saying, he
  • returned to his papers and his silence.
  • As our mutual happiness (_i.e._, Diana's, Mary's, and mine) settled into
  • a quieter character, and we resumed our usual habits and regular studies,
  • St. John stayed more at home: he sat with us in the same room, sometimes
  • for hours together. While Mary drew, Diana pursued a course of
  • encyclopaedic reading she had (to my awe and amazement) undertaken, and I
  • fagged away at German, he pondered a mystic lore of his own: that of some
  • Eastern tongue, the acquisition of which he thought necessary to his
  • plans.
  • Thus engaged, he appeared, sitting in his own recess, quiet and absorbed
  • enough; but that blue eye of his had a habit of leaving the outlandish-
  • looking grammar, and wandering over, and sometimes fixing upon us, his
  • fellow-students, with a curious intensity of observation: if caught, it
  • would be instantly withdrawn; yet ever and anon, it returned searchingly
  • to our table. I wondered what it meant: I wondered, too, at the punctual
  • satisfaction he never failed to exhibit on an occasion that seemed to me
  • of small moment, namely, my weekly visit to Morton school; and still more
  • was I puzzled when, if the day was unfavourable, if there was snow, or
  • rain, or high wind, and his sisters urged me not to go, he would
  • invariably make light of their solicitude, and encourage me to accomplish
  • the task without regard to the elements.
  • "Jane is not such a weakling as you would make her," he would say: "she
  • can bear a mountain blast, or a shower, or a few flakes of snow, as well
  • as any of us. Her constitution is both sound and elastic;--better
  • calculated to endure variations of climate than many more robust."
  • And when I returned, sometimes a good deal tired, and not a little
  • weather-beaten, I never dared complain, because I saw that to murmur
  • would be to vex him: on all occasions fortitude pleased him; the reverse
  • was a special annoyance.
  • One afternoon, however, I got leave to stay at home, because I really had
  • a cold. His sisters were gone to Morton in my stead: I sat reading
  • Schiller; he, deciphering his crabbed Oriental scrolls. As I exchanged a
  • translation for an exercise, I happened to look his way: there I found
  • myself under the influence of the ever-watchful blue eye. How long it
  • had been searching me through and through, and over and over, I cannot
  • tell: so keen was it, and yet so cold, I felt for the moment
  • superstitious--as if I were sitting in the room with something uncanny.
  • "Jane, what are you doing?"
  • "Learning German."
  • "I want you to give up German and learn Hindostanee."
  • "You are not in earnest?"
  • "In such earnest that I must have it so: and I will tell you why."
  • He then went on to explain that Hindostanee was the language he was
  • himself at present studying; that, as he advanced, he was apt to forget
  • the commencement; that it would assist him greatly to have a pupil with
  • whom he might again and again go over the elements, and so fix them
  • thoroughly in his mind; that his choice had hovered for some time between
  • me and his sisters; but that he had fixed on me because he saw I could
  • sit at a task the longest of the three. Would I do him this favour? I
  • should not, perhaps, have to make the sacrifice long, as it wanted now
  • barely three months to his departure.
  • St. John was not a man to be lightly refused: you felt that every
  • impression made on him, either for pain or pleasure, was deep-graved and
  • permanent. I consented. When Diana and Mary returned, the former found
  • her scholar transferred from her to her brother: she laughed, and both
  • she and Mary agreed that St. John should never have persuaded them to
  • such a step. He answered quietly--
  • "I know it."
  • I found him a very patient, very forbearing, and yet an exacting master:
  • he expected me to do a great deal; and when I fulfilled his expectations,
  • he, in his own way, fully testified his approbation. By degrees, he
  • acquired a certain influence over me that took away my liberty of mind:
  • his praise and notice were more restraining than his indifference. I
  • could no longer talk or laugh freely when he was by, because a tiresomely
  • importunate instinct reminded me that vivacity (at least in me) was
  • distasteful to him. I was so fully aware that only serious moods and
  • occupations were acceptable, that in his presence every effort to sustain
  • or follow any other became vain: I fell under a freezing spell. When he
  • said "go," I went; "come," I came; "do this," I did it. But I did not
  • love my servitude: I wished, many a time, he had continued to neglect me.
  • One evening when, at bedtime, his sisters and I stood round him, bidding
  • him good-night, he kissed each of them, as was his custom; and, as was
  • equally his custom, he gave me his hand. Diana, who chanced to be in a
  • frolicsome humour (_she_ was not painfully controlled by his will; for
  • hers, in another way, was as strong), exclaimed--
  • "St. John! you used to call Jane your third sister, but you don't treat
  • her as such: you should kiss her too."
  • She pushed me towards him. I thought Diana very provoking, and felt
  • uncomfortably confused; and while I was thus thinking and feeling, St.
  • John bent his head; his Greek face was brought to a level with mine, his
  • eyes questioned my eyes piercingly--he kissed me. There are no such
  • things as marble kisses or ice kisses, or I should say my ecclesiastical
  • cousin's salute belonged to one of these classes; but there may be
  • experiment kisses, and his was an experiment kiss. When given, he viewed
  • me to learn the result; it was not striking: I am sure I did not blush;
  • perhaps I might have turned a little pale, for I felt as if this kiss
  • were a seal affixed to my fetters. He never omitted the ceremony
  • afterwards, and the gravity and quiescence with which I underwent it,
  • seemed to invest it for him with a certain charm.
  • As for me, I daily wished more to please him; but to do so, I felt daily
  • more and more that I must disown half my nature, stifle half my
  • faculties, wrest my tastes from their original bent, force myself to the
  • adoption of pursuits for which I had no natural vocation. He wanted to
  • train me to an elevation I could never reach; it racked me hourly to
  • aspire to the standard he uplifted. The thing was as impossible as to
  • mould my irregular features to his correct and classic pattern, to give
  • to my changeable green eyes the sea-blue tint and solemn lustre of his
  • own.
  • Not his ascendancy alone, however, held me in thrall at present. Of late
  • it had been easy enough for me to look sad: a cankering evil sat at my
  • heart and drained my happiness at its source--the evil of suspense.
  • Perhaps you think I had forgotten Mr. Rochester, reader, amidst these
  • changes of place and fortune. Not for a moment. His idea was still with
  • me, because it was not a vapour sunshine could disperse, nor a
  • sand-traced effigy storms could wash away; it was a name graven on a
  • tablet, fated to last as long as the marble it inscribed. The craving to
  • know what had become of him followed me everywhere; when I was at Morton,
  • I re-entered my cottage every evening to think of that; and now at Moor
  • House, I sought my bedroom each night to brood over it.
  • In the course of my necessary correspondence with Mr. Briggs about the
  • will, I had inquired if he knew anything of Mr. Rochester's present
  • residence and state of health; but, as St. John had conjectured, he was
  • quite ignorant of all concerning him. I then wrote to Mrs. Fairfax,
  • entreating information on the subject. I had calculated with certainty
  • on this step answering my end: I felt sure it would elicit an early
  • answer. I was astonished when a fortnight passed without reply; but when
  • two months wore away, and day after day the post arrived and brought
  • nothing for me, I fell a prey to the keenest anxiety.
  • I wrote again: there was a chance of my first letter having missed.
  • Renewed hope followed renewed effort: it shone like the former for some
  • weeks, then, like it, it faded, flickered: not a line, not a word reached
  • me. When half a year wasted in vain expectancy, my hope died out, and
  • then I felt dark indeed.
  • A fine spring shone round me, which I could not enjoy. Summer
  • approached; Diana tried to cheer me: she said I looked ill, and wished to
  • accompany me to the sea-side. This St. John opposed; he said I did not
  • want dissipation, I wanted employment; my present life was too
  • purposeless, I required an aim; and, I suppose, by way of supplying
  • deficiencies, he prolonged still further my lessons in Hindostanee, and
  • grew more urgent in requiring their accomplishment: and I, like a fool,
  • never thought of resisting him--I could not resist him.
  • One day I had come to my studies in lower spirits than usual; the ebb was
  • occasioned by a poignantly felt disappointment. Hannah had told me in
  • the morning there was a letter for me, and when I went down to take it,
  • almost certain that the long-looked for tidings were vouchsafed me at
  • last, I found only an unimportant note from Mr. Briggs on business. The
  • bitter check had wrung from me some tears; and now, as I sat poring over
  • the crabbed characters and flourishing tropes of an Indian scribe, my
  • eyes filled again.
  • St. John called me to his side to read; in attempting to do this my voice
  • failed me: words were lost in sobs. He and I were the only occupants of
  • the parlour: Diana was practising her music in the drawing-room, Mary was
  • gardening--it was a very fine May day, clear, sunny, and breezy. My
  • companion expressed no surprise at this emotion, nor did he question me
  • as to its cause; he only said--
  • "We will wait a few minutes, Jane, till you are more composed." And
  • while I smothered the paroxysm with all haste, he sat calm and patient,
  • leaning on his desk, and looking like a physician watching with the eye
  • of science an expected and fully understood crisis in a patient's malady.
  • Having stifled my sobs, wiped my eyes, and muttered something about not
  • being very well that morning, I resumed my task, and succeeded in
  • completing it. St. John put away my books and his, locked his desk, and
  • said--
  • "Now, Jane, you shall take a walk; and with me."
  • "I will call Diana and Mary."
  • "No; I want only one companion this morning, and that must be you. Put
  • on your things; go out by the kitchen-door: take the road towards the
  • head of Marsh Glen: I will join you in a moment."
  • I know no medium: I never in my life have known any medium in my dealings
  • with positive, hard characters, antagonistic to my own, between absolute
  • submission and determined revolt. I have always faithfully observed the
  • one, up to the very moment of bursting, sometimes with volcanic
  • vehemence, into the other; and as neither present circumstances
  • warranted, nor my present mood inclined me to mutiny, I observed careful
  • obedience to St. John's directions; and in ten minutes I was treading the
  • wild track of the glen, side by side with him.
  • The breeze was from the west: it came over the hills, sweet with scents
  • of heath and rush; the sky was of stainless blue; the stream descending
  • the ravine, swelled with past spring rains, poured along plentiful and
  • clear, catching golden gleams from the sun, and sapphire tints from the
  • firmament. As we advanced and left the track, we trod a soft turf, mossy
  • fine and emerald green, minutely enamelled with a tiny white flower, and
  • spangled with a star-like yellow blossom: the hills, meantime, shut us
  • quite in; for the glen, towards its head, wound to their very core.
  • "Let us rest here," said St. John, as we reached the first stragglers of
  • a battalion of rocks, guarding a sort of pass, beyond which the beck
  • rushed down a waterfall; and where, still a little farther, the mountain
  • shook off turf and flower, had only heath for raiment and crag for
  • gem--where it exaggerated the wild to the savage, and exchanged the fresh
  • for the frowning--where it guarded the forlorn hope of solitude, and a
  • last refuge for silence.
  • I took a seat: St. John stood near me. He looked up the pass and down
  • the hollow; his glance wandered away with the stream, and returned to
  • traverse the unclouded heaven which coloured it: he removed his hat, let
  • the breeze stir his hair and kiss his brow. He seemed in communion with
  • the genius of the haunt: with his eye he bade farewell to something.
  • "And I shall see it again," he said aloud, "in dreams when I sleep by the
  • Ganges: and again in a more remote hour--when another slumber overcomes
  • me--on the shore of a darker stream!"
  • Strange words of a strange love! An austere patriot's passion for his
  • fatherland! He sat down; for half-an-hour we never spoke; neither he to
  • me nor I to him: that interval past, he recommenced--
  • "Jane, I go in six weeks; I have taken my berth in an East Indiaman which
  • sails on the 20th of June."
  • "God will protect you; for you have undertaken His work," I answered.
  • "Yes," said he, "there is my glory and joy. I am the servant of an
  • infallible Master. I am not going out under human guidance, subject to
  • the defective laws and erring control of my feeble fellow-worms: my king,
  • my lawgiver, my captain, is the All-perfect. It seems strange to me that
  • all round me do not burn to enlist under the same banner,--to join in the
  • same enterprise."
  • "All have not your powers, and it would be folly for the feeble to wish
  • to march with the strong."
  • "I do not speak to the feeble, or think of them: I address only such as
  • are worthy of the work, and competent to accomplish it."
  • "Those are few in number, and difficult to discover."
  • "You say truly; but when found, it is right to stir them up--to urge and
  • exhort them to the effort--to show them what their gifts are, and why
  • they were given--to speak Heaven's message in their ear,--to offer them,
  • direct from God, a place in the ranks of His chosen."
  • "If they are really qualified for the task, will not their own hearts be
  • the first to inform them of it?"
  • I felt as if an awful charm was framing round and gathering over me: I
  • trembled to hear some fatal word spoken which would at once declare and
  • rivet the spell.
  • "And what does _your_ heart say?" demanded St. John.
  • "My heart is mute,--my heart is mute," I answered, struck and thrilled.
  • "Then I must speak for it," continued the deep, relentless voice. "Jane,
  • come with me to India: come as my helpmeet and fellow-labourer."
  • The glen and sky spun round: the hills heaved! It was as if I had heard
  • a summons from Heaven--as if a visionary messenger, like him of
  • Macedonia, had enounced, "Come over and help us!" But I was no
  • apostle,--I could not behold the herald,--I could not receive his call.
  • "Oh, St. John!" I cried, "have some mercy!"
  • I appealed to one who, in the discharge of what he believed his duty,
  • knew neither mercy nor remorse. He continued--
  • "God and nature intended you for a missionary's wife. It is not
  • personal, but mental endowments they have given you: you are formed for
  • labour, not for love. A missionary's wife you must--shall be. You shall
  • be mine: I claim you--not for my pleasure, but for my Sovereign's
  • service."
  • "I am not fit for it: I have no vocation," I said.
  • He had calculated on these first objections: he was not irritated by
  • them. Indeed, as he leaned back against the crag behind him, folded his
  • arms on his chest, and fixed his countenance, I saw he was prepared for a
  • long and trying opposition, and had taken in a stock of patience to last
  • him to its close--resolved, however, that that close should be conquest
  • for him.
  • "Humility, Jane," said he, "is the groundwork of Christian virtues: you
  • say right that you are not fit for the work. Who is fit for it? Or who,
  • that ever was truly called, believed himself worthy of the summons? I,
  • for instance, am but dust and ashes. With St. Paul, I acknowledge myself
  • the chiefest of sinners; but I do not suffer this sense of my personal
  • vileness to daunt me. I know my Leader: that He is just as well as
  • mighty; and while He has chosen a feeble instrument to perform a great
  • task, He will, from the boundless stores of His providence, supply the
  • inadequacy of the means to the end. Think like me, Jane--trust like me.
  • It is the Rock of Ages I ask you to lean on: do not doubt but it will
  • bear the weight of your human weakness."
  • "I do not understand a missionary life: I have never studied missionary
  • labours."
  • "There I, humble as I am, can give you the aid you want: I can set you
  • your task from hour to hour; stand by you always; help you from moment to
  • moment. This I could do in the beginning: soon (for I know your powers)
  • you would be as strong and apt as myself, and would not require my help."
  • "But my powers--where are they for this undertaking? I do not feel them.
  • Nothing speaks or stirs in me while you talk. I am sensible of no light
  • kindling--no life quickening--no voice counselling or cheering. Oh, I
  • wish I could make you see how much my mind is at this moment like a
  • rayless dungeon, with one shrinking fear fettered in its depths--the fear
  • of being persuaded by you to attempt what I cannot accomplish!"
  • "I have an answer for you--hear it. I have watched you ever since we
  • first met: I have made you my study for ten months. I have proved you in
  • that time by sundry tests: and what have I seen and elicited? In the
  • village school I found you could perform well, punctually, uprightly,
  • labour uncongenial to your habits and inclinations; I saw you could
  • perform it with capacity and tact: you could win while you controlled. In
  • the calm with which you learnt you had become suddenly rich, I read a
  • mind clear of the vice of Demas:--lucre had no undue power over you. In
  • the resolute readiness with which you cut your wealth into four shares,
  • keeping but one to yourself, and relinquishing the three others to the
  • claim of abstract justice, I recognised a soul that revelled in the flame
  • and excitement of sacrifice. In the tractability with which, at my wish,
  • you forsook a study in which you were interested, and adopted another
  • because it interested me; in the untiring assiduity with which you have
  • since persevered in it--in the unflagging energy and unshaken temper with
  • which you have met its difficulties--I acknowledge the complement of the
  • qualities I seek. Jane, you are docile, diligent, disinterested,
  • faithful, constant, and courageous; very gentle, and very heroic: cease
  • to mistrust yourself--I can trust you unreservedly. As a conductress of
  • Indian schools, and a helper amongst Indian women, your assistance will
  • be to me invaluable."
  • My iron shroud contracted round me; persuasion advanced with slow sure
  • step. Shut my eyes as I would, these last words of his succeeded in
  • making the way, which had seemed blocked up, comparatively clear. My
  • work, which had appeared so vague, so hopelessly diffuse, condensed
  • itself as he proceeded, and assumed a definite form under his shaping
  • hand. He waited for an answer. I demanded a quarter of an hour to
  • think, before I again hazarded a reply.
  • "Very willingly," he rejoined; and rising, he strode a little distance up
  • the pass, threw himself down on a swell of heath, and there lay still.
  • {He threw himself down on a swell of heath, and there lay still:
  • p389.jpg}
  • "I _can_ do what he wants me to do: I am forced to see and acknowledge
  • that," I meditated,--"that is, if life be spared me. But I feel mine is
  • not the existence to be long protracted under an Indian sun. What then?
  • He does not care for that: when my time came to die, he would resign me,
  • in all serenity and sanctity, to the God who gave me. The case is very
  • plain before me. In leaving England, I should leave a loved but empty
  • land--Mr. Rochester is not there; and if he were, what is, what can that
  • ever be to me? My business is to live without him now: nothing so
  • absurd, so weak as to drag on from day to day, as if I were waiting some
  • impossible change in circumstances, which might reunite me to him. Of
  • course (as St. John once said) I must seek another interest in life to
  • replace the one lost: is not the occupation he now offers me truly the
  • most glorious man can adopt or God assign? Is it not, by its noble cares
  • and sublime results, the one best calculated to fill the void left by
  • uptorn affections and demolished hopes? I believe I must say, Yes--and
  • yet I shudder. Alas! If I join St. John, I abandon half myself: if I go
  • to India, I go to premature death. And how will the interval between
  • leaving England for India, and India for the grave, be filled? Oh, I
  • know well! That, too, is very clear to my vision. By straining to
  • satisfy St. John till my sinews ache, I _shall_ satisfy him--to the
  • finest central point and farthest outward circle of his expectations. If
  • I _do_ go with him--if I _do_ make the sacrifice he urges, I will make it
  • absolutely: I will throw all on the altar--heart, vitals, the entire
  • victim. He will never love me; but he shall approve me; I will show him
  • energies he has not yet seen, resources he has never suspected. Yes, I
  • can work as hard as he can, and with as little grudging.
  • "Consent, then, to his demand is possible: but for one item--one dreadful
  • item. It is--that he asks me to be his wife, and has no more of a
  • husband's heart for me than that frowning giant of a rock, down which the
  • stream is foaming in yonder gorge. He prizes me as a soldier would a
  • good weapon; and that is all. Unmarried to him, this would never grieve
  • me; but can I let him complete his calculations--coolly put into practice
  • his plans--go through the wedding ceremony? Can I receive from him the
  • bridal ring, endure all the forms of love (which I doubt not he would
  • scrupulously observe) and know that the spirit was quite absent? Can I
  • bear the consciousness that every endearment he bestows is a sacrifice
  • made on principle? No: such a martyrdom would be monstrous. I will
  • never undergo it. As his sister, I might accompany him--not as his wife:
  • I will tell him so."
  • I looked towards the knoll: there he lay, still as a prostrate column;
  • his face turned to me: his eye beaming watchful and keen. He started to
  • his feet and approached me.
  • "I am ready to go to India, if I may go free."
  • "Your answer requires a commentary," he said; "it is not clear."
  • "You have hitherto been my adopted brother--I, your adopted sister: let
  • us continue as such: you and I had better not marry."
  • He shook his head. "Adopted fraternity will not do in this case. If you
  • were my real sister it would be different: I should take you, and seek no
  • wife. But as it is, either our union must be consecrated and sealed by
  • marriage, or it cannot exist: practical obstacles oppose themselves to
  • any other plan. Do you not see it, Jane? Consider a moment--your strong
  • sense will guide you."
  • I did consider; and still my sense, such as it was, directed me only to
  • the fact that we did not love each other as man and wife should: and
  • therefore it inferred we ought not to marry. I said so. "St. John," I
  • returned, "I regard you as a brother--you, me as a sister: so let us
  • continue."
  • "We cannot--we cannot," he answered, with short, sharp determination: "it
  • would not do. You have said you will go with me to India: remember--you
  • have said that."
  • "Conditionally."
  • "Well--well. To the main point--the departure with me from England, the
  • co-operation with me in my future labours--you do not object. You have
  • already as good as put your hand to the plough: you are too consistent to
  • withdraw it. You have but one end to keep in view--how the work you have
  • undertaken can best be done. Simplify your complicated interests,
  • feelings, thoughts, wishes, aims; merge all considerations in one
  • purpose: that of fulfilling with effect--with power--the mission of your
  • great Master. To do so, you must have a coadjutor: not a brother--that
  • is a loose tie--but a husband. I, too, do not want a sister: a sister
  • might any day be taken from me. I want a wife: the sole helpmeet I can
  • influence efficiently in life, and retain absolutely till death."
  • I shuddered as he spoke: I felt his influence in my marrow--his hold on
  • my limbs.
  • "Seek one elsewhere than in me, St. John: seek one fitted to you."
  • "One fitted to my purpose, you mean--fitted to my vocation. Again I tell
  • you it is not the insignificant private individual--the mere man, with
  • the man's selfish senses--I wish to mate: it is the missionary."
  • "And I will give the missionary my energies--it is all he wants--but not
  • myself: that would be only adding the husk and shell to the kernel. For
  • them he has no use: I retain them."
  • "You cannot--you ought not. Do you think God will be satisfied with half
  • an oblation? Will He accept a mutilated sacrifice? It is the cause of
  • God I advocate: it is under His standard I enlist you. I cannot accept
  • on His behalf a divided allegiance: it must be entire."
  • "Oh! I will give my heart to God," I said. "_You_ do not want it."
  • I will not swear, reader, that there was not something of repressed
  • sarcasm both in the tone in which I uttered this sentence, and in the
  • feeling that accompanied it. I had silently feared St. John till now,
  • because I had not understood him. He had held me in awe, because he had
  • held me in doubt. How much of him was saint, how much mortal, I could
  • not heretofore tell: but revelations were being made in this conference:
  • the analysis of his nature was proceeding before my eyes. I saw his
  • fallibilities: I comprehended them. I understood that, sitting there
  • where I did, on the bank of heath, and with that handsome form before me,
  • I sat at the feet of a man, caring as I. The veil fell from his hardness
  • and despotism. Having felt in him the presence of these qualities, I
  • felt his imperfection and took courage. I was with an equal--one with
  • whom I might argue--one whom, if I saw good, I might resist.
  • He was silent after I had uttered the last sentence, and I presently
  • risked an upward glance at his countenance.
  • His eye, bent on me, expressed at once stern surprise and keen inquiry.
  • "Is she sarcastic, and sarcastic to _me_!" it seemed to say. "What does
  • this signify?"
  • "Do not let us forget that this is a solemn matter," he said ere long;
  • "one of which we may neither think nor talk lightly without sin. I
  • trust, Jane, you are in earnest when you say you will serve your heart to
  • God: it is all I want. Once wrench your heart from man, and fix it on
  • your Maker, the advancement of that Maker's spiritual kingdom on earth
  • will be your chief delight and endeavour; you will be ready to do at once
  • whatever furthers that end. You will see what impetus would be given to
  • your efforts and mine by our physical and mental union in marriage: the
  • only union that gives a character of permanent conformity to the
  • destinies and designs of human beings; and, passing over all minor
  • caprices--all trivial difficulties and delicacies of feeling--all scruple
  • about the degree, kind, strength or tenderness of mere personal
  • inclination--you will hasten to enter into that union at once."
  • "Shall I?" I said briefly; and I looked at his features, beautiful in
  • their harmony, but strangely formidable in their still severity; at his
  • brow, commanding but not open; at his eyes, bright and deep and
  • searching, but never soft; at his tall imposing figure; and fancied
  • myself in idea _his wife_. Oh! it would never do! As his curate, his
  • comrade, all would be right: I would cross oceans with him in that
  • capacity; toil under Eastern suns, in Asian deserts with him in that
  • office; admire and emulate his courage and devotion and vigour;
  • accommodate quietly to his masterhood; smile undisturbed at his
  • ineradicable ambition; discriminate the Christian from the man:
  • profoundly esteem the one, and freely forgive the other. I should suffer
  • often, no doubt, attached to him only in this capacity: my body would be
  • under rather a stringent yoke, but my heart and mind would be free. I
  • should still have my unblighted self to turn to: my natural unenslaved
  • feelings with which to communicate in moments of loneliness. There would
  • be recesses in my mind which would be only mine, to which he never came,
  • and sentiments growing there fresh and sheltered which his austerity
  • could never blight, nor his measured warrior-march trample down: but as
  • his wife--at his side always, and always restrained, and always
  • checked--forced to keep the fire of my nature continually low, to compel
  • it to burn inwardly and never utter a cry, though the imprisoned flame
  • consumed vital after vital--_this_ would be unendurable.
  • "St. John!" I exclaimed, when I had got so far in my meditation.
  • "Well?" he answered icily.
  • "I repeat I freely consent to go with you as your fellow-missionary, but
  • not as your wife; I cannot marry you and become part of you."
  • "A part of me you must become," he answered steadily; "otherwise the
  • whole bargain is void. How can I, a man not yet thirty, take out with me
  • to India a girl of nineteen, unless she be married to me? How can we be
  • for ever together--sometimes in solitudes, sometimes amidst savage
  • tribes--and unwed?"
  • "Very well," I said shortly; "under the circumstances, quite as well as
  • if I were either your real sister, or a man and a clergyman like
  • yourself."
  • "It is known that you are not my sister; I cannot introduce you as such:
  • to attempt it would be to fasten injurious suspicions on us both. And
  • for the rest, though you have a man's vigorous brain, you have a woman's
  • heart and--it would not do."
  • "It would do," I affirmed with some disdain, "perfectly well. I have a
  • woman's heart, but not where you are concerned; for you I have only a
  • comrade's constancy; a fellow-soldier's frankness, fidelity, fraternity,
  • if you like; a neophyte's respect and submission to his hierophant:
  • nothing more--don't fear."
  • "It is what I want," he said, speaking to himself; "it is just what I
  • want. And there are obstacles in the way: they must be hewn down. Jane,
  • you would not repent marrying me--be certain of that; we _must_ be
  • married. I repeat it: there is no other way; and undoubtedly enough of
  • love would follow upon marriage to render the union right even in your
  • eyes."
  • "I scorn your idea of love," I could not help saying, as I rose up and
  • stood before him, leaning my back against the rock. "I scorn the
  • counterfeit sentiment you offer: yes, St. John, and I scorn you when you
  • offer it."
  • He looked at me fixedly, compressing his well-cut lips while he did so.
  • Whether he was incensed or surprised, or what, it was not easy to tell:
  • he could command his countenance thoroughly.
  • "I scarcely expected to hear that expression from you," he said: "I think
  • I have done and uttered nothing to deserve scorn."
  • I was touched by his gentle tone, and overawed by his high, calm mien.
  • "Forgive me the words, St. John; but it is your own fault that I have
  • been roused to speak so unguardedly. You have introduced a topic on
  • which our natures are at variance--a topic we should never discuss: the
  • very name of love is an apple of discord between us. If the reality were
  • required, what should we do? How should we feel? My dear cousin,
  • abandon your scheme of marriage--forget it."
  • "No," said he; "it is a long-cherished scheme, and the only one which can
  • secure my great end: but I shall urge you no further at present.
  • To-morrow, I leave home for Cambridge: I have many friends there to whom
  • I should wish to say farewell. I shall be absent a fortnight--take that
  • space of time to consider my offer: and do not forget that if you reject
  • it, it is not me you deny, but God. Through my means, He opens to you a
  • noble career; as my wife only can you enter upon it. Refuse to be my
  • wife, and you limit yourself for ever to a track of selfish ease and
  • barren obscurity. Tremble lest in that case you should be numbered with
  • those who have denied the faith, and are worse than infidels!"
  • He had done. Turning from me, he once more
  • "Looked to river, looked to hill."
  • But this time his feelings were all pent in his heart: I was not worthy
  • to hear them uttered. As I walked by his side homeward, I read well in
  • his iron silence all he felt towards me: the disappointment of an austere
  • and despotic nature, which has met resistance where it expected
  • submission--the disapprobation of a cool, inflexible judgment, which has
  • detected in another feelings and views in which it has no power to
  • sympathise: in short, as a man, he would have wished to coerce me into
  • obedience: it was only as a sincere Christian he bore so patiently with
  • my perversity, and allowed so long a space for reflection and repentance.
  • That night, after he had kissed his sisters, he thought proper to forget
  • even to shake hands with me, but left the room in silence. I--who,
  • though I had no love, had much friendship for him--was hurt by the marked
  • omission: so much hurt that tears started to my eyes.
  • "I see you and St. John have been quarrelling, Jane," said Diana, "during
  • your walk on the moor. But go after him; he is now lingering in the
  • passage expecting you--he will make it up."
  • I have not much pride under such circumstances: I would always rather be
  • happy than dignified; and I ran after him--he stood at the foot of the
  • stairs.
  • "Good-night, St. John," said I.
  • "Good-night, Jane," he replied calmly.
  • "Then shake hands," I added.
  • What a cold, loose touch, he impressed on my fingers! He was deeply
  • displeased by what had occurred that day; cordiality would not warm, nor
  • tears move him. No happy reconciliation was to be had with him--no
  • cheering smile or generous word: but still the Christian was patient and
  • placid; and when I asked him if he forgave me, he answered that he was
  • not in the habit of cherishing the remembrance of vexation; that he had
  • nothing to forgive, not having been offended.
  • And with that answer he left me. I would much rather he had knocked me
  • down.
  • CHAPTER XXXV
  • He did not leave for Cambridge the next day, as he had said he would. He
  • deferred his departure a whole week, and during that time he made me feel
  • what severe punishment a good yet stern, a conscientious yet implacable
  • man can inflict on one who has offended him. Without one overt act of
  • hostility, one upbraiding word, he contrived to impress me momently with
  • the conviction that I was put beyond the pale of his favour.
  • Not that St. John harboured a spirit of unchristian vindictiveness--not
  • that he would have injured a hair of my head, if it had been fully in his
  • power to do so. Both by nature and principle, he was superior to the
  • mean gratification of vengeance: he had forgiven me for saying I scorned
  • him and his love, but he had not forgotten the words; and as long as he
  • and I lived he never would forget them. I saw by his look, when he
  • turned to me, that they were always written on the air between me and
  • him; whenever I spoke, they sounded in my voice to his ear, and their
  • echo toned every answer he gave me.
  • He did not abstain from conversing with me: he even called me as usual
  • each morning to join him at his desk; and I fear the corrupt man within
  • him had a pleasure unimparted to, and unshared by, the pure Christian, in
  • evincing with what skill he could, while acting and speaking apparently
  • just as usual, extract from every deed and every phrase the spirit of
  • interest and approval which had formerly communicated a certain austere
  • charm to his language and manner. To me, he was in reality become no
  • longer flesh, but marble; his eye was a cold, bright, blue gem; his
  • tongue a speaking instrument--nothing more.
  • All this was torture to me--refined, lingering torture. It kept up a
  • slow fire of indignation and a trembling trouble of grief, which harassed
  • and crushed me altogether. I felt how--if I were his wife, this good
  • man, pure as the deep sunless source, could soon kill me, without drawing
  • from my veins a single drop of blood, or receiving on his own crystal
  • conscience the faintest stain of crime. Especially I felt this when I
  • made any attempt to propitiate him. No ruth met my ruth. _He_
  • experienced no suffering from estrangement--no yearning after
  • reconciliation; and though, more than once, my fast falling tears
  • blistered the page over which we both bent, they produced no more effect
  • on him than if his heart had been really a matter of stone or metal. To
  • his sisters, meantime, he was somewhat kinder than usual: as if afraid
  • that mere coldness would not sufficiently convince me how completely I
  • was banished and banned, he added the force of contrast; and this I am
  • sure he did not by force, but on principle.
  • The night before he left home, happening to see him walking in the garden
  • about sunset, and remembering, as I looked at him, that this man,
  • alienated as he now was, had once saved my life, and that we were near
  • relations, I was moved to make a last attempt to regain his friendship. I
  • went out and approached him as he stood leaning over the little gate; I
  • spoke to the point at once.
  • "St. John, I am unhappy because you are still angry with me. Let us be
  • friends."
  • "I hope we are friends," was the unmoved reply; while he still watched
  • the rising of the moon, which he had been contemplating as I approached.
  • "No, St. John, we are not friends as we were. You know that."
  • "Are we not? That is wrong. For my part, I wish you no ill and all
  • good."
  • "I believe you, St. John; for I am sure you are incapable of wishing any
  • one ill; but, as I am your kinswoman, I should desire somewhat more of
  • affection than that sort of general philanthropy you extend to mere
  • strangers."
  • "Of course," he said. "Your wish is reasonable, and I am far from
  • regarding you as a stranger."
  • This, spoken in a cool, tranquil tone, was mortifying and baffling
  • enough. Had I attended to the suggestions of pride and ire, I should
  • immediately have left him; but something worked within me more strongly
  • than those feelings could. I deeply venerated my cousin's talent and
  • principle. His friendship was of value to me: to lose it tried me
  • severely. I would not so soon relinquish the attempt to reconquer it.
  • "Must we part in this way, St. John? And when you go to India, will you
  • leave me so, without a kinder word than you have yet spoken?"
  • He now turned quite from the moon and faced me.
  • "When I go to India, Jane, will I leave you! What! do you not go to
  • India?"
  • "You said I could not unless I married you."
  • "And you will not marry me! You adhere to that resolution?"
  • Reader, do you know, as I do, what terror those cold people can put into
  • the ice of their questions? How much of the fall of the avalanche is in
  • their anger? of the breaking up of the frozen sea in their displeasure?
  • "No. St. John, I will not marry you. I adhere to my resolution."
  • The avalanche had shaken and slid a little forward, but it did not yet
  • crash down.
  • "Once more, why this refusal?" he asked.
  • "Formerly," I answered, "because you did not love me; now, I reply,
  • because you almost hate me. If I were to marry you, you would kill me.
  • You are killing me now."
  • His lips and cheeks turned white--quite white.
  • "_I should kill you_--_I am killing you_? Your words are such as ought
  • not to be used: violent, unfeminine, and untrue. They betray an
  • unfortunate state of mind: they merit severe reproof: they would seem
  • inexcusable, but that it is the duty of man to forgive his fellow even
  • until seventy-and-seven times."
  • I had finished the business now. While earnestly wishing to erase from
  • his mind the trace of my former offence, I had stamped on that tenacious
  • surface another and far deeper impression, I had burnt it in.
  • "Now you will indeed hate me," I said. "It is useless to attempt to
  • conciliate you: I see I have made an eternal enemy of you."
  • A fresh wrong did these words inflict: the worse, because they touched on
  • the truth. That bloodless lip quivered to a temporary spasm. I knew the
  • steely ire I had whetted. I was heart-wrung.
  • "You utterly misinterpret my words," I said, at once seizing his hand: "I
  • have no intention to grieve or pain you--indeed, I have not."
  • Most bitterly he smiled--most decidedly he withdrew his hand from mine.
  • "And now you recall your promise, and will not go to India at all, I
  • presume?" said he, after a considerable pause.
  • "Yes, I will, as your assistant," I answered.
  • A very long silence succeeded. What struggle there was in him between
  • Nature and Grace in this interval, I cannot tell: only singular gleams
  • scintillated in his eyes, and strange shadows passed over his face. He
  • spoke at last.
  • "I before proved to you the absurdity of a single woman of your age
  • proposing to accompany abroad a single man of mine. I proved it to you
  • in such terms as, I should have thought, would have prevented your ever
  • again alluding to the plan. That you have done so, I regret--for your
  • sake."
  • I interrupted him. Anything like a tangible reproach gave me courage at
  • once. "Keep to common sense, St. John: you are verging on nonsense. You
  • pretend to be shocked by what I have said. You are not really shocked:
  • for, with your superior mind, you cannot be either so dull or so
  • conceited as to misunderstand my meaning. I say again, I will be your
  • curate, if you like, but never your wife."
  • Again he turned lividly pale; but, as before, controlled his passion
  • perfectly. He answered emphatically but calmly--
  • "A female curate, who is not my wife, would never suit me. With me,
  • then, it seems, you cannot go: but if you are sincere in your offer, I
  • will, while in town, speak to a married missionary, whose wife needs a
  • coadjutor. Your own fortune will make you independent of the Society's
  • aid; and thus you may still be spared the dishonour of breaking your
  • promise and deserting the band you engaged to join."
  • Now I never had, as the reader knows, either given any formal promise or
  • entered into any engagement; and this language was all much too hard and
  • much too despotic for the occasion. I replied--
  • "There is no dishonour, no breach of promise, no desertion in the case. I
  • am not under the slightest obligation to go to India, especially with
  • strangers. With you I would have ventured much, because I admire,
  • confide in, and, as a sister, I love you; but I am convinced that, go
  • when and with whom I would, I should not live long in that climate."
  • "Ah! you are afraid of yourself," he said, curling his lip.
  • "I am. God did not give me my life to throw away; and to do as you wish
  • me would, I begin to think, be almost equivalent to committing suicide.
  • Moreover, before I definitively resolve on quitting England, I will know
  • for certain whether I cannot be of greater use by remaining in it than by
  • leaving it."
  • "What do you mean?"
  • "It would be fruitless to attempt to explain; but there is a point on
  • which I have long endured painful doubt, and I can go nowhere till by
  • some means that doubt is removed."
  • "I know where your heart turns and to what it clings. The interest you
  • cherish is lawless and unconsecrated. Long since you ought to have
  • crushed it: now you should blush to allude to it. You think of Mr.
  • Rochester?"
  • It was true. I confessed it by silence.
  • "Are you going to seek Mr. Rochester?"
  • "I must find out what is become of him."
  • "It remains for me, then," he said, "to remember you in my prayers, and
  • to entreat God for you, in all earnestness, that you may not indeed
  • become a castaway. I had thought I recognised in you one of the chosen.
  • But God sees not as man sees: _His_ will be done--"
  • He opened the gate, passed through it, and strayed away down the glen. He
  • was soon out of sight.
  • On re-entering the parlour, I found Diana standing at the window, looking
  • very thoughtful. Diana was a great deal taller than I: she put her hand
  • on my shoulder, and, stooping, examined my face.
  • "Jane," she said, "you are always agitated and pale now. I am sure there
  • is something the matter. Tell me what business St. John and you have on
  • hands. I have watched you this half hour from the window; you must
  • forgive my being such a spy, but for a long time I have fancied I hardly
  • know what. St. John is a strange being--"
  • She paused--I did not speak: soon she resumed--
  • "That brother of mine cherishes peculiar views of some sort respecting
  • you, I am sure: he has long distinguished you by a notice and interest he
  • never showed to any one else--to what end? I wish he loved you--does he,
  • Jane?"
  • I put her cool hand to my hot forehead; "No, Die, not one whit."
  • "Then why does he follow you so with his eyes, and get you so frequently
  • alone with him, and keep you so continually at his side? Mary and I had
  • both concluded he wished you to marry him."
  • "He does--he has asked me to be his wife."
  • Diana clapped her hands. "That is just what we hoped and thought! And
  • you will marry him, Jane, won't you? And then he will stay in England."
  • "Far from that, Diana; his sole idea in proposing to me is to procure a
  • fitting fellow-labourer in his Indian toils."
  • "What! He wishes you to go to India?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Madness!" she exclaimed. "You would not live three months there, I am
  • certain. You never shall go: you have not consented, have you, Jane?"
  • "I have refused to marry him--"
  • "And have consequently displeased him?" she suggested.
  • "Deeply: he will never forgive me, I fear: yet I offered to accompany him
  • as his sister."
  • "It was frantic folly to do so, Jane. Think of the task you
  • undertook--one of incessant fatigue, where fatigue kills even the strong,
  • and you are weak. St. John--you know him--would urge you to
  • impossibilities: with him there would be no permission to rest during the
  • hot hours; and unfortunately, I have noticed, whatever he exacts, you
  • force yourself to perform. I am astonished you found courage to refuse
  • his hand. You do not love him then, Jane?"
  • "Not as a husband."
  • "Yet he is a handsome fellow."
  • "And I am so plain, you see, Die. We should never suit."
  • "Plain! You? Not at all. You are much too pretty, as well as too good,
  • to be grilled alive in Calcutta." And again she earnestly conjured me to
  • give up all thoughts of going out with her brother.
  • "I must indeed," I said; "for when just now I repeated the offer of
  • serving him for a deacon, he expressed himself shocked at my want of
  • decency. He seemed to think I had committed an impropriety in proposing
  • to accompany him unmarried: as if I had not from the first hoped to find
  • in him a brother, and habitually regarded him as such."
  • "What makes you say he does not love you, Jane?"
  • "You should hear himself on the subject. He has again and again
  • explained that it is not himself, but his office he wishes to mate. He
  • has told me I am formed for labour--not for love: which is true, no
  • doubt. But, in my opinion, if I am not formed for love, it follows that
  • I am not formed for marriage. Would it not be strange, Die, to be
  • chained for life to a man who regarded one but as a useful tool?"
  • "Insupportable--unnatural--out of the question!"
  • "And then," I continued, "though I have only sisterly affection for him
  • now, yet, if forced to be his wife, I can imagine the possibility of
  • conceiving an inevitable, strange, torturing kind of love for him,
  • because he is so talented; and there is often a certain heroic grandeur
  • in his look, manner, and conversation. In that case, my lot would become
  • unspeakably wretched. He would not want me to love him; and if I showed
  • the feeling, he would make me sensible that it was a superfluity,
  • unrequired by him, unbecoming in me. I know he would."
  • "And yet St. John is a good man," said Diana.
  • "He is a good and a great man; but he forgets, pitilessly, the feelings
  • and claims of little people, in pursuing his own large views. It is
  • better, therefore, for the insignificant to keep out of his way, lest, in
  • his progress, he should trample them down. Here he comes! I will leave
  • you, Diana." And I hastened upstairs as I saw him entering the garden.
  • But I was forced to meet him again at supper. During that meal he
  • appeared just as composed as usual. I had thought he would hardly speak
  • to me, and I was certain he had given up the pursuit of his matrimonial
  • scheme: the sequel showed I was mistaken on both points. He addressed me
  • precisely in his ordinary manner, or what had, of late, been his ordinary
  • manner--one scrupulously polite. No doubt he had invoked the help of the
  • Holy Spirit to subdue the anger I had roused in him, and now believed he
  • had forgiven me once more.
  • For the evening reading before prayers, he selected the twenty-first
  • chapter of Revelation. It was at all times pleasant to listen while from
  • his lips fell the words of the Bible: never did his fine voice sound at
  • once so sweet and full--never did his manner become so impressive in its
  • noble simplicity, as when he delivered the oracles of God: and to-night
  • that voice took a more solemn tone--that manner a more thrilling
  • meaning--as he sat in the midst of his household circle (the May moon
  • shining in through the uncurtained window, and rendering almost
  • unnecessary the light of the candle on the table): as he sat there,
  • bending over the great old Bible, and described from its page the vision
  • of the new heaven and the new earth--told how God would come to dwell
  • with men, how He would wipe away all tears from their eyes, and promised
  • that there should be no more death, neither sorrow nor crying, nor any
  • more pain, because the former things were passed away.
  • The succeeding words thrilled me strangely as he spoke them: especially
  • as I felt, by the slight, indescribable alteration in sound, that in
  • uttering them, his eye had turned on me.
  • "He that overcometh shall inherit all things; and I will be his God, and
  • he shall be my son. But," was slowly, distinctly read, "the fearful, the
  • unbelieving, &c., shall have their part in the lake which burneth with
  • fire and brimstone, which is the second death."
  • Henceforward, I knew what fate St. John feared for me.
  • A calm, subdued triumph, blent with a longing earnestness, marked his
  • enunciation of the last glorious verses of that chapter. The reader
  • believed his name was already written in the Lamb's book of life, and he
  • yearned after the hour which should admit him to the city to which the
  • kings of the earth bring their glory and honour; which has no need of sun
  • or moon to shine in it, because the glory of God lightens it, and the
  • Lamb is the light thereof.
  • In the prayer following the chapter, all his energy gathered--all his
  • stern zeal woke: he was in deep earnest, wrestling with God, and resolved
  • on a conquest. He supplicated strength for the weak-hearted; guidance
  • for wanderers from the fold: a return, even at the eleventh hour, for
  • those whom the temptations of the world and the flesh were luring from
  • the narrow path. He asked, he urged, he claimed the boon of a brand
  • snatched from the burning. Earnestness is ever deeply solemn: first, as
  • I listened to that prayer, I wondered at his; then, when it continued and
  • rose, I was touched by it, and at last awed. He felt the greatness and
  • goodness of his purpose so sincerely: others who heard him plead for it,
  • could not but feel it too.
  • The prayer over, we took leave of him: he was to go at a very early hour
  • in the morning. Diana and Mary having kissed him, left the room--in
  • compliance, I think, with a whispered hint from him: I tendered my hand,
  • and wished him a pleasant journey.
  • "Thank you, Jane. As I said, I shall return from Cambridge in a
  • fortnight: that space, then, is yet left you for reflection. If I
  • listened to human pride, I should say no more to you of marriage with me;
  • but I listen to my duty, and keep steadily in view my first aim--to do
  • all things to the glory of God. My Master was long-suffering: so will I
  • be. I cannot give you up to perdition as a vessel of wrath:
  • repent--resolve, while there is yet time. Remember, we are bid to work
  • while it is day--warned that 'the night cometh when no man shall work.'
  • Remember the fate of Dives, who had his good things in this life. God
  • give you strength to choose that better part which shall not be taken
  • from you!"
  • He laid his hand on my head as he uttered the last words. He had spoken
  • earnestly, mildly: his look was not, indeed, that of a lover beholding
  • his mistress, but it was that of a pastor recalling his wandering
  • sheep--or better, of a guardian angel watching the soul for which he is
  • responsible. All men of talent, whether they be men of feeling or not;
  • whether they be zealots, or aspirants, or despots--provided only they be
  • sincere--have their sublime moments, when they subdue and rule. I felt
  • veneration for St. John--veneration so strong that its impetus thrust me
  • at once to the point I had so long shunned. I was tempted to cease
  • struggling with him--to rush down the torrent of his will into the gulf
  • of his existence, and there lose my own. I was almost as hard beset by
  • him now as I had been once before, in a different way, by another. I was
  • a fool both times. To have yielded then would have been an error of
  • principle; to have yielded now would have been an error of judgment. So
  • I think at this hour, when I look back to the crisis through the quiet
  • medium of time: I was unconscious of folly at the instant.
  • I stood motionless under my hierophant's touch. My refusals were
  • forgotten--my fears overcome--my wrestlings paralysed. The
  • Impossible--_i.e._, my marriage with St. John--was fast becoming the
  • Possible. All was changing utterly with a sudden sweep. Religion
  • called--Angels beckoned--God commanded--life rolled together like a
  • scroll--death's gates opening, showed eternity beyond: it seemed, that
  • for safety and bliss there, all here might be sacrificed in a second. The
  • dim room was full of visions.
  • "Could you decide now?" asked the missionary. The inquiry was put in
  • gentle tones: he drew me to him as gently. Oh, that gentleness! how far
  • more potent is it than force! I could resist St. John's wrath: I grew
  • pliant as a reed under his kindness. Yet I knew all the time, if I
  • yielded now, I should not the less be made to repent, some day, of my
  • former rebellion. His nature was not changed by one hour of solemn
  • prayer: it was only elevated.
  • "I could decide if I were but certain," I answered: "were I but convinced
  • that it is God's will I should marry you, I could vow to marry you here
  • and now--come afterwards what would!"
  • "My prayers are heard!" ejaculated St. John. He pressed his hand firmer
  • on my head, as if he claimed me: he surrounded me with his arm, _almost_
  • as if he loved me (I say _almost_--I knew the difference--for I had felt
  • what it was to be loved; but, like him, I had now put love out of the
  • question, and thought only of duty). I contended with my inward dimness
  • of vision, before which clouds yet rolled. I sincerely, deeply,
  • fervently longed to do what was right; and only that. "Show me, show me
  • the path!" I entreated of Heaven. I was excited more than I had ever
  • been; and whether what followed was the effect of excitement the reader
  • shall judge.
  • All the house was still; for I believe all, except St. John and myself,
  • were now retired to rest. The one candle was dying out: the room was
  • full of moonlight. My heart beat fast and thick: I heard its throb.
  • Suddenly it stood still to an inexpressible feeling that thrilled it
  • through, and passed at once to my head and extremities. The feeling was
  • not like an electric shock, but it was quite as sharp, as strange, as
  • startling: it acted on my senses as if their utmost activity hitherto had
  • been but torpor, from which they were now summoned and forced to wake.
  • They rose expectant: eye and ear waited while the flesh quivered on my
  • bones.
  • "What have you heard? What do you see?" asked St. John. I saw nothing,
  • but I heard a voice somewhere cry--
  • "Jane! Jane! Jane!"--nothing more.
  • "O God! what is it?" I gasped.
  • I might have said, "Where is it?" for it did not seem in the room--nor in
  • the house--nor in the garden; it did not come out of the air--nor from
  • under the earth--nor from overhead. I had heard it--where, or whence,
  • for ever impossible to know! And it was the voice of a human being--a
  • known, loved, well-remembered voice--that of Edward Fairfax Rochester;
  • and it spoke in pain and woe, wildly, eerily, urgently.
  • "I am coming!" I cried. "Wait for me! Oh, I will come!" I flew to the
  • door and looked into the passage: it was dark. I ran out into the
  • garden: it was void.
  • "Where are you?" I exclaimed.
  • The hills beyond Marsh Glen sent the answer faintly back--"Where are
  • you?" I listened. The wind sighed low in the firs: all was moorland
  • loneliness and midnight hush.
  • "Down superstition!" I commented, as that spectre rose up black by the
  • black yew at the gate. "This is not thy deception, nor thy witchcraft:
  • it is the work of nature. She was roused, and did--no miracle--but her
  • best."
  • I broke from St. John, who had followed, and would have detained me. It
  • was _my_ time to assume ascendency. _My_ powers were in play and in
  • force. I told him to forbear question or remark; I desired him to leave
  • me: I must and would be alone. He obeyed at once. Where there is energy
  • to command well enough, obedience never fails. I mounted to my chamber;
  • locked myself in; fell on my knees; and prayed in my way--a different way
  • to St. John's, but effective in its own fashion. I seemed to penetrate
  • very near a Mighty Spirit; and my soul rushed out in gratitude at His
  • feet. I rose from the thanksgiving--took a resolve--and lay down,
  • unscared, enlightened--eager but for the daylight.
  • CHAPTER XXXVI
  • The daylight came. I rose at dawn. I busied myself for an hour or two
  • with arranging my things in my chamber, drawers, and wardrobe, in the
  • order wherein I should wish to leave them during a brief absence.
  • Meantime, I heard St. John quit his room. He stopped at my door: I
  • feared he would knock--no, but a slip of paper was passed under the door.
  • I took it up. It bore these words--
  • "You left me too suddenly last night. Had you stayed but a little
  • longer, you would have laid your hand on the Christian's cross and the
  • angel's crown. I shall expect your clear decision when I return this day
  • fortnight. Meantime, watch and pray that you enter not into temptation:
  • the spirit, I trust, is willing, but the flesh, I see, is weak. I shall
  • pray for you hourly.--Yours, ST. JOHN."
  • "My spirit," I answered mentally, "is willing to do what is right; and my
  • flesh, I hope, is strong enough to accomplish the will of Heaven, when
  • once that will is distinctly known to me. At any rate, it shall be
  • strong enough to search--inquire--to grope an outlet from this cloud of
  • doubt, and find the open day of certainty."
  • It was the first of June; yet the morning was overcast and chilly: rain
  • beat fast on my casement. I heard the front-door open, and St. John pass
  • out. Looking through the window, I saw him traverse the garden. He took
  • the way over the misty moors in the direction of Whitcross--there he
  • would meet the coach.
  • "In a few more hours I shall succeed you in that track, cousin," thought
  • I: "I too have a coach to meet at Whitcross. I too have some to see and
  • ask after in England, before I depart for ever."
  • It wanted yet two hours of breakfast-time. I filled the interval in
  • walking softly about my room, and pondering the visitation which had
  • given my plans their present bent. I recalled that inward sensation I
  • had experienced: for I could recall it, with all its unspeakable
  • strangeness. I recalled the voice I had heard; again I questioned whence
  • it came, as vainly as before: it seemed in _me_--not in the external
  • world. I asked was it a mere nervous impression--a delusion? I could
  • not conceive or believe: it was more like an inspiration. The wondrous
  • shock of feeling had come like the earthquake which shook the foundations
  • of Paul and Silas's prison; it had opened the doors of the soul's cell
  • and loosed its bands--it had wakened it out of its sleep, whence it
  • sprang trembling, listening, aghast; then vibrated thrice a cry on my
  • startled ear, and in my quaking heart and through my spirit, which
  • neither feared nor shook, but exulted as if in joy over the success of
  • one effort it had been privileged to make, independent of the cumbrous
  • body.
  • "Ere many days," I said, as I terminated my musings, "I will know
  • something of him whose voice seemed last night to summon me. Letters
  • have proved of no avail--personal inquiry shall replace them."
  • At breakfast I announced to Diana and Mary that I was going a journey,
  • and should be absent at least four days.
  • "Alone, Jane?" they asked.
  • "Yes; it was to see or hear news of a friend about whom I had for some
  • time been uneasy."
  • They might have said, as I have no doubt they thought, that they had
  • believed me to be without any friends save them: for, indeed, I had often
  • said so; but, with their true natural delicacy, they abstained from
  • comment, except that Diana asked me if I was sure I was well enough to
  • travel. I looked very pale, she observed. I replied, that nothing ailed
  • me save anxiety of mind, which I hoped soon to alleviate.
  • It was easy to make my further arrangements; for I was troubled with no
  • inquiries--no surmises. Having once explained to them that I could not
  • now be explicit about my plans, they kindly and wisely acquiesced in the
  • silence with which I pursued them, according to me the privilege of free
  • action I should under similar circumstances have accorded them.
  • I left Moor House at three o'clock p.m., and soon after four I stood at
  • the foot of the sign-post of Whitcross, waiting the arrival of the coach
  • which was to take me to distant Thornfield. Amidst the silence of those
  • solitary roads and desert hills, I heard it approach from a great
  • distance. It was the same vehicle whence, a year ago, I had alighted one
  • summer evening on this very spot--how desolate, and hopeless, and
  • objectless! It stopped as I beckoned. I entered--not now obliged to
  • part with my whole fortune as the price of its accommodation. Once more
  • on the road to Thornfield, I felt like the messenger-pigeon flying home.
  • It was a journey of six-and-thirty hours. I had set out from Whitcross
  • on a Tuesday afternoon, and early on the succeeding Thursday morning the
  • coach stopped to water the horses at a wayside inn, situated in the midst
  • of scenery whose green hedges and large fields and low pastoral hills
  • (how mild of feature and verdant of hue compared with the stern North-
  • Midland moors of Morton!) met my eye like the lineaments of a once
  • familiar face. Yes, I knew the character of this landscape: I was sure
  • we were near my bourne.
  • "How far is Thornfield Hall from here?" I asked of the ostler.
  • "Just two miles, ma'am, across the fields."
  • "My journey is closed," I thought to myself. I got out of the coach,
  • gave a box I had into the ostler's charge, to be kept till I called for
  • it; paid my fare; satisfied the coachman, and was going: the brightening
  • day gleamed on the sign of the inn, and I read in gilt letters, "The
  • Rochester Arms." My heart leapt up: I was already on my master's very
  • lands. It fell again: the thought struck it:--
  • "Your master himself may be beyond the British Channel, for aught you
  • know: and then, if he is at Thornfield Hall, towards which you hasten,
  • who besides him is there? His lunatic wife: and you have nothing to do
  • with him: you dare not speak to him or seek his presence. You have lost
  • your labour--you had better go no farther," urged the monitor. "Ask
  • information of the people at the inn; they can give you all you seek:
  • they can solve your doubts at once. Go up to that man, and inquire if
  • Mr. Rochester be at home."
  • The suggestion was sensible, and yet I could not force myself to act on
  • it. I so dreaded a reply that would crush me with despair. To prolong
  • doubt was to prolong hope. I might yet once more see the Hall under the
  • ray of her star. There was the stile before me--the very fields through
  • which I had hurried, blind, deaf, distracted with a revengeful fury
  • tracking and scourging me, on the morning I fled from Thornfield: ere I
  • well knew what course I had resolved to take, I was in the midst of them.
  • How fast I walked! How I ran sometimes! How I looked forward to catch
  • the first view of the well-known woods! With what feelings I welcomed
  • single trees I knew, and familiar glimpses of meadow and hill between
  • them!
  • At last the woods rose; the rookery clustered dark; a loud cawing broke
  • the morning stillness. Strange delight inspired me: on I hastened.
  • Another field crossed--a lane threaded--and there were the courtyard
  • walls--the back offices: the house itself, the rookery still hid. "My
  • first view of it shall be in front," I determined, "where its bold
  • battlements will strike the eye nobly at once, and where I can single out
  • my master's very window: perhaps he will be standing at it--he rises
  • early: perhaps he is now walking in the orchard, or on the pavement in
  • front. Could I but see him!--but a moment! Surely, in that case, I
  • should not be so mad as to run to him? I cannot tell--I am not certain.
  • And if I did--what then? God bless him! What then? Who would be hurt
  • by my once more tasting the life his glance can give me? I rave: perhaps
  • at this moment he is watching the sun rise over the Pyrenees, or on the
  • tideless sea of the south."
  • I had coasted along the lower wall of the orchard--turned its angle:
  • there was a gate just there, opening into the meadow, between two stone
  • pillars crowned by stone balls. From behind one pillar I could peep
  • round quietly at the full front of the mansion. I advanced my head with
  • precaution, desirous to ascertain if any bedroom window-blinds were yet
  • drawn up: battlements, windows, long front--all from this sheltered
  • station were at my command.
  • The crows sailing overhead perhaps watched me while I took this survey. I
  • wonder what they thought. They must have considered I was very careful
  • and timid at first, and that gradually I grew very bold and reckless. A
  • peep, and then a long stare; and then a departure from my niche and a
  • straying out into the meadow; and a sudden stop full in front of the
  • great mansion, and a protracted, hardy gaze towards it. "What
  • affectation of diffidence was this at first?" they might have demanded;
  • "what stupid regardlessness now?"
  • Hear an illustration, reader.
  • A lover finds his mistress asleep on a mossy bank; he wishes to catch a
  • glimpse of her fair face without waking her. He steals softly over the
  • grass, careful to make no sound; he pauses--fancying she has stirred: he
  • withdraws: not for worlds would he be seen. All is still: he again
  • advances: he bends above her; a light veil rests on her features: he
  • lifts it, bends lower; now his eyes anticipate the vision of beauty--warm,
  • and blooming, and lovely, in rest. How hurried was their first glance!
  • But how they fix! How he starts! How he suddenly and vehemently clasps
  • in both arms the form he dared not, a moment since, touch with his
  • finger! How he calls aloud a name, and drops his burden, and gazes on it
  • wildly! He thus grasps and cries, and gazes, because he no longer fears
  • to waken by any sound he can utter--by any movement he can make. He
  • thought his love slept sweetly: he finds she is stone dead.
  • I looked with timorous joy towards a stately house: I saw a blackened
  • ruin.
  • No need to cower behind a gate-post, indeed!--to peep up at chamber
  • lattices, fearing life was astir behind them! No need to listen for
  • doors opening--to fancy steps on the pavement or the gravel-walk! The
  • lawn, the grounds were trodden and waste: the portal yawned void. The
  • front was, as I had once seen it in a dream, but a well-like wall, very
  • high and very fragile-looking, perforated with paneless windows: no roof,
  • no battlements, no chimneys--all had crashed in.
  • And there was the silence of death about it: the solitude of a lonesome
  • wild. No wonder that letters addressed to people here had never received
  • an answer: as well despatch epistles to a vault in a church aisle. The
  • grim blackness of the stones told by what fate the Hall had fallen--by
  • conflagration: but how kindled? What story belonged to this disaster?
  • What loss, besides mortar and marble and wood-work had followed upon it?
  • Had life been wrecked as well as property? If so, whose? Dreadful
  • question: there was no one here to answer it--not even dumb sign, mute
  • token.
  • In wandering round the shattered walls and through the devastated
  • interior, I gathered evidence that the calamity was not of late
  • occurrence. Winter snows, I thought, had drifted through that void arch,
  • winter rains beaten in at those hollow casements; for, amidst the
  • drenched piles of rubbish, spring had cherished vegetation: grass and
  • weed grew here and there between the stones and fallen rafters. And oh!
  • where meantime was the hapless owner of this wreck? In what land? Under
  • what auspices? My eye involuntarily wandered to the grey church tower
  • near the gates, and I asked, "Is he with Damer de Rochester, sharing the
  • shelter of his narrow marble house?"
  • Some answer must be had to these questions. I could find it nowhere but
  • at the inn, and thither, ere long, I returned. The host himself brought
  • my breakfast into the parlour. I requested him to shut the door and sit
  • down: I had some questions to ask him. But when he complied, I scarcely
  • knew how to begin; such horror had I of the possible answers. And yet
  • the spectacle of desolation I had just left prepared me in a measure for
  • a tale of misery. The host was a respectable-looking, middle-aged man.
  • "You know Thornfield Hall, of course?" I managed to say at last.
  • "Yes, ma'am; I lived there once."
  • "Did you?" Not in my time, I thought: you are a stranger to me.
  • "I was the late Mr. Rochester's butler," he added.
  • The late! I seem to have received, with full force, the blow I had been
  • trying to evade.
  • "The late!" I gasped. "Is he dead?"
  • "I mean the present gentleman, Mr. Edward's father," he explained. I
  • breathed again: my blood resumed its flow. Fully assured by these words
  • that Mr. Edward--_my_ Mr. Rochester (God bless him, wherever he was!)--was
  • at least alive: was, in short, "the present gentleman." Gladdening
  • words! It seemed I could hear all that was to come--whatever the
  • disclosures might be--with comparative tranquillity. Since he was not in
  • the grave, I could bear, I thought, to learn that he was at the
  • Antipodes.
  • "Is Mr. Rochester living at Thornfield Hall now?" I asked, knowing, of
  • course, what the answer would be, but yet desirous of deferring the
  • direct question as to where he really was.
  • "No, ma'am--oh, no! No one is living there. I suppose you are a
  • stranger in these parts, or you would have heard what happened last
  • autumn,--Thornfield Hall is quite a ruin: it was burnt down just about
  • harvest-time. A dreadful calamity! such an immense quantity of valuable
  • property destroyed: hardly any of the furniture could be saved. The fire
  • broke out at dead of night, and before the engines arrived from Millcote,
  • the building was one mass of flame. It was a terrible spectacle: I
  • witnessed it myself."
  • "At dead of night!" I muttered. Yes, that was ever the hour of fatality
  • at Thornfield. "Was it known how it originated?" I demanded.
  • "They guessed, ma'am: they guessed. Indeed, I should say it was
  • ascertained beyond a doubt. You are not perhaps aware," he continued,
  • edging his chair a little nearer the table, and speaking low, "that there
  • was a lady--a--a lunatic, kept in the house?"
  • "I have heard something of it."
  • "She was kept in very close confinement, ma'am: people even for some
  • years was not absolutely certain of her existence. No one saw her: they
  • only knew by rumour that such a person was at the Hall; and who or what
  • she was it was difficult to conjecture. They said Mr. Edward had brought
  • her from abroad, and some believed she had been his mistress. But a
  • queer thing happened a year since--a very queer thing."
  • I feared now to hear my own story. I endeavoured to recall him to the
  • main fact.
  • "And this lady?"
  • "This lady, ma'am," he answered, "turned out to be Mr. Rochester's wife!
  • The discovery was brought about in the strangest way. There was a young
  • lady, a governess at the Hall, that Mr. Rochester fell in--"
  • "But the fire," I suggested.
  • "I'm coming to that, ma'am--that Mr. Edward fell in love with. The
  • servants say they never saw anybody so much in love as he was: he was
  • after her continually. They used to watch him--servants will, you know,
  • ma'am--and he set store on her past everything: for all, nobody but him
  • thought her so very handsome. She was a little small thing, they say,
  • almost like a child. I never saw her myself; but I've heard Leah, the
  • house-maid, tell of her. Leah liked her well enough. Mr. Rochester was
  • about forty, and this governess not twenty; and you see, when gentlemen
  • of his age fall in love with girls, they are often like as if they were
  • bewitched. Well, he would marry her."
  • "You shall tell me this part of the story another time," I said; "but now
  • I have a particular reason for wishing to hear all about the fire. Was
  • it suspected that this lunatic, Mrs. Rochester, had any hand in it?"
  • "You've hit it, ma'am: it's quite certain that it was her, and nobody but
  • her, that set it going. She had a woman to take care of her called Mrs.
  • Poole--an able woman in her line, and very trustworthy, but for one
  • fault--a fault common to a deal of them nurses and matrons--she _kept a
  • private bottle of gin by her_, and now and then took a drop over-much. It
  • is excusable, for she had a hard life of it: but still it was dangerous;
  • for when Mrs. Poole was fast asleep after the gin and water, the mad
  • lady, who was as cunning as a witch, would take the keys out of her
  • pocket, let herself out of her chamber, and go roaming about the house,
  • doing any wild mischief that came into her head. They say she had nearly
  • burnt her husband in his bed once: but I don't know about that. However,
  • on this night, she set fire first to the hangings of the room next her
  • own, and then she got down to a lower storey, and made her way to the
  • chamber that had been the governess's--(she was like as if she knew
  • somehow how matters had gone on, and had a spite at her)--and she kindled
  • the bed there; but there was nobody sleeping in it, fortunately. The
  • governess had run away two months before; and for all Mr. Rochester
  • sought her as if she had been the most precious thing he had in the
  • world, he never could hear a word of her; and he grew savage--quite
  • savage on his disappointment: he never was a wild man, but he got
  • dangerous after he lost her. He would be alone, too. He sent Mrs.
  • Fairfax, the housekeeper, away to her friends at a distance; but he did
  • it handsomely, for he settled an annuity on her for life: and she
  • deserved it--she was a very good woman. Miss Adele, a ward he had, was
  • put to school. He broke off acquaintance with all the gentry, and shut
  • himself up like a hermit at the Hall."
  • "What! did he not leave England?"
  • "Leave England? Bless you, no! He would not cross the door-stones of
  • the house, except at night, when he walked just like a ghost about the
  • grounds and in the orchard as if he had lost his senses--which it is my
  • opinion he had; for a more spirited, bolder, keener gentleman than he was
  • before that midge of a governess crossed him, you never saw, ma'am. He
  • was not a man given to wine, or cards, or racing, as some are, and he was
  • not so very handsome; but he had a courage and a will of his own, if ever
  • man had. I knew him from a boy, you see: and for my part, I have often
  • wished that Miss Eyre had been sunk in the sea before she came to
  • Thornfield Hall."
  • "Then Mr. Rochester was at home when the fire broke out?"
  • "Yes, indeed was he; and he went up to the attics when all was burning
  • above and below, and got the servants out of their beds and helped them
  • down himself, and went back to get his mad wife out of her cell. And
  • then they called out to him that she was on the roof, where she was
  • standing, waving her arms, above the battlements, and shouting out till
  • they could hear her a mile off: I saw her and heard her with my own eyes.
  • She was a big woman, and had long black hair: we could see it streaming
  • against the flames as she stood. I witnessed, and several more
  • witnessed, Mr. Rochester ascend through the sky-light on to the roof; we
  • heard him call 'Bertha!' We saw him approach her; and then, ma'am, she
  • yelled and gave a spring, and the next minute she lay smashed on the
  • pavement."
  • {The next minute she lay smashed on the pavement: p413.jpg}
  • "Dead?"
  • "Dead! Ay, dead as the stones on which her brains and blood were
  • scattered."
  • "Good God!"
  • "You may well say so, ma'am: it was frightful!"
  • He shuddered.
  • "And afterwards?" I urged.
  • "Well, ma'am, afterwards the house was burnt to the ground: there are
  • only some bits of walls standing now."
  • "Were any other lives lost?"
  • "No--perhaps it would have been better if there had."
  • "What do you mean?"
  • "Poor Mr. Edward!" he ejaculated, "I little thought ever to have seen it!
  • Some say it was a just judgment on him for keeping his first marriage
  • secret, and wanting to take another wife while he had one living: but I
  • pity him, for my part."
  • "You said he was alive?" I exclaimed.
  • "Yes, yes: he is alive; but many think he had better be dead."
  • "Why? How?" My blood was again running cold. "Where is he?" I
  • demanded. "Is he in England?"
  • "Ay--ay--he's in England; he can't get out of England, I fancy--he's a
  • fixture now."
  • What agony was this! And the man seemed resolved to protract it.
  • "He is stone-blind," he said at last. "Yes, he is stone-blind, is Mr.
  • Edward."
  • I had dreaded worse. I had dreaded he was mad. I summoned strength to
  • ask what had caused this calamity.
  • "It was all his own courage, and a body may say, his kindness, in a way,
  • ma'am: he wouldn't leave the house till every one else was out before
  • him. As he came down the great staircase at last, after Mrs. Rochester
  • had flung herself from the battlements, there was a great crash--all
  • fell. He was taken out from under the ruins, alive, but sadly hurt: a
  • beam had fallen in such a way as to protect him partly; but one eye was
  • knocked out, and one hand so crushed that Mr. Carter, the surgeon, had to
  • amputate it directly. The other eye inflamed: he lost the sight of that
  • also. He is now helpless, indeed--blind and a cripple."
  • "Where is he? Where does he now live?"
  • "At Ferndean, a manor-house on a farm he has, about thirty miles off:
  • quite a desolate spot."
  • "Who is with him?"
  • "Old John and his wife: he would have none else. He is quite broken
  • down, they say."
  • "Have you any sort of conveyance?"
  • "We have a chaise, ma'am, a very handsome chaise."
  • "Let it be got ready instantly; and if your post-boy can drive me to
  • Ferndean before dark this day, I'll pay both you and him twice the hire
  • you usually demand."
  • CHAPTER XXXVII
  • The manor-house of Ferndean was a building of considerable antiquity,
  • moderate size, and no architectural pretensions, deep buried in a wood. I
  • had heard of it before. Mr. Rochester often spoke of it, and sometimes
  • went there. His father had purchased the estate for the sake of the game
  • covers. He would have let the house, but could find no tenant, in
  • consequence of its ineligible and insalubrious site. Ferndean then
  • remained uninhabited and unfurnished, with the exception of some two or
  • three rooms fitted up for the accommodation of the squire when he went
  • there in the season to shoot.
  • To this house I came just ere dark on an evening marked by the
  • characteristics of sad sky, cold gale, and continued small penetrating
  • rain. The last mile I performed on foot, having dismissed the chaise and
  • driver with the double remuneration I had promised. Even when within a
  • very short distance of the manor-house, you could see nothing of it, so
  • thick and dark grew the timber of the gloomy wood about it. Iron gates
  • between granite pillars showed me where to enter, and passing through
  • them, I found myself at once in the twilight of close-ranked trees. There
  • was a grass-grown track descending the forest aisle between hoar and
  • knotty shafts and under branched arches. I followed it, expecting soon
  • to reach the dwelling; but it stretched on and on, it wound far and
  • farther: no sign of habitation or grounds was visible.
  • I thought I had taken a wrong direction and lost my way. The darkness of
  • natural as well as of sylvan dusk gathered over me. I looked round in
  • search of another road. There was none: all was interwoven stem,
  • columnar trunk, dense summer foliage--no opening anywhere.
  • I proceeded: at last my way opened, the trees thinned a little; presently
  • I beheld a railing, then the house--scarce, by this dim light,
  • distinguishable from the trees; so dank and green were its decaying
  • walls. Entering a portal, fastened only by a latch, I stood amidst a
  • space of enclosed ground, from which the wood swept away in a semicircle.
  • There were no flowers, no garden-beds; only a broad gravel-walk girdling
  • a grass-plat, and this set in the heavy frame of the forest. The house
  • presented two pointed gables in its front; the windows were latticed and
  • narrow: the front door was narrow too, one step led up to it. The whole
  • looked, as the host of the Rochester Arms had said, "quite a desolate
  • spot." It was as still as a church on a week-day: the pattering rain on
  • the forest leaves was the only sound audible in its vicinage.
  • "Can there be life here?" I asked.
  • Yes, life of some kind there was; for I heard a movement--that narrow
  • front-door was unclosing, and some shape was about to issue from the
  • grange.
  • It opened slowly: a figure came out into the twilight and stood on the
  • step; a man without a hat: he stretched forth his hand as if to feel
  • whether it rained. Dusk as it was, I had recognised him--it was my
  • master, Edward Fairfax Rochester, and no other.
  • I stayed my step, almost my breath, and stood to watch him--to examine
  • him, myself unseen, and alas! to him invisible. It was a sudden meeting,
  • and one in which rapture was kept well in check by pain. I had no
  • difficulty in restraining my voice from exclamation, my step from hasty
  • advance.
  • His form was of the same strong and stalwart contour as ever: his port
  • was still erect, his hair was still raven black; nor were his features
  • altered or sunk: not in one year's space, by any sorrow, could his
  • athletic strength be quelled or his vigorous prime blighted. But in his
  • countenance I saw a change: that looked desperate and brooding--that
  • reminded me of some wronged and fettered wild beast or bird, dangerous to
  • approach in his sullen woe. The caged eagle, whose gold-ringed eyes
  • cruelty has extinguished, might look as looked that sightless Samson.
  • And, reader, do you think I feared him in his blind ferocity?--if you do,
  • you little know me. A soft hope blest with my sorrow that soon I should
  • dare to drop a kiss on that brow of rock, and on those lips so sternly
  • sealed beneath it: but not yet. I would not accost him yet.
  • He descended the one step, and advanced slowly and gropingly towards the
  • grass-plat. Where was his daring stride now? Then he paused, as if he
  • knew not which way to turn. He lifted his hand and opened his eyelids;
  • gazed blank, and with a straining effort, on the sky, and toward the
  • amphitheatre of trees: one saw that all to him was void darkness. He
  • stretched his right hand (the left arm, the mutilated one, he kept hidden
  • in his bosom); he seemed to wish by touch to gain an idea of what lay
  • around him: he met but vacancy still; for the trees were some yards off
  • where he stood. He relinquished the endeavour, folded his arms, and
  • stood quiet and mute in the rain, now falling fast on his uncovered head.
  • At this moment John approached him from some quarter.
  • "Will you take my arm, sir?" he said; "there is a heavy shower coming on:
  • had you not better go in?"
  • "Let me alone," was the answer.
  • John withdrew without having observed me. Mr. Rochester now tried to
  • walk about: vainly,--all was too uncertain. He groped his way back to
  • the house, and, re-entering it, closed the door.
  • I now drew near and knocked: John's wife opened for me. "Mary," I said,
  • "how are you?"
  • She started as if she had seen a ghost: I calmed her. To her hurried "Is
  • it really you, miss, come at this late hour to this lonely place?" I
  • answered by taking her hand; and then I followed her into the kitchen,
  • where John now sat by a good fire. I explained to them, in few words,
  • that I had heard all which had happened since I left Thornfield, and that
  • I was come to see Mr. Rochester. I asked John to go down to the turn-
  • pike-house, where I had dismissed the chaise, and bring my trunk, which I
  • had left there: and then, while I removed my bonnet and shawl, I
  • questioned Mary as to whether I could be accommodated at the Manor House
  • for the night; and finding that arrangements to that effect, though
  • difficult, would not be impossible, I informed her I should stay. Just
  • at this moment the parlour-bell rang.
  • "When you go in," said I, "tell your master that a person wishes to speak
  • to him, but do not give my name."
  • "I don't think he will see you," she answered; "he refuses everybody."
  • When she returned, I inquired what he had said. "You are to send in your
  • name and your business," she replied. She then proceeded to fill a glass
  • with water, and place it on a tray, together with candles.
  • "Is that what he rang for?" I asked.
  • "Yes: he always has candles brought in at dark, though he is blind."
  • "Give the tray to me; I will carry it in."
  • I took it from her hand: she pointed me out the parlour door. The tray
  • shook as I held it; the water spilt from the glass; my heart struck my
  • ribs loud and fast. Mary opened the door for me, and shut it behind me.
  • This parlour looked gloomy: a neglected handful of fire burnt low in the
  • grate; and, leaning over it, with his head supported against the high,
  • old-fashioned mantelpiece, appeared the blind tenant of the room. His
  • old dog, Pilot, lay on one side, removed out of the way, and coiled up as
  • if afraid of being inadvertently trodden upon. Pilot pricked up his ears
  • when I came in: then he jumped up with a yelp and a whine, and bounded
  • towards me: he almost knocked the tray from my hands. I set it on the
  • table; then patted him, and said softly, "Lie down!" Mr. Rochester
  • turned mechanically to _see_ what the commotion was: but as he _saw_
  • nothing, he returned and sighed.
  • "Give me the water, Mary," he said.
  • I approached him with the now only half-filled glass; Pilot followed me,
  • still excited.
  • "What is the matter?" he inquired.
  • "Down, Pilot!" I again said. He checked the water on its way to his
  • lips, and seemed to listen: he drank, and put the glass down. "This is
  • you, Mary, is it not?"
  • "Mary is in the kitchen," I answered.
  • He put out his hand with a quick gesture, but not seeing where I stood,
  • he did not touch me. "Who is this? Who is this?" he demanded, trying,
  • as it seemed, to _see_ with those sightless eyes--unavailing and
  • distressing attempt! "Answer me--speak again!" he ordered, imperiously
  • and aloud.
  • "Will you have a little more water, sir? I spilt half of what was in the
  • glass," I said.
  • "_Who_ is it? _What_ is it? Who speaks?"
  • "Pilot knows me, and John and Mary know I am here. I came only this
  • evening," I answered.
  • "Great God!--what delusion has come over me? What sweet madness has
  • seized me?"
  • "No delusion--no madness: your mind, sir, is too strong for delusion,
  • your health too sound for frenzy."
  • "And where is the speaker? Is it only a voice? Oh! I _cannot_ see, but
  • I must feel, or my heart will stop and my brain burst. Whatever--whoever
  • you are--be perceptible to the touch or I cannot live!"
  • He groped; I arrested his wandering hand, and prisoned it in both mine.
  • "Her very fingers!" he cried; "her small, slight fingers! If so there
  • must be more of her."
  • The muscular hand broke from my custody; my arm was seized, my
  • shoulder--neck--waist--I was entwined and gathered to him.
  • "Is it Jane? _What_ is it? This is her shape--this is her size--"
  • "And this her voice," I added. "She is all here: her heart, too. God
  • bless you, sir! I am glad to be so near you again."
  • "Jane Eyre!--Jane Eyre," was all he said.
  • "My dear master," I answered, "I am Jane Eyre: I have found you out--I am
  • come back to you."
  • "In truth?--in the flesh? My living Jane?"
  • "You touch me, sir,--you hold me, and fast enough: I am not cold like a
  • corpse, nor vacant like air, am I?"
  • "My living darling! These are certainly her limbs, and these her
  • features; but I cannot be so blest, after all my misery. It is a dream;
  • such dreams as I have had at night when I have clasped her once more to
  • my heart, as I do now; and kissed her, as thus--and felt that she loved
  • me, and trusted that she would not leave me."
  • "Which I never will, sir, from this day."
  • "Never will, says the vision? But I always woke and found it an empty
  • mockery; and I was desolate and abandoned--my life dark, lonely,
  • hopeless--my soul athirst and forbidden to drink--my heart famished and
  • never to be fed. Gentle, soft dream, nestling in my arms now, you will
  • fly, too, as your sisters have all fled before you: but kiss me before
  • you go--embrace me, Jane."
  • "There, sir--and there!"'
  • I pressed my lips to his once brilliant and now rayless eyes--I swept his
  • hair from his brow, and kissed that too. He suddenly seemed to arouse
  • himself: the conviction of the reality of all this seized him.
  • "It is you--is it, Jane? You are come back to me then?"
  • "I am."
  • "And you do not lie dead in some ditch under some stream? And you are
  • not a pining outcast amongst strangers?"
  • "No, sir! I am an independent woman now."
  • "Independent! What do you mean, Jane?"
  • "My uncle in Madeira is dead, and he left me five thousand pounds."
  • "Ah! this is practical--this is real!" he cried: "I should never dream
  • that. Besides, there is that peculiar voice of hers, so animating and
  • piquant, as well as soft: it cheers my withered heart; it puts life into
  • it.--What, Janet! Are you an independent woman? A rich woman?"
  • "If you won't let me live with you, I can build a house of my own close
  • up to your door, and you may come and sit in my parlour when you want
  • company of an evening."
  • "But as you are rich, Jane, you have now, no doubt, friends who will look
  • after you, and not suffer you to devote yourself to a blind lameter like
  • me?"
  • "I told you I am independent, sir, as well as rich: I am my own
  • mistress."
  • "And you will stay with me?"
  • "Certainly--unless you object. I will be your neighbour, your nurse,
  • your housekeeper. I find you lonely: I will be your companion--to read
  • to you, to walk with you, to sit with you, to wait on you, to be eyes and
  • hands to you. Cease to look so melancholy, my dear master; you shall not
  • be left desolate, so long as I live."
  • He replied not: he seemed serious--abstracted; he sighed; he half-opened
  • his lips as if to speak: he closed them again. I felt a little
  • embarrassed. Perhaps I had too rashly over-leaped conventionalities; and
  • he, like St. John, saw impropriety in my inconsiderateness. I had indeed
  • made my proposal from the idea that he wished and would ask me to be his
  • wife: an expectation, not the less certain because unexpressed, had
  • buoyed me up, that he would claim me at once as his own. But no hint to
  • that effect escaping him and his countenance becoming more overcast, I
  • suddenly remembered that I might have been all wrong, and was perhaps
  • playing the fool unwittingly; and I began gently to withdraw myself from
  • his arms--but he eagerly snatched me closer.
  • "No--no--Jane; you must not go. No--I have touched you, heard you, felt
  • the comfort of your presence--the sweetness of your consolation: I cannot
  • give up these joys. I have little left in myself--I must have you. The
  • world may laugh--may call me absurd, selfish--but it does not signify. My
  • very soul demands you: it will be satisfied, or it will take deadly
  • vengeance on its frame."
  • "Well, sir, I will stay with you: I have said so."
  • "Yes--but you understand one thing by staying with me; and I understand
  • another. You, perhaps, could make up your mind to be about my hand and
  • chair--to wait on me as a kind little nurse (for you have an affectionate
  • heart and a generous spirit, which prompt you to make sacrifices for
  • those you pity), and that ought to suffice for me no doubt. I suppose I
  • should now entertain none but fatherly feelings for you: do you think so?
  • Come--tell me."
  • "I will think what you like, sir: I am content to be only your nurse, if
  • you think it better."
  • "But you cannot always be my nurse, Janet: you are young--you must marry
  • one day."
  • "I don't care about being married."
  • "You should care, Janet: if I were what I once was, I would try to make
  • you care--but--a sightless block!"
  • He relapsed again into gloom. I, on the contrary, became more cheerful,
  • and took fresh courage: these last words gave me an insight as to where
  • the difficulty lay; and as it was no difficulty with me, I felt quite
  • relieved from my previous embarrassment. I resumed a livelier vein of
  • conversation.
  • "It is time some one undertook to rehumanise you," said I, parting his
  • thick and long uncut locks; "for I see you are being metamorphosed into a
  • lion, or something of that sort. You have a 'faux air' of Nebuchadnezzar
  • in the fields about you, that is certain: your hair reminds me of eagles'
  • feathers; whether your nails are grown like birds' claws or not, I have
  • not yet noticed."
  • "On this arm, I have neither hand nor nails," he said, drawing the
  • mutilated limb from his breast, and showing it to me. "It is a mere
  • stump--a ghastly sight! Don't you think so, Jane?"
  • "It is a pity to see it; and a pity to see your eyes--and the scar of
  • fire on your forehead: and the worst of it is, one is in danger of loving
  • you too well for all this; and making too much of you."
  • "I thought you would be revolted, Jane, when you saw my arm, and my
  • cicatrised visage."
  • "Did you? Don't tell me so--lest I should say something disparaging to
  • your judgment. Now, let me leave you an instant, to make a better fire,
  • and have the hearth swept up. Can you tell when there is a good fire?"
  • "Yes; with the right eye I see a glow--a ruddy haze."
  • "And you see the candles?"
  • "Very dimly--each is a luminous cloud."
  • "Can you see me?"
  • "No, my fairy: but I am only too thankful to hear and feel you."
  • "When do you take supper?"
  • "I never take supper."
  • "But you shall have some to-night. I am hungry: so are you, I daresay,
  • only you forget."
  • Summoning Mary, I soon had the room in more cheerful order: I prepared
  • him, likewise, a comfortable repast. My spirits were excited, and with
  • pleasure and ease I talked to him during supper, and for a long time
  • after. There was no harassing restraint, no repressing of glee and
  • vivacity with him; for with him I was at perfect ease, because I knew I
  • suited him; all I said or did seemed either to console or revive him.
  • Delightful consciousness! It brought to life and light my whole nature:
  • in his presence I thoroughly lived; and he lived in mine. Blind as he
  • was, smiles played over his face, joy dawned on his forehead: his
  • lineaments softened and warmed.
  • After supper, he began to ask me many questions, of where I had been,
  • what I had been doing, how I had found him out; but I gave him only very
  • partial replies: it was too late to enter into particulars that night.
  • Besides, I wished to touch no deep-thrilling chord--to open no fresh well
  • of emotion in his heart: my sole present aim was to cheer him. Cheered,
  • as I have said, he was: and yet but by fits. If a moment's silence broke
  • the conversation, he would turn restless, touch me, then say, "Jane."
  • "You are altogether a human being, Jane? You are certain of that?"
  • {You are altogether a human being, Jane? You are certain of that?:
  • p422.jpg}
  • "I conscientiously believe so, Mr. Rochester."
  • "Yet how, on this dark and doleful evening, could you so suddenly rise on
  • my lone hearth? I stretched my hand to take a glass of water from a
  • hireling, and it was given me by you: I asked a question, expecting
  • John's wife to answer me, and your voice spoke at my ear."
  • "Because I had come in, in Mary's stead, with the tray."
  • "And there is enchantment in the very hour I am now spending with you.
  • Who can tell what a dark, dreary, hopeless life I have dragged on for
  • months past? Doing nothing, expecting nothing; merging night in day;
  • feeling but the sensation of cold when I let the fire go out, of hunger
  • when I forgot to eat: and then a ceaseless sorrow, and, at times, a very
  • delirium of desire to behold my Jane again. Yes: for her restoration I
  • longed, far more than for that of my lost sight. How can it be that Jane
  • is with me, and says she loves me? Will she not depart as suddenly as
  • she came? To-morrow, I fear I shall find her no more."
  • A commonplace, practical reply, out of the train of his own disturbed
  • ideas, was, I was sure, the best and most reassuring for him in this
  • frame of mind. I passed my finger over his eyebrows, and remarked that
  • they were scorched, and that I would apply something which would make
  • them grow as broad and black as ever.
  • "Where is the use of doing me good in any way, beneficent spirit, when,
  • at some fatal moment, you will again desert me--passing like a shadow,
  • whither and how to me unknown, and for me remaining afterwards
  • undiscoverable?
  • "Have you a pocket-comb about you, sir?"
  • "What for, Jane?"
  • "Just to comb out this shaggy black mane. I find you rather alarming,
  • when I examine you close at hand: you talk of my being a fairy, but I am
  • sure, you are more like a brownie."
  • "Am I hideous, Jane?"
  • "Very, sir: you always were, you know."
  • "Humph! The wickedness has not been taken out of you, wherever you have
  • sojourned."
  • "Yet I have been with good people; far better than you: a hundred times
  • better people; possessed of ideas and views you never entertained in your
  • life: quite more refined and exalted."
  • "Who the deuce have you been with?"
  • "If you twist in that way you will make me pull the hair out of your
  • head; and then I think you will cease to entertain doubts of my
  • substantiality."
  • "Who have you been with, Jane?"
  • "You shall not get it out of me to-night, sir; you must wait till
  • to-morrow; to leave my tale half told, will, you know, be a sort of
  • security that I shall appear at your breakfast table to finish it. By
  • the bye, I must mind not to rise on your hearth with only a glass of
  • water then: I must bring an egg at the least, to say nothing of fried
  • ham."
  • "You mocking changeling--fairy-born and human-bred! You make me feel as
  • I have not felt these twelve months. If Saul could have had you for his
  • David, the evil spirit would have been exorcised without the aid of the
  • harp."
  • "There, sir, you are redd up and made decent. Now I'll leave you: I have
  • been travelling these last three days, and I believe I am tired. Good
  • night."
  • "Just one word, Jane: were there only ladies in the house where you have
  • been?"
  • I laughed and made my escape, still laughing as I ran upstairs. "A good
  • idea!" I thought with glee. "I see I have the means of fretting him out
  • of his melancholy for some time to come."
  • Very early the next morning I heard him up and astir, wandering from one
  • room to another. As soon as Mary came down I heard the question: "Is
  • Miss Eyre here?" Then: "Which room did you put her into? Was it dry? Is
  • she up? Go and ask if she wants anything; and when she will come down."
  • I came down as soon as I thought there was a prospect of breakfast.
  • Entering the room very softly, I had a view of him before he discovered
  • my presence. It was mournful, indeed, to witness the subjugation of that
  • vigorous spirit to a corporeal infirmity. He sat in his chair--still,
  • but not at rest: expectant evidently; the lines of now habitual sadness
  • marking his strong features. His countenance reminded one of a lamp
  • quenched, waiting to be re-lit--and alas! it was not himself that could
  • now kindle the lustre of animated expression: he was dependent on another
  • for that office! I had meant to be gay and careless, but the
  • powerlessness of the strong man touched my heart to the quick: still I
  • accosted him with what vivacity I could.
  • "It is a bright, sunny morning, sir," I said. "The rain is over and
  • gone, and there is a tender shining after it: you shall have a walk
  • soon."
  • I had wakened the glow: his features beamed.
  • "Oh, you are indeed there, my skylark! Come to me. You are not gone:
  • not vanished? I heard one of your kind an hour ago, singing high over
  • the wood: but its song had no music for me, any more than the rising sun
  • had rays. All the melody on earth is concentrated in my Jane's tongue to
  • my ear (I am glad it is not naturally a silent one): all the sunshine I
  • can feel is in her presence."
  • The water stood in my eyes to hear this avowal of his dependence; just as
  • if a royal eagle, chained to a perch, should be forced to entreat a
  • sparrow to become its purveyor. But I would not be lachrymose: I dashed
  • off the salt drops, and busied myself with preparing breakfast.
  • Most of the morning was spent in the open air. I led him out of the wet
  • and wild wood into some cheerful fields: I described to him how
  • brilliantly green they were; how the flowers and hedges looked refreshed;
  • how sparklingly blue was the sky. I sought a seat for him in a hidden
  • and lovely spot, a dry stump of a tree; nor did I refuse to let him, when
  • seated, place me on his knee. Why should I, when both he and I were
  • happier near than apart? Pilot lay beside us: all was quiet. He broke
  • out suddenly while clasping me in his arms--
  • "Cruel, cruel deserter! Oh, Jane, what did I feel when I discovered you
  • had fled from Thornfield, and when I could nowhere find you; and, after
  • examining your apartment, ascertained that you had taken no money, nor
  • anything which could serve as an equivalent! A pearl necklace I had
  • given you lay untouched in its little casket; your trunks were left
  • corded and locked as they had been prepared for the bridal tour. What
  • could my darling do, I asked, left destitute and penniless? And what did
  • she do? Let me hear now."
  • Thus urged, I began the narrative of my experience for the last year. I
  • softened considerably what related to the three days of wandering and
  • starvation, because to have told him all would have been to inflict
  • unnecessary pain: the little I did say lacerated his faithful heart
  • deeper than I wished.
  • I should not have left him thus, he said, without any means of making my
  • way: I should have told him my intention. I should have confided in him:
  • he would never have forced me to be his mistress. Violent as he had
  • seemed in his despair, he, in truth, loved me far too well and too
  • tenderly to constitute himself my tyrant: he would have given me half his
  • fortune, without demanding so much as a kiss in return, rather than I
  • should have flung myself friendless on the wide world. I had endured, he
  • was certain, more than I had confessed to him.
  • "Well, whatever my sufferings had been, they were very short," I
  • answered: and then I proceeded to tell him how I had been received at
  • Moor House; how I had obtained the office of schoolmistress, &c. The
  • accession of fortune, the discovery of my relations, followed in due
  • order. Of course, St. John Rivers' name came in frequently in the
  • progress of my tale. When I had done, that name was immediately taken
  • up.
  • "This St. John, then, is your cousin?"
  • "Yes."
  • "You have spoken of him often: do you like him?"
  • "He was a very good man, sir; I could not help liking him."
  • "A good man. Does that mean a respectable well-conducted man of fifty?
  • Or what does it mean?"
  • "St John was only twenty-nine, sir."
  • "'_Jeune encore_,' as the French say. Is he a person of low stature,
  • phlegmatic, and plain. A person whose goodness consists rather in his
  • guiltlessness of vice, than in his prowess in virtue."
  • "He is untiringly active. Great and exalted deeds are what he lives to
  • perform."
  • "But his brain? That is probably rather soft? He means well: but you
  • shrug your shoulders to hear him talk?"
  • "He talks little, sir: what he does say is ever to the point. His brain
  • is first-rate, I should think not impressible, but vigorous."
  • "Is he an able man, then?"
  • "Truly able."
  • "A thoroughly educated man?"
  • "St. John is an accomplished and profound scholar."
  • "His manners, I think, you said are not to your taste?--priggish and
  • parsonic?"
  • "I never mentioned his manners; but, unless I had a very bad taste, they
  • must suit it; they are polished, calm, and gentlemanlike."
  • "His appearance,--I forget what description you gave of his appearance;--a
  • sort of raw curate, half strangled with his white neckcloth, and stilted
  • up on his thick-soled high-lows, eh?"
  • "St. John dresses well. He is a handsome man: tall, fair, with blue
  • eyes, and a Grecian profile."
  • (Aside.) "Damn him!"--(To me.) "Did you like him, Jane?"
  • "Yes, Mr. Rochester, I liked him: but you asked me that before."
  • I perceived, of course, the drift of my interlocutor. Jealousy had got
  • hold of him: she stung him; but the sting was salutary: it gave him
  • respite from the gnawing fang of melancholy. I would not, therefore,
  • immediately charm the snake.
  • "Perhaps you would rather not sit any longer on my knee, Miss Eyre?" was
  • the next somewhat unexpected observation.
  • "Why not, Mr. Rochester?"
  • "The picture you have just drawn is suggestive of a rather too
  • overwhelming contrast. Your words have delineated very prettily a
  • graceful Apollo: he is present to your imagination,--tall, fair, blue-
  • eyed, and with a Grecian profile. Your eyes dwell on a Vulcan,--a real
  • blacksmith, brown, broad-shouldered: and blind and lame into the
  • bargain."
  • "I never thought of it, before; but you certainly are rather like Vulcan,
  • sir."
  • "Well, you can leave me, ma'am: but before you go" (and he retained me by
  • a firmer grasp than ever), "you will be pleased just to answer me a
  • question or two." He paused.
  • "What questions, Mr. Rochester?"
  • Then followed this cross-examination.
  • "St. John made you schoolmistress of Morton before he knew you were his
  • cousin?"
  • "Yes."
  • "You would often see him? He would visit the school sometimes?"
  • "Daily."
  • "He would approve of your plans, Jane? I know they would be clever, for
  • you are a talented creature!"
  • "He approved of them--yes."
  • "He would discover many things in you he could not have expected to find?
  • Some of your accomplishments are not ordinary."
  • "I don't know about that."
  • "You had a little cottage near the school, you say: did he ever come
  • there to see you?"
  • "Now and then?"
  • "Of an evening?"
  • "Once or twice."
  • A pause.
  • "How long did you reside with him and his sisters after the cousinship
  • was discovered?"
  • "Five months."
  • "Did Rivers spend much time with the ladies of his family?"
  • "Yes; the back parlour was both his study and ours: he sat near the
  • window, and we by the table."
  • "Did he study much?"
  • "A good deal."
  • "What?"
  • "Hindostanee."
  • "And what did you do meantime?"
  • "I learnt German, at first."
  • "Did he teach you?"
  • "He did not understand German."
  • "Did he teach you nothing?"
  • "A little Hindostanee."
  • "Rivers taught you Hindostanee?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "And his sisters also?"
  • "No."
  • "Only you?"
  • "Only me."
  • "Did you ask to learn?"
  • "No."
  • "He wished to teach you?"
  • "Yes."
  • A second pause.
  • "Why did he wish it? Of what use could Hindostanee be to you?"
  • "He intended me to go with him to India."
  • "Ah! here I reach the root of the matter. He wanted you to marry him?"
  • "He asked me to marry him."
  • "That is a fiction--an impudent invention to vex me."
  • "I beg your pardon, it is the literal truth: he asked me more than once,
  • and was as stiff about urging his point as ever you could be."
  • "Miss Eyre, I repeat it, you can leave me. How often am I to say the
  • same thing? Why do you remain pertinaciously perched on my knee, when I
  • have given you notice to quit?"
  • "Because I am comfortable there."
  • "No, Jane, you are not comfortable there, because your heart is not with
  • me: it is with this cousin--this St. John. Oh, till this moment, I
  • thought my little Jane was all mine! I had a belief she loved me even
  • when she left me: that was an atom of sweet in much bitter. Long as we
  • have been parted, hot tears as I have wept over our separation, I never
  • thought that while I was mourning her, she was loving another! But it is
  • useless grieving. Jane, leave me: go and marry Rivers."
  • "Shake me off, then, sir,--push me away, for I'll not leave you of my own
  • accord."
  • "Jane, I ever like your tone of voice: it still renews hope, it sounds so
  • truthful. When I hear it, it carries me back a year. I forget that you
  • have formed a new tie. But I am not a fool--go--"
  • "Where must I go, sir?"
  • "Your own way--with the husband you have chosen."
  • "Who is that?"
  • "You know--this St. John Rivers."
  • "He is not my husband, nor ever will be. He does not love me: I do not
  • love him. He loves (as he _can_ love, and that is not as you love) a
  • beautiful young lady called Rosamond. He wanted to marry me only because
  • he thought I should make a suitable missionary's wife, which she would
  • not have done. He is good and great, but severe; and, for me, cold as an
  • iceberg. He is not like you, sir: I am not happy at his side, nor near
  • him, nor with him. He has no indulgence for me--no fondness. He sees
  • nothing attractive in me; not even youth--only a few useful mental
  • points.--Then I must leave you, sir, to go to him?"
  • I shuddered involuntarily, and clung instinctively closer to my blind but
  • beloved master. He smiled.
  • "What, Jane! Is this true? Is such really the state of matters between
  • you and Rivers?"
  • "Absolutely, sir! Oh, you need not be jealous! I wanted to tease you a
  • little to make you less sad: I thought anger would be better than grief.
  • But if you wish me to love you, could you but see how much I _do_ love
  • you, you would be proud and content. All my heart is yours, sir: it
  • belongs to you; and with you it would remain, were fate to exile the rest
  • of me from your presence for ever."
  • Again, as he kissed me, painful thoughts darkened his aspect.
  • "My seared vision! My crippled strength!" he murmured regretfully.
  • I caressed, in order to soothe him. I knew of what he was thinking, and
  • wanted to speak for him, but dared not. As he turned aside his face a
  • minute, I saw a tear slide from under the sealed eyelid, and trickle down
  • the manly cheek. My heart swelled.
  • "I am no better than the old lightning-struck chestnut-tree in Thornfield
  • orchard," he remarked ere long. "And what right would that ruin have to
  • bid a budding woodbine cover its decay with freshness?"
  • "You are no ruin, sir--no lightning-struck tree: you are green and
  • vigorous. Plants will grow about your roots, whether you ask them or
  • not, because they take delight in your bountiful shadow; and as they grow
  • they will lean towards you, and wind round you, because your strength
  • offers them so safe a prop."
  • Again he smiled: I gave him comfort.
  • "You speak of friends, Jane?" he asked.
  • "Yes, of friends," I answered rather hesitatingly: for I knew I meant
  • more than friends, but could not tell what other word to employ. He
  • helped me.
  • "Ah! Jane. But I want a wife."
  • "Do you, sir?"
  • "Yes: is it news to you?"
  • "Of course: you said nothing about it before."
  • "Is it unwelcome news?"
  • "That depends on circumstances, sir--on your choice."
  • "Which you shall make for me, Jane. I will abide by your decision."
  • "Choose then, sir--_her who loves you best_."
  • "I will at least choose--_her I love best_. Jane, will you marry me?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "A poor blind man, whom you will have to lead about by the hand?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "A crippled man, twenty years older than you, whom you will have to wait
  • on?"
  • "Yes, sir."
  • "Truly, Jane?"
  • "Most truly, sir."
  • "Oh! my darling! God bless you and reward you!"
  • "Mr. Rochester, if ever I did a good deed in my life--if ever I thought a
  • good thought--if ever I prayed a sincere and blameless prayer--if ever I
  • wished a righteous wish,--I am rewarded now. To be your wife is, for me,
  • to be as happy as I can be on earth."
  • "Because you delight in sacrifice."
  • "Sacrifice! What do I sacrifice? Famine for food, expectation for
  • content. To be privileged to put my arms round what I value--to press my
  • lips to what I love--to repose on what I trust: is that to make a
  • sacrifice? If so, then certainly I delight in sacrifice."
  • "And to bear with my infirmities, Jane: to overlook my deficiencies."
  • "Which are none, sir, to me. I love you better now, when I can really be
  • useful to you, than I did in your state of proud independence, when you
  • disdained every part but that of the giver and protector."
  • "Hitherto I have hated to be helped--to be led: henceforth, I feel I
  • shall hate it no more. I did not like to put my hand into a hireling's,
  • but it is pleasant to feel it circled by Jane's little fingers. I
  • preferred utter loneliness to the constant attendance of servants; but
  • Jane's soft ministry will be a perpetual joy. Jane suits me: do I suit
  • her?"
  • "To the finest fibre of my nature, sir."
  • "The case being so, we have nothing in the world to wait for: we must be
  • married instantly."
  • He looked and spoke with eagerness: his old impetuosity was rising.
  • "We must become one flesh without any delay, Jane: there is but the
  • licence to get--then we marry."
  • "Mr. Rochester, I have just discovered the sun is far declined from its
  • meridian, and Pilot is actually gone home to his dinner. Let me look at
  • your watch."
  • "Fasten it into your girdle, Janet, and keep it henceforward: I have no
  • use for it."
  • "It is nearly four o'clock in the afternoon, sir. Don't you feel
  • hungry?"
  • "The third day from this must be our wedding-day, Jane. Never mind fine
  • clothes and jewels, now: all that is not worth a fillip."
  • "The sun has dried up all the rain-drops, sir. The breeze is still: it
  • is quite hot."
  • "Do you know, Jane, I have your little pearl necklace at this moment
  • fastened round my bronze scrag under my cravat? I have worn it since the
  • day I lost my only treasure, as a memento of her."
  • "We will go home through the wood: that will be the shadiest way."
  • He pursued his own thoughts without heeding me.
  • "Jane! you think me, I daresay, an irreligious dog: but my heart swells
  • with gratitude to the beneficent God of this earth just now. He sees not
  • as man sees, but far clearer: judges not as man judges, but far more
  • wisely. I did wrong: I would have sullied my innocent flower--breathed
  • guilt on its purity: the Omnipotent snatched it from me. I, in my stiff-
  • necked rebellion, almost cursed the dispensation: instead of bending to
  • the decree, I defied it. Divine justice pursued its course; disasters
  • came thick on me: I was forced to pass through the valley of the shadow
  • of death. _His_ chastisements are mighty; and one smote me which has
  • humbled me for ever. You know I was proud of my strength: but what is it
  • now, when I must give it over to foreign guidance, as a child does its
  • weakness? Of late, Jane--only--only of late--I began to see and
  • acknowledge the hand of God in my doom. I began to experience remorse,
  • repentance; the wish for reconcilement to my Maker. I began sometimes to
  • pray: very brief prayers they were, but very sincere.
  • "Some days since: nay, I can number them--four; it was last Monday night,
  • a singular mood came over me: one in which grief replaced frenzy--sorrow,
  • sullenness. I had long had the impression that since I could nowhere
  • find you, you must be dead. Late that night--perhaps it might be between
  • eleven and twelve o'clock--ere I retired to my dreary rest, I supplicated
  • God, that, if it seemed good to Him, I might soon be taken from this
  • life, and admitted to that world to come, where there was still hope of
  • rejoining Jane.
  • "I was in my own room, and sitting by the window, which was open: it
  • soothed me to feel the balmy night-air; though I could see no stars and
  • only by a vague, luminous haze, knew the presence of a moon. I longed
  • for thee, Janet! Oh, I longed for thee both with soul and flesh! I
  • asked of God, at once in anguish and humility, if I had not been long
  • enough desolate, afflicted, tormented; and might not soon taste bliss and
  • peace once more. That I merited all I endured, I acknowledged--that I
  • could scarcely endure more, I pleaded; and the alpha and omega of my
  • heart's wishes broke involuntarily from my lips in the words--'Jane!
  • Jane! Jane!'"
  • "Did you speak these words aloud?"
  • "I did, Jane. If any listener had heard me, he would have thought me
  • mad: I pronounced them with such frantic energy."
  • "And it was last Monday night, somewhere near midnight?"
  • "Yes; but the time is of no consequence: what followed is the strange
  • point. You will think me superstitious,--some superstition I have in my
  • blood, and always had: nevertheless, this is true--true at least it is
  • that I heard what I now relate.
  • "As I exclaimed 'Jane! Jane! Jane!' a voice--I cannot tell whence the
  • voice came, but I know whose voice it was--replied, 'I am coming: wait
  • for me;' and a moment after, went whispering on the wind the words--'Where
  • are you?'
  • "I'll tell you, if I can, the idea, the picture these words opened to my
  • mind: yet it is difficult to express what I want to express. Ferndean is
  • buried, as you see, in a heavy wood, where sound falls dull, and dies
  • unreverberating. 'Where are you?' seemed spoken amongst mountains; for I
  • heard a hill-sent echo repeat the words. Cooler and fresher at the
  • moment the gale seemed to visit my brow: I could have deemed that in some
  • wild, lone scene, I and Jane were meeting. In spirit, I believe we must
  • have met. You no doubt were, at that hour, in unconscious sleep, Jane:
  • perhaps your soul wandered from its cell to comfort mine; for those were
  • your accents--as certain as I live--they were yours!"
  • Reader, it was on Monday night--near midnight--that I too had received
  • the mysterious summons: those were the very words by which I replied to
  • it. I listened to Mr. Rochester's narrative, but made no disclosure in
  • return. The coincidence struck me as too awful and inexplicable to be
  • communicated or discussed. If I told anything, my tale would be such as
  • must necessarily make a profound impression on the mind of my hearer: and
  • that mind, yet from its sufferings too prone to gloom, needed not the
  • deeper shade of the supernatural. I kept these things then, and pondered
  • them in my heart.
  • "You cannot now wonder," continued my master, "that when you rose upon me
  • so unexpectedly last night, I had difficulty in believing you any other
  • than a mere voice and vision, something that would melt to silence and
  • annihilation, as the midnight whisper and mountain echo had melted
  • before. Now, I thank God! I know it to be otherwise. Yes, I thank
  • God!"
  • He put me off his knee, rose, and reverently lifting his hat from his
  • brow, and bending his sightless eyes to the earth, he stood in mute
  • devotion. Only the last words of the worship were audible.
  • "I thank my Maker, that, in the midst of judgment, he has remembered
  • mercy. I humbly entreat my Redeemer to give me strength to lead
  • henceforth a purer life than I have done hitherto!"
  • Then he stretched his hand out to be led. I took that dear hand, held it
  • a moment to my lips, then let it pass round my shoulder: being so much
  • lower of stature than he, I served both for his prop and guide. We
  • entered the wood, and wended homeward.
  • CHAPTER XXXVIII--CONCLUSION
  • Reader, I married him. A quiet wedding we had: he and I, the parson and
  • clerk, were alone present. When we got back from church, I went into the
  • kitchen of the manor-house, where Mary was cooking the dinner and John
  • cleaning the knives, and I said--
  • "Mary, I have been married to Mr. Rochester this morning." The
  • housekeeper and her husband were both of that decent phlegmatic order of
  • people, to whom one may at any time safely communicate a remarkable piece
  • of news without incurring the danger of having one's ears pierced by some
  • shrill ejaculation, and subsequently stunned by a torrent of wordy
  • wonderment. Mary did look up, and she did stare at me: the ladle with
  • which she was basting a pair of chickens roasting at the fire, did for
  • some three minutes hang suspended in air; and for the same space of time
  • John's knives also had rest from the polishing process: but Mary, bending
  • again over the roast, said only--
  • "Have you, Miss? Well, for sure!"
  • A short time after she pursued--"I seed you go out with the master, but I
  • didn't know you were gone to church to be wed;" and she basted away.
  • John, when I turned to him, was grinning from ear to ear.
  • "I telled Mary how it would be," he said: "I knew what Mr. Edward" (John
  • was an old servant, and had known his master when he was the cadet of the
  • house, therefore, he often gave him his Christian name)--"I knew what Mr.
  • Edward would do; and I was certain he would not wait long neither: and
  • he's done right, for aught I know. I wish you joy, Miss!" and he
  • politely pulled his forelock.
  • "Thank you, John. Mr. Rochester told me to give you and Mary this." I
  • put into his hand a five-pound note. Without waiting to hear more, I
  • left the kitchen. In passing the door of that sanctum some time after, I
  • caught the words--
  • "She'll happen do better for him nor ony o't' grand ladies." And again,
  • "If she ben't one o' th' handsomest, she's noan faal and varry
  • good-natured; and i' his een she's fair beautiful, onybody may see that."
  • I wrote to Moor House and to Cambridge immediately, to say what I had
  • done: fully explaining also why I had thus acted. Diana and Mary
  • approved the step unreservedly. Diana announced that she would just give
  • me time to get over the honeymoon, and then she would come and see me.
  • "She had better not wait till then, Jane," said Mr. Rochester, when I
  • read her letter to him; "if she does, she will be too late, for our
  • honeymoon will shine our life long: its beams will only fade over your
  • grave or mine."
  • How St. John received the news, I don't know: he never answered the
  • letter in which I communicated it: yet six months after he wrote to me,
  • without, however, mentioning Mr. Rochester's name or alluding to my
  • marriage. His letter was then calm, and, though very serious, kind. He
  • has maintained a regular, though not frequent, correspondence ever since:
  • he hopes I am happy, and trusts I am not of those who live without God in
  • the world, and only mind earthly things.
  • You have not quite forgotten little Adele, have you, reader? I had not;
  • I soon asked and obtained leave of Mr. Rochester, to go and see her at
  • the school where he had placed her. Her frantic joy at beholding me
  • again moved me much. She looked pale and thin: she said she was not
  • happy. I found the rules of the establishment were too strict, its
  • course of study too severe for a child of her age: I took her home with
  • me. I meant to become her governess once more, but I soon found this
  • impracticable; my time and cares were now required by another--my husband
  • needed them all. So I sought out a school conducted on a more indulgent
  • system, and near enough to permit of my visiting her often, and bringing
  • her home sometimes. I took care she should never want for anything that
  • could contribute to her comfort: she soon settled in her new abode,
  • became very happy there, and made fair progress in her studies. As she
  • grew up, a sound English education corrected in a great measure her
  • French defects; and when she left school, I found in her a pleasing and
  • obliging companion: docile, good-tempered, and well-principled. By her
  • grateful attention to me and mine, she has long since well repaid any
  • little kindness I ever had it in my power to offer her.
  • My tale draws to its close: one word respecting my experience of married
  • life, and one brief glance at the fortunes of those whose names have most
  • frequently recurred in this narrative, and I have done.
  • I have now been married ten years. I know what it is to live entirely
  • for and with what I love best on earth. I hold myself supremely
  • blest--blest beyond what language can express; because I am my husband's
  • life as fully as he is mine. No woman was ever nearer to her mate than I
  • am: ever more absolutely bone of his bone and flesh of his flesh. I know
  • no weariness of my Edward's society: he knows none of mine, any more than
  • we each do of the pulsation of the heart that beats in our separate
  • bosoms; consequently, we are ever together. To be together is for us to
  • be at once as free as in solitude, as gay as in company. We talk, I
  • believe, all day long: to talk to each other is but a more animated and
  • an audible thinking. All my confidence is bestowed on him, all his
  • confidence is devoted to me; we are precisely suited in character--perfect
  • concord is the result.
  • Mr. Rochester continued blind the first two years of our union; perhaps
  • it was that circumstance that drew us so very near--that knit us so very
  • close: for I was then his vision, as I am still his right hand.
  • Literally, I was (what he often called me) the apple of his eye. He saw
  • nature--he saw books through me; and never did I weary of gazing for his
  • behalf, and of putting into words the effect of field, tree, town, river,
  • cloud, sunbeam--of the landscape before us; of the weather round us--and
  • impressing by sound on his ear what light could no longer stamp on his
  • eye. Never did I weary of reading to him; never did I weary of
  • conducting him where he wished to go: of doing for him what he wished to
  • be done. And there was a pleasure in my services, most full, most
  • exquisite, even though sad--because he claimed these services without
  • painful shame or damping humiliation. He loved me so truly, that he knew
  • no reluctance in profiting by my attendance: he felt I loved him so
  • fondly, that to yield that attendance was to indulge my sweetest wishes.
  • One morning at the end of the two years, as I was writing a letter to his
  • dictation, he came and bent over me, and said--"Jane, have you a
  • glittering ornament round your neck?"
  • I had a gold watch-chain: I answered "Yes."
  • "And have you a pale blue dress on?"
  • {And have you a pale blue dress on?: p435.jpg}
  • I had. He informed me then, that for some time he had fancied the
  • obscurity clouding one eye was becoming less dense; and that now he was
  • sure of it.
  • He and I went up to London. He had the advice of an eminent oculist; and
  • he eventually recovered the sight of that one eye. He cannot now see
  • very distinctly: he cannot read or write much; but he can find his way
  • without being led by the hand: the sky is no longer a blank to him--the
  • earth no longer a void. When his first-born was put into his arms, he
  • could see that the boy had inherited his own eyes, as they once
  • were--large, brilliant, and black. On that occasion, he again, with a
  • full heart, acknowledged that God had tempered judgment with mercy.
  • My Edward and I, then, are happy: and the more so, because those we most
  • love are happy likewise. Diana and Mary Rivers are both married:
  • alternately, once every year, they come to see us, and we go to see them.
  • Diana's husband is a captain in the navy, a gallant officer and a good
  • man. Mary's is a clergyman, a college friend of her brother's, and, from
  • his attainments and principles, worthy of the connection. Both Captain
  • Fitzjames and Mr. Wharton love their wives, and are loved by them.
  • As to St. John Rivers, he left England: he went to India. He entered on
  • the path he had marked for himself; he pursues it still. A more
  • resolute, indefatigable pioneer never wrought amidst rocks and dangers.
  • Firm, faithful, and devoted, full of energy, and zeal, and truth, he
  • labours for his race; he clears their painful way to improvement; he hews
  • down like a giant the prejudices of creed and caste that encumber it. He
  • may be stern; he may be exacting; he may be ambitious yet; but his is the
  • sternness of the warrior Greatheart, who guards his pilgrim convoy from
  • the onslaught of Apollyon. His is the exaction of the apostle, who
  • speaks but for Christ, when he says--"Whosoever will come after me, let
  • him deny himself, and take up his cross and follow me." His is the
  • ambition of the high master-spirit, which aims to fill a place in the
  • first rank of those who are redeemed from the earth--who stand without
  • fault before the throne of God, who share the last mighty victories of
  • the Lamb, who are called, and chosen, and faithful.
  • St. John is unmarried: he never will marry now. Himself has hitherto
  • sufficed to the toil, and the toil draws near its close: his glorious sun
  • hastens to its setting. The last letter I received from him drew from my
  • eyes human tears, and yet filled my heart with divine joy: he anticipated
  • his sure reward, his incorruptible crown. I know that a stranger's hand
  • will write to me next, to say that the good and faithful servant has been
  • called at length into the joy of his Lord. And why weep for this? No
  • fear of death will darken St. John's last hour: his mind will be
  • unclouded, his heart will be undaunted, his hope will be sure, his faith
  • steadfast. His own words are a pledge of this--
  • "My Master," he says, "has forewarned me. Daily He announces more
  • distinctly,--'Surely I come quickly!' and hourly I more eagerly
  • respond,--'Amen; even so come, Lord Jesus!'"
  • ***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK JANE EYRE***
  • ******* This file should be named 1260.txt or 1260.zip *******
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/1/2/6/1260
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://www.gutenberg.org/about/contact
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  • To donate, please visit:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.